summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--77775-0.txt10971
-rw-r--r--77775-h/77775-h.htm12092
-rw-r--r--77775-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 861703 bytes
-rw-r--r--77775-h/images/i1.jpgbin0 -> 211220 bytes
-rw-r--r--77775-h/images/i2.jpgbin0 -> 6517 bytes
-rw-r--r--77775-h/images/i3.jpgbin0 -> 139438 bytes
-rw-r--r--77775-h/images/i4.jpgbin0 -> 103573 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
10 files changed, 23079 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/77775-0.txt b/77775-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..a08bfff
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,10971 @@
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 77775 ***
+
+
+
+
+ PRICE 25 CENTS
+
+
+ SWORN TO SILENCE
+
+ or, ALINE RODNEY’S SECRET.
+
+ By MRS. ALEX. McVEIGH MILLER.
+
+ [Illustration: THE SWEETHEART SERIES
+
+ GEORGE
+ MUNRO’S
+ SONS,
+ PUBLISHERS.
+
+ 17 to 27
+ VANDEWATER
+ STREET,
+ NEW YORK.
+
+ Copyright, 1898, by George Munro’s Sons.
+
+ By Subscription, $10.00 per Annum.]
+
+
+
+
+THE NEW YORK FASHION BAZAR
+
+Model Letter-Writer and Lovers’ Oracle.
+
+WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.
+
+PRICE 10 CENTS.
+
+This book is a complete guide for both ladies and gentlemen in elegant
+and fashionable letter-writing: containing perfect examples of every
+form of correspondence, business letters, love letters, letters to
+relatives and friends, wedding and reception cards, invitations to
+entertainments, letters accepting and declining invitations, letters
+of introduction and recommendation, letters of condolence and duty,
+widows’ and widowers’ letters, love letters for all occasions,
+proposals of marriage, letters between betrothed lovers, letters of
+a young girl to her sweetheart, correspondence relating to household
+management, letters accompanying gifts, etc. Every form of letter used
+in affairs of the heart will be found in this little book. It contains
+simple and full directions for writing a good letter on all occasions.
+The latest forms used in the best society have been carefully followed.
+It is an excellent manual of reference for all forms of engraved cards
+and invitations.
+
+
+The New York Fashion Bazar Book of the Toilet.
+
+WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.
+
+PRICE 10 CENTS.
+
+This is a little book which we can recommend to every lady for the
+Preservation and Increase of Health and Beauty. It contains full
+directions for all the arts and mysteries of personal decoration, and
+for increasing the natural graces of form and expression. All the
+little affections of the skin, hair, eyes, and body, that detract
+from appearance and happiness, are made the subjects of precise and
+excellent recipes. Ladies are instructed how to reduce their weight
+without injury to health and without producing pallor and weakness.
+Nothing necessary to a complete toilet book of recipes and valuable
+advice and information has been overlooked in the compilation of this
+volume.
+
+
+The New York Fashion Bazar Book of Etiquette.
+
+WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.
+
+PRICE 10 CENTS.
+
+This book is a guide to good manners and the ways of fashionable
+society, a complete hand-book of behavior, containing all the polite
+observances of modern life: the etiquette of engagements and marriages;
+the manners and training of children; the arts of conversation and
+polite letter-writing; invitations to dinners, evening parties
+and entertainments of all descriptions; table manners; etiquette
+of visits and public places; how to serve breakfasts, luncheons,
+dinners and teas; how to dress, travel, shop, and behave at hotels
+and watering-places. This book contains all that a lady or gentleman
+requires for correct behavior on all social occasions.
+
+
+The foregoing works are for sale by all newsdealers, or will be sent to
+any address, postage free, on receipt of price, by the publishers.
+
+ Address GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS,
+ MUNRO’S PUBLISHING HOUSE,
+ 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+
+
+
+
+A Skin of Beauty is a Joy Forever
+
+DR. T. FELIX GOURAUD’S
+
+Oriental Cream
+
+OR MAGICAL BEAUTIFIER
+
+_For the Skin and Complexion_
+
+[Illustration]
+
+The only toilet preparation in America that has stood the actual test
+of public approval for over half a century.
+
+It will purify and beautify the skin and remove Pimples, Blackheads,
+Moth Patches, Rash, Freckles and Vulgar Redness, Yellow and Muddy
+Skin, giving a delicately clear and refined complexion. It is highly
+recommended by leading society and professional ladies, and cannot be
+surpassed when preparing for evening attire.
+
+Price $1.50 per bottle.
+
+For sale at druggists’ and fancy goods dealers’, or will be sent direct
+on receipt of price.
+
+
+Gouraud’s Oriental Velvet Sponge
+
+The most satisfactory article for applying =Gouraud’s Oriental Cream=.
+50 cents each, by mail on receipt of price.
+
+Gouraud’s Oriental Toilet Powder
+
+An ideal antiseptic toilet powder for infants and adults. Exquisitely
+perfumed. 25 cents a box by mail.
+
+FERD. T. HOPKINS, Proprietor, 37 Great Jones Street, New York
+
+
+
+
+ Sworn to Silence;
+
+ or,
+
+ ALINE RODNEY’S SECRET.
+
+ By MRS. ALEX McVEIGH MILLER.
+
+ [Illustration]
+
+ Copyright 1883, by George Munro.
+
+ [Illustration]
+
+ (SWEETHEART)
+
+ NEW YORK:
+ GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS, PUBLISHERS,
+ 17 to 27 Vanderwater Street.
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration:
+
+ FOR THE WOMAN OF FASHION
+ À LA SPIRITE
+ =C/B= CORSETS
+ STRAIGHT FRONT MODELS
+]
+
+
+
+
+THE MOTHER’S MISSION.
+
+
+[Illustration: 1840
+
+ MRS. WINSLOW’S
+
+ For
+ Children
+ While
+ Teething
+
+ SOOTHING SYRUP
+ 1907
+]
+
+A great Emperor once asked one of his noble subjects what would secure
+his country the first place among the nations of the earth. The
+nobleman’s grand reply was “Good mothers.” Now, what constitutes a
+good mother? The answer is conclusive. She who, regarding the future
+welfare of her child, seeks every available means that may offer to
+promote a sound physical development, to the end that her offspring may
+not be deficient in any single faculty with which nature has endowed
+it. In infancy there is no period which is more likely to affect the
+future disposition of the child than that of teething, producing as it
+does fretfulness, moroseness of mind, etc., which if not checked will
+manifest itself in after days.
+
+
+USE MRS. WINSLOW’S SOOTHING SYRUP.
+
+ Guaranteed under the Food and Drugs Act, June 30th, 1906. Serial
+ Number 1098.
+
+
+FOR OVER SIXTY YEARS
+
+An Old and Well-Tried Remedy
+
+=MRS. WINSLOW’S SOOTHING SYRUP= has been used for over =SIXTY= YEARS
+by MILLIONS of MOTHERS for their CHILDREN WHILE TEETHING, WITH PERFECT
+SUCCESS. IT SOOTHES the CHILD, SOFTENS the GUMS, ALLAYS all PAIN; CURES
+WIND COLIC, and is the best remedy for DIARRHOEA. Sold by Druggists in
+every part of the world. Be sure and ask for =MRS. WINSLOW’S SOOTHING
+SYRUP=, and take no other kind.
+
+
+Twenty-Five Cents a Bottle.
+
+
+
+
+SWORN TO SILENCE.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+
+ CHAPTER I.
+ CHAPTER II.
+ CHAPTER III.
+ CHAPTER IV.
+ CHAPTER V.
+ CHAPTER VI.
+ CHAPTER VII.
+ CHAPTER VIII.
+ CHAPTER IX.
+ CHAPTER X.
+ CHAPTER XI.
+ CHAPTER XII.
+ CHAPTER XIII.
+ CHAPTER XIV.
+ CHAPTER XV.
+ CHAPTER XVI.
+ CHAPTER XVII.
+ CHAPTER XVIII.
+ CHAPTER XIX.
+ CHAPTER XX.
+ CHAPTER XXI.
+ CHAPTER XXII.
+ CHAPTER XXIII.
+ CHAPTER XXIV.
+ CHAPTER XXV.
+ CHAPTER XXVI.
+ CHAPTER XXVII.
+ CHAPTER XXVIII.
+ CHAPTER XXIX.
+ CHAPTER XXX.
+ CHAPTER XXXI.
+ CHAPTER XXXII.
+ CHAPTER XXXIII.
+ CHAPTER XXXIV.
+ CHAPTER XXXV.
+ CHAPTER XXXVI.
+ CHAPTER XXXVII.
+ CHAPTER XXXVIII.
+ CHAPTER XXXIX.
+ CHAPTER XL.
+ CHAPTER XLI.
+ CHAPTER XLII.
+ CHAPTER XLIII.
+ CHAPTER XLIV.
+ CHAPTER XLV.
+ CHAPTER XLVI.
+ CHAPTER XLVII.
+ CHAPTER XLVIII.
+ CHAPTER XLIX.
+ CHAPTER L.
+ CHAPTER LI.
+ CHAPTER LII.
+ CHAPTER LIII.
+ CHAPTER LIV.
+ CHAPTER LV.
+ CHAPTER LVI.
+ CHAPTER LVII.
+ CHAPTER LVIII.
+ CHAPTER LIX.
+ CHAPTER LX.
+ CHAPTER LXI.
+ CHAPTER LXII.
+ CHAPTER LXIII.
+ CHAPTER LXIV.
+ CHAPTER LXV.
+ CHAPTER LXVI.
+ CHAPTER LXVII.
+ CHAPTER LXVIII.
+ CHAPTER LXIX.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I.
+
+ “Fair roses from far countries
+ Around my portals twine;
+ Bright on their radiant faces
+ Caressing sunbeams shine,
+ But my neighbor over yonder
+ Has a fairer rose than mine.
+
+ “I see his dainty cottage
+ Beyond my garden bowers,
+ High o’er it, tall and stately,
+ My shadowing mansion towers;
+ But my neighbor’s Rose of roses
+ Is sweeter than my flowers.”
+
+
+The family carriage of the Rodneys stood before the gate, and Mouse and
+Kitty, the two sleek gray ponies, champed their bits impatiently while
+the Rodneys, great and small, issued forth in gala attire.
+
+They were going to the picnic in Walnut Grove--mamma, papa, Effie, and
+little Max--all but Aline, and _she_ was in disgrace and forbidden to
+go. (Not that the command itself would have been sufficient to detain
+her, but she was locked into her room, “in durance vile,” and left in
+charge of the cook for safe-keeping.)
+
+Aline was usually in disgrace with the family. She had the sweetest
+face and the warmest heart in the world, but with her high spirits
+and willful ways she had a most lamentable faculty for getting into
+mischief of some sort daily, and it was for some more flagrant offense
+than usual that mamma had sternly vetoed the picnic to-day and locked
+her into her room to meditate on her many and grievous faults.
+
+The culprit, from her upper window, flattened her pretty piquant little
+nose against the window-pane and gazed after the departing quartet with
+great sparkling tears in the lovely eyes whose rare and peculiar shade
+of deep purple-blue had been caught from the far-off strain of Irish
+blood that flowed in her veins. They were “sweetest eyes were ever
+seen,” at once arch and tender and shaded by long, black-fringed lashes
+overarched by--
+
+ “Slender brows of shining jet,
+ Limned against the forehead’s snow,
+ Like triumphal arches set
+ O’er the conquering eyes below.”
+
+The Rodneys entered the carriage, and Aline flung them one last
+despairing kiss from the tips of her slim white fingers, but no one
+saw except, perhaps, her little brother, who looked up regretfully
+and saw the lovely, girlish face smiling at him through its sparkling
+tears. Then the carriage door was closed, Mouse and Kitty broke into a
+sedate trot, and the sweet face retired from the window and hid itself
+in a small square of snowy linen. Aline’s heart was for the moment
+completely broken.
+
+It was no small trial to be shut up in that hot, stifling little
+chamber all that lovely, sunny July day. She thought of the beautiful
+green grove close by the shining river, with the light winds ruffling
+its cool breast, of the happy gathering of young people, the games,
+the dancing, the hamper baskets of cold chicken and sweetmeats,
+indigestible pickles and pies and cakes, prepared for the gay,
+unceremonious dinner, and her heart sunk heavily. She would not
+willingly have foregone the delights of that day for anything she
+possessed. Any other punishment she could have borne with equanimity,
+but it did seem as if mamma had been actuated by malice prepense in
+forbidding the picnic to which Aline had looked forward eagerly for two
+long weeks.
+
+She wept some bitter tears, distinctly tinctured with anger, into her
+snowy handkerchief, then she wiped her eyes and looked about her for
+some means of passing the tedious time away. Her mother had brought her
+up a volume of sermons, by way of profitable reading. Aline vented her
+spite and disappointment most unjustifiably on the unoffending volume,
+by tossing it out of the little end window into her neighbor’s garden,
+and the innocent missile, in its rapid descent, hit her neighbor
+sharply upon the head.
+
+When she saw what she had done, a little cry of dismay broke from
+her lips. The great gray stone mansion standing in the beautiful
+garden next door to Mr. Rodney’s cottage was known throughout the
+little village of Chester as a haunted house; and its owner, the
+dark, moody-looking man who had just returned from a protracted
+sojourn abroad, was generally considered a very mysterious man. He was
+immensely rich, a bachelor, and handsome in a dark, corsair-like style
+that the girls of Chester considered very fascinating although it was
+so inaccessible.
+
+As for the gentleman himself he neither knew nor cared what the good
+villagers thought of him. He was among them, but not of them. He sought
+no society and received no guests. He dwelt alone and lonely in the
+grand old mansion where several generations of his ancestors had lived
+and died, and which popular imagination peopled with ghosts. Indeed, it
+was positively asserted that at the dread midnight hour shrieks of woe
+had been heard to issue from the deserted house, and lights had been
+seen flashing from window to window as if waved in phantom hands. The
+Delaneys had been a hard, proud, cruel race, so said Mme. Rumor, that
+knowing dame, and it was no wonder if some of them returned to earth in
+spirit to bewail the deeds done in the flesh.
+
+The humbler home of the Rodneys, a simple two-storied cottage, stood
+next the gloomy gray stone mansion, and the small end window of Aline’s
+little room overlooked the beautiful garden where the taciturn,
+grave-browed master strolled at will, and smoked his choice Havanas
+and switched off the heads of his splendid roses and lilies with his
+slender ebony cane as if hating all things beautiful and sweet.
+
+Many a time and oft Aline had watched this strange, mysterious unknown
+neighbor of theirs through a crevice in the white curtain, and
+speculated curiously over his history, while she inwardly deprecated
+the fact that those splendid flowers belonged to such a monster.
+
+“The cruel wretch! To snap off their heads with his ugly stick! I
+should like to knock _his_ head off!” Aline often muttered indignantly
+to herself, and lo! now in her eagerness to place the obnoxious book
+forever beyond her mother’s reach, she had almost compassed her wish.
+She saw the tall, straight figure reel a moment under the suddenness
+of the blow, saw him put his white hand quickly to his head, where a
+sharp corner of the book had inadvertently struck it. In her terror
+and dismay she uttered a little cry of alarm and regret. He looked up
+quickly at the sound--so quickly that she could not retreat.
+
+As he looked up he saw the sweetest girl face he had ever beheld in
+his life--beautiful even through its frightened pallor--with startled,
+wide-open blue eyes, the long black lashes curled upward, giving them
+an expression of almost infantine innocence and purity. The delicate
+oval of the lovely face was daintily broken by a deep dimple in the
+rounded chin, the parted red lips disclosed teeth like pearls, and the
+dark, silken hair, worn in short, babyish rings on the round, white
+forehead, fell over her shoulders in long, loose, natural ringlets to
+the slender, rounded waist. Framed in the small, white-draped window,
+with a vine of his own rare clematis clambering up from his garden and
+twining luxuriantly about the casement, she looked like some beautiful
+picture--a picture that Oran Delaney carried in his heart to his dying
+day, “unforgotten in every charm.”
+
+For her, she looked down into the dark, wondering eyes of her
+mysterious neighbor, and set her little teeth and held her ground
+bravely, determined not to fly from his wrath. Some confused,
+remorseful dread of mamma’s and Effie’s anger at this new scrape
+flashed into her mind momentarily; poor mamma, who thought that for
+this one day, at least, she had secured her willful, thoughtless
+darling from the commission of the smallest bit of mischief--and she
+determined to make a treaty of peace with this _bête noir_ of hers, in
+order to secure his silence, little dreaming that with this culminating
+act of folly the story of her life would begin.
+
+Aline was ordinarily a brave girl, but she was honestly frightened now
+at what she had done. Oran Delaney was an ogre in her eyes, and her
+youthful imagination, fired by the descriptions she had heard of him,
+recoiled in dismay at the thought of his wrath. Of course he would
+suppose that she had hurled the book at his head on purpose. His anger
+would be something fearful, she did not doubt. Would he report her
+conduct to her parents? She resolved frantically that, at all odds, he
+should not do that. She could not endure it.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II.
+
+
+She tried to summon a smile to her lips, but they only quivered
+instead. Spite of her innocent propensity for getting into trouble,
+Aline was very sensitive. The ludicrous side of her position did not
+strike her in her awe of Oran Delaney. She summoned all her fortitude
+to her aid, and looked down into the dark, handsome face, waiting to
+hear him speak.
+
+But he did not do so. His upraised eyes stared straight into her own
+with a gaze full of wonder and perplexity; his dark mustached lips even
+smiled slightly. He would not speak. He was evidently waiting for her
+to take the initiative.
+
+Seeing this, Aline made a great effort. She leaned out of the window,
+and gasped, rather indistinctly:
+
+“I--I beg your pardon, Mr. Delaney. I didn’t mean to throw the book
+out--that is, I meant to throw it out, but I didn’t mean to hit you! I
+didn’t know you were there!”
+
+Having mumbled out this comprehensive apology, Aline waited anxiously
+for his answer.
+
+She saw a smile creeping around his lips, as the ludicrous state of
+the case dawned on him. The face that looked so cold and stern, as she
+watched it daily under the shadow of his broad-leaved hat, did not
+appear so terrible now, as he stood with uncovered head gazing up at
+her. It even had a beauty of its own, if one fancied straight, even
+features, an olive skin, dark, magnetic eyes, dark, clustering locks,
+tossed carelessly back from a broad, intellectual brow, and a smile
+that, when it curved the mustached lips, lent the charm of fascination
+to his whole face. That smile, as it shone on Aline now, inspired her
+with unconscious courage. She continued, pleadingly:
+
+“I hope you will excuse me, sir, and--and--if you please, I hope you
+will not tell mamma.”
+
+He picked up the book, and, turning the leaves, asked, in a deep,
+musical, slightly amused voice:
+
+“If you did not intend the missile for me, may I ask why you threw the
+book out at all?”
+
+“I was mad,” said Aline, flushing a little at the admission.
+
+“Mad--with such a good book as this? Sermons, aren’t they?” inquired
+Oran Delaney, lightly, as if talking to a child, which, in fact, she
+appeared to be, as seen at the window. Her face looked very young.
+He could not judge of the tall, rounded figure as she rested on her
+elbows, and looked down at him.
+
+“Yes--sermons--but awfully dry, you know,” she returned apologetically;
+“but, after all, you know, I oughtn’t to have thrown them away; mamma
+wouldn’t like it. Will you please throw the book back to me, Mr.
+Delaney?”
+
+He made several attempts to do so, but Aline was not clever at
+catching. It eluded the white, outstretched hands every time, and fell
+back into her neighbor’s garden. They both laughed. Aline began to
+think that her neighbor might not be such an ogre, after all.
+
+“Twice you have let it fall back upon my head,” he said. “You are too
+clumsy to catch it at all. Come down to the window in the first story,
+and I will hand it up to you.”
+
+“I--can’t,” replied Aline, flushing very red indeed.
+
+“Why not?” wonderingly.
+
+“I am locked into my room,” flushing deeper with shame.
+
+“Impossible! Who is your jailer?” inquired the gentleman.
+
+“Mamma; she has locked the door and gone off, leaving me here to read
+those dreary sermons that I threw away.”
+
+There is a moment’s silence. Aline reads palpable surprise on her
+neighbor’s face. The shame-flush deepens on her own.
+
+Presently, with a laugh, he says:
+
+“You must have been a very naughty girl, weren’t you?”
+
+“I didn’t mean to be, but mamma and Effie said I was. So they went off
+to the picnic, and locked me in here to punish me,” Aline said, growing
+confidential as her dread of Mr. Delaney grew less. “And oh, if they
+ever find out that I threw a book and knocked your hat off, I shall
+never hear the last of it. You won’t tell--will you?” pleadingly.
+
+“What would they do to you?--lock you into your room again?”
+
+“Worse than that, perhaps. I dare say they would devise some new
+punishment worse than any I have suffered yet,” sighing.
+
+“Are they cruel to you?”
+
+“Oh, no, only when I get into scrapes, as they say I am always doing.
+I am mischievous, they say, but I never mean to be. The way I get into
+trouble is like I did just now, you see, without knowing it,” she
+explains, plaintively.
+
+“A spoiled, willful child,” Oran Delaney says to himself, smiling;
+then, aloud: “Well, about this book--how am I to return it to you?”
+
+“I don’t know--and mamma will be so vexed with me,” plaintively.
+“Cannot you think of a plan?”
+
+The sweet entreaty in the blue eyes moved him strangely. He looks
+around.
+
+“Let me see. There is a step-ladder hereabouts used by the gardener in
+training vines against the wall. I might climb that.”
+
+“Oh, pray do,” she clasps her hands entreatingly, and he goes away in
+search of the article.
+
+Returning with a light, convenient step-ladder, he places it against
+the side of the house beneath the window. Her voice arrests him as he
+is about to ascend it.
+
+“Oh, if you please, Mr. Delaney, I should like a bunch of your nice
+roses,” this rather timidly.
+
+“Should you?” he says, surprised; then he looks around him at his
+beautiful garden glowing with all the lavish wealth of July--roses and
+lilies, and all the sweet sisterhood of flowers. From the green bowers
+and blooming beds of the garden, he lifts a keen glance to the upper
+windows of his stately house. The blinds are tightly closed at every
+window, an air of gloom and desertion pervades the scene. His glance
+goes back to that girlish face that is sweeter than all his flowers.
+
+“You love flowers?” he says.
+
+“Oh, so much!” she breathes, clasping her hands in pretty unconscious
+earnestness. “I wish that your garden were mine!”
+
+“Are you aware that you are transgressing the tenth commandment?” he
+inquires, dryly.
+
+“Am I? I don’t care. I can’t help envying you that splendid garden. You
+may have your house, and its ghosts, and welcome, but I do want your
+flowers.”
+
+“Ghosts,” he says, and a slight frown darkens on his brow.
+
+“Yes, there _are_ ghosts in that big, gloomy house, aren’t there?
+People say so, at least,” she answers.
+
+He makes no answer. The half smile he has worn until now fades from
+his face. He remains lost in thought a moment, then abruptly turns the
+subject.
+
+“Since you like flowers so well, you may come down and take all you
+want.”
+
+“How?” she asks, bewildered.
+
+“Down the ladder,” he replies, carelessly, and Aline catches her breath.
+
+To be permitted to set foot in that lovely spot, than which it seems to
+her the garden of Eden had not been lovelier--to fill her hands with
+those exquisite flowers, and her heart and soul with their fragrance.
+It seems too good to be true. But, down the ladder? Would that be
+right? A premonitory vision of mamma’s horror darted into her mind. She
+set the temptation side by side with the scolding and the punishment,
+and weighed them, and, a true daughter of Mother Eve, she let her own
+willful desires triumph.
+
+It was so pleasant to think of escaping from that stifling chamber, and
+reveling in green grass and tender flowers and springing fountains. She
+asked herself if it could be very wrong to escape from her prison for a
+very little while? As for descending the ladder, she did not mind that
+very much. I am ashamed to state that my heroine had been reproachfully
+accused of tomboyish propensities by her relations.
+
+She looked down a little wistfully into Oran Delaney’s dark, proud face.
+
+“Do you think it would be very wrong if I came down?” she said.
+
+“I cannot see where the harm would be,” he replied, lightly.
+
+“Then, if you will go away down that path there, I will come down the
+ladder and get some roses,” said Aline; and he laughed and walked away.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III.
+
+
+When she had set foot in the garden and he came back to her, he was
+honestly surprised. He had thought her a precocious child of thirteen.
+Here was a tall girl up to his shoulder, with a figure that was
+rounding into the gracious curves of womanhood--eighteen at the very
+least, he decided, in spite of her childish manner and the simple blue
+gingham dress whose ruffled skirt was still short enough to betray half
+an inch of _écru_ stocking above the top of her trim little buttoned
+boots.
+
+She looked back a little apprehensively at the step-ladder at the
+window.
+
+“You may move the ladder until I get my flowers,” she said. “I am
+afraid that if cook came up to see after me she would find me out.”
+
+He was rather amused at her pretty air of command as contrasted with
+her frightened, appealing tones of a little while ago. He obeyed her
+command, then sat down carelessly on a rustic seat, and watched her
+as she flitted about among his flowers. First she adorned herself,
+after the manner of a vain woman, with a bunch of rosebuds in the soft
+little fichu of white lace at her neck, and another at the belt of her
+white apron. Then she roved about from flower to flower, daintily and
+capriciously as a butterfly, but culling sweets as industriously as
+a bee, her white apron soon being filled with the scented beauties.
+Absorbed in her delightful occupation, time flew unheeded. She seemed
+to forget her neighbor, and the grim, gray house, whose shadow reached
+out long and dark and forbidding across the garden and compassed her in
+its gloom like a fateful prophecy.
+
+He watched the child, as he called her to himself, idly, and yet with
+that something of interest that even the cold and world-hardened
+cannot deny to youth and happiness. Something of pity mingled with his
+careless thoughts. She seemed so young, and gay, and light-hearted, and
+he knew that it could not last, that the years would overtake her, and
+teach her that
+
+ “Youth’s life is but a brief one,
+ Foam from an ebbing sea.”
+
+She passed out of sight under the shady arches of the trees, and for a
+little while Oran Delaney forgot her. He smoked a cigar with his hat
+drawn over his eyes, and his moody brows drawn together. The sudden
+silvery tinkle of a bell from the house aroused him to a remembrance of
+luncheon and his guest.
+
+He glanced around him, and caught the glimmer of a blue dress among
+the trees. Following it, he found her hovering over a bed of exquisite
+pansies, murmuring softly to herself little exclamations of girlish
+pleasure and delight.
+
+“I hope you will forgive me for rousing you to the prosaic realities
+of life,” he said, “but my luncheon is ready, and I came to ask you to
+share it.”
+
+“Luncheon!” She glanced up with a startled face. “Is it so late as
+that?”
+
+“‘How softly falls the foot of Time, that only treads on flowers!’” he
+quoted. “Yes, it is two o’clock”--glancing at his watch--“has not your
+physical entity already reminded you of that fact?”
+
+“If you mean that I ought to be hungry by this time, I believe it is
+true,” said she, smiling. “Although I had not thought of it before,
+I believe I should like a biscuit. But I must go home now; I cannot
+stay to lunch with you. Do not look at this great load of flowers, Mr.
+Delaney; I am afraid you will scold.”
+
+“You have tried to carry off every one in the garden, I see,” he
+returned, uncaring. “But my peaches and grapes are as sweet and lovely
+as my flowers. Come and try them.”
+
+Another temptation! Nothing ever tasted so delicious to Aline as the
+sunny side of a peach. She was curious over Mr. Delaney’s lunch, too,
+and wondered who prepared it, and what the inside of that great house
+looked like. Ever since they had come to the cottage to live, she had
+been curious over it. Should she let the opportunity to enter it and
+see go unimproved?
+
+Aline was a true descendant of our common mother Eve--she preferred
+knowledge at any risk. Her curiosity and her liking for peaches carried
+her beyond the bounds of prudence. She went boldly into the “lion’s
+den.”
+
+Dear reader, do not think my heroine altogether bold and frivolous.
+She was only simple, innocent, and ignorant. She had never been to
+Wisdom’s school. She was at heart a child still, with a child’s free,
+willful impulses.
+
+It did not occur to her that it was very improper to accept Mr.
+Delaney’s careless invitation to go into his house and take lunch with
+him. She wished very much to do so, and, being used to having her own
+way--very often with only occasional condign punishment, such as she
+had received to-day--she went.
+
+She went, and she was almost startled at the gloomy magnificence of
+the long and stately dining-hall, with its costly carpet, thick and
+soft as moss, its dark, rich, walnut furniture, glittering side-boards,
+paneled walls, and splendid pictures. On one end of the long, imposing
+table was spread a delicate, luxurious luncheon of cold chicken, flaky
+biscuit, sweetmeats, and cake, with grapes, peaches, and wine. The
+service was of gold, and silver, and crystal, and glittered in the
+subdued light that stole into the room through the closed curtains.
+There was no attendant in the room, and the whole house appeared
+as silent as the tomb. Nevertheless, Aline enjoyed her lunch very
+much; its mysterious origin seeming as if served by magic, and the
+costly plate on which it was laid did not detract from its charm. In
+her enjoyment of the delicate repast she quite forgot her original
+intention of eating only just one peach and hurrying home. She
+discussed the whole bill of fare with the keen appetite of a healthy
+girl used to out door exercise and fresh air; and then she was quite
+frightened to find that it was three o’clock.
+
+“Cook will have taken luncheon up to my room and found out that I have
+gone. What shall I do?” she said, growing suddenly frightened and
+lifting her large, anxious eyes to her entertainer’s face.
+
+“Cook will not tell of you, I hope. Will she?” asked Mr. Delaney,
+coolly peeling a peach with his white, aristocratic hand, on which a
+magnificent diamond glowed with iridescent fire. “Have this peach,
+Miss--Miss--do you know I haven’t found out your name yet?”
+
+“It is Aline--Aline Rodney. I thought you would know that much, as we
+are neighbors,” she said; then returning to her grievance, she added:
+“Cook will certainty betray me. You should have sent me home sooner.
+Why didn’t you?”
+
+“That would have been discourteous,” said Oran Delaney, with his
+winning smile; “and, besides, Miss Rodney, I forgot you. Will you
+pardon me for it? I was smoking and dreaming, you see, and you escaped
+my mind for the moment.”
+
+“‘Out of sight, out of mind,’” said Aline, quoting the old adage with
+perfect good humor. “Well, it was just the same with me. I thought
+of nothing but the flowers until you came up suddenly behind me. But
+I must go home now and see if I am found out. Ah, dear me, I am into
+another scrape, and, indeed, indeed, I never dreamed of it when I came
+down into the garden. I shall have to go down on my knees to cook, and
+beg her to keep it silent about the ladder and the book.”
+
+“Since you feel so sure that you are found out, there can surely be no
+need to haste to return to your prison,” said Oran Delaney, toying with
+a purple, bloomy bunch of grapes. “An hour more or less cannot matter
+materially, I suppose, in the extent of cook’s wrath?”
+
+“N--no, I suppose not,” said Aline, paltering with temptation weakly.
+“And I do hate to go back to that lonely room just yet. But, perhaps,”
+gazing at him, anxiously, “perhaps you would like for me to go. Perhaps
+you are weary of me.”
+
+A sudden sigh, deep, subtle, profound, breathed over his lips. He
+looked at her strangely.
+
+“I am weary of everything,” he said, abruptly. “But if it pleases you
+to stay, child, pray do so. It will be no annoyance to me.”
+
+From being terribly afraid of him at first, Aline had become quite
+trusting and confidential. She looked at him with a smile.
+
+“Thank you for your kind permission,” she said. “I will not go just
+yet. There are some things I should like to find out before I go home.”
+
+“You are very frank.”
+
+“Do you think so?” asked his unconventional guest. “And will you answer
+truly what I am about to ask you?”
+
+“_Cela depends_,” he replied, with a slight frown.
+
+“That means that you anticipate impertinent questions from me!” she
+laughed, easily. “But do you know, Mr. Delaney, that you have long been
+an object of curiosity to me?”
+
+“You flatter me,” said Oran Delaney, lightly.
+
+“I don’t know whether the curiosity is flattering or not,” said
+frank Aline. “The greater part of my curiosity is over this great,
+gloomy-looking house of yours. Is it really haunted, as they say?”
+
+“It is haunted by my presence--nothing more ghostly than that,” he
+replied, laconically.
+
+Aline looked as if she did not quite believe him, but she went on,
+perseveringly:
+
+“Do you really live in this house all alone, sir?”
+
+“Yes,” he replied.
+
+Her large eyes wandered over the delicately prepared luncheon, then
+returned to his quiet face.
+
+“But, really now, Mr. Delaney, there must be a housekeeper here. Else
+by whom could your meals be served?” she said.
+
+“By the fairies,” he replied, with perfect gravity.
+
+“You don’t expect me to believe that?” said Aline, pouting her rosy
+lips.
+
+“I hope you will. At least it is the only answer I can give you,” he
+retorted.
+
+Aline looked curiously at him. There was a slight smile on his face,
+but he spoke in grave earnest. She understood then that the secrets of
+the haunted house would remain secret still. He had no mind to reveal
+them to her.
+
+The rich color rose to her face as it suddenly flashed over her that he
+must think she made him a poor return for his courtesy by her pointed
+questions.
+
+“I beg your pardon for my impertinent questions,” she said. “I did not
+really mean to be rude. I was merely thoughtless.”
+
+“You are freely forgiven,” he answered, courteously.
+
+“And now I will thank you for your kindness, and go,” Aline continued,
+moving from the table and turning toward the door.
+
+Mr. Delaney walked by her side and opened the door for her with his
+quiet, courteous air.
+
+“You have done me the honor to be curious over my old house, Miss
+Rodney,” he said. “Perhaps this glimpse of its interior has not
+satisfied you. Do you care to examine any of the other rooms?”
+
+They were walking slowly along, side by side on the echoing floor of
+the wide, marble-paved hall, and Aline had just opened her lips to
+speak, but her answer, whether negative or affirmative, will never be
+recorded. It was frozen on her lips by a terrible interruption.
+
+The strange, brooding stillness that reigned throughout the great, gray
+stone mansion, was broken startlingly by a loud, prolonged shriek--a
+shriek of such terrible, diabolic, blood-curdling rage and hate, that
+it seemed to freeze the blood in Aline’s veins, and to cause every
+individual hair to stand erect upon her head with horror.
+
+Instinctively she threw out her hand, and clutching Mr. Delaney’s arm,
+stared up into his face with wide, terrified blue eyes, like a child’s
+appealing for protection.
+
+The shriek was repeated, followed by another, and another, each more
+terrible than the last. Those fearful cries struck terror to Aline’s
+heart. She could not determine whether they issued from male or female
+lips. It seemed to her frenzied fancy as if they did not belong to a
+human being, but rather to some vicious and diabolic spirit of the
+nether world. It
+
+ “Was neither man nor woman,
+ It was neither brute nor human,
+ ’Twas a ghoul.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV.
+
+
+As those wild, unearthly cries rang through the house, Oran Delaney
+stood for a moment like one rooted to the floor. His face had whitened
+to the ghastliness of death, a smoldering fire flashed from his
+splendid dark eyes, he ground a fierce, smothered imprecation between
+his strong, white teeth.
+
+“What is it? Oh! Mr. Delaney, what is it?” shuddered Aline, clinging
+convulsively to his arm.
+
+He started, and looked down at the sweet, white face, with its
+frightened blue eyes and chattering teeth. He did not answer, for again
+that dreadful, diabolic shriek of anger, frightening all the sleeping
+echoes into hideous sound, rang through the house:
+
+“Ah--h--h! Ah--h--h!”
+
+This time it sounded nearer, as if the ghostly utterer were coming
+rapidly upon the scene. Horror flashed from Oran Delaney’s eyes.
+
+With a sudden, swift, abrupt movement he shook the little, clinging
+hands from his sleeve, and moved toward the grand stairway that led to
+the upper regions of the house.
+
+With his foot upon the stair, he turned and looked back, pierced by the
+low, reproachful wail of fear and pain that burst from Aline’s lips.
+
+He saw the beautiful, graceful figure of the girl standing in the
+dark, gloomy hall, lighting its gloom with her beauty, like a flower
+or a star.
+
+Like one distraught, he waved his hand to her.
+
+“Fly, fly!” he shouted, hoarsely. “Lose not a moment! To linger in
+this terrible place means death!” Then he flew up the wide and winding
+stairway as if his feet were winged, and the girl, whose own willful
+folly and curiosity had brought her to this pass, stood like one rooted
+to the spot, filled with trembling and horror.
+
+She knew not where to fly. She was in the center of a long, dark
+hall, with doors opening into rooms on either hand and at either end.
+Through one of these latter doors she had come with Oran Delaney to
+the dining-room, but to save her life she could not have told which
+one. Oh, how horrible it was standing there, with those strange shrieks
+ringing in her ears, and feeling, with a strange despair at her heart,
+that Oran Delaney had fled from her like a coward, and left her to
+perish of this mysterious, unknown danger, rushing nearer and nearer!
+
+“Ah--h--h! Ah--h--h!” again rang shrilly in her frightened hearing,
+and, impelled by maddening fear, Aline sprung wildly forward and rushed
+to one of those wide hall doors, which she hoped would give her egress
+from this horror-haunted house, into sunshine and security again.
+
+She reached out her white hand gropingly for the door-knob, opened
+and fled through it as if pursued by a legion of fiends. It swung
+to heavily behind her, and her feet sunk deep into the velvet pile
+of a fine, rich carpet like softest moss. She was in the long and
+lofty parlors, where the dust lay thick upon the linen covers of the
+costly furniture, and the gleaming mirrors and splendid paintings were
+curtained from the sight. A cry of despair escaped her lips as she
+realized the truth.
+
+“It was the wrong door. I must retrace my steps,” she thought; but even
+as she laid her hand upon the knob she was startled by those hideous
+screams again--this time they seemed to come from the hall itself, and
+with a stifled exclamation Aline darted into the curtained alcove of
+a bay-window and let the heavy draperies of velvet and brocade fall
+heavily around her. She had scarcely done so before a hand turned the
+door-knob softly, something swished through the door, it closed again
+and she was conscious of an alien presence in the room. She could
+hear distinctly a heavy, muffled breathing, and the rustle of drapery
+trailed over the floor.
+
+Aline’s heart seemed beating in her throat almost to suffocation.
+She crouched upon the floor, her young face pale as death, her sweet
+eyes wild with horror of she knew not what invisible evil that was
+approaching her with swift, cat-like movements across the echoless
+floor. Was it ghost or human? she asked herself, fearfully.
+
+Crouching there, a little crumpled blue heap in the darkness, fearing
+to breathe lest her presence might be betrayed by even that stifled
+sound, Aline summoned courage to draw aside the lightest fold of the
+curtain to form a tiny aperture through which, herself unseen, she
+might see what or who had entered the darkened, dreary, deserted
+parlor. Curiosity, our little heroine’s besetting sin, had not deserted
+her yet, despite her fear and terror.
+
+She gazed fearfully through the tiny crevice in the curtain, and it
+was only by the exercise of a strong will power that she prevented
+herself from crying out aloud.
+
+A little dwarf-like, misshapen _something_, clothed in trailing
+garments like a woman, was approaching the alcove steadily and swiftly,
+as if guided by the unerring instinct of hate and murder to the
+hiding-place of its prey. The crooked hideous form was clothed with
+rich white satin and lace, all soiled and frayed as if from a terrible
+struggle, for there were wet and gory blood drops all spattered down
+the deep flounces of white lace that adorned the front breadth of the
+robe.
+
+Over a monstrous head, covered with rough matted locks of coarse black
+hair was thrown a long and splendid bridal veil of costly Brussels
+lace, and this, too, was soiled and tattered like the bridal robe.
+There was no face visible, for a mask was worn above it--a horrible
+mask of thick black crape; and Aline shuddered as she thought of the
+distorted features it hid, for the narrow slits for the eyes were not
+cut in a level line below the brows, but by some dreadful freak of
+nature the eyes of the creature were placed one below the brow, the
+other far down upon the cheek, and in this distorted form they glared
+through the holes of the mask like the yellow orbs of a tigress filled
+with the spirit of destruction.
+
+But these monstrous, baleful eyes were not all that struck terror to
+Aline’s heart as she knelt there, shuddering in the semi-darkness of
+the death-trap into which she had blindly rushed.
+
+The long, skinny, claw-like hand of the creature presented a yet more
+terrible aspect to her straining gaze, for the long white kid gloves
+that covered them were stained with crimson gore, and one hand grasped
+a slender, jewel-hilted dagger, from whose shining blade dripped human
+blood!
+
+The wild instinct of self-preservation blazed up in Aline’s heart. She
+thought of the beautiful, sunny world outside this horrible haunted
+house, and the fierce desire for life flamed up within her. Should she
+die here like some wild thing caught in a trap, without one effort for
+escape?
+
+She sprung to her feet and made a desperate rush past that horrible
+creature toward the door, but the footsteps of hate were swifter even
+than those of fear. Even as she tore open the door she felt the sharp
+clutch of cruel fingers on her arm, she was whirled violently backward,
+and the murderous dagger, already red with human gore, flashed in
+the creature’s hand, and the next instant sheathed itself in Aline’s
+breast. She fell across the door-sill, and lay motionless in a pool of
+her own spurting life blood.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V.
+
+
+The town-clock of Chester clanged the midnight hour out heavily from
+its hoarse, brazen throat--twelve!
+
+Aline opened her blue eyes languidly--they were heavy, as if weighed
+down with lead--and looked about her.
+
+They fell upon a scene utterly new and strange to her.
+
+She was lying on a downy, rosewood couch, with draperies of pale blue
+silk and snowy lace, in the center of a large and high-ceiled room
+hung with azure silk, the elegant rosewood furniture being upholstered
+in the same lovely material. Everything about her breathed of unlimited
+wealth and taste, and the sweet aroma of flowers floated delightfully
+through the beautiful apartment from the delicate vases on the mantel,
+which had been filled with the choicest wealth of the garden by a
+lavish and unsparing hand.
+
+“She revives, doctor,” said a woman’s voice.
+
+Aline lifted her eyes quickly. An elderly grave-faced woman had come
+forward to the bedside, and was bending curiously over her. She was
+dressed in a nurse’s cap and apron, and had a kind, though homely
+looking face.
+
+“Who are you, and where am I?” asked Aline, gazing at this strange face
+in bewilderment.
+
+“Hush, my dear! You are sick, and must not talk,” answered the nurse
+with a slight frown.
+
+She moved aside, and Aline saw two men behind her. A cry of fear broke
+from her lips. Both wore masks upon their faces; but, in the tall,
+well-knit figure of the foremost one, she recognized Oran Delaney.
+
+He came forward and bent over Aline, whispering, hurriedly:
+
+“Miss Rodney, I beg you, as a special favor, to keep silence a little
+while. Say nothing to this stranger of how you came by your wound.”
+
+Her wound! She gave a start and memory rushed over her. She was
+conscious too of a sharp, stinging pain in her breast, and the clothing
+upon it, she perceived, was stiffened and red with clotted blood. So
+that horrible creature had not quite killed her!
+
+She made no answer, for Oran Delaney moved quickly away, giving
+place to the masked physician. The nurse brought a basin of water,
+sponges, and linen, and he deftly bathed and dressed the wound, gazing
+curiously, now and then, at the beautiful, frightened face of his
+patient, who lay still as death with only a smothered moan, now and
+then, instantly stifled on her pale, almost icy, lips.
+
+“I will be as gentle as I can,” he said to her, kindly, but Aline did
+not speak. She had closed her eyes and relapsed into unconsciousness.
+
+When she unclosed them again, the masked physician was gone. She was
+alone with the quiet, grave-looking nurse in the dimly lighted room. A
+sensation of fear came over her. Why was she kept in this mysterious
+house with this strange woman? Where was her mother?
+
+She looked at the stranger, and asked, anxiously.
+
+“Am I in Mr. Delaney’s house?”
+
+The woman gave her a quiet, affirmative nod in reply.
+
+“And mamma--have you sent for her?” inquired Aline.
+
+“You must not talk, my dear,” answered the woman, soothingly.
+
+“You have not answered my question, and I want mamma, I must have
+her!” Aline cried out, in her imperious young voice, for she had
+forgotten her fear of her mother’s anger in her terror at the mysteries
+surrounding her. Oh, to be back under the safe little roof of the
+cottage that nestled under the shadow of this frowning mansion, to
+fling her arms around her mother’s neck, confessing her folly and
+pleading for forgiveness.
+
+“You do not answer me,” she said, after waiting vainly for an answer
+from the quiet nurse. “Tell me, why am I detained in this house?”
+
+“You ought to know how you came to be here, miss,” the woman answered,
+almost sullenly. “As for the rest, you are seriously wounded, and not
+able to be moved.”
+
+“Then you should have sent for my mother,” said Aline, with pretty,
+peremptory dignity. “She will be dreadfully frightened at my absence.
+Let some one bring her at once.”
+
+“Let us wait until to-morrow, dear,” said the nurse, persuasively.
+
+“I cannot wait,” said the girl, uneasily, and with an unutterable
+yearning at her heart for the mother whom she had so often grieved by
+her follies and willfulness. “Where is Mr. Delaney? Go, and send him
+here. Surely he will let me have mamma.”
+
+The woman glided softly out, and Aline, left alone in the strange room
+with its shadowy corners and dimly burning lamp, shuddered with fear.
+What if that dreadful, murderous creature should return and finish her
+work!
+
+“I shall die here miserably, and never see mamma and home again. Oh,
+how terribly I am punished for my thoughtlessness and folly!” wept
+Aline, filled with bitter repentance.
+
+The door unclosed, and Oran Delaney walked slowly into the room,
+followed by the nurse, who sat down discreetly at a distance from the
+bedside of her troublesome patient.
+
+He turned up the dim, flaring night-lamp so that its full light fell
+on Aline’s beautiful, pale, distressed face. He had removed the
+disfiguring mask that hid his features from the masked physician, and
+his dark face looked stern and pallid and troubled.
+
+“You sent for me?” he asked, in his grave, quiet voice.
+
+“I want mamma,” she answered, like a child.
+
+His slender, straight, dark brows met in a slight frown.
+
+“Miss Rodney, you must not excite yourself. I cannot answer for the
+consequences if you do,” he said.
+
+“I am not excited, I am quite calm; but I want mamma. Will you not
+bring her to me?” she pleaded.
+
+He laid his warm, strong hand gently for a moment on the dimpled little
+white ones that lay outside the silken counterpane.
+
+“My child, I am very sorry, but--I cannot,” he answered, slowly.
+
+She tore her small hand violently from his clasp, and looked at him
+with the dignity of a suddenly awakened womanhood flashing into her
+fair young face.
+
+“Mr. Delaney, surely I have misunderstood you,” she said. “You do not
+mean that you will let me lie here suffering, dying, and refuse to
+bring my friends to me?”
+
+“Dying? Oh, no, it is not so bad as that,” he said, almost
+shudderingly. “You have only a flesh wound, Miss Rodney. With patience
+on your part, and good nursing from Mrs. Griffin, here, you will be
+quite sure to recover.”
+
+“And in the meantime?” she asked, with a wistful meaning in her voice
+that he could not affect to misunderstand.
+
+He turned his head aside, disconcerted, perhaps, by the steady gaze of
+the blue eyes.
+
+“In the meantime, Mr. Delaney?” she repeated, in a slightly raised
+voice.
+
+He turned toward her again, and answered, abruptly, almost sternly:
+
+“I hope they will not be seriously alarmed about you, Miss Rodney,
+for it is quite impossible for me to make any communication to them
+regarding your whereabouts.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI.
+
+
+A cry of reproach, astonishment, and dismay came from Aline’s lips.
+
+“You will not be so cruel,” she cried. “What have I done to you that
+you should punish me so?”
+
+“I do not mean to punish you, Miss Rodney. On the contrary, I am
+exceedingly sorry that I cannot grant your wish,” he said. “But there
+are reasons--” he paused abruptly, and did not finish the sentence.
+
+“Strange reasons they must be that can keep a mother from the side of
+her suffering child,” cried Aline, with all the harshness of a young
+girl’s judgment.
+
+A heavy sigh breathed over Oran Delaney’s lips. His dark eyes turned to
+hers with more sadness than sternness in their gloomy depths.
+
+“They _are_ strange reasons,” he said, bitterly. “Ah, Miss Rodney, I
+was wrong, I was culpably thoughtless when I brought you into this
+house! You should not have come! No one ever crosses the threshold
+of my home. Do not ask that your friends should be brought here. I
+can never consent. I can only beg your pardon for my folly in leading
+you into this death-trap. It is a horror-haunted house. The legend of
+Hades should be written over its portals: ‘Who enters here, leaves Hope
+behind.’”
+
+His voice had an indescribable cadence of bitterness and regret in it.
+The dark, handsome face was profoundly grave and stern, the gesture of
+the hand as it brushed back the waving locks of dark hair that fell
+over his broad brow, was full of a hopeless woe. But Aline was too
+young and thoughtless to comprehend the tokens of despair in a man
+whose age almost doubled her own. Yet she was strangely impressed by
+his concluding words. She repeated them over thoughtfully:
+
+“‘Who enters here, leaves Hope behind.’ Ah, Mr. Delaney, I hope the
+legend will not come home to me!”
+
+But the day came when she knew that it had done so--that the shadow of
+the old gray stone house had stretched itself out long and dark, and
+fatally, across the budding hopes of her lifetime.
+
+He did not answer, and she went on impatiently;
+
+“If my friends may not come to me at least let me go to them. I am
+not too ill. Surely, I may be moved. It is such a little distance,”
+pleadingly.
+
+“It is quite impossible that you should leave this house until your
+wound is healed,” he answered, decisively, and Aline, completely
+crushed by his answer, began to weep heart-brokenly.
+
+He waited in painful silence for her to grow calmer. Like many another
+man, he was unable to reason with a woman’s tears.
+
+But Mrs. Griffin came forward, feeling her presence needed now. She
+said grimly to her master who stood gazing blankly before him:
+
+“If she is allowed to go on like this she will fall into a fever. I
+shall administer the composing draught the doctor left with me.”
+
+“Yes, that will be best,” he said, relieved. “I do not wish her to be
+excited, certainly. Miss Rodney,” he just touched one of the hands
+that hid Aline’s face, “pray do not take it so hard. You shall soon be
+restored to your home and friends, I pledge you my sacred promise! Only
+be patient a few days.”
+
+But the girl only wept more bitterly, and when Mrs. Griffin brought the
+composing draught she angrily waved it away. She would have none of it.
+
+“I never saw such a great, willful baby,” declared Mrs. Griffin,
+vexedly. “She needs the medicine. I’m afraid she’ll not get on without
+it.”
+
+“I hope you will not drive us to use force with you. It is quite
+imperative that you should obey the physician’s orders,” remonstrated
+Oran Delaney.
+
+“I do not wish to be put to sleep like a child. I wish to talk to
+you about your cruelty in keeping me here!” Aline sobbed out angrily
+through the white hands that hid her tear-stained face.
+
+“We will talk about that to-morrow,” he replied, and suddenly Aline
+felt a strong arm passed around her shoulders, her hands were drawn
+away from her face, the point of a teaspoon was pressed against her
+lips, and held there firmly in spite of her struggles, until she had
+swallowed every drop of the odious draught.
+
+“How dared you?” she cried, her face flaming with anger and resentment;
+and Mrs. Griffin remarked dryly:
+
+“If you act like a baby, you must expect folks to treat you like one.”
+
+Aline turned from her to the rash offender, who did not look very
+frightened or sorry, but only amused at her ebullition of wrath.
+
+“I beg your pardon,” he said, gently, but coolly. “I did not wish to
+offend you, Miss Rodney, but it was quite necessary you should take
+the doctor’s prescription. Do not think too hardly of me for doing my
+duty,” and then he walked quietly out of the room.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII.
+
+
+Aline was so indignant at the gentle force Mr. Delaney had used in
+compelling her to swallow the physician’s prescription that she angrily
+resolved not to submit to its influence, but to lie awake in spite of
+it, and bemoan her hard fate, in being thus cruelly separated from
+home and friends. She indulged herself for a little while in the most
+vehement sobs and tears, reckless of the injury she was doing herself
+in her feverish condition, and willfully intent on making herself as
+disagreeable as possible to her hard-hearted jailers.
+
+But the potent drug she had unwillingly taken was stronger than her
+will. The lids fell lower and lower over the heavy, tearful eyes, her
+moans grew fainter and fainter, until at last they ceased altogether,
+the dark lashes drooped upon the warm, flushed cheeks, and she fell
+asleep like a grieved child, sighing now and then in her slumber, and
+tossing restlessly, as if her sorrow had followed her even into the
+land of dreams.
+
+Mrs. Griffin remained on guard by her side a patient, untiring watcher,
+like one accustomed to such nightly vigils, until the brief summer
+night passed away and the “gray-eyed morn” peered in through the close
+drawn shutters upon the beautiful girl who still remained wrapped in
+deep, unbroken slumber.
+
+The grim, careful nurse looked at the fair, sleeping face from time to
+time with irrepressible admiration. She contrasted it, in fancy, with
+a monstrous face on which she was compelled to gaze daily, and she
+shuddered at the difference.
+
+“She is as beautiful as an angel. How terrible it would have been if
+that devil had murdered her!” she thought.
+
+She left the room after awhile, and locked the door after her,
+remaining absent nearly two hours. When she returned with a light,
+appetizing breakfast arranged upon a tray, Aline was awake and gazing
+dreamily around her at the unaccustomed room.
+
+“You feel better after your sleep, I hope, Miss Rodney, do you not?”
+she inquired, and Aline was obliged to admit that she did, feeling half
+ashamed at the petulance she had displayed before falling asleep.
+
+She found that, in spite of her painful wound and her anxiety, she had
+a very fair appetite for breakfast. She determined that she would get
+well, as fast as she could, in order to leave this dreadful house and
+return to her home. She wondered anxiously what poor mamma would say to
+this last new adventure of hers, more terrible than all the rest. She
+would not punish her by anger and blame and coldness, surely. Had she
+not already suffered enough?
+
+Poor Aline thought that she was well cured now of her mischievous
+propensities. After this she would never indulge her willful,
+thoughtless desires again. She would be as prim and perfect as her
+sister Effie, whom now she heartily reproached herself for having
+called a “starched-up old maid.”
+
+When she went home again she would beg Effie’s pardon, she was resolved
+upon that. They would be so frightened, so glad to have her back, they
+would forgive her for all her wildness and carelessness in the past if
+she promised never, never to do so again.
+
+She lay musing in this wise, remorsefully, when she was suddenly
+startled from her castle building by a repetition of the terrible
+shrieks of the day before. The awful sounds woke all the sleeping
+echoes of the place into dreadful concert. Aline screamed aloud in
+nervous terror and hid her face in the bed-clothes.
+
+Mrs. Griffin bent hurriedly over her.
+
+“Do not be frightened, my child,” she said. “I am compelled to leave
+you for a little while. But I shall lock your door securely. No harm
+shall come to you again.”
+
+She went away, and even though Aline heard the bolt turned carefully
+in the lock and the key drawn out, she felt terribly afraid that that
+hideous creature who had assailed her on yesterday, would gain access
+to her again and complete its murderous work. The cold dews of anguish
+beaded her white brow as she lay there alone in the beautiful azure
+room, listening to those wild, unearthly screams. She was afraid to
+look out from behind the shelter of the silken cover where she had
+hidden her eyes, fearful that they might be blasted by the sight of the
+_thing_ that had appeared to her in the parlor yesterday.
+
+She thought of the simple cottage home where papa and mamma and Effie
+and Max were even now bewailing her loss, perhaps, and her heart
+swelled with passionate longing and regret. Ah, only to be with them
+again in the safe shelter of home and love!
+
+The key clicked softly in the lock again. This time Mr. Delaney
+entered. He looked very pale and grave, but he carried a delicate
+basket of fresh flowers in his hand that filled the room with sweetness
+and beauty. He drew the silken cover gently away from Aline’s face.
+
+“Poor child, are you so frightened?” he said, compassionately. “Look
+up. The cries are hushed now. There is nothing for you to fear.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII.
+
+
+The terrible, blood curdling cries that had so startled Aline had,
+indeed, suddenly ceased. The mysterious mansion had returned to its
+strange, brooding silence.
+
+Forgetful of her anger against Mr. Delaney in her fear and terror,
+Aline clung nervously to his arm with one trembling little hand.
+
+“Oh! Mr. Delaney, what is it--that terrible creature I saw yesterday?”
+she cried out fearfully.
+
+His dark face was strangely agitated as he turned it upon her wistful
+face.
+
+“Then you really _saw_ it?” he said, almost as if speaking to himself.
+
+“Yes, I saw it. Did you suppose it struck me that murderous blow
+_invisibly?_” she questioned, with something like awe.
+
+“I had hoped--” he began, then paused, after his abrupt fashion of
+leaving sentences unfinished.
+
+“Answer me,” exclaimed Aline, in her sharp, imperious young voice.
+“What was it that struck me with that blood-stained dagger yesterday?
+What was it I heard shrieking like a lost soul to-day? Tell me!”
+
+“It was a ghost,” he answered, turning his head away.
+
+“I do not believe you,” cried Aline. “It was not a ghost. It was
+something warmed by the breath of life. It clutched me with warm,
+living fingers. It was strong and swift. Oh, Heaven, how terrible it
+was!” she shuddered. “Was it really a human being?”
+
+“It was a ghost--a mystery! I can tell you no more,” repeated Oran
+Delaney.
+
+And then, with that strong will, which Aline already began to subtly
+recognize, he changed the subject of the conversation.
+
+“Have you forgiven me for my rudeness of last night?” he inquired, with
+a touch of gentleness in his voice.
+
+“No,” Aline answered, tartly.
+
+“I have brought you these beautiful flowers as a peace offering,” he
+continued, unruffled by her childish resentment. “You cannot refuse
+them, for I know that you love flowers very dearly.”
+
+“I shall never love them again,” she replied, obstinately. “I shall
+always remember that my fondness for flowers brought down all this
+trouble upon my head.”
+
+“I beg your pardon; it was your fondness for peaches,” he retorted,
+with a slight gleam of mirth. “If you had not come into my house to
+take luncheon with me, nothing would have happened.”
+
+“I should never have come into your garden even but for the flowers,”
+she replied, offended that he should remind her of her appetite for
+peaches.
+
+He smiled, and then a subtle sigh drove the evanescent gleam away.
+
+“Well, we will not quarrel over the cause,” he said. “The result is the
+same. I am sorry you will not have my poor flowers. I hoped they would
+beguile some of the tedium of your illness.”
+
+He put the basket on a stand near her and sat down.
+
+“Mrs. Griffin has sent me to take care of you during her absence,” he
+said. “But if my presence is disagreeable, Miss Rodney, you can send me
+away at any moment.”
+
+Aline inwardly wished that she was brave enough to do so, but she was
+too nervous and frightened to take him at his word. There was a sense
+of protection in his presence that she could not forego even to gratify
+her spite at him.
+
+So she lay silently gazing at his dark, stern profile under her long
+lashes until he turned suddenly and caught the curious gaze of the
+large liquid blue eyes. He smiled slightly as they fell before his.
+
+“You have not said whether I am to stay or go,” he said.
+
+Aline hesitated a moment, then answered in a low, half-angry voice:
+
+“Stay.”
+
+“Thanks. I was afraid you would send me away,” he said.
+
+“I would, but--but I am afraid to stay here alone,” she replied with
+spirit.
+
+Something like anger flashed into his dark face a moment, but was
+quickly dispelled by the thought, “Why be angry with a willful child
+whom I have unavoidably offended?”
+
+“You are very frank. I quite understand that I am retained in your
+presence merely in the character of a watch-dog,” he replied, with some
+_hauteur_. “But while I _am_ here, pray make me of service if possible.
+Can I do anything for you--talk to you--read to you?”
+
+She caught eagerly at the last suggestion.
+
+“Yes, you may read to me. I do not like to talk to you. You make me
+angry when I talk to you,” she said.
+
+“You are very flattering, Miss Rodney. However, I do not forget that
+you are sick. We pardon the discourtesies of invalids,” he said,
+calmly, going over to a little stand littered with volumes bound
+prettily in blue and gold.
+
+“What is your preference--prose or poetry?” he inquired, carelessly
+turning them over.
+
+“Poetry,” she replied.
+
+“Naturally--being young,” he muttered, half to himself.
+
+“Do you mean to say that I shall not love poetry when I grow old--like
+you?” she asked, purposely adding the sting of the last words.
+
+But he faced around toward her with an expression of the most palpable
+amusement.
+
+“Do I appear very old in your eyes, Miss Rodney?” he inquired.
+
+“‘As old as the hills’--you are, aren’t you, sir?” she replied, with
+malice prepense.
+
+“I was three-and-thirty yesterday, my frank lady,” he answered, coolly.
+“As for you, judging from your words and manner, I should guess that
+you are about ten years old.”
+
+The delicate shaft of sarcasm went home. Aline knew that she deserved
+it, and that she had been behaving rudely to the courteous gentleman
+under whose roof she was. But she was by no means prepared to
+acknowledge her fault. She was bitterly angry with him, because he had
+refused to communicate with her friends.
+
+“Please go on with the poetry,” she said, assuming an air of dignity,
+and taking no notice of his last words.
+
+He opened the book he was holding, and commenced to read a poem quite
+at random:
+
+ “How many years will it be, I wonder.
+ And how will their slow length pass,
+ Till I shall find rest in silence, under
+ The trees and the waving grass?
+
+ “Many there be in the world who love it,
+ Who cling to its trifles and toys;
+ But I could never find aught to covet
+ Among its vanishing joys.
+
+ “But once, indeed, was my heart elated,
+ And pleased with a dream of its own--
+ A beautiful dream it was, but fated
+ Soon to be overthrown.
+
+ “Death, like a shadow, fell and darkened
+ The light that had shone so clear--
+ How oft since then have I vainly hearkened,
+ And prayed for his coming near.
+
+ “But he cometh not, and I vainly wonder,
+ How will the long years pass,
+ Till I shall find rest in silence, under
+ The trees and waving grass.”
+
+He paused and Aline, impressed against her will, but determined not to
+show it, cried out, almost peevishly:
+
+“Why did you read such a doleful thing? I do not like sad poetry.”
+
+“That is the fault of your youth again,” he quietly answered. “Now I,
+on the contrary, rather admire the pathetic style. The time may come,
+perhaps, when that very poem will please your fancy. Nay, you may even
+subscribe to the sad sentiment it embodies.”
+
+“I should never do that if I lived to be as old as Methuselah!” cried
+Aline, with the rash confidence of youth, and Oran Delaney smiled--that
+slow, pensive smile whose latent sarcasm she already began to
+understand with the swift intuition of woman.
+
+“Why do you despise youth, Mr. Delaney?” she cried out, hotly.
+
+“I do not despise it, I only pity it,” he answered.
+
+“I can fancy age deserving pity, but not youth,” she answered,
+resentfully. “Why do you pity it?”
+
+“For its illusions,” he answered, and this time the sarcasm had faded
+from his voice and face. Both were genuinely sad.
+
+“Its illusions--what are they?” queried the girl, and again he smiled,
+sadly.
+
+“Do not ask me. They will come home to you soon enough, as they have
+done to me. Youth is the happiest period of life. I pity it because
+it comes to an end. I do not despise it, and I fully subscribe to the
+poet’s plaint:
+
+ “‘The loss of youth is sadness
+ To all who think or feel--
+ A wound no after-gladness
+ Can ever wholly heal.’”
+
+Aline lay very still for a moment, gazing silently at him with a
+feeling of vexation that she had permitted herself to listen to him
+with interest and even with an unconscious latent sympathy. She was
+about to make some careless answer to show her utter indifference, and
+to provoke him again, when she suddenly observed that he had turned
+deathly pale, and that a stream of blood was pouring from inside his
+coat sleeve down upon his hand.
+
+“You are wounded, too!” she cried out in dismay, and feeling a deathly
+faintness stealing over her at sight of the trickling blood.
+
+“It is nothing--a mere flesh wound--a scratch,” he muttered, tearing
+off his coat, hastily, and then Aline saw that his shirt-sleeve had
+been torn open and his arm bandaged above the elbow, but the linen
+had become loosened in some way, and the gaping wound was bleeding
+profusely.
+
+He tried clumsily to draw the crimson bandage tighter about the wound,
+but he was very awkward with his left hand, and he did not succeed.
+Aline could not help being sorry for him.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX.
+
+
+She had a very tender heart, this little willful heroine of ours,
+and although she thought that she hated Oran Delaney she would not
+willingly have seen him suffer. She saw that he was growing pale and
+faint from loss of blood, and she could not keep from pitying him.
+
+She cried out, hastily:
+
+“Come here, Mr. Delaney. I will fasten the bandage for you.”
+
+He looked surprised, but he came to the bed and held down his arm
+within the reach of her little white hands. She drew the band tighter
+and bound her handkerchief tightly around it. The blood ceased to flow,
+but her own hands were stained with blood when she had finished.
+
+“Does it frighten you much?” he asked. “You look very pale.”
+
+“No, I am not frightened,” bravely. “Tell me--how did you come by your
+wounds?”
+
+“In much the same manner as you came by yours,” he replied, reservedly.
+
+“Through that horrible--_something_?” she inquired, with a shudder.
+
+“Yes.”
+
+A gleam of intelligence flashed from Aline’s eyes.
+
+“Ah, now I begin to understand,” she said. “You met it first. It was
+your blood I saw upon the knife and the hands and the dress?”
+
+“Yes.”
+
+“And you did not run away from me to--to save yourself? I
+thought--thought--” She paused and looked at him, half inquiringly.
+
+“Well, what was it you thought?” he inquired.
+
+“When you left me in the hall, you know,” she said, with some
+embarrassment, “I believed that you had deserted me and fled like a
+coward, leaving me to the mercies of that terrible creature. I was
+mistaken, perhaps.”
+
+He looked at her with a slow flush rising through the pallor of his
+face.
+
+“Every moment I am with you, Miss Rodney, I learn more and more how
+contemptible I am in your eyes,” he said, with irrepressible chagrin.
+
+“But I told you I was mistaken,” said the girl, with unconscious
+repentance in her voice. “Was I right?”
+
+“I met the danger first,” he answered, simply.
+
+“Yes, I understand, and I am sorry I thought you a coward. I beg your
+pardon,” she said, gently.
+
+“You are freely forgiven,” Mr. Delaney replied, quietly, as he brought
+a damp sponge and carefully removed the blood-stains from her delicate,
+dimpled white hands.
+
+She submitted quietly to the operation, though he had half expected
+that she would snatch her hands away in petulant anger.
+
+“I am a great deal better to-day, am I not, Mr. Delaney?” she inquired,
+as he resumed his seat.
+
+“I think so,” he replied. “Your wound was not serious. It was struck
+too hastily. I hope you will soon recover now. You are bearing it very
+bravely.”
+
+“Thank you! And when are you going to let me go home?”
+
+The wistful tone of the young voice struck him like a reproach. He
+turned away his head as he answered:
+
+“As soon as your wound is healed. That will be in a few weeks, I hope.”
+
+“Can I say or do nothing that will induce you to let me go now?” she
+entreated.
+
+“That would be impossible. You are not able to be moved yet. The result
+of such an imprudence might be most serious.”
+
+“And you will not communicate with my friends?” she went on.
+
+“I am sorry to be compelled to deny you that gratification,” he
+replied, with decision.
+
+“And in the meantime they must suffer all the pangs of doubt and
+suspense. Oh, Mr. Delaney, is that right, is it just?” cried the
+wounded captive.
+
+“There are many things in this world, Miss Rodney, that are
+neither right nor just,” he replied. “This may be one of them; but
+circumstances will not admit of my acting otherwise. I am compelled to
+keep you hidden here, unknown to any one, until you are well enough to
+be returned to your home.”
+
+“You have no pity for them, nor for me!” she cried, almost wildly.
+
+“I cannot follow the bent of my feelings. I am compelled to pursue this
+course,” replied the mysterious recluse.
+
+“Do you not know,” she said, “that my friends will be very angry with
+you for keeping me hidden away from them? What if I should die here in
+this dreadful house?”
+
+“They would never know what fate had overtaken their darling,” he
+answered, gloomily.
+
+Aline stared at him with wide, terrified blue eyes. Indignation was
+rising within her again--indignation added to something like fear.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X.
+
+
+“Mr. Delaney, I cannot understand you,” she said. “You talk strangely.
+I am tempted to believe that you cannot be sane, that you are not in
+your right mind.”
+
+He looked at her steadily with his grave, dark eyes.
+
+“Do I look like a lunatic, Miss Rodney?” he inquired.
+
+“No, but you talk like one,” she cried out, petulantly. “Do you really
+imagine that you can keep my presence here a secret from my own people?
+Do you not know that they will search for me until they find me?”
+
+“They are already searching for you, but I am quite sure they will
+never find you,” he replied. “The last place where Mr. Rodney would
+think of looking for you would be here in his neighbor’s house.”
+
+She knew that it was true. Her heart sunk heavily, but she cried out,
+spiritedly:
+
+“But when I go home and tell him--what then? Are you not afraid of his
+anger when he knows the truth?”
+
+“He will never know,” Oran Delaney replied, strangely.
+
+The pale face on the snowy, lace-fringed pillow grew paler still, the
+blue eyes darkened with agitation.
+
+“Not know?” she cried out, passionately. “Why, what can you mean?”
+
+“You will not tell him,” he replied.
+
+“Now I am quite, quite sure that you are mad,” said Aline. “Do you
+think I shall not tell them all when I go home?”
+
+“I am quite sure you will not!”
+
+Aline could not speak for a moment. She was mystified by Mr. Delaney’s
+words and manner. She almost began to believe him mad indeed. To what
+did his strange talk tend?
+
+While she puzzled within herself he drew his chair nearer to the
+bedside--near enough indeed to touch her pulse with his cool fingers.
+
+“Pray do not excite yourself unduly,” he said. “There is really
+no necessity for it. Cannot we discuss this matter coolly and
+dispassionately, and come to an understanding?”
+
+She drew her hand away with a heavy sigh.
+
+“I do not believe I can discuss it coolly,” she said. “I am frightened
+at the mysteries of this house, and the mysteries with which you choose
+to surround me. I am here within a stone’s throw of my own home,
+wounded, helpless, a prey to grief and anxiety, while my friends are
+seeking me everywhere in sorrow and distress. I cannot be calm and
+cool. I am perfectly wretched. How can you explain away these things?”
+
+“Will you listen to me while I try to do so?” asked Oran Delaney.
+
+“Yes,” she answered, impatiently.
+
+“It will not take long,” he said. “In the first place, Miss Rodney, I
+take some blame upon myself for this. I should not have brought you
+into my house--I should not even have admitted you into my garden. But
+I thought you a lonely child, and was carelessly willing to gratify
+your penchant for my beautiful flowers.”
+
+“Those dearly bought flowers!” sighed Aline.
+
+“Through your own thoughtlessness and mine,” he continued, “you have
+stumbled upon the mystery of Delaney House--a mystery too terrible to
+be given to the world--a secret I will guard with my very life, if need
+be. Therefore--” He paused, after his odd fashion, and gazed gravely
+into her face.
+
+“Therefore,” she repeated, wonderingly.
+
+“The Delaneys have been a proud race from the beginning--I am the
+proudest one yet,” he said. “That which you know of Delaney House, Miss
+Rodney, you shall never be permitted to carry across its portals to
+blazon to a curious, mocking world!”
+
+“Do you mean to kill me?” shuddered the girl, shrinking in terror from
+the dark, stern, agitated face.
+
+He started and looked at her.
+
+“Poor child! Have I indeed frightened you so much?” he asked. “I must
+indeed be an ogre in your eyes! No, Aline--you are such a child, let
+me call you so--no; I do not mean to kill you. I am not a murderer. I
+shall simply bind you by an oath of silence when you leave this place.”
+
+“An oath of silence?” she repeated, vaguely.
+
+“Yes,” he answered, steadily. “I shall swear you to silence regarding
+your whereabouts during the time you have been away--silence regarding
+the wound you have received--silence regarding me--silence, in short,
+as to everything that can throw the least light on your strange
+disappearance from your home.”
+
+“And if I refuse to swear?” Aline exclaimed, gazing at him almost
+defiantly.
+
+“If you refuse, you will never be permitted to leave Delaney House,” he
+answered, firmly.
+
+“Never?” she echoed.
+
+“Never!” he reiterated.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI.
+
+
+The strange and perfectly unaccountable manner of Aline Rodney’s
+disappearance from her home had excited a great sensation in the town
+of Chester. Such a harrowing mystery had never before agitated the
+pretty little country town. Mr. Rodney, Aline’s father, was the only
+lawyer the town could boast, and although not wealthy, was a prominent
+member of society in Chester. His two pretty daughters had been
+educated as carefully as his means would allow, and were the boast of
+the town for their beauty.
+
+Effie Rodney was a hazel-eyed beauty, with soft waving tresses of
+chestnut brown and a complexion of the loveliest red and white,
+combined with features of the purest Grecian type. She was twenty-three
+years old, and so stately, quiet, and dignified, that her more volatile
+sister, Aline, audaciously dubbed her an old maid.
+
+Mrs. Rodney was a pretty woman of the same type of beauty as Effie.
+Mother and daughter were remarkably alike, both being tall, extremely
+graceful in appearance, and very dignified in manner. To both of them
+the wild and willful ways of blue eyed Aline were a perpetual wonder
+and annoyance. They loved her, but she was a sore trial to their
+patience, and their understanding. She was so gay, so willful, so
+thoughtless, that, as Mrs. Rodney expressed it, she kept her family
+“in hot water all the while.” They could never tell what mischievous
+prank their pretty Aline would be into next. Never were two sisters
+more unlike than Aline and Effie, both in mind and looks, although they
+were really fond of each other. Both were beautiful, but one was like a
+stately, bright-plumaged bird-of-paradise, the other like a brilliant
+humming-bird, always on the wing, never at rest in its aerial flight.
+
+Neither Mrs. Rodney nor Effie could understand Aline’s complex
+character. She was wild and willful, but she was also warm-hearted and
+loving. She was always getting herself into some kind of mischief,
+always being blamed by mamma, and lectured by Effie. If papa had not
+petted her and Max adored her she could not have stood it. But the
+forces for and against being very equally divided she was enabled
+to hold her own with tolerable equanimity. Sometimes, mamma, acting
+upon a mistaken sense of duty, allotted to Aline some quite severe
+punishments, as in the case of the imprisonment the day of the picnic;
+but there was always papa to pet and soothe his injured little girl,
+Max to load her with sugar-plums, and even stately Effie to lament that
+her darling little sister had to be punished. So Aline, with all the
+faults of her head and heart, was dearly beloved and bitterly missed
+and mourned in the home from which she had so strangely dropped out
+like a link from a golden chain.
+
+The incredulous horror on returning from Walnut Grove and finding her
+gone was something better imagined than described. They examined the
+empty room, they peered beneath the bed, behind the curtains, within
+the wardrobe, while little Max, in a fit of absent-mindedness, pulled
+out the bureau drawers, and even lifted the tray of her Saratoga trunk
+in a vain search for the lost one.
+
+Beautiful Aline had flown from the dreary room like a swift-winged
+bird from the prison bars of its cage. They called her name, but she
+answered not. They sought her in her dearest haunts, but they found her
+not. They were face to face with a mystery.
+
+Cook had not anticipated such alarm on the part of the family. She had
+missed the young lady several hours ago when she had taken up luncheon
+to her, but being used to the mischievous pranks of her young mistress,
+had believed that she was hiding herself somewhere within the room.
+She had set down the tray on a stand and gone away, locking the door
+behind her.
+
+It was locked still when they came home from the picnic rather earlier
+than they would have done, but that they were anxious over Aline--poor
+Aline who had missed all the delights of the picnic because she had
+been a naughty girl yesterday and left undone those things which she
+ought to have done, and done those things which she ought not to have
+done.
+
+Aline had deserted the sewing-machine and the ruffles mamma had set
+her to hem yesterday and gone a-fishing with ten-year-old Max and
+his comrade Harry Jones. She had coaxed away from cook the sponge
+cake that was destined to accompany the cream at dinner, and she had
+triumphantly packed it into her lunch basket and shared it with the two
+boys that day on the river bank where they cast their lines into the
+waves. And she had come home with the end of her nose and the back of
+her neck blistered red, her dress-skirt soiled and “brier-torn,” like
+Maud Muller’s, and her pretty bare hands turned brown, while Max came
+trailing behind her with his pantaloons rolled up to his knees, his
+feet and limbs all yellowed with river mud, and a string of ridiculous
+little shining minnows in his hands. It was bad for Max--it was utterly
+disgraceful for that great girl, Aline, decided mamma and Effie. It
+was a case that called for punishment, more especially as Aline could
+not even be induced to repentance for her fault. She insisted that she
+had not meant any harm and that she had done nothing wrong. She could
+not be brought to see her error in the light that her mamma wished her
+to see it in. So Mrs. Rodney, deeming this an extreme case, resorted
+to extreme measures. She knew that Aline had set her heart on the
+picnic in Walnut Grove--therefore she kept her away to meditate on her
+misdeeds, and, if possible, to win her to repentance. She even dared
+hope that under the stress of such punishment Aline might be brought to
+promise “never to do so any more.”
+
+But, after all, she had been sorry to punish her bright Aline so
+hardly. She thought about it at the picnic. It rather damped her
+pleasure in the gay and festive scene. She told herself that if Aline
+was brought to a proper state of submission she would make it up to
+her. She had kept the girl back somewhat, deeming her childish and
+unformed. She would lengthen her dresses now, put up her careless,
+girlish ringlets, and let her take her place in Chester society as a
+grown-up young lady. Perhaps the importance of the change might thrust
+dignity, as it were, upon the willful girl.
+
+She confided her plans to Effie when she could get her away for a
+moment from the knot of admirers who always surrounded the pretty Miss
+Rodney. Effie coincided with her mother. She was too secure in the
+consciousness of her own beauty to be jealous of her younger sister’s
+charms, and she thought that it was quite time for Aline to give over
+childish ways.
+
+So they went home sorry for Aline’s long day of confinement, and full
+of kindly intentions toward her, eager to hear of her repentance,
+and to give her the kiss of pardon; and they found her place vacant,
+her chair empty. They were full of incredulous dismay at first. They
+thought it must be one of her practical jokes, and that she would
+return to them presently full of glee over the fright she had given
+them, and eager to hear how they had passed the day from whose
+pleasures she had been ruthlessly debarred.
+
+In the meantime, they were full of wonder over the way in which the
+runaway had escaped from her room. The little chamber formed a small
+wing of itself on the left side of the cottage. It had three windows,
+one of which looked down upon the front of the street, another into
+the small, brick-paved back yard, and the third into the beautiful,
+neglected garden of Delaney House. It was quite impossible, they
+thought, that Aline could have escaped through either of these
+second-story windows unless she had made a rope from the sheets of her
+bed. But the downy little nest where Aline rested her fair form nightly
+was undisturbed in its snowy order. She had certainly not escaped that
+way, but had gone through the door, and the Rodneys were fain at first
+to accuse the woman whom they had left in charge of connivance at her
+freedom.
+
+Cook denied the accusation sturdily, and, having a good reputation for
+veracity, no one presumed to doubt her vehement asseverations.
+
+The mystery thickened. They discussed the possibility of Aline having a
+skeleton-key to the door, and inclined to that belief. In no other way
+could they account for her absence.
+
+Night fell; and now, indeed, they began to grow alarmed. Aline was
+known to be an arrant little coward in the dark. Her little feet would
+have carried her flying homeward long before night overtook her.
+
+“She has gone to some of the neighbors,” Mrs. Rodney suggested, and her
+husband and little Max set out to see.
+
+She was not found at any of the neighbors. She did not come home that
+night, nor for many another succeeding night. It grew into a most
+absorbing mystery, the strange disappearance of a young girl from her
+home. It was not a matter of local interest merely, but of general.
+From the local papers the item was copied into the papers all the
+country over. It excited a great interest and sympathy. It became one
+of the sensations of the day. Search was made far and near. Personals
+appeared in the newspapers; the largest rewards Mr. Rodney could afford
+were offered for his daughter’s return. He was half mad with cruel
+anxiety; he hurried hither and thither in search of the lost one.
+But, in all his grief and anxiety, in all his suspicions, no warning
+instinct ever prompted him to look into his neighbor’s house.
+
+It was the strangest thing that had ever happened in Chester. In the
+pretty quiet town no such sensation had ever been heard of before.
+A young girl locked into her room in the safe sanctuary of home had
+disappeared in the strangest manner, and not the slightest clew could
+be found to the mystery. Add to this that the missing girl had been
+a general favorite, loved for her winning ways, and admired for her
+beauty, and you may form some idea of how Aline Rodney was missed and
+mourned.
+
+The panic only became greater as days went by, and there came no
+tidings of her fate. People were frightened. Young girls shivered in
+their rooms by day and by night. What if a like fate should befall them?
+
+Mrs. Rodney’s grief and remorse were extreme. The thin crust of pride
+and dignity melted around her heart, and she realized that she had been
+hard and stern to the lost one. She blamed herself as the cause of
+Aline’s flitting, and her self-reproach was most bitter. When proud,
+hard natures melt, no one can calculate the effect. Mrs. Rodney’s
+sorrow and remorse completely prostrated her. She became seriously
+ill, and her physician declared that there was no telling how her low,
+nervous fever would end, unless her terrible suspense could be broken
+by news of her lost daughter.
+
+Those were weary days for the Rodneys. Effie was wretched, her mother
+ill, Mr. Rodney worn to a shadow, and little Max’s grief unceasing.
+They began to realize what a sunbeam in the house had been the
+bright-eyed girl whom they had blamed so often. Now, when she was worse
+than dead to them, mamma and Effie began to realize her worth. Papa and
+Max had known it all the while.
+
+Two weeks had elapsed, and Effie was sitting by the bedside of her sick
+mother one evening, when a stranger’s card was brought to her. She
+looked at it in some surprise. “Dr. Anthony,” she read, slowly. “Why,
+mamma, have you called a new physician?”
+
+“No, I have not,” said Mrs. Rodney. “It is a stranger, dear. Go to him
+quickly, please. Perhaps he brings us news.”
+
+Her eyes grew bright with hope and excitement, and Effie’s heart beat
+a trifle quicker, too. What if her mother’s surmise were true, and
+they were about to hear news of Aline? She did not even stop for the
+customary womanly peep into the mirror, but hastened down to the parlor
+to meet the stranger.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII.
+
+
+A tall, decidedly handsome man rose to meet Effie as she glided into
+the pretty little parlor with that stately grace that her admirers
+called so queenly. He waited with a courteously bowed head for her to
+address him.
+
+She did so in a silvery-sweet voice, and with a slight blush.
+
+“I am Miss Rodney, Dr. Anthony,” she said, glancing at the card which
+she still held in her hand. “Papa is away from home, and mamma is quite
+sick. Can I serve you in any way?”
+
+His dark eyes rested on the beautiful, gentle face in uncontrollable
+admiration a moment, then he said, in a clear manly voice:
+
+“I have called in the vague hope of serving this afflicted family, Miss
+Rodney.”
+
+“In what way, sir?” inquired Effie, as she waved him back to his seat,
+and sunk into one herself.
+
+“In that calamity which has excited the sympathy and sorrow of the
+whole country,” he answered, respectfully.
+
+Effie’s heart gave a muffled throb of joy at the suggestive words.
+
+“God bless you, sir, if you bring us any tidings of our dear Aline!”
+she exclaimed. He saw that he had excited extravagant hope within her,
+and said, hastily:
+
+“Do not build too much upon my words, Miss Rodney. I do not wish to
+deceive you. It may be but a vain quest upon which I am come, but some
+facts in my possession I have thought best to lay before your father
+in the vague hope that they might somehow lead to news of your lost
+one.”
+
+Seeing how much he had damped the springing hopes in her breast, he
+said, anxiously:
+
+“Miss Rodney, is there in your possession a photograph of your missing
+sister?”
+
+She could not understand why such a deep shadow fell over his frank,
+manly face, as she answered:
+
+“No, Dr. Anthony, my sister’s picture was never taken in her life.”
+
+“That is most unfortunate,” he said. “I had counted so much upon her
+picture.”
+
+“I do not believe papa would like to have Aline’s picture published in
+the papers. He shrinks from publicity,” said Effie, reservedly.
+
+“You misunderstand me. I have no such intention,” said the young
+physician. “Nothing is further from my thoughts, Miss Rodney. I
+quite agree with your father that any unnecessary publicity is most
+distressing. In the absence of Mr. Rodney, may I state my reasons to
+you?”
+
+“You may,” Effie answered.
+
+“Thank you. I will try to do so,” he said. “In the first place, I
+will say that I have lately seen a girl, under very distressing
+circumstances, who answers to the published descriptions of your
+missing sister.”
+
+“When? Where?” exclaimed Effie, agitatedly. The young physician’s face
+grew grave and perplexed.
+
+“I can readily tell you when,” he answered; “but the strangest part of
+the mystery is that I cannot tell you _where_.”
+
+Miss Rodney’s fair face reflected the perplexity on his.
+
+“Dr. Anthony, I do not understand you,” she said. “How can such a
+thing be? You have seen her; but you cannot tell where. Pray, explain
+yourself.”
+
+“I am about to do so,” he answered. “Then you will readily understand
+the seeming discrepancy in my statements.”
+
+Effie bowed silently, and settled herself to listen. His frank,
+handsome face, and quiet, earnest manner inspired her with confidence
+in him, although he was a stranger whom, ten minutes ago, she had never
+beheld. She was most anxious to hear what he could tell her of that
+girl whose description answered to that of Aline.
+
+She fixed her bright hazel-brown eyes upon his face with an earnestness
+that Dr. Anthony found very fascinating.
+
+“In order to be quite sure of dates,” he said, “I will ask you to tell
+me that of Miss Aline’s disappearance.”
+
+She named it quickly, and he exclaimed, with a sudden brightening of
+his dark eyes:
+
+“The dates correspond! Oh, how much I would give at this moment for the
+counterfeit presentment of Miss Aline Rodney!”
+
+In a moment he continued:
+
+“I live at the little town of Maywood, some five miles distant from
+this, Miss Rodney. I have practiced medicine there for several years,
+and may say, without vanity, that I have built up quite a creditable
+practice there and in the surrounding country--at least. I am always
+busy.”
+
+Effie bowed silently, and he went on:
+
+“Some strange things happen to a physician in the course of his
+practice, Miss Rodney. A mysterious thing happened to me on the night
+of the date you mentioned just now.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII.
+
+
+Miss Rodney’s face was pale with emotion and anxiety. She hung eagerly
+upon Dr. Anthony’s words.
+
+“A mysterious thing,” he repeated. “I was closing my office at eleven
+o’clock that night, preparatory to going home, when, in the darkness, a
+stranger touched me upon the shoulder and said, in a muffled voice:
+
+“‘Come with me at once, doctor. A lady needs your professional
+services.’
+
+“I am so used to being called out at night, Miss Rodney, that at first
+I thought nothing of the request. I have ridden miles and miles on the
+darkest nights through the peaceful country neighborhood hereabouts
+without fear or molestation. So I said, carelessly to the man, whose
+face I did not see clearly by reason of the extreme darkness: ‘Is it a
+long distance? If not, I will walk, as my horse has been put away for
+the night.’
+
+“‘A matter of two miles or more,’ he answered, in the same low, muffled
+voice in which he had first addressed me. ‘But my buggy is here at the
+corner. Come with me and I will send you back. We have no time to lose.’
+
+“So careless and fearless had I become in my career as a physician,
+that I felt no alarm at his proposition. I carelessly assented, and
+accompanied him to the corner, where I found a fine horse and buggy
+waiting for us as he had said. He sprung in and he drove rapidly to the
+outskirts of the town, when I, being weary of the silence maintained by
+my companion, inquired the name of the person I was called to attend.
+
+“To my surprise, the man replied in a cool, quiet voice, as if there
+were nothing strange in what he was saying:
+
+“‘That is a secret, Dr. Anthony, and must remain so.’
+
+“Nothing like this had ever occurred to me in my professional
+experience. I was indignant at this answer. I did not choose to bestow
+my medical skill upon a patient who thus withheld confidence from me. I
+told him so rather hotly.
+
+“My companion, who was evidently a gentleman, laughed easily.
+
+“‘Tut, tut,’ he said, ‘all physicians can relate instances of
+mysterious cases.’ This was one of them. My services were needed,
+and no harm would befall me, while at the same time I should be most
+liberally rewarded, but the lady’s name must remain unknown to me,
+as also the place of her residence. ‘For which reason, doctor,’ he
+continued, in the same cool, quiet, gentlemanly voice, and producing
+a large handkerchief, ‘I shall be compelled to blindfold you for the
+balance of the distance.’
+
+“His cool masterful tone irritated me exceedingly. I answered quickly
+that I would not submit to such terms--that he must employ other advice
+for the case; I would not attend.
+
+“‘I will have nothing to do with a mystery,’ I said. ‘All must be fair
+and open, or I will not attend.’
+
+“He laughed at first, and tried to persuade me; but, finding that I was
+resolute, and insisted on being let out of the buggy, he became angry.
+
+“‘Your unreasonable mood forces me to a rash alternative,’ he said. ‘I
+am obliged to compel your obedience.’
+
+“I felt the cold muzzle of a pistol pressed against my cheek. I was
+myself unarmed and powerless.
+
+“‘Attempt to get out, and you are a dead man!’ he said. ‘You have no
+resource but to obey me. If you are a wise man, you will permit me to
+tie this bandage over your eyes, and to go on without further parley.’
+
+“I am not a coward, Miss Rodney--I hope you will not form that opinion
+of me,” continued the handsome young physician, “but I flatter myself
+that I possess a modicum of common-sense. I found myself in the power
+of a desperate man, and I considered that my best plan would be to
+yield to his will; besides, there was a spice of romance in the affair
+that appealed to the imaginative part of me. I made a virtue of
+necessity, and accompanied my stern companion, though I must confess
+that my anger rose when he bound the handkerchief about my unwilling
+eyes. The darkness of the night was so dense that he might have spared
+me that inconvenience.”
+
+Effie listened, with her heart upon her lips, for him to come to the
+story of the mysterious patient. It was Aline, of course--Aline, ill or
+dying! How terrible it seemed! It cast a strange, new light upon the
+mystery of her disappearance.
+
+“I went with him; but I am quite sure that he deceived me regarding the
+distance,” said Dr. Anthony. “Instead of being two miles, I am certain
+that we drove five, at least, before his fleet-footed horse came to a
+stop. Then I was helped from the buggy, and led up a flight of what
+seemed, from the sound of my feet upon them, to be wide, marble steps.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV.
+
+
+The speaker paused to take breath a minute, and then resumed:
+
+“A heavy door opened to admit us into the wide, dimly lighted hallway
+of what must have been a large, aristocratic mansion. Here the
+eccentric stranger removed the handkerchief from my eyes and coolly
+clapped a mask upon my face instead, with the odd remark:
+
+“‘You will have need for your eyes here, but none for your features,
+Dr. Anthony, as I do not wish my patient ever to recognize you abroad.
+Therefore, I request that you wear this mask.’
+
+“I acceded to this polite request of course, you know, Miss Rodney,
+not being in a condition to refuse,” said the young man, with a sly
+sense of the humorous, “and then I saw beside us a neat-looking elderly
+woman with a lamp in her hand, evidently a nurse. She led up a wide,
+beautiful stairway of polished walnut, along another hall, and so into
+a lady’s room--the most beautiful room I ever saw!” said Dr. Anthony,
+with enthusiasm.
+
+“It was large and airy, and hung with rich blue silk and white lace.
+The furniture was rosewood, upholstered in blue silk, and on the marble
+mantel and the ivory brackets against the wall were vases of flowers,
+statuettes, and expensive _bric-à-brac_. You see, I made good use of my
+eyes when I was given leave, Miss Rodney,” said the physician, with a
+smile.
+
+“Yes, doctor, but now about your mysterious patient?” breathed Effie,
+anxiously.
+
+“Yes, now I am coming to that, for I am afraid the preliminaries have
+sadly wearied your patience,” he said. “There was a rosewood bed in the
+center of the room, Miss Rodney, draped in rich blue silk and canopied
+with snowy lace in the richest pattern, and among the lace-trimmed
+pillows lay a girl--a corpse, I thought at first, for she was deathly
+white and still, her eyes were closed, and the white garments about her
+breast were all dabbled with blood.”
+
+Miss Rodney shuddered and grew very pale.
+
+“Oh, poor little Aline!” she sighed. “Tell me how she looked, Dr.
+Anthony.”
+
+“She was very young. She looked almost child-like,” said Dr. Anthony.
+“She had a fair round face with a dimpled chin and beautiful features.
+Her hair was dark and curling, her brows and lashes were jetty black
+and of wonderful beauty. Her eyes, much to my surprise when she
+recovered from her swoon, were dark, rich blue, like wet violets. I had
+thought they would be black, before she opened them.”
+
+“It was my sister!” cried Effie, in tones of conviction. “You have
+described her very accurately.”
+
+“I went up to her side, and looked down at the beautiful, silent face,”
+he went on; “and the stranger, who, I have forgotten to say before,
+wore a thick, heavy mask upon his face, followed me. In a moment he
+turned to the nurse, angrily:
+
+“‘How is this?’ he said. ‘I told you to put a mask upon her face!’
+
+“‘And so I did, sir, but her protracted swoon so frightened me, that I
+removed it to give her air, and forgot to replace it. I hope there is
+no harm done, sir.’
+
+“He muttered something angrily, then stepped quickly back, for at
+that moment the wounded girl opened her eyes and flashed them around
+the room. They fell on the face of the nurse, and she cried out, in a
+startled tone:
+
+“‘Who are you, and where am I?’
+
+“She spoke no more, for my strange guide bent over her and whispered
+something in her ear, and she relapsed into silence. He then directed
+me to examine her wound, and I obeyed him.”
+
+“Was--was it fatal?” asked poor Effie.
+
+“No, although it had been meant for that,” he replied. “It was a
+knife-wound, and had been meant for the heart, but glanced aside and
+inflicted a flesh wound instead. I bathed and dressed the wound, but
+before I finished, she had again relapsed into unconsciousness.”
+
+“And you learned nothing?” sighed Effie.
+
+“Nothing,” he answered. “Before I came away, the unknown stranger
+drew off his coat and showed me a deep, jagged cut on his own arm. I
+bathed and dressed his wound also, was rewarded for my services by a
+twenty-dollar gold piece, and after submitting to the blindfold again,
+was driven to my home by my mysterious employer. That is the end of
+my story, Miss Rodney. Does it throw any light on the mystery of your
+sister’s disappearance?”
+
+“None, Dr. Anthony. It only deepens the mystery,” she answered,
+mournfully.
+
+“And yet it is in some sort a clew,” he said, thoughtfully. “If
+the young girl I saw is your sister it proves that she is confined
+somewhere within a radius of five miles from Maywood. Have you thought
+of that, Miss Rodney?”
+
+“If the girl you saw is really my sister, it proves also that she is a
+prisoner somewhere,” Effie said, musingly. “It places the mystery in
+a new aspect altogether. We had thought that Aline, offended by her
+punishment that day, had run away merely to annoy us, and that, when a
+sufficient time had elapsed, she would return to us again. Can it be
+that she was abducted and imprisoned?”
+
+“It looks that way,” said Dr. Anthony. “At any rate, I have thought it
+best to come here and tell my story. You understand now why I wished
+to see a picture of the missing girl. I could then have told most
+certainly whether the girl whose strange wound I dressed was your
+sister.”
+
+“It is most unfortunate that we have never had a picture of Aline; but
+your description corresponds exactly with her appearance,” declared
+Effie.
+
+“She was very beautiful. Even if I never see her again, I shall never
+forget her charming face,” said Dr. Anthony.
+
+He rose to go as he spoke, and the look of respectful admiration he
+bent on Effie’s sweet, sad face seemed to mutely declare that he would
+never forget her, either. Her long lashes drooped, and a delicate blush
+rose to her cheek, reminding him that his thoughts were too plainly
+expressed in his eyes. She thanked him in sweet, courteous phrases for
+his information, and half timidly requested him to call again, and
+recount his strange story to her father.
+
+Dr. Anthony very willingly promised to do so. He was very sorry for the
+afflicted family, and very much interested in the hazel-eyed Effie.
+She, on her part, was vaguely interested in him.
+
+“The most interesting young man I ever met,” she mentally decided,
+recalling the handsome face and clear, frank voice, after he had gone
+away.
+
+She went back to her mother’s bedside, and related Dr. Anthony’s story.
+Mrs. Rodney was greatly excited. Aline’s mysterious absence assumed a
+new phase. She was full of wonder and dismay and grief.
+
+“My dear little Aline! She may be dead ere this!” was the burden of her
+grief, and it became so hysterical and violent during the long hours
+of the night that Effie regretted she had told her the strange story.
+She was relieved when her father came home next morning from another
+fruitless quest. She felt that the charge of her grief-stricken mother
+was becoming too heavy for her. No one could soothe Mrs. Rodney’s
+bitter grief but her patient, though almost distracted husband.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney did not wait for Dr. Anthony to return to Chester. His
+anxiety was too great. He drove over to Maywood in the early morning to
+see the young physician.
+
+He heard the whole story over again. It impressed him strangely. He
+believed with the doctor that the mysterious wounded girl was Aline
+herself.
+
+“I have been haunted by that belief ever since I heard the story of
+your daughter’s disappearance,” he said. “I feared you might think me
+foolish or presuming, but I could not rest until I had gone over to
+Chester and told you my story.”
+
+“For which kindness I am most grateful to you,” said Mr. Rodney,
+grasping his hand cordially. “Who knows but that this information will
+lead to my daughter’s recovery?”
+
+He found the young doctor most intelligent and agreeable. He consulted
+with him as to the best method of following up this strange discovery.
+Both agreed that it would be well to confide the matter to a skillful
+detective. Mr. Rodney sent to New York at once for the most noted one
+in the service.
+
+They agreed that they would keep the strange story of the doctor’s
+experience a profound secret from the public. If once it became
+publicly known, it might put the villain on his guard. He might hustle
+Aline off to another place.
+
+When Mr. Rodney went home, he gave Dr. Anthony a most cordial
+invitation to come over to Chester and visit him. The doctor was not
+slow to avail himself of the courtesy. It was the beginning of a most
+pleasant friendship.
+
+Perhaps hazel-eyed Effie had something to do with it. It is certain
+that she enjoyed the non-professional visits of the Maywood physician
+as much as was consistent with the trouble and anxiety she was
+enduring. And Dr. Anthony certainly found the fair, dignified young
+lady very fascinating. He came often to the dainty little cottage
+home that nestled in the shadow of the tall trees and pretentious
+towers of Delaney House. He was so gay and cheerful, so determinately
+hopeful, that he sometimes wiled Effie to a momentary forgetfulness
+of their loss and sorrow. He made little Max fond of him. He pleased
+the nervous, fretful, invalid mother still prostrated by her grief and
+remorse. His even, sunny temper and handsome face always brightened the
+cottage parlor when they shone in it. All claimed him as a friend and
+comforter.
+
+The New York detective came down promptly to Chester. He was quite
+willing to undertake the case. He flattered himself that he should
+unravel the mystery.
+
+They showed him the little end room from whence Aline had been so
+strangely spirited away. He examined it with a great interest. He
+stood at each of the three windows in turn, and gazed curiously out.
+The front one gave him a perspective of a quiet little village street.
+The back one looked out on a brick-paved yard, and a tiny kitchen. The
+end one presented a more inviting prospect. It showed him the green
+and flowery garden of Delaney House. The quiet, rustic seats, the cool
+spray of the fountains, the deep shade of the trees, the delicate
+fragrance of the flowers, all inspired one with a sense of peace and
+rest; and the master of all this wealth of summer sweetness, as he
+walked among the quiet graveled paths, did not inspire one with any
+suspicion. One envied him, rather, he looked so calm and peaceful, as
+though the cares and sorrows of the weary world touched him not, hidden
+as it were, behind his high stone walls and grim, forbidding towers,
+with their close-shut windows.
+
+Yes, here he still walked daily, as on that day when willful Aline
+had gone to her fate along a path as rosy and flower-strewn as ever
+delighted the eyes of heedless youth. His dark, grave face gave no
+hint of the secret he held, and expressed no sympathy nor sorrow for
+the shadow that had fallen on his neighbor’s house. He appeared calm,
+grave, indifferent to all things but himself.
+
+The New York detective studied the house and the man with a good deal
+of interest. He asked questions about them, but he stood well back from
+the window, and did not permit Mr. Delaney, by any chance, to observe
+his curious glances. He was very cautious.
+
+Mr. Rodney was a man of quite acute perceptions. He quickly saw where
+Mr. Lane’s suspicions were insensibly drifting.
+
+“Your suspicions are tending in quite the wrong direction,” he said:
+“Dr. Anthony is quite sure that the house where he saw the wounded girl
+is quite five miles distant from here.”
+
+It was a curious yet so natural mistake that all had drifted insensibly
+into it. Dr. Anthony had said that he was carried at least five miles
+from Maywood to the mysterious mansion. No one had reflected that
+Maywood was five miles distant from Chester, or if they had it did not
+connect itself at all with the mystery of Aline’s disappearance. No one
+except the keen-witted detective dreamed for an instant of connecting
+Delaney House with the mystery, and his suspicions were at once
+diverted by his employer’s confident remark. He turned his attention at
+once to another subject, and gave up the vague idea. Delaney House was
+destined to hold its secret yet.
+
+ “With one black shadow at its feet,
+ The house thro’ all the level shines,
+ Close-latticed to the brooding heat,
+ And silent in its dusty vines;
+ And ‘Ave, Mary,’ was her moan,
+ ‘Madonna, sad is night and morn;’
+ And ‘Ah,’ she sung, ‘to be all alone,
+ To live forgotten and love forlorn.’”
+
+Mr. Lane gave his closest attention and best talents to the solution of
+the mystery, and he felt perfectly confident of success. When had he,
+the most able detective in the great city of New York, failed in any
+undertaking? It was not likely he should be foiled here in this little
+country town.
+
+He settled himself at the pretentious hotel as an invalid gentleman
+in search of health. He had his own private buggy sent down from the
+city, and he made solitary excursions into the surrounding country in
+quest of the Goddess of Health, as he pretended. Sometimes he varied
+the monotony of these trips by going afoot. No one suspected his real
+reasons for being in the town. He passed everywhere for that which he
+represented himself to be.
+
+Weeks came and went, and he was no nearer the solution of the mystery,
+no nearer the finding of Aline than when he first came to Chester. A
+baffled feeling began to grow upon him, but still he would not own
+himself defeated, would not give up the quest.
+
+It was quite impossible that he should fail, he told himself, inspired
+by the natural self confidence of one who has always succeeded.
+Some day he would be sure to find the aristocratic mansion with the
+beautiful blue room where the wounded girl was hidden away from the
+yearning hearts of those who loved and mourned her.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI.
+
+
+Aline Rodney possessed a very quick and passionate temper. She had
+been very injudiciously spoiled by her father, and very injudiciously
+punished by her mother. The result showed itself in a willful
+capricious temper that could not bear contradiction and restraint.
+
+When Mr. Delaney firmly reiterated his assertion, that she should
+never be permitted to leave Delaney House unless she solemnly pledged
+herself to silence regarding her sojourn there, Aline’s young heart was
+filled with the bitterest anger and rebellion. She was unaccustomed
+to absolute control. Her mother’s efforts in that direction were weak
+and fitful, her father’s love made him blind to the inherent obstinacy
+of her nature. When Oran Delaney, strong and masterful as he was by
+nature, undertook to dictate to this spoiled, petted child, he found
+that he incurred a serious risk.
+
+I am ashamed to record this of my heroine--such characters are expected
+to realize our ideal of perfection--but she flew into a passion. She
+scolded Mr. Delaney in the bitterest terms her sharp little tongue
+could devise. She reproached him angrily, laying all the blame of her
+presence in the house upon his broad shoulders, and utterly ignoring
+her share in it. She was half-maddened by her sense of wrong and
+injury, and when she found that all her remonstrances broke against his
+strong, firm will, like water against a rock, she relapsed into violent
+hysterics.
+
+She was not your ideal of a heroine, reader, nor mine, nor Oran
+Delaney’s! His proud lip curled, half in pity, half in scorn, at her
+passionate ravings. He was not at all frightened by her anger. He said
+to himself that it was the impotent, unreasonable anger of a child,
+and that she had a decidedly shrewish temper; but at the same time he
+could not help seeing how beautiful she was in her anger and spite.
+Her blue eyes sparkled through the tears that filled them, a crimson
+color glowed upon her cheeks. Her voice, even at its sharpest, trembled
+with her sense of injury, and had a certain pathos that made it sound
+musical. Her whole proud spirit was aroused. She defied him to carry
+out his assertion, and then, in unreasoning contradiction of herself,
+she declared that she would remain at Delaney House until her bright
+eyes were dim, and her dark hair gray, before she would take the oath
+of silence he demanded of her. She would never submit to such tyranny
+and injustice.
+
+If Aline had been well and strong, Mr. Delaney would have laughed at
+her anger; but he grew apprehensive now. It was not well for her to
+excite herself. He regretted his precipitancy in acquainting her with
+his intentions. He wished that he had temporized with her.
+
+“But how was I to know that she would take it so hardly?” he muttered
+to himself.
+
+He was greatly relieved when Mrs. Griffin suddenly put in an
+appearance. She was honestly aghast at the state of the patient, and,
+while hurriedly mixing a composing draught, she gave loud utterance to
+her anxiety.
+
+“This will be the death of her! A fever will be sure to set in. I
+cannot imagine what you have said to excite her so much, Mr. Delaney.
+It was very imprudent.”
+
+“I did not know she would take it so hard,” he muttered, glancing
+uneasily at Aline, whose angry reproaches had subsided into low,
+smothered sobs and heart-broken wails.
+
+“You had better leave her to me, now,” she said. “I can coax her to
+take this medicine, perhaps, when you are gone.”
+
+He went up to Aline, and held out his hand.
+
+“I am sorry you think so hardly of me,” he said. “Try to forgive me,
+won’t you, Aline?”
+
+“I will never forgive you,” Aline, cried out, resentfully, as she
+pushed the offered hand away. And Mr. Delaney went away, then, without
+another word or look.
+
+But Mrs. Griffin gave her a glance of lively reproach.
+
+“For shame, Miss Rodney!” she cried. “You might treat Mr. Delaney
+civilly, at least, considering that he saved your life.”
+
+“When?” demanded Aline, desisting from her sobs in sheer surprise.
+
+“There, now! I always said I had a long tongue. Mr. Delaney told me not
+to tell,” muttered the nurse.
+
+“When did he save my life?” demanded the girl, in her pretty,
+peremptory way.
+
+“Don’t worry, Miss Rodney, that was a mere slip of the tongue, just
+now,” said Mrs. Griffin, as she approached with the wine-glass of
+medicine.
+
+“I shall not take the medicine unless you tell me what you meant by
+saying that Mr. Delaney saved my life,” declared Aline, coolly.
+
+“Won’t you? Then I shall have to call him back to pour it down your
+throat, as he did last night,” threatened the nurse, vexed at the
+willfulness of her patient.
+
+“You will do no such thing, for I shall immediately tell him what you
+said, and ask him if it is true,” declared the perverse girl; “but,
+if you tell me the truth, I shall not tell him that you betrayed his
+confidence.”
+
+Mrs. Griffin looked thoroughly vexed, but seeing what a headstrong
+nature she had to deal with, she meekly capitulated.
+
+“If excitement weren’t so hurtful to you, I’d let you do your worst, my
+spoiled young lady,” she said; “but, for your own sake, and to save you
+from another fit of temper, I’ll tell you the truth. Mr. Delaney saved
+you from that _creature_ that assaulted you yesterday. She had already
+wounded him upstairs, but he pursued her, and reached the parlor just
+in time to prevent her from giving you a second stab with her dagger;
+and if she had succeeded in that second attempt, you would have bidden
+good-by to this world, my pretty one!”
+
+Aline shuddered at the emphatic tone. Mrs. Griffin held out the
+medicine to her, and she swallowed it meekly, without a word of
+remonstrance. Her pretty face, still flushed from her anger and tears,
+looked very grave.
+
+“I am very glad he saved my life,” she said, after a minute,
+thoughtfully. “I should not like to die yet. I am too young, and the
+world is too lovely.”
+
+“As well die young as old,” growled the grim nurse. “One is saved a
+deal of pain by it.”
+
+“You are an old croaker, like Mr. Delaney,” Aline exclaimed,
+impatiently. “I dare say I shall be as hopeful and happy and as much in
+love with life when I am old as I am now!”
+
+“Let us hope so,” said the old woman, dryly; then she added, with some
+spirit, “As for Mr. Delaney being an old croaker, Miss Rodney, he is
+not old, let me tell you. He is only a little past thirty. I nursed him
+when he was a baby.”
+
+“Did you, really, Mrs. Griffin? How strange!” cried Aline, trying to
+realize the fact that Mr. Delaney had ever been a baby. She looked
+at Mrs. Griffin meditatively a moment, and, as a vision of the tall,
+handsome man in bibs and long skirts came before her mind’s eye, she
+burst out laughing.
+
+“Well, I never saw such a child--crying one moment, laughing the next!”
+cried Mrs. Griffin, offended at her levity.
+
+“Don’t be angry, nurse. I was only laughing at the idea of that stern,
+dark man ever being a baby. Tell me, did you really nurse him? And was
+he a pretty baby? And was his mamma very fond of him?” cried volatile
+Aline.
+
+“His mamma died when he was born, Miss Rodney. She was as young as you
+are, I believe, but she had a vast deal more dignity than you have,”
+Mrs. Griffin said, reprovingly.
+
+“I have no dignity at all. I have heard that every day of my life, and
+I am eighteen years old,” said Aline, rather soberly; “and this poor
+young mother who died so sadly, Mrs. Griffin, was she a pretty girl?”
+
+“How you do fly from one subject to another, miss!” cried Mrs. Griffin.
+“Yes, she was very beautiful. But, my dear, I don’t think that Mr.
+Delaney would like for me to discuss his family affairs with a
+stranger. Suppose you shut your eyes and go to sleep. You have had too
+much excitement already.”
+
+Aline could be a very sweet, obedient child when it pleased her to be
+so. She relapsed into one of those gracious moods now. She nestled her
+dark head down upon the pillow and obediently closed her eyes.
+
+But she was not asleep, although the grim nurse “laid that flattering
+unction to her soul.” She was busily thinking. “So Mr. Delaney saved my
+life,” she was saying to herself. “Why did he not tell me? I might not
+have been quite so abominable to him then. What a little wretch he must
+think me! I am sorry his mother died when he was a baby! I don’t think
+I should have had a very pleasant life if my mamma had died like that,
+even though she scolds me and punishes me sometimes.”
+
+She was unconsciously penitent for all her rudeness and anger toward
+Mr. Delaney. He had saved her life. That was a great boon in Aline’s
+eyes. She was young and fair, and life was very sweet.
+
+“I should not have been quite so bad if only I had known,” she repeated
+to herself. “I will be kinder to him after this. I do not want him to
+think me a little heathen. But he should not keep me here against my
+will. He must know that I want to go home!”
+
+While she lay thus apparently sleeping, but in reality busily thinking,
+the nurse watched her anxiously. She believed that the girl was asleep,
+but she did not like to see the bright, warm color that began to burn
+fitfully on the fair cheek beneath the long, dark fringe of the lashes.
+
+“I do not like the look of it,” she muttered, shaking her gray head,
+ominously. “’Twill be a mercy if fever doesn’t set in after all that
+passion she was in. And if it does, he daren’t bring the physician
+again. The risk will be too great.”
+
+She started when the blue eyes unclosed presently and looked up into
+her face. They were unnaturally dark and bright.
+
+“Send Mr. Delaney to me,” she said, “I am not going to tell him what
+you said, nurse, oh, no! Only send him here.” He came, and when he saw
+the hot flush on her cheeks, and the brilliant light in her eyes he was
+frightened. They were unnatural.
+
+Aline put out her dainty, dimpled hand to him.
+
+“I was very rude to you,” she said, simply. “Will you pardon me, Mr.
+Delaney?”
+
+He clasped the small hand gently and assured her that he was not
+offended in the least. He knew that he had given her great cause to be
+angry with him.
+
+“Still I need not have been such a little wretch,” she said,
+“and--and--I punished myself when I would not take the flowers. I
+wanted them very much! Will you give them to me now?”
+
+He brought the little basket to her, and she buried her hot face among
+the cool, dewy leaves of the roses. She began to talk to them in a
+childish whisper, that suddenly grew into a loud, meaningless, vacant
+babble. Oran Delaney looked anxiously at Mrs. Griffin.
+
+“Great Heaven!” he said, “what ails her? What does it mean?”
+
+She shook her gray head gloomily.
+
+“It is fever! I feared as much,” she said. “The excitement was too
+great in her weak, wounded condition. Heaven only knows how it will
+end.”
+
+It was fever indeed. Aline’s reckless indulgence of her wrath had
+wrought the worst possible results. Fever and delirium had set in. The
+wound which they had thought so lightly of at first now threatened to
+terminate fatally.
+
+“If she dies, it will be I who have killed her. I was a fool; I was mad
+surely when I told her all I did,” said Oran Delaney to himself.
+
+The fever set in high, and strong, and violent. It was pitiful to hear
+the sweet, high-pitched voice raving of the dear ones from whom she was
+cruelly separated. As she fought the hard battle between the opposing
+forces of life and death she called upon them all to help her--mamma,
+papa, Max and Effie, all those dearly beloved ones who were so near and
+yet so cruelly far.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII.
+
+
+The long, sweet summer days glided past into September. Already the
+parti-colored leaves of autumn began to be whirled through the air
+by the cool sweet breeze. There were hints of autumn coolness in the
+breeze as it sighed among the trees in the little country town of
+Chester.
+
+Those summer days from July until September had been full of suspense
+and sorrow to the Rodneys. Each day had been full of disappointment
+and harrowing suspense. Each day had only added to the impenetrable
+mystery that hung around the fate of the lost daughter. The New York
+detective, baffled for once in his life, had given up the case and
+returned to New York. In all his expeditions, in all his search, he had
+failed to find the house with the marble steps, the house that held
+the mysterious blue-and-white room where the beautiful wounded girl
+was hidden away. Mr. Lane was moody and irritable over his failure. He
+had conscientiously tried to succeed in finding Aline, and he could
+not understand why he had failed. After the fashion of many other
+unsuccessful people he sought some one else to lay the blame upon,
+and Dr. Anthony’s broad shoulders were selected for that purpose. Mr.
+Lane sarcastically denied the existence of the blue room, the masked
+villain, and the wounded girl. He did not hesitate to declare that Dr.
+Anthony had dreamed the whole thing.
+
+Dr. Anthony was not shaken in his convictions by the great detective’s
+incredulity. But he was very good-natured. He admitted that he had told
+a startling tale. He gave any one who chose full liberty to disbelieve
+it. For himself he was puzzled, vexed, chagrined at his own self, for
+he had made some private excursions on his own account and he had
+failed as ignominiously as Mr. Lane in finding the mysterious house
+and the mysterious maiden. It chagrined him to think that he had been
+so cleverly blinded, but he never once subscribed to the detective’s
+theory that he had been fooled by an hallucination of the brain.
+
+“My imagination is not so brilliant as you would give me credit
+for,” he said, laughing. “A poet’s brain might produce such a vision
+of peerless beauty off-hand, but not that of a prosaic physician.
+It was not a dream, it was not an hallucination, it was a strange
+reality. I shall assert that always, the whole world to the contrary
+notwithstanding.”
+
+But although the great detective had grown incredulous over the story,
+the Rodneys had not. They placed the most implicit faith in the doctor.
+He remained their valued friend, and Chester saw more of him in those
+days than Maywood. All his spare time, which did not really amount to
+much, since he had a large and steadily increasing practice, was spent
+at the little cottage home that nestled under the towers of Delaney
+House--the great house of the town. Through those troublesome days and
+nights he and Effie were learning the first tenses of that old, old
+lesson ever new--to love.
+
+Greatly to the surprise and joy of all, Mrs. Rodney had rallied from
+her illness and was slowly convalescing. She was strong enough now to
+be brought down into the pretty parlor every evening and rest upon
+a reclining-chair while the ebb of talk flowed on around her, to
+which she listened with languid interest. The town folks were very
+sympathetic and social, deeming it a sort of duty to visit and comfort
+the afflicted family. Some one or other dropped in every evening, so
+that the Rodneys, whatever other sorrow they labored under, could not
+complain of loneliness. But with the cool, short autumn evenings, and
+as the loss of Aline Rodney grew an old, old story, other interests
+began to usurp the place of the great sensation. Visitors grew less
+frequent at the cottage. They preferred to linger at their own
+firesides. It was only Dr. Anthony now who came every evening, if he
+only had time to look in for ten minutes. Every face brightened at his
+coming, every heart felt lighter for his words of cheer.
+
+But once he had quite a whole evening at his disposal. He had been
+visiting a patient near Chester, and as soon as he could he went to
+the cottage, and putting his horse into the stable announced that he
+had several hours to spend with his friends. All were pleased at the
+prospect, for a dull drizzling rain had set in, and the evening had
+promised to be lonely. More than once, as the wind sighed in the trees
+and the rain pattered down upon the roof, had been recalled Bryant’s
+appropriate lines:
+
+ “The melancholy days are come,
+ The saddest of the year.”
+
+Dr. Anthony’s coming put quite a new face upon the evening. They
+indulged in some little cheerfulness. They did not forget Aline, but
+they tried to take some little comfort in their lives. It is impossible
+to grieve always.
+
+ “We bear the blows that sever,
+ We cannot weep forever.”
+
+Papa sat by the shaded reading lamp with a new book. Mamma was resting
+in her low, reclining-chair, looking pale but pretty in her soft garnet
+cashmere and the little lace cap on her wavy brown hair that began to
+show some lines of gray since Aline had gone. Her idle white hands were
+folded in her lap. They were mostly idle now. She had no heart to work,
+but a gentle, pensive smile illumined her fair face this evening.
+
+Effie had opened the long-disused piano and was singing softly, while
+Dr. Anthony turned the leaves of her music. She wore a blue dress
+and a late September rose in her soft braids of hair. Max had fallen
+asleep on the sofa. The quiet repose of each figure, the pretty, simple
+parlor, the autumn flowers in the vases, the low fire that burned
+upon the hearth to dispel the chill of the rain, all made up a pretty
+picture of home-comfort that had a very alluring appearance to the
+passers-by, who chanced to glance through the unshuttered windows at
+the scene. Effie’s song, too, as floated out upon the night air, was
+very sweet and sad:
+
+ “Mother, now sing me to rest,
+ For the long, long day is done;
+ Fold me to sleep on thy breast
+ As the night folds up the sun.
+
+ “For my heart is heavy with fears.
+ And my feet are aweary with play;
+ Hide me from life’s lengthened years--
+ Fold me from weeping away.
+
+ “These flowers, so blessed and sweet,
+ I’ve gathered from far and from near;
+ I lay them all down at thy feet--
+ They are wet with many a tear.
+
+ “But, mother, now sing me to rest,
+ Take back the lone child, tired with playing;
+ Fold me to sleep on thy breast--
+ All the day long vainly straying.”
+
+The soft hush of silence that fell as Effie’s voice died away was
+broken by a shrill and piercing scream. Mrs. Rodney had sprung to her
+feet with a strength no one had believed her possessed of. She stood
+erect in the center of the floor, her slim forefinger pointed at the
+window, her eyes wildly dilating, her face pale and agitated, while
+shriek after shriek burst from her writhing lips:
+
+“Aline! Aline! Aline!”
+
+Every one turned to the spot indicated by that quivering forefinger.
+Every eye beheld a wild white face with dark dilated eyes and streaming
+hair, pressed for a moment against the window-pane. Then, while they
+yet gazed, it was swiftly withdrawn and vanished in the darkness and
+the falling rain like a phantom of the night.
+
+Effie’s voice rang out wild and horror-stricken above her mother’s
+piercing wails:
+
+“A ghost! A ghost! Ah, now I know that our poor Aline is dead!”
+
+Dr. Anthony stood for a moment like one rooted to the spot. He had
+recognized on the instant the beautiful pale face of the mysteriously
+wounded girl in the blue room. It was true, then, as he had believed.
+She was no other than Aline Rodney.
+
+He stood still a moment like one stupefied, then, turning suddenly,
+rushed to the door, flung it open, and disappeared in the rain and
+darkness of the wild autumn night.
+
+Mr. Rodney, after one moment of dazed indecision, flung down his book
+and rushed after him.
+
+Effie flew to her mother’s arms.
+
+“Oh, mamma, she is dead, Aline is dead--our dear, dear little Aline!”
+she sobbed, in a passion of despair.
+
+Little Max, awakened by the sound of their anguished voices, ran to
+them and added his frightened voice to the tumult of the scene. Mrs.
+Rodney continued to wail heart-brokenly.
+
+“Aline! Aline! Aline! Oh, I am justly punished for my harshness to you!
+It was your ghost looking in at the window just as you looked down at
+me that day from the window of the room where I had locked you! Oh, my
+child, my poor dead darling, forgive, forgive, forgive! Come back to
+me, Aline, and tell me you will forgive me!” As if in answer to her
+passionate appeals, the door was flung suddenly open again, and Mr.
+Rodney and Dr. Anthony re-entered the room. They walked slowly, for
+they carried a wet and dripping burden between them, which they laid
+upon the floor at Mrs. Rodney’s feet.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII.
+
+
+It was the figure of a girl wrapped in a long black water-proof cloak,
+whose concealing hood, fallen back from her features, showed them
+pale as death, with a pallor more remarkable by contrast with her
+night-black brows and lashes, and wet and dripping dark hair. It was
+Aline Rodney’s face, but the eyes were closed, and the trance of deep
+unconsciousness was upon her.
+
+They knelt down beside her and loosened the dripping wet cloak from
+her lissom, slender form. It was their own Aline, indeed. The slight
+pretty figure was clothed in the simple blue gingham dress she had worn
+the day they last beheld her. The same neat buttoned boots were on the
+small pretty feet. They did not seem to have been worn or damaged in
+all the time she had been away from home.
+
+Mr. Rodney lifted her helpless figure in his arms and carried her to
+the fire. He wrung the water from her dripping tresses and bathed her
+face with restoratives that Effie hurriedly brought. In a very few
+moments she revived. The dark-blue eyes fluttered open, she looked up
+into her father’s face, she saw them all kneeling around her--mamma,
+Effie, Max, all her dearly beloved ones, and a smile beamed on her face
+and a cry of thankfulness broke from her lips.
+
+“Oh, papa, oh, mamma, am I really home again? I am so glad, so glad! I
+can scarcely realize it!”
+
+They half smothered her with kisses and caresses. They quite forgot Dr.
+Anthony standing apart, a happy, sympathizing, though silent spectator.
+Mrs. Rodney took her restored daughter in her arms, her tears rained on
+the beautiful white face.
+
+“Oh, Aline, Aline,” she cried, “you must forgive me for punishing you
+so! I thought it was for the best. I did not dream that anything would
+go wrong. You are not angry now, are you, my dear? I have suffered so
+much, my love. I have been ill. I have almost died of grief since you
+went away; you must never leave me again.”
+
+Aline returned the kisses and caresses with interest. She was quite
+ready to forgive and forget.
+
+“I will try to be a good girl hereafter, mamma dear, so that you need
+never punish me again,” she said, wistfully and earnestly, and so
+differently from the former willful, perverse girl, that Mrs. Rodney
+was moved to sudden tears.
+
+“Oh, my darling, where have you been?” she cried. “We have been looking
+for you everywhere. We have even had a great detective down here from
+New York trying to find you.”
+
+Aline gazed silently into her mother’s face as she propounded these
+eager questions. Her lips moved, but no sound came from them.
+
+“We heard all about the mysterious blue room, and--and your dreadful
+wound, and the man in the mask--and everything!” continued Mrs. Rodney,
+frantically, “but look where we would, we could not find you, and we
+were afraid you had been cruelly murdered. Oh, my darling, tell me
+where you have been?”
+
+“Where have you been, Aline?” echoed her father, with unconscious
+sternness.
+
+“Where?” cried Effie, with painful anxiety.
+
+“Where?” asked Max, with boyish curiosity.
+
+But to all of these anxious questions, and the more anxious look that
+accompanied them, Aline Rodney answered not a word.
+
+Her dark head still rested against her father’s breast, and one arm was
+drawn lovingly around his neck. There was a smile of ineffable joy and
+peace on her face, but at Mrs. Rodney’s reference to the little room
+and her wound a look of wonder came into the dark-blue eyes.
+
+“Mamma, who has told you all that?” she exclaimed.
+
+“We have heard it all from Dr. Anthony, who dressed your wound that
+night,” cried Mrs. Rodney. “Oh, Aline, who was it that wounded you so
+cruelly, my dear? and where were you, and why did you not send for me?”
+
+A look of sorrow and regret flashed over the sweet white face.
+
+“Mamma, I cannot tell you,” answered Aline.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX.
+
+
+They gazed at her in amazement. What was this? Aline not to tell where
+she had been these three months! What could she possibly mean?
+
+“Aline, darling, you do not perhaps understand your mother. She is
+asking you where you have been. You must tell her, my child,” said Mr.
+Rodney, gently.
+
+Aline answered him in the same words:
+
+“Papa, I cannot tell her.”
+
+Something very like anger came momently into Mr. Rodney’s kind eyes
+as he looked down into the sweet young face that lay nestled lovingly
+against his arm.
+
+“No more willfulness, Aline,” he said, almost sternly. “You have run
+away from us and caused us a great deal of anxiety and sorrow. You have
+almost broken my heart, and your mother has been near to death’s door.
+You do not deserve that we should receive you back with so much love
+and forgiveness. But now that we have done so, you must be frank and
+explicit with us. You must tell us where you have hidden yourself so
+securely from us while we have been seeking you everywhere at so great
+an expense and trouble, to say nothing of our sorrow and anxiety.”
+
+“Papa, it does not matter where I have been so that you have me back
+again safe and secure,” cried simple Aline.
+
+She could not understand the dark frown that clouded his brow.
+
+“It matters everything,” he declared. “What new whim possesses you,
+Aline, that you should deny us thus? Do you not suppose that we should
+be anxious over your whereabouts after hearing all that we have done?”
+
+“I cannot understand who has told you so much, papa,” said the girl in
+wonder.
+
+Mr. Rodney made a sign to Dr. Anthony. He came forward into the range
+of Aline’s vision.
+
+“Doctor,” said Mr. Rodney, “do you recognize my daughter as the wounded
+girl whom you attended in the mysterious blue room?”
+
+Aline gazed in wonder at the strange face as it looked down upon her.
+She rather liked its expression, it was so cheery and handsome, with
+its brown eyes, brown mustache, regular features, and expression of
+good nature.
+
+He looked steadily and admiringly at the beautiful young face.
+
+“I could swear to her identity,” he said, firmly. “It is the face of
+the wounded girl in the mysterious blue room.”
+
+“I have never seen you before,” cried Aline. “How do you know these
+things which you assert?”
+
+He smiled. Aline could find no fault with that smile. It was so kind
+and reassuring. He answered, pleasantly:
+
+“You have never seen me, Miss Aline, because I wore a mask when I
+dressed your wound that night. But I remember your face distinctly.”
+He turned to Mr. Rodney. “May I tell her the story of that night?” he
+asked.
+
+Mr. Rodney answered, “Yes.”
+
+Aline lay listening silently, with dilated eyes, to his strange story.
+
+“I was full of sympathy for you,” he said. “I felt quite sure that
+there was something wrong. I did not like the strangeness of it all. I
+have tried again and again to find your strange prison, that I might
+rescue you from your bondage. I have been your friend ever since that
+night. If any one has maltreated you, Miss Aline--if you have been
+detained in that strange house against your will, tell me where to find
+the wretch, and I will punish him for you.”
+
+“You are very kind, but I have nothing to say,” Aline answered, in a
+low voice of unconscious regret.
+
+He looked at her in surprise.
+
+“Do you mean to make a secret of it?” he asked her, in his clear, frank
+way.
+
+“Yes,” she answered, calmly, and looking straight into his face with
+her blue, resolute eyes.
+
+“But, my dear young lady, why should you do that?” he said, perplexed.
+
+“That is my own affair,” she answered, with something of her old
+imperious temper ringing in her voice. “My business cannot concern
+you--a stranger. I consider that you are talking to me in a very
+impertinent fashion.”
+
+Mr. Rodney put his hand hastily over the willful red lips.
+
+“Your temper is not improved by your sojourn away from us,” he said, in
+a tone of marked displeasure. “Listen, Aline; this gentleman is not to
+be treated as a stranger by you. He is a valued friend, and, moreover,
+he is engaged to your sister Effie. He will be your brother, but I hope
+you will never cause him as much anxiety as you have done the rest of
+us.”
+
+Aline put out her white hand frankly to the doctor.
+
+“I congratulate you,” she said. “Effie is the dearest girl in the
+world!”
+
+“So I think,” said Dr. Anthony, frankly; adding, gayly, “I think a
+great deal of you, too, Miss Aline, since but for you I might never
+have seen your sister!”
+
+They all laughed. Aline made up her mind that he would be a charming
+brother-in-law.
+
+“I should say that my running away has proved quite advantageous to the
+family,” said she archly, as she kissed the blushing Effie.
+
+She thought that every one would agree with her. She could not
+understand why they all looked so grave. She had been brought up so
+simply and innocently in this quiet country town she had no knowledge
+of evil.
+
+“Why do you all look so grave?” said she, pettishly. “If you aren’t
+glad to see me, perhaps I had better go back where I came from.”
+
+“Where _did_ you come from, Aline?” exclaimed her father.
+
+“You dear, curious old papa, I shan’t tell you!” replied Aline, with
+her merry laugh that sounded like music.
+
+“You are jesting, Aline, but it is not an appropriate subject for
+a joke,” said her father. “Come, dear, I do not like to be kept in
+suspense. I am waiting to hear why you ran away from us, and where you
+went.”
+
+She lifted her head from his arm, and looked up into his face with her
+bright, wide-open eyes. She saw that he was not jesting, that he was
+in intense earnest. She was inclined to resent his curiosity, as she
+termed it to herself.
+
+“Really, papa, I cannot imagine why you make such a fuss over it,” she
+cried, with all the freedom of a spoiled child. “I should think you
+already knew why I went away. It was because I didn’t wish to stay
+in that hot, stuffy little chamber all day while you were enjoying
+yourselves at the picnic. So I went out for a little while, I meant to
+return directly, but--” she stopped short, and a sudden flush mounted
+up to her white forehead.
+
+“And why did you not return, Aline?” her mother cried out, quickly.
+“What reasons did you have for staying?”
+
+“I had the very strongest of reasons, mamma,” said the girl, and now
+they saw that she was half laughing, half crying. “The very strongest
+reasons, for I could not return.”
+
+“But why, dear?” asked Effie, leaning on her lover’s arm, and looking
+deeply interested.
+
+“Ah, ‘why, why’!--how you all do ring the changes on that one word,”
+cried Aline, in pretty petulance. “When I say that I do not mean to
+tell you, why cannot you leave me alone?”
+
+She was in the most palpable earnest. They all saw that. They did not
+know what to say to her. She was so childlike, so innocent, she could
+not understand why it was really so necessary that she should explain
+her absence to them.
+
+“Tell me one thing, Aline, my darling,” said her father, coaxingly.
+“How did you get out of your locked room?”
+
+She locked her white hands around his arm and looked up into his face.
+There was a deep, warm color on her face, and her eyes were misty as if
+with tears that she bravely held back.
+
+“Papa, darling,” she said, with a sudden quiver in her fresh young
+voice, “do not be angry with me, dear. Indeed, indeed, I do not want to
+be naughty or willful or unkind to you. But I cannot tell you how I
+left my room that day any more than I can tell you how I came back to
+you to-night.”
+
+There was a dead silence. Aline did not know how strangely her words
+sounded to them all. She did not know that there was anything so
+strange and reprehensible in her silence. She did not realize that she
+was no longer a child, but a woman, every day of whose life should lie
+fair and open like a spotless page to every eye.
+
+Her father put her suddenly out of his arms into a chair by his side.
+
+“Aline, you are tired to-night. Perhaps you will tell us your story
+to-morrow?” he said, half inquiringly.
+
+“Neither to-night nor to-morrow, papa,” she replied, in a vaguely
+troubled tone, for she began to feel alarmed at their persistency. “No,
+nor ever!”
+
+“Do you realize what you are saying, Aline?” Mr. Rodney inquired, in a
+strange, measured tone, and gazing deliberately into her grave, sweet,
+perfectly frank blue eyes.
+
+“Yes, papa, I realize it,” she replied, innocently.
+
+“You will stain the whiteness of your life, of your young womanhood,
+with a secret at whose nature no one can guess--you will deliberately
+place yourself under a ban. You will not reveal this strange secret
+even to your parents--do you mean all this, Aline?” he asked,
+agitatedly.
+
+“Yes, papa dear,” answered Aline.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney gazed at his daughter for a few moments in blank silence.
+It had suddenly dawned upon him that, with all her childish ways and
+innocent young beauty, Aline was a woman in years.
+
+ “Standing with reluctant feet,
+ Where the brook and river meet,
+ Womanhood and childhood fleet.”
+
+She was eighteen years old, but until to-night she had seemed like a
+child. She had the frank heart of a child, and her mother had never put
+her forward in society as a woman. The bloom had never been brushed
+from her heart by a lover. She had never had a secret from her parents
+in her life. She had been open, frank, and guileless, and singularly
+confiding.
+
+Her course now was utterly unlike Aline’s former ways--it was strange,
+unfilial, and incomprehensible.
+
+As he gazed at her silently now, the subtle change in her struck him
+most forcibly. It existed not only in her mind, but her face.
+
+Now that he looked at her more closely, he saw that Aline’s pretty
+oval face had grown thin and pale; her eyes, always large and bright,
+were more so than ever now. They were not the happy, careless eyes of
+the child Aline. They had a brooding shadow in them--a new expression,
+almost of pain. The red, smiling lips had acquired a certain gravity.
+There was a soul looking out of the beautiful pale face now, illumining
+its ethereal loveliness like the light behind a crystal vase.
+
+“Some new experience of life has come to the child since she left us.
+Her mind is expanded and developed into that of a woman,” he said to
+himself.
+
+With that thought came trouble, sorrow, and vague regret, mixed with
+a certain horror of the mystery she persisted in throwing around the
+months of her absence. Tremblingly he asked himself what did that
+strange reserve mean? Was it the impenetrable veil thrown around a
+disgraceful secret?
+
+Disgraceful! He started and chided himself. Was he linking the thought
+of disgrace with her, the child of his heart, his bright, beautiful
+darling, who had always been his favorite child? No, no, sin could
+never touch her, she was too pure, too true, too innocent. He gazed
+anxiously into her sweet, blue eyes, and in spite of the vague shadow
+he saw there, they were still frank, and open, and honest; she was
+still as innocent as a child, although as lovely as a woman. Whatever
+had come to her in those months of absence, deepening her experience of
+life, it had not brought her any worldly knowledge. The thought that
+any one could think hardly of her for that secret she was keeping had
+never dawned upon her inner consciousness.
+
+Mr. Rodney knew the world with all its evil ways, and he was a man of
+strong intellect and strong impulses. He vaguely scented trouble if
+Aline persisted in her strange course of conduct.
+
+Her simple air as she answered his last question almost dismayed him.
+What a child she was still in spite of her years!
+
+“Look at me, Aline,” he said, gravely.
+
+She turned her sweet, flower-like face obediently to his, and met his
+stern inquiring look with the full gaze of her lovely violet eyes. The
+full white lids and long, curling black lashes raised fully from them,
+gave them an air of innocent candor and tender appealing. It was not
+possible that sin or shame could stain the pure white soul looking out
+at him from those splendid portals of light.
+
+“Aline,” he said, abruptly, “I can scarcely credit the sincerity of
+your refusal to speak. Perhaps you have not counted the cost.”
+
+“The cost, papa?”
+
+Honest amazement looked out at him from the dark-blue orbs.
+
+“The cost,” he repeated, with stern brevity.
+
+“But, papa, I do not understand you. I went away because mamma had
+punished me, and I was vexed and did not mean to stay in all day.
+And--and--I could not come back when I wished to do so. There were
+reasons why I could not do so--all my own fault, remember, papa; and so
+when I come at last--when I come back loving you all more dearly than
+ever, and quite determined not to be naughty ever again, you look at me
+so strangely, you talk to me so sternly. You ask me, have I counted the
+cost? I do not understand you in the least, papa. What do you mean by
+the cost?”
+
+“The cost of your silence,” he said. “Do you not know that it is
+strange, unnatural? Do you not know that I have a right to know where
+you have been, my child?”
+
+“Of course I know that, papa. And I have always told you everything,
+haven’t I, papa?--haven’t I, mamma? I have never kept a secret from you
+in all my life; but I thought that if I chose to keep this one, you
+would not care--that it would not matter greatly. I do not see how it
+could matter to any one! But you are angry, papa. Was that what you
+meant by the _cost_? Shall you lock me in my room again if I refuse to
+tell?”
+
+He stared at her, stupefied. What could he say in the face of such
+innocence and ignorance?
+
+She rose from her seat impulsively, and threw herself down on her knees
+before him, folding her white arms across his lap, gazing up into his
+face earnestly and lovingly.
+
+“Papa”--there was a wistful trouble in her voice, a sound as of unshed
+tears, a patient humility--“papa, you shall punish me as much as you
+please! I quite deserve it; I am willing to bear it. I will do anything
+you say without a murmur. I cannot tell you where I have been; I cannot
+tell you how I went away; but no one is to blame but myself. You know
+how wild and willful I have been. I brought all this upon myself, and I
+will bear the consequences. Punish me as you will, papa, only forgive
+me and love me again!”
+
+“Aline, this is the most sheer obstinacy,” he said, looking down at the
+lovely tear-stained face, for two great sparkling tears had flashed
+from under her dark lashes and rolled down upon her cheeks. “I do not
+wish to punish you--I only wish to forgive you, but you make it too
+hard for me by your willfulness. Tell me the truth, my darling.” He
+bent down suddenly and clasped her in his arms with inexpressible love
+and earnestness. “Tell me, Aline, where you have been; and if you have
+suffered wrong at the hands of any one, I will find means to punish
+that wrong in the most terrible fashion!”
+
+She slipped from his arms to the floor, and crouched there, with a
+strange trouble written all over her face.
+
+“Papa, I can tell you nothing--nothing!” she murmured, in hoarse,
+strained accents.
+
+All the tenderness in his face was displaced by sudden anger.
+
+“Aline, I no longer plead to you for your obedience,” he exclaimed,
+sharply--“I _command_ you to tell me the truth!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI.
+
+
+Aline sprung to her feet and regarded her father in consternation.
+
+His tenderness and love had given place to fierce anger and authority.
+His face was pale and stern, his lips set in a rigid line, his
+dark-blue eyes, so like her own, blazed ominously.
+
+“I _command you_,” he repeated, hoarsely. “Do not continue to trifle
+with me any longer, Aline. Tell me where you have been.”
+
+“Papa, I would tell you it I could, but I cannot do so,” she answered,
+gently, almost humbly, and retreating a pace from him toward her sister.
+
+But he waved her away from Effie’s side with sharp authority.
+
+“Stand back,” he said, “you have no right by your sister’s side until
+this mystery is explained away. Now, will you tell me the truth?”
+
+“I cannot,” she still repeated, and her lips began to quiver. She
+turned a piteous, pleading gaze upon her mother’s face. It touched
+a responsive chord in Mrs. Rodney’s heart. She who had always been
+harshest to Aline was tenderest now.
+
+She came forward and laid a soft, pleading hand on her husband’s arm.
+
+“Oh, Mr. Rodney, do not tease the child,” she said. “See how white and
+ill she looks! leave her alone now. She will tell us some time when she
+is better--will you not, my darling?”
+
+Aline flew to her mother’s arms and hid her face on her breast, but
+she did not answer her pleading question, she only broke into low,
+hysterical sobs. She was frightened at her father’s anger, her heart
+and brain were in a whirl. How different was this homecoming from what
+she had expected! The dear father who had always loved her best, who
+had always defended her girlish escapades, had turned against her now.
+
+She did not understand that in the very fact of the idolizing love he
+had borne her lay the secret of her father’s anger. Because he had
+loved her the best of all he felt her defection the worst of all. To
+him she had always been loving and obedient. He could not understand
+her strange disobedience now. It filled him with mingled fear and
+anger. He was wounded in his love and his pride.
+
+He looked coldly at his wife as she stood with her daughter clasped in
+her maternal arms mingling her tears with those that flowed from the
+girl’s blue eyes.
+
+“Mrs. Rodney, I hope you will not interfere in this matter,” he said,
+with distinct coldness. “I alone must deal with Aline now; I alone
+dictate her punishment.”
+
+“Punishment! I thought there was to be no more talk of that. We have
+punished the child too much already!” cried the remorseful mother.
+
+“God bless you, mamma!” whispered the girl, gratefully.
+
+“Be silent. I will have no interference in my management of Aline,” he
+repeated, angrily.
+
+They all looked at him in wonder. No one had ever seen Mr. Rodney
+really angry before. His favorite daughter quailed before the white
+heat of wrath that distorted his proud, handsome face. He advanced
+and drew her deliberately from Mrs. Rodney’s arms and placed her in
+a chair. At his authoritative manner Aline’s fair face flushed, and
+something of his own high spirit flashed into her eyes.
+
+“Papa, you have no right to treat me thus!” she cried. “Why do you
+humiliate me before this stranger?” and she glanced at Dr. Anthony, who
+was regarding her with gravely sympathetic eyes.
+
+“I have already told you that Dr. Anthony is not to be regarded as a
+stranger--” began Mr. Rodney. But the doctor himself interrupted him by
+stepping forward and addressing him.
+
+“She is right,” he said. “Although Miss Aline has not a better friend
+on earth than myself, we are actually strangers to each other. I should
+have remembered the fact before, but that my deep sympathy and interest
+in her caused me to forget. I crave her pardon for my seeming rudeness,
+and I will now take my leave.”
+
+He bowed himself out, and left the beautiful culprit alone with her
+family. They stood around her silently--the weeping mother, the
+compassionate sister and brother, the father, who had made himself her
+judge, who was repressing every instinct of tenderness in his anger at
+what he deemed a girl’s waywardness.
+
+“Aline, you think me harsh and cold,” he said. “God knows no man ever
+had a harder task than mine. I do not think you understand what will
+follow upon this rash act of folly and this culpable silence of yours.
+Shall I tell you?”
+
+“If you please, papa,” answered Aline.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII.
+
+
+She was regarding him with some little curiosity. It was quite plain to
+be seen that she had not the faintest idea of the nature of that cost
+at which he vaguely hinted. There was nothing but a perfectly blank
+wonder on the beautiful, girlish face.
+
+In the face of her utter innocence and ignorance it was all the harder
+to tell her the truth. He looked at her almost despairingly.
+
+“Aline, I almost wish now that we had not brought you up in such
+simplicity and innocence,” he said. “Perhaps, if you had known the
+world better, you might not have erred like this.”
+
+She looked at him attentively.
+
+“Papa, I cannot see that the world has anything to do with me, simple
+Aline Rodney,” she said. “It seems to me that nobody was harmed by my
+absence except mamma and the rest of you, to whom I belong!”
+
+He fairly groaned.
+
+“There is some one else who was harmed more than all the rest of us,”
+he answered.
+
+“Who was that, papa?” innocently.
+
+“Was ever such ignorance?” he asked himself, even while he answered,
+aloud: “You, Aline!”
+
+Her face brightened, comprehensively.
+
+“That is quite true,” she said, “I was harmed the most of all, for I
+not only had to bear the pain of my absence from you, but was tortured
+with remorse and anxiety. I was never away from home in all my life
+before, you know, papa, and when I was so ill, oh, how I longed for
+mamma and the rest of you. And then, I was so angry and so sorry
+because I could not send for you, and--and--” she paused, with a
+shocked exclamation, and put her hand over her lips.
+
+“So you really were ill--poor darling!” cried Effie.
+
+“I did not mean to say that,” cried Aline. “Oh, I am so thoughtless,
+I shall tell everything yet,” she sighed in dismay, and again the
+expression of anger clouded her father’s face.
+
+“Aline, you have quite misunderstood me,” he said. “I did not at all
+refer to your own sensations in your absence, but to a more serious
+matter. I will be plain with you, Aline. I meant solely what other
+people would think and say of your absence, and your refusal to explain
+it.”
+
+“_Other_ people, papa?”
+
+“Aline, why will you repeat my words in such a parrot-like and
+exasperating fashion?” he cried, sharply.
+
+Her lips quivered sensitively.
+
+“I beg your pardon,” she said, simply. “I cannot think what makes me so
+stupid.” She put her hand wearily to her brow for an instant. “My head
+aches. Perhaps that is the reason. Please bear with me, papa. I am sure
+I shall understand you presently.”
+
+He was touched inexpressibly by her childish humility. Something like
+softness and regret quivered in his voice, as he answered:
+
+“I do not wish to be hard upon you, child. It is my fatherly regard for
+your welfare that urges me to sternness. It seems as if you have not
+the faintest idea of my meaning.”
+
+“I am ashamed to confess that I have not, papa. It is all owing to my
+own stupidity that I fail to understand you,” she said, with wondrous
+gentleness.
+
+He made a despairing gesture.
+
+“I am sure I do not know how to make you understand,” he said, “I am
+sure I wish I did not need to try. Unfortunately, it becomes my duty.
+Remember that, Aline.”
+
+“Yes, papa.”
+
+He stroked his rippling brown beard nervously with his long, white
+fingers. How hard it was to show the evil nature of the world to this
+simple-hearted child! He said to himself, passionately, that he would
+almost rather cut off his right hand than be obliged to do it.
+
+“When I said other people, Aline, I meant the world in general, and the
+people of Chester--the people among whom you live in particular,” he
+began.
+
+She bowed her dark head gravely. She did not in the least know what to
+say. His remarks appeared quite irrelevant in her eyes.
+
+“You have some friends among them. You like them, they like you,” he
+said.
+
+“Oh, yes,” she answered with a smile, and he continued, desperately:
+
+“When they hear that you have come home, Aline, and that you refuse to
+reveal where and with whom you have been, they will suspect that your
+strange silence hides some disgraceful mystery. They will refuse to
+associate with you; they will point the finger of scorn at you.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney paused when he had uttered those words and looked gravely
+at his daughter. She had not quite taken in his meaning yet. She was
+looking at him with an air of blended surprise and incredulity.
+
+“Papa, you must please excuse me for repeating your words over
+this time,” she said, anxiously. “You see I want to be sure that I
+understand you. Do you say that people will suspect _me_ of something
+disgraceful?--that they will have nothing to do with _me_?--that they
+will point the finger of scorn at _me_?”
+
+“That was what I said, Aline,” he replied.
+
+The blue eyes turned inquiringly to her mother’s face.
+
+“Is it really true, mamma, or is papa only teasing me?” she asked,
+slowly.
+
+“I am afraid it is only too true, my dear,” Mrs. Rodney answered, with
+a great, strangling sob.
+
+A look of horror came into the great blue eyes.
+
+“But, mamma”--she unconsciously turned from her father’s pale, stern
+face to her mother’s gentler one--“I have done nothing wrong. Why
+should my friends treat me so?”
+
+Mrs. Rodney could not answer her. She looked at her husband.
+
+“Aline,” he said, “do you remember when you were a little girl at
+school, the first line you used to write in your copy-book?”
+
+“Yes, papa,” she replied, with a half-smile on her red lips. “It was
+this, ‘Avoid the appearance of evil.’”
+
+“Exactly. Well, it is a maxim that goes with us through life. We should
+not only avoid evil, but even the appearance of it. Do you understand
+me, Aline?”
+
+She bowed in silence.
+
+“The world, society, people in general, my child, judge almost wholly
+by appearances. When there is a mystery, where there is secrecy, where
+every day of a young girl’s life does not lie fair and open to the
+public view, they suspect guilt, and they visit their suspicions on the
+offender in unstinted measure.”
+
+A great change had come over Aline’s face. It was white and startled,
+the lips were drawn in a line of pain. He had made her understand at
+last. There was no need to ask as he did, half sorrowfully:
+
+“Can you make the application, Aline?”
+
+A long, deep, heavy sigh quivered over the girl’s lips. She raised
+her eyes to his as if deprecating his words. Her voice was full of
+sorrowful anxiety.
+
+“Papa, is the world really so hard?”
+
+“I do not call it hard, Aline--only just,” he answered.
+
+She sighed and remained silent.
+
+“Only just,” he repeated. “It asks that a woman’s life be kept fair
+and pure and spotless, open to the eyes of all beholders. It does not
+tolerate secrets or mysteries. But it is not hard, it is only just. All
+pure men and women concur in its decision.”
+
+She did not speak, only gazed into his face with her large, clear eyes,
+as if waiting to hear more.
+
+“Aline, you are young, you are beautiful, you love life, you are of
+a most social disposition,” he said. “Can you afford to shroud your
+absence during those three months in a veil of mystery? Can you afford
+to have your whole life blighted and ruined as it will be if you
+persist in your silence? Can you do without hope and pleasure, without
+love and lovers, without friends and without respect?”
+
+Every word fell clearly and coldly. When he ceased there was a deep
+silence in the little parlor. They could hear the wild autumn winds
+sighing outside, hear the steady downpour of the rain, ceaseless as
+though “the heart of heaven were breaking in tears o’er the fallen
+earth.”
+
+Aline was sitting motionless, her dark lashes drooped against her
+cheeks, one small hand pressed unconsciously against her beating heart.
+
+“Of what are you thinking, Aline?” he asked, impatient of her strange
+silence.
+
+She raised her eyes slowly, and looked at him with a mute misery that
+pierced his heart.
+
+“Only of what you said, papa,” she answered. “Need it really be so bad
+as that?”
+
+“No, it _need not be_ if you choose to save yourself,” he answered,
+almost savagely. “You have only to speak, Aline, only to clear yourself
+from the appearance of evil. You will surely do so now when I have so
+patiently explained to you the terrible cost of your silence. You will
+not persist in your suicidal willfulness.”
+
+She sprung from her chair and stood leaning against the back of it,
+gazing at him with burning cheeks and heaving breast.
+
+“Papa, you are only trying to frighten me,” she cried out, hoarsely.
+“It cannot be so bad as you say! You exaggerate it all! I have
+done nothing wrong, I am guilty of nothing but the willfulness and
+disobedience you have pardoned in me a thousand times! Why should any
+one be angry, why should any one blame me when I have done nothing
+wrong?”
+
+“Nothing wrong? Do you call it then nothing to have stayed away these
+three months?” he asked her.
+
+“Oh, surely you know I would have come home before if I could, papa!”
+she cried, clasping her white hands together in her earnestness.
+
+“Who or what has hindered your return to us, Aline?”
+
+“Papa, I must not tell you,” she wailed.
+
+“You mean you will not,” he said, with bitter chagrin, for he had not
+believed her resolve would be proof against the penalties it entailed.
+
+“I will not, then, since you will have it so,” she broke out, with a
+sort of desperate despair, while her blue eyes drowned themselves in
+sudden raining tears.
+
+Then suddenly, before any one could prevent her, she flung herself face
+downward on the floor, and broke into stormy, tempestuous sobs and
+tears.
+
+They gazed at her in consternation--no one attempted to soothe her.
+What could they say to the willful child who was rashly determined to
+blight her own young life?
+
+At length, just as suddenly as she had thrown herself down, she sprung
+up again. She went to her father and stood meekly before him, hushing
+her sobs by a great effort of will.
+
+“Papa, if all be as you say, then is my life indeed ruined,” she said,
+despairingly; “I must bear my fate, for I cannot change it. Oh, how
+gladly I would speak if I could! Listen to me, papa, dearest. I am not
+willful, I am not wayward, I would give one half of my life to have the
+liberty to tell you all you ask! But, papa, mamma, Effie, Max--my dear
+ones all, I am the most unhappy, most unfortunate girl in the world,
+for I have sworn an oath never to speak, never to reveal the secret of
+those three months. You may do with me as you will; the world may wreak
+its vengeance on me as it will, but I cannot help myself. I must bear
+it as best I can. My lips are sealed. I am solemnly sworn to silence!”
+
+While they yet gazed upon her in speechless horror, she gasped,
+staggered, threw out her hands for some support, and missing it, fell
+heavily upon the floor. When they lifted her up she appeared like one
+dead.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV.
+
+
+They were startled and frightened. This was twice that her senses had
+yielded to unconsciousness that night. The strong, bright, pretty Aline
+who had left them three months ago had never fainted in her life.
+
+“What dreadful experience she must have passed through since she left
+us! How pale and thin she looks!” Mrs. Rodney cried, in anguish.
+
+Effie wept silently. She had never known how dear was her volatile
+younger sister until now. She knelt beside her, chafing the cold, white
+hands between her own, warm, rosy palms, while she silently prayed for
+Aline’s recovery.
+
+They wished now that Aline’s hasty words had not driven Dr. Anthony
+away, for her swoon was a long and deep one. All their efforts
+failed to rouse her. She remained cold and white, with scarcely any
+discernible pulse, and the most slow and muffled heart-beats. Her limbs
+seemed to grow more rigid and deathly every minute.
+
+They removed her to her own little chamber, and laid her on her little
+white bed. No one guessed that, from the tower window of Delaney House,
+a pair of eyes had been watching anxiously for hours to see the light
+flashing from the little end window so long darkened by its owner’s
+absence.
+
+When it appeared, shedding a glow of light upon the dying foliage of
+the garden, and Oran Delaney saw the moving figures behind the white
+curtain, he experienced a sensation of relief. The child was at home
+again, surrounded by those dear ones for whom she had pined. She would
+soon forget the brief shadow he had thrown over her life for a little
+while. They had taken her home and forgiven her, and all would go on as
+before in his neighbor’s house. The thought lifted a burden from his
+heart. He gave a sigh of relief, and threw himself down upon his couch
+to seek refuge from his haunting thoughts in uneasy slumbers.
+
+Meanwhile, Aline lay locked in that deep trance of unconsciousness.
+
+They tried every method of rousing her, but their efforts did not meet
+with the least success.
+
+She lay mute and pale before them like one dead. The dark lashes lay
+all stirless upon the marble-white cheeks; her lips did not unclose to
+repeat those sorrowful words whose bitterness seemed to have broken her
+heart. She seemed to have passed away without a regret from that world
+in which henceforth she had no part save sorrow: and her father, as he
+gazed upon the pale and rigid face almost wished that it were so.
+
+She was so sweet and beautiful and he had had such great hopes for her.
+How could he bear to see her live with this great shadow of silence and
+mystery upon her life? How could he bear that the cold, carping eyes of
+her little world should rest upon her in suspicion and distrust? And
+for himself; he was very proud; how could he endure to be pointed at
+as the father of a girl whose willful silence most probably concealed
+terrible disgrace.
+
+“I wish that she had never been born!” he cried out, in the bitterness
+of his heart, and then when his own heart reproached him, he made
+excuses to it. “She can have no happiness in life, no respect, no
+confiding love, no domestic bliss, no peace. There will always be a
+shadow on her life. She had better be dead, or never have been born.”
+
+He remembered those wild words of the Spanish student:
+
+ “Yet I fain would die!
+ To go through life unloving and unloved;
+ To feel that thirst and hunger of the soul
+ We cannot still; that longing, that wild impulse,
+ And struggle after something we have not,
+ And cannot have; the effort to be strong;
+ And, like the Spartan boy, to smile and smile,
+ While secret wounds do bleed beneath our cloaks:
+ All this the dead feel not--the dead alone!
+ Would I were with them!”
+
+“The girl is like me. She is proud, although she is so loving. I
+believe she would sooner be dead than live the life that lies before
+her,” he said to himself.
+
+And he was right. The cold, gray, rainy dawn peeped in at the windows
+and saw Aline struggling slowly back to life and consciousness. She put
+out her hands and pushed them away from her with their restoratives.
+She would have none of them. She flung out her hands in despair.
+
+“You should have let me die!” she cried out, wildly. “How could any one
+wish for me to live?”
+
+“Oh, my darling, do not talk so!” cried her mother, forgetting
+everything save the passionate mother-love that filled her heart. “You
+must live to be my comfort when Effie is taken from me. You know she
+will be married soon to Dr. Anthony, and I should be so lonely, when
+she went were it not for you, my love!”
+
+“Oh, mamma, how can I be any comfort to you?” cried poor Aline, in
+despair. “You will be ashamed of me--you will never--never forget all
+that my willfulness has brought on me--perhaps you will hate me after
+awhile. If you did, mamma, I could not blame you. I quite deserve it, I
+know!”
+
+“Hush, my darling! How could a mother hate her child?” cried poor
+Mrs. Rodney, tearfully, and forgetting all her dignity in genuine
+mother-love. “I do not believe you are guilty, Aline! How could my
+little white-souled girl be a sinner? Live for me, Aline, and we will
+not care for the world. We will let it go by. We will not heed its
+smiles or its frowns.”
+
+But Aline sighed in heaviness of heart. Her trouble was too fresh, her
+wound was too deep for her to find comfort anywhere.
+
+“Oh, mamma, you are so good to me,” she cried. “I never knew how good
+before. I do not wish to live. I am proud, though you might not have
+thought so in the old, willful days. I cannot live such a life as my
+father has painted for me. I shall die like a flower that has no rain
+and no sunshine. And that will be best. I do not care to live!”
+
+And this was the girl who had dreamed of finding life all fair and
+desirable at fourscore--who had laughed at Oran Delaney’s croakings
+such a little, little while ago.
+
+She lay there among the snowy pillows, in the little room for which she
+had sighed so often, and vainly thinking that she would be so glad and
+happy when she returned to it once again, and she wished in her heart
+that she might die.
+
+She was quite a different girl at dawn from the one on whom yesterday’s
+sun had set. Then her life lay before her, all bright and fair, like
+a landscape in the morning sun. Now it was like the same scene at
+twilight, with the sad rain falling and dimming all in its somber veil.
+
+“I am done with my life, if all is like they tell me,” she said,
+soberly, to herself. “What shall I do with all the years that lie
+before me yet till I die?”
+
+Like a flash, her thoughts went back to Delaney House and the beautiful
+blue room that had held her a captive those three months. Before her
+mind’s eye came a dark, grave, handsome face; in her ears rang a deep
+and musical voice, with a tone of subtle melancholy. He was reading the
+poem she had not cared to hear, but which seemed at this moment to have
+burned itself in on her memory:
+
+ “How many years will it be, I wonder
+ And how will their slow length pass,
+ Till I shall find rest in silence under
+ The trees and the waving grass?”
+
+“Perhaps you may even subscribe to its sad sentiments some day,” Oran
+Delaney had said to her, and how scornfully she had derided the idea.
+
+Was she the same girl? Scarcely. She had a vague fancy that she would
+wake up presently and find that she had been sleeping and dreaming some
+horrid dream.
+
+She furtively pinched herself, and found that she was not dreaming
+at all. She was broad awake, and the new day was shining in at her
+windows, chill and murky and sunless, like the life that lay before her.
+
+“And all for such a little, little act of folly,” she said to herself,
+with a terrible sinking at the heart.
+
+Mr. Rodney suddenly came over to her. He took Aline’s cold white hands
+and smoothed them gently between his strong warm ones.
+
+“Aline,” he said, “do you think it quite right to hold yourself bound
+by the oath you spoke of? Do not the dreadful consequences it entails
+on you justify you in breaking it?”
+
+She shook her head slowly.
+
+“I do not care,” she replied.
+
+“It must be a very solemn oath that can bind you under such
+circumstances,” he said, slowly. “Is your decision quite unalterable,
+my dear?”
+
+“Yes, papa,” she replied, with a deep sigh.
+
+He was silent for a moment, and an echo of her own sad sigh drifted
+over his lips. When he looked back at her again there was a new light
+in his eyes.
+
+“Aline, I have been thinking of a new plan,” he said.
+
+“A new plan?” she echoed.
+
+“Yes; I cannot bear to see your life blighted, all your chances of
+happiness destroyed. We will go away from here and make our home in
+some distant spot, where this strange story can never follow you. You
+may yet be happy.”
+
+Her young heart thrilled with sudden joy. She looked at him with
+grateful affection.
+
+“Papa, would you, indeed, do so much for me?” she inquired.
+
+He bowed silently, and gently pressed her hand. Aline forgot his
+harshness and anger of a little while ago, and remembered only the
+patient, unalterable love that was ready to make such a sacrifice for
+her sake.
+
+“And you, mamma?” she inquired, turning her wistful eyes upon Mrs.
+Rodney’s pale and altered face.
+
+“I am quite willing, dear,” she replied.
+
+“You are too good and kind to me, papa and mamma; I do not deserve it.
+I must not let you make such a sacrifice for my sake!” she cried.
+
+“There is too much at stake to call it a sacrifice,” Mr. Rodney
+answered.
+
+“At least we need not make it yet,” Aline cried, musingly. “Oh, papa,
+I can hardly believe yet that my friends will be unkind to me, that
+they will believe evil of me because I am fettered by a mysterious vow.
+Let us make the trial. Let us give them the chance to trust me if they
+will. Do not let us go away just yet. Let us stay and be convinced.
+Perhaps the world is not so hard as you think. How could it be so
+unjust and cruel?”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney gazed sadly at his daughter. He saw that she could scarcely
+bring herself to believe that which he had told her.
+
+“I see how it is, Aline,” he said to her, gravely. “You are inclined
+to doubt my assertions. You do not altogether believe what I have told
+you.”
+
+She was shocked when he put the truth before her in so plain a fashion.
+She did not know herself how strong a vein of incredulity ran through
+her painful thoughts.
+
+“Oh, papa, forgive me,” she said, penitently. “I did not mean to doubt
+you. It was only my unfortunate manner of expressing myself. I was
+hoping against hope. Will you forgive me for my implied doubt? It is so
+hard to give up hope.”
+
+He only pressed her hand in silence, and she continued:
+
+“Even if they thought hardly of me, might they not in time relent?
+Might I not live down the scandal even if they were cruel enough to
+make a scandal out of nothing?”
+
+“You might in time,” he answered, “but it would be a long while first,
+so long that your youth and beauty would be faded, and they would
+forgive you because they could no longer envy you.”
+
+“So long as that?” she asked, with a heavy sigh.
+
+“Yes, dear, nothing but time will heal that wound,” he answered.
+
+She lay silently musing.
+
+She could not bear to give up the beautiful, bright world which she
+loved so well, and in which she had such unbounded faith and hope.
+
+It was a great temptation to her to accept the sacrifice her father
+proposed making. She had the innate selfishness of youth which thinks
+that the world was made for itself. She did not understand how great a
+sacrifice it was that her family would make. In her ignorance of the
+world, she could not know.
+
+But while she dallied with the temptation to accept it, she found
+herself restrained from leaving Chester by a vague, yet subtle,
+feeling she could not understand. It was stronger than her will, it
+was some influence outside of herself that she could not analyze, but
+it was most powerful. It drew her one way, while her reason and her
+will seemed both to point in a contrary direction. She yielded to it
+blindly, not knowing that it was fate, that “Divinity that shapes our
+ends, rough-hew them as we will.”
+
+She looked gravely at her father, who had been watching her face,
+anxiously noting the changing emotions of its expressive features.
+
+“Papa, my mind is made up,” she said, with almost womanly calmness. “I
+shall not go away. I will remain in Chester.”
+
+“Remain!” he echoed, surprised at her decision.
+
+“Yes, I will remain. I will not act a cowardly part, and run away from
+my trouble. I will stay here and live it down if my hair grows gray and
+my eyes dim in the effort.”
+
+“You will have to be very brave if you do so, Aline,” he answered, not
+without a certain admiration of her high spirit.
+
+“I intend to be,” she answered, with a sigh.
+
+He could not help feeling relieved at her decision. He was not a rich
+man. All his income was derived from his legal practice. To begin life
+anew in another place meant a hard struggle, although he would not have
+shirked it in the interest of the child he loved so fondly. But now
+that her own decision made it unnecessary, a burden was lifted from his
+mind.
+
+He bent down and pressed his lips to her fair, white brow.
+
+“God bless you, and help you, my daughter,” he said.
+
+Her lips quivered, the quick tears rushed into her eyes. She let the
+lids drop over them hastily, and the bright drops rolled like crushed
+pearls down her cheeks.
+
+“Aline, you are exhausted. I have been too thoughtless,” he said,
+remorsefully.
+
+“Yes, I am tired,” she answered, wearily. “I should like to go to
+sleep.”
+
+They kissed her, and went away softly, but Aline did not go to sleep.
+She lay, broad awake, in the chilly, rainy dawn of the new day, looking
+drearily into the future.
+
+“I have lost my life,” she said, mournfully, to herself. “For, if I
+live it down, I shall be old by then, and nothing but the grave will
+lie before me.”
+
+She recalled some verses she had read in a book at Delaney House.
+
+ “Rudderless, we drift athwart a tempest,
+ And when once the storm of youth is past,
+ Without lyre, without lute, or chorus,
+ Death, a silent pilot, comes at last.”
+
+Death! She gave a shudder in spite of herself. She had always had the
+keenest love of life, the greatest enjoyment of its pleasures. She was
+sanguine, ardent, impetuous. Even now, when she looked at Death across
+a bridge of sorrow, she felt a little afraid of it. She bewailed her
+blighted life, her irrevocable folly. She would have to pay the cost of
+her girlish willfulness by the sacrifice of all that was best in life.
+Bitterly she bewailed her fault and Oran Delaney’s hard heart, that had
+brought this doom upon her.
+
+“If I had known the cruel price I must pay for my silence, I would
+have died before I would have pledged myself to it. But Mr. Delaney
+must have known. He is older than I am--he knows the world. How cruel,
+how wicked he must be to doom me to such a fate!” she said to herself,
+indignantly.
+
+Moved by a sudden impulse, she slipped from the bed, threw a light
+shawl about her shoulders, and went over to the window. She peered down
+through a crevice in the curtain at the wonderful garden whose blooming
+beauties had lured her so innocently to her fate.
+
+Oh, how changed was the scene as she gazed upon it now!
+
+The roses all were dead, the leaves were blown from the trees, and
+lay in sodden drifts across the path. Some late autumn flowers,
+chrysanthemums, asters, and others of their kind, were breaking into
+lavish bloom in their neglected beds, but the rain and storm had beaten
+them prostrate to the ground, with broken stalks, and faces prostrate
+on the earth. All was dreariness and desolation, and the gray stone
+towers of grim Delaney House seemed to frown more darkly than ever
+now that she knew what influence potent for evil pervaded its gloomy
+interior.
+
+She gazed wistfully at it through the fine impalpable mist of rain that
+obscured all things. She saw a figure emerge from the gloomy portals
+into the deeper gloom of the rainy dawn. It was Mr. Delaney. He walked
+slowly with downcast head and his hands behind him, smoking a cigar as
+was his usual morning habit. Its fiery spark gleamed fitfully in the
+dull light, and the fine blue smoke curled upward and lost itself in
+the mist.
+
+Drawing the curtain closer Aline watched him, herself unseen. She found
+a singular fascination in doing so, and when she saw his glance turn
+musingly once or twice up to her window her heart beat strangely--with
+anger she thought.
+
+“He has spoiled all my life, but does he realize that he has done so?”
+she asked herself, musingly. “Could he be so deliberately cruel?”
+
+It almost seemed to her that he would not have done so could he have
+known.
+
+“Could any one be so hard, so cruel, as to willfully blight a young
+girl’s life?” she asked herself, with a sort of wonder, as her eyes
+followed Oran Delaney in his dreary saunter along the wet, graveled
+paths. “He saved my life once. Why should he make it valueless to me?”
+
+As she gazed at the dark, grave face under the brim of the wide slouch
+hat, it seemed to her that it was not hard nor cruel, only profoundly
+grave and sad. A longing came over her that he should know all that had
+transpired that night since she came home.
+
+“If he knew, he might perhaps relent and release me from my vow of
+silence,” she thought, eagerly.
+
+She remained at the window watching him thoughtfully until he
+disappeared from view in a turn of the path, then she turned aside
+to her writing-desk and drew out pens and ink and paper. She wrote
+hastily, and almost incoherently:
+
+ “MR. DELANEY,--They are all very angry and surprised because I would
+ not tell them where I have been. Papa says that people will think
+ strangely of me if I do not tell. He says they will think I am guilty
+ of something--I do not know what--and that they will not associate
+ with me, and that I shall never have any more peace or pleasure in
+ my life. You did not know these things when you bound me to silence
+ and secrecy. Did you, Mr. Delaney? I feel quite sure you did not. You
+ could not have been so heartless as to ruin all my life like that!
+ But now that I have told you, will you not have pity on me? Release
+ me from my promise and let me speak, I pray you.
+
+ “ALINE RODNEY.”
+
+She put the poor little appeal into an envelope, and when night came
+she tied a little weight to it and threw it far out into the garden,
+hoping that Mr. Delaney would find it there the next morning.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI.
+
+
+Aline’s return to her home created quite a little stir of pleasant
+excitement in the town of Chester.
+
+The friends of the Rodneys vied with one another in the speediness of
+their calls upon the young lady.
+
+They found her pale, calm, and more beautiful than ever, for she had
+gained a certain quietness and repose of manner that became her to a
+charm. There was a softer tone in her voice, a gentler light in her
+eyes. She seemed eager to please and divert all who came.
+
+The good townspeople came all agog with curiosity. They expected to
+hear all manner of romantic stories from the returned girl. They plied
+her with all sorts of curious, not to say impertinent, questions.
+
+They were astonished and indignant when they heard that they were not
+to learn anything. To each and all Aline returned the same reply:
+
+“I prefer not to discuss the subject with any one.”
+
+This refusal, spoken so gently yet firmly, and not without a certain
+wistfulness, silenced further curiosity with her. Indeed, it would have
+been the height of rudeness to have persisted.
+
+But, baffled with Aline, they turned to Aline’s family. Every one felt
+that her strange story belonged most naturally to the public. They were
+astounded when they found the Rodneys uncommunicative on the subject.
+No one could understand such strange reserve. Every question, every
+hint was met by a quiet evasion that effectually silenced curiosity.
+The social world of Chester woke up gradually to the fact that the
+Rodneys meant to keep the cause of Aline’s absence a dead secret.
+
+Popular indignation was roused to fury. Mr. Rodney’s prophecy did not
+prove itself a dead letter by any means, for the loud tongue of scandal
+was not lacking to add its quota to the tumult. The worst things
+possible were hinted and then spoken outright in the circles of Mme.
+Rumor.
+
+The whole family were socially ostracized in less than a month. Each
+member came in for a share of the obloquy that had fallen on Aline’s
+head. The silence each was compelled to maintain was held in the light
+of crime. From being prominent members of the most select circles in
+Chester they were coolly dropped by all. No one left cards, no one sent
+invitations.
+
+Every one turned the cold shoulder.
+
+There was only one friend who remained faithful to the Rodneys in their
+troublous time.
+
+This was Effie’s noble and handsome lover, Dr. Anthony.
+
+While the town gossiped and sneered, his neat buggy was seen before
+the Rodneys’ door more frequently than ever. Effie, Aline, or Mrs.
+Rodney were often seen driving with him through the wide, pretty
+streets, and people were fain to acknowledge that “that girl,” as they
+contemptuously called her, was prettier than ever in spite of the cloud
+of mysterious disgrace that clung about her. She and Dr. Anthony had
+become great friends. He could not help admiring his betrothed’s young
+sister even while he deprecated the silence she maintained at so bitter
+a cost to herself and her friends.
+
+And while the weary days waned and faded, Aline was waiting with a
+breaking heart for some sign or token from Oran Delaney.
+
+It was many days now since the little white-winged prayer for mercy had
+fluttered from her hands down into the garden of Delaney House.
+
+She had watched and waited, she had hoped and prayed, but no answer had
+come to her frantic appeal. Yet she knew that he had found it and read
+it.
+
+She had been watching through a tiny rent in her curtain which she had
+made expressly for that purpose. She saw him tear it open and read it,
+then slowly walk away without even glancing up at her window.
+
+Days went and came. There was no day in which Aline did not watch
+that tall form pacing up and down, though sensitively shrinking from
+observation herself. She spent many hours alone in her room, and it
+became insensibly a fascinating occupation to watch for his appearance
+as he came out for his daily walk, which he did whether it was gloomy
+or bright.
+
+There was one thing which inspired her with a feeling of pique. It was
+that he never turned his eyes up to her window, never by any chance
+gave a sign or token that he was conscious of the wistful blue eyes
+watching him behind the white lace-bordered curtain.
+
+Of what was he thinking? Why did he so persistently ignore her prayer?
+Had he really forgotten her? She asked herself these questions over and
+over, but no answer came from the silent lips of Oran Delaney as he
+walked up and down his lonely garden.
+
+Aline grew half frantic sometimes watching him thus. A bitter rebellion
+grew up within her heart. Why did he not speak--why did he treat her
+with such silent contempt, for she interpreted his silence to mean
+nothing less!
+
+One day her father came home to dinner with a rather excited look upon
+his face.
+
+He glanced across at the beloved daughter whose willfulness had brought
+such sorrow upon them all. She sat in her place as usual, but she
+scarcely tasted her food, only toyed with it while her thoughts seemed
+far away, and her long lashes drooped against her pale cheeks.
+
+“Aline!” he said, abruptly.
+
+She started like one in a dream, and dropped her fork. The blue eyes
+looked quickly at him with a startled expression.
+
+“Yes, papa,” she answered, in the low, sad voice that had grown
+habitual with her since her return.
+
+“Mr. Linton called upon me to-day,” he said.
+
+“Mr. Linton?” she repeated, blankly.
+
+Mr. Linton was a banker, and quite an important personage in the social
+element of Chester.
+
+“He brought me something for you,” continued Mr. Rodney, and he reached
+across the table and laid a small folded package by Aline’s plate.
+
+She looked at it in wonder, without touching it.
+
+“What is it, my dear?” inquired Mrs. Rodney, with womanly curiosity.
+
+“Open it, Aline!” said her father.
+
+“Is it a letter, papa?” she asked, and the note of keen eagerness in
+her voice did not escape his alert hearing.
+
+“Were you expecting a letter from any one, my dear?” he asked,
+pointedly.
+
+“Yes--no,” she answered, dejectedly, and a scarlet flame leaped up into
+her cheeks, then faded out into deathly white.
+
+“Why don’t you open your package, Aline?” said her sister.
+
+“Yes, why don’t you?” echoed Max, in a voice of lively curiosity.
+
+She did not touch it still--only looked at her father.
+
+“Do you say it is not a letter, papa?” she asked.
+
+“It is not a letter,” he replied.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII.
+
+
+Aline could not keep the expression of bitter disappointment out of her
+face. Her lips quivered sensitively, and a mist of tears dimmed her
+eyes.
+
+A wild hope had sprung into her mind that Mr. Delaney had sent her an
+answer at last, although she could not understand why he had done so
+through the medium of Mr. Linton.
+
+But her father’s negative reply at once dispelled the springing hope.
+She was bitterly disappointed, and she could not keep her emotion from
+showing in her face. Every one could see it plainly.
+
+“She did expect a letter, and she is disappointed at not receiving it,”
+said her keen-witted father to himself. “It is something better than a
+letter, Aline,” he said, aloud. “Shall I tell you what it is, since you
+show no disposition to look at it?”
+
+“If you please, sir,” she replied, indifferently.
+
+“It is a check-book and a certificate of deposit in the Chester Bank of
+the sum of ten thousand dollars,” he replied, with sparkling eyes, and
+watching her closely to see how she received the news.
+
+She showed nothing but a blank surprise.
+
+“Ten thousand dollars? But what has that to do with me, papa?”
+
+“Everything, Aline, for it is all yours,” he replied.
+
+“Mine!” she exclaimed.
+
+“Yes, yours!” he replied.
+
+“But, papa, I do not understand it at all,” she said, when some of the
+expressions of amazement had ceased around the table. “I have no money
+at all, you know, and I do not think you have ten thousand dollars of
+your own. So how can it be mine?”
+
+“It is yours by the free gift of some person unknown, Aline, who has
+placed it at your disposal in the bank.”
+
+“Oh, dear, who could it have been?” cried Mrs. Rodney, while Effie and
+Max looked the image of silent amazement.
+
+“I am sure I do not know,” Mr. Rodney replied. “Can you guess who it
+was, Aline?”
+
+“No, papa,” she replied.
+
+He was watching her closely, as he had fallen into a habit of doing
+since she had come home. There had been a look of wonder on her face at
+first, but she had scarcely spoken before it was replaced by a sudden
+look of comprehension. A deep, betraying blush overspread her face, and
+showed him that she _knew_.
+
+“Aline, are you quite, quite sure?” he asked.
+
+“Of what, papa?”
+
+“That you have no knowledge of the person who placed the money in bank
+to your account?” he replied.
+
+The hot blush burned deeper in her face. She put up her fair, cool
+hands to hide it. She was silent a moment, and then she lifted her
+dewy, violet eyes frankly to his grave face.
+
+“Papa, I will not speak falsely to you,” she said. “I think--I could
+guess who the person--might be?”
+
+“Well, dear?” he said, interrogatively.
+
+She understood the stifled pleading in his voice. The blue eyes fell
+sensitively.
+
+“You see, papa, I am only guessing--I am not sure,” she explained,
+tremulously.
+
+“Am I to have the benefit of your surmise, my child?” he asked.
+
+“Papa, forgive me,” she pleaded; “I cannot tell you.”
+
+“Tell me this,” he said: “Was it the person who bound you to silence?”
+
+“Perhaps so--I cannot tell,” she answered, reluctantly.
+
+She was very guarded. He saw that it was useless to press her.
+
+“Shall you accept this munificent gift, Aline?” he asked.
+
+A sudden flash of scorn and anger leaped into the blue eyes, her lip
+curled. She took up the unopened package, reached across the table, and
+laid it beside him.
+
+“I shall not accept it!” she replied, with bitter brevity.
+
+He was disappointed. Ten thousand dollars would have been so much to
+her and to them all. They might have taken it and gone away from this
+place, where the finger of scorn was pointed at them for her fault.
+They might have made themselves a new home far away from the tongues
+of scandal that were busily wagging against them here. But he did not
+press her.
+
+“You know best, my dear,” he said, simply.
+
+“Yes, I know best,” she answered, with a sort of passionate anger in
+her clear, young voice, “I know best, and I tell you I despise that
+money, so given! I despise the donor! I will never touch one cent of
+it! I trample upon it! Base money, were it piled as high as the stars,
+could never recompense me for my blighted life and lost hopes! Tell Mr.
+Linton he may tell his generous patron to take back his sordid wealth!
+Tell him that honor is dearer than gold!”
+
+Mr. Rodney replaced the package carefully in his breast-pocket.
+
+“Very well, dear, I will return these to Mr. Linton, if you are quite
+sure you are acting for the best?” he said.
+
+“You may be quite sure, papa, that your daughter could not act
+otherwise than I have done in this matter,” she replied, with decision.
+
+And she arose and left the room hurriedly, leaving her untasted dinner
+upon the plate. Then they discussed the affair in all its phases. They
+concluded that Aline was enveloped in a most baffling mystery.
+
+“Could Mr. Linton tell you nothing?” inquired Mrs. Rodney.
+
+“Nothing at all. He said the transaction was a _bona fide_ one. All
+legal matters were carefully observed. He received the money in genuine
+bank bills of a large denomination, but of the mysterious investor he
+could tell me nothing. He shrouded himself in a thick veil of mystery.
+Linton was himself most curious over the matter.”
+
+“It is very strange,” said Mrs. Rodney, and they all echoed her
+thought. It was very strange, all of it. This new development only
+added interest to Aline’s secret. An air of romance was thrown around
+it by the offer of that large sum of money. What terrible wrong had
+Aline sustained, and why was she offered this as a recompense?
+
+Of one thing the Rodneys had become convinced. Dr. Anthony’s story of
+the wounded girl in the blue room was not a fiction. Mrs. Rodney had
+furtively examined her daughter’s breast while she slept, and she had
+found the scar of a wound upon it. Her heart had swelled with bitter
+anger toward the merciless wretch who had hurt Aline. She longed for
+vengeance, but she was powerless to do anything in the face of this
+tormenting mystery.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVIII.
+
+
+Aline ran away to hide herself in her room in a flurry of mingled
+emotions.
+
+This was the way in which Oran Delaney had answered her pleading letter.
+
+Not a line, not a word, only a shower of gold flung at her feet, as
+if this could make up to her for all she had lost, for the pleasures
+that belonged to her youth, for the love that ought to bless her
+womanhood, for the worldly respect and applause that she had forfeited
+so innocently and rashly.
+
+She threw herself down into a chair and buried her face in her hands.
+Stifled sobs shook her frame, and bright crystal drops fell through her
+fingers.
+
+She felt as if she hated Oran Delaney. He was cruel and heartless, she
+said to herself, indignantly. What did she care for money? She had
+her youth and beauty, her tender heart, her desire for the pleasures
+of life. With all this heritage of youth she could have had happiness
+enough if only--if only she had not lost that fair fame, that open
+record of life without which all else availed her nothing.
+
+She wept bitterly for this terrible misfortune that had fallen upon
+her. She was young and beautiful and pure, but a great, horrible, inky
+blot had fallen on the whiteness of her life, and she could never wipe
+it out by the words of explanation that would have cleared away the
+hideous stain. People believed ill of her. Women, especially young and
+fair ones like herself, passed by her with sneers and averted faces.
+She was as innocent and as spotless as they were, but no one would
+believe it. Because she would not satisfy their curiosity they believed
+she was a sinner. There was one text that every one took and preached
+from. It was this: “Where there is secrecy there is guilt.”
+
+By this standard Aline was judged and condemned. The fierce rebellion
+of her heart against this unjust sentence availed her nothing. The
+world’s code was many hundreds of years older than she was. It said in
+so many words: “A woman’s life must be like an open book, that every
+eye may read. If there is even one leaf folded down, one page the world
+may not scan, then there is a shameful secret written on it.”
+
+There was one leaf folded down in the book of her life. It was as pure
+a record as any other; it only recorded the punishment that had come
+to her for her girlish willfulness and folly. But no one would believe
+it. She cried out against the hardness and wickedness of the world that
+could so misjudge her!
+
+“The world must be full of wickedness, or people would not be so ready
+to believe evil,” she said.
+
+The hardest part of her trouble was that her family were compelled to
+be sharers in her disgrace. Because they had taken her home again,
+because they would tell nothing of her absence, people were angry with
+them, too. They were all under ban alike.
+
+“My beautiful Effie, it is too bad that this shadow should rest upon
+her life--she who was always so much admired and beloved!” she sighed
+over and over. “Ah, me, if only I could speak!”
+
+But the iron fetters of her vow chafed and hurt her. There was no going
+back on that solemn pledge of silence. She might beat her wings as she
+would against the bars that held her, but there was no escape for her,
+no release from her sorrow. She could have exclaimed with the poet:
+
+ “Oh, Life, is all thy song
+ Endure and die?”
+
+It seemed to her little less than an insult to offer her money to
+console her for the cureless wound that had laid desolate her life. She
+said to herself that she would have to be reduced to beggary--ay, that
+she would starve on a crust in the street before she would touch a cent
+of Oran Delaney’s money. He had refused her even a word--he had thrown
+her his gold like a bone to a dog. Well, she would let him see that she
+would never touch it. She would die first, she said to herself, in her
+passionate pride and resentment.
+
+So the days passed by. It was little more than a week before the news
+of the money in the bank for Aline became disseminated far and wide,
+thanks to the gossiping tongue of the genial Banker Linton. The busy
+tongue of scandal wagged afresh over this delicious tid-bit.
+
+Opinions were divided over Aline’s course. There were some who said
+that she should have accepted the money, that was doubtless offered to
+her in reparation for wrong that had been done her. This class thought
+that she was very quixotic in refusing, and even very foolish. The
+money would have done her a vast deal of good. She might have gone away
+somewhere with it, and made herself a new home where the story of her
+mysterious absence was not known. Decidedly, she had acted foolishly in
+refusing, said these wiseacres.
+
+There was another class who found Aline’s action rather admirable. They
+argued that if the girl had suffered wrong at the hands of any one,
+mere money could not repair the injury done. They applauded her spirit
+in declining such atonement. This new element of romance added fresh
+fuel to the flame of scandal. It was considered that the case against
+Aline was quite proven now, for who would give her ten thousand dollars
+unless to condone an irreparable wrong?
+
+Aline was none the wiser for their praise or blame. Neither penetrated
+to her quiet cottage home. Day after day dragged itself wearily along,
+and a dreary, apathetic calm began to settle down on the girl. She had
+lost heart and hope and given herself up to despair.
+
+She rose from her sleepless bed one morning, and went to the window and
+drew back the curtain, and looked at the dreary morning sky stretching
+chill and cold over all the land. It was gray and sunless like her
+life, she thought, wearily, and dropped her eyes and sighed heavily.
+
+The down-dropped eyes suddenly fell on a bit of paper lying outside the
+window on the narrow sill and held down by a piece of gravel. It was
+addressed to herself in a strong masculine hand, and Aline’s heart beat
+quickly as she lifted the sash and drew it in.
+
+“At last,” she said, as she hurriedly tore it open and ran her eager
+eyes over the clear, bold chirography.
+
+Only a few lines, hurried and incoherent as her own had been, but
+strong and earnest like the writer:
+
+ “Aline, you refused the money because you guessed that I had sent
+ it,” ran the brief note. “Oh, for God’s sake, take it, child, and
+ believe that it is your own as the gift of a heart that bleeds
+ because it has wronged you, and because it can make no other
+ atonement than what lies in sordid gold. Let your father take the
+ money and make a new home for you all in some distant city where this
+ unmerited persecution may not follow you, and where you may have all
+ the social pleasures due to your youth and beauty and innocence. Take
+ the money and use it. It is only due, and I shall never forgive you
+ if you continue to willfully refuse it. D.”
+
+She ran her eyes slowly over the brief note twice. It only excited her
+anger and contempt. She said to herself that he was a coward, strong
+man as he was, to make a weak girl suffer for the sake of that hidden
+secret he guarded so jealously. Oh, that she had never taken that oath
+of silence upon her girlish lips!
+
+How grim and gray and frowning the towers of Delaney House appeared
+in the dull, cold light. All the years of her girlhood it had been a
+pleasure to her to watch the mysterious mansion, with the picturesque
+ivy creeping about and covering the grim, hard angles and small-paned
+windows with beauty. She had watched the sunset lighting its windows
+with splendor every evening; she had gazed upon the beautiful garden
+with rapturous delight; she had speculated often, with girlish
+curiosity, over the motives that made Oran Delaney an alien from his
+kind, shut up in that gloomy house, and but seldom seen in the streets
+of the town. It had not always been thus. Ten years ago, before Oran
+Delaney went abroad, and before the Rodneys came to live in Chester,
+he had been friendly, genial, social, mixing freely with the best
+society of the town on his annual visits from college, and was liked
+and admired by all. After his father’s death he had shut up the old
+family mansion and gone abroad. He had remained away several years, and
+returned to his home a strange and altered man. He no longer sought
+society, he did not visit nor receive visits, he gave no invitations,
+and accepted none. He seemed to have become an inveterate recluse,
+and remained isolated in the lonely mansion, haunted by the ghosts
+of his dead-and-gone ancestors, perhaps, for there were rumors of
+strange sounds and blood-curdling shrieks heard by day and by night by
+those who passed his home. Aline had heard all these tales from the
+townsfolk, and her girlish interest had been strongly roused. Yet how
+little she had dreamed of the subtle influence Delaney House and its
+strange master would exert upon her life!
+
+She held the note in her fingers, and gazed dreamily at Delaney House,
+thinking, with a shudder, of the strange, horrible, unearthly creature
+hidden within its walls, and of the long days of illness and sorrow she
+had suffered from the creature’s rude assault.
+
+“_He_ thinks that gold can pay me for all that I have suffered--for all
+I suffer now!” she breathed, with bitter sarcasm.
+
+As she stood there in her long white dressing-gown, with her loose dark
+hair falling heavily over her shoulders, Mr. Delaney came out with his
+cigar.
+
+It was the first time that Aline had been visible at the window since
+she had returned. Usually she sprung back from sight at the moment of
+his appearance.
+
+A new mood came to her now. She stood there calmly, holding the paper
+in her hand, and fixing her gaze steadily upon the darkly handsome,
+brooding face visible under the wide-brimmed hat. He did not see her at
+first, but at length the angry intensity of her gaze seemed to draw his
+eyes upward by some subtle fascination. In a moment he saw her standing
+there, pale, proud, angry, holding his letter in her clinched white
+hand.
+
+Even at the distance at which he stood, he could see the angry flash of
+the deep violet eyes as they steadily regarded him. Her gaze held his
+a moment as if trying to pour all the wrath that filled her being into
+his inner consciousness, then--
+
+Even while he still regarded her with his dark, soulful eyes in mute
+inquiry, she lifted her hands and tore the pleading letter into
+fragments, that fluttered swiftly from her hands and fell down into the
+garden among the winding paths. It was her only answer to his prayer.
+When the last white strip had fluttered from her disdainful fingers,
+she removed her magnetic gaze from his, stepped backward, without word
+or sign, and dropped the white curtain between them.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIX.
+
+
+Mr. Lane, the New York detective, who had so ignobly failed in the
+search for Aline Rodney, did not easily recover from that unprecedented
+defeat.
+
+He was acute, wary, and intelligent, with a boundless stock of patience
+and persistence, and these qualities had always insured him success in
+all his undertakings. Failure was a new experience with him. He chafed
+under it. He could not understand it.
+
+If pressing business matters had not recalled him to New York, he would
+have persevered indefatigably for months in the effort to find the
+missing girl. It was not in his nature to give up a quest easily. Only
+the stress of circumstances had induced him to give up this one. When
+he had thrown it over and returned to New York, it weighed on his mind.
+He hated to own himself conquered. Amid the stress of other pursuits,
+he often recalled the case in which he had been defeated. He would
+shut his eyes amid the din and noise of the city, and recall the quiet
+country town that had been the scene of such an unfathomable mystery.
+He did not like to think that he, who had worked up the most difficult
+cases in the great cities, had been completely baffled by a simple slip
+of a girl in a country town that, with all its pretentiousness and its
+exclusive society, was scarcely better than a village.
+
+Although he had ridiculed Dr. Anthony’s story of his beautiful,
+mysterious patient, it had made an impression on him that was not
+easily shaken off. He often asked himself in the easy, slangy language
+of the day, whether there could be anything in it.
+
+He thought sometimes that he had been too hasty and incredulous in
+condemning the story because all his efforts to find the mysterious,
+hidden maiden had failed. Dr. Anthony was certainly a man to be
+trusted, being frank, reliable, and most intelligent. And he had not
+taken umbrage at Mr. Lane’s credulity. He had been frankly amused at
+it. When Mr. Lane had quoted, for his benefit,
+
+ “Keep probability in view,
+ Lest folks believe your tale untrue.”
+
+He frankly admitted that his story had an air of romance.
+
+“Notwithstanding which,” he gravely added, “it’s an o’er true tale.”
+
+Spite of this little chaffing, the two men having been frequently
+thrown together grew to like each other. There were attractive
+qualities in each one that pleased the other. They became quite social
+and friendly. When the detective returned to his city home he found it
+a pleasure sometimes to pause in the whirl of this strange life and
+drop a few genial lines to the Maywood physician. Dr. Anthony, in his
+turn, found it pleasant to reply.
+
+So that even before the gossipy newspapers chronicled the fact of Aline
+Rodney’s return to her home, Mr. Lane was made cognizant of it through
+the medium of the young physician’s letters.
+
+He was amazed and rather indignant. It was bad enough that she had so
+cleverly covered up her traces and stayed away as long at it pleased
+her, but that she should come home and keep her secret still was far
+worse. He had no vulgar curiosity over the girl, but he had a strong
+professional interest. She had baffled him and damaged his reputation
+as an invariably successful man. He was distinctly conscious of an
+inward pique.
+
+“I should like to shake the naughty little runaway! What business has
+she to outwit me?” he said to himself.
+
+Sometimes he almost made up his mind to run down to Chester and have
+a look at this girl who could keep a secret so well. She would be
+well worth looking at, he fancied, from Dr. Anthony’s enthusiastic
+description of her beauty. Then, too, she must have brains and will
+besides her beauty, or she could not have kept her secret against the
+odds that had been brought to bear against her. Decidedly he meant to
+see her.
+
+But steady business kept him rather against his will in New York. He
+put off his trip from time to time waiting for a convenient season.
+So the autumn months waned and winter was upon him before he had
+given himself the promised visit. At Christmas he received one of Dr.
+Anthony’s pleasant, friendly letters. It contained among its closing
+messages an invitation to Mr. Lane to be present at his friend’s
+marriage on the 1st of January in the pretty little Gothic church the
+Rodneys attended in Chester.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXX.
+
+
+Marriages were not much in Mr. Lane’s line. He was forty and a
+confirmed old bachelor--at least that was what his friends said and
+what he said himself. He had never put his neck under the galling yoke
+of matrimony. He rather pitied Dr. Anthony’s weak-mindedness in that
+respect, but he considered that if there was any excuse for him it was
+Effie Rodney’s grace and beauty. These were certainly tempting enough
+to an ordinary, susceptible man.
+
+But Mr. Lane did not feel sufficient romantic interest in the union of
+the lovers to make a point of witnessing the marriage. He was about to
+decline, on the plea of urgent business, when a sudden thought arrested
+him with the ink yet wet on the pen. Why not make an opportunity for
+seeing Aline Rodney by accepting Dr. Anthony’s cordial invitation?
+
+He changed the contemplated No to Yes, adding a single proviso: he
+would come if Dr. Anthony would guarantee that Aline should not know
+that he was a detective, and that he had vainly tried to trace her in
+her mysterious absence. He fancied that the young lady might conceive
+an antipathy to him, and vaguely suspect ulterior designs from his
+presence at Chester.
+
+Dr. Anthony replied on the part of himself and the Rodneys, that Aline
+should be kept in entire ignorance of Mr. Lane’s profession, and look
+on him merely as the friend of the physician.
+
+Receiving this assurance, the detective decided to attend the nuptials
+of his friend, arriving in Chester on the day previous to the happy
+event.
+
+Dr. Anthony took him that evening to call on the Rodneys.
+
+“I have told Aline that I expect a friend from New York,” he said. “She
+is prepared to meet you and suspects nothing.”
+
+Mr. Lane thanked his friend for respecting his scruples.
+
+“I have a fancy to study the young lady, with the advantage on my side.
+Perhaps I may get at the bottom of the mystery yet. It has become
+more incomprehensible than ever since the story of the little fortune
+offered and refused.”
+
+“It is most romantic,” answered Dr. Anthony, “and the strangest part of
+it all is that I believe Aline would be glad to confess the whole truth
+were she not restrained by her vow of silence.”
+
+“How does she bear the suspicion and scorn of those who were once her
+friends?”
+
+“She is crushed by it. One can see that she is almost heart-broken.
+She is pale and sad. She shrinks sensitively from observation. She can
+scarcely be persuaded to go outside the door.”
+
+“Will she be present at the marriage ceremony in the church?”
+
+“Yes, by Effie’s earnest wish and prayer. My darling has very solemn
+ideas connected with marriage. She believes that the sacred rite should
+always be celebrated in church wherever possible. Aline, by Effie’s
+earnest wish, will accompany her to the altar.”
+
+“I am most curious to meet the young lady,” said the detective.
+
+“You will be quite sure to admire her,” said Aline’s prospective
+brother-in-law. “She is very beautiful.”
+
+Mr. Lane had heard this so often that he only smiled. It occurred to
+him, however, that if she were prettier than Effie she would have to be
+very pretty indeed.
+
+“I shall take you to call at the cottage this evening,” said Dr.
+Anthony. “You will then have an opportunity of meeting Aline. The rest
+of the family you have met already.”
+
+They went, and although Mr. Lane had expected to meet a very pretty
+girl indeed, he was surprised and amazed when he saw Aline Rodney.
+
+He saw a tall, graceful figure, exquisitely molded in the delicate,
+symmetrical curves of early womanhood. She wore a simple dark-blue
+cashmere dress, and the round, white throat rose from it with a
+certain stately grace and pride that was very excusable, seeing what a
+beautiful face shone above it like a peerless flower upon its stem. She
+was pale, but her skin was like the cream-white petals of a tea-rose.
+Her hair was darkest brown and loosely curling; her features were
+exquisite; her eyes were large and of the rare violet tinge so much
+admired, so seldom met; her brows were slender and black, and the long,
+fringed lashes were black, too, and made her eyes appear black in their
+shadow.
+
+Mr. Lane was as much struck by Aline’s bearing and manner as he was by
+her beauty. She had no ungraceful self-consciousness or awkwardness.
+Her bearing was easy, graceful, and even distinguished. It was
+natural, not acquired, for she had never mingled in society, and had
+had but few advantages of travel and culture. He wondered at that even
+more than at her beauty. It did not occur to him that the heavy cross
+that had fallen on her life had had the effect to intensify her natural
+grace into a grave, proud dignity, that in its silent way seemed like
+a mute protest against the wrongs she had sustained. The girl had
+budded into the woman, forced into untimely maturity and gravity by the
+refining power of sorrow.
+
+She was very quiet. She did not speak to Mr. Lane unless he pointedly
+addressed her. She rarely met any strangers, and when she did, she
+supposed that they knew her strange story, and despised her. She
+remembered always that
+
+ “One venomed word,
+ That struck its coward, poisoned blow,
+ In craven whispers, hushed and low--
+ And yet the wide world heard.”
+
+Mr. Lane could talk very well when he would. It pleased him to converse
+with Aline Rodney. He was very gracious and affable with her, giving
+her no smallest hint or sign that he knew her strange story. While
+Effie touched the piano-keys with soft, lingering chords of music, and
+her lover hung enraptured over her, the detective sat apart and bent
+himself to the task of amusing Aline.
+
+He did not find it very easy at first. She was shy and cold; she seemed
+to take no interest in his words. She kept thinking, morbidly, to
+herself:
+
+“He knows my story, and he accordingly despises me.”
+
+But, as he continued to talk to her pleasantly, unmindful of her quiet
+reserve, a new thought came to her.
+
+“This good-looking, agreeable friend of Dr. Anthony is from New York.
+It is not possible that the story of my trouble has reached the great
+city. Perhaps he does not _know_.”
+
+There was inexpressible comfort and relief in the thought.
+Unconsciously the tense bands about her heart began to loosen. It was
+pleasant to meet any one, even a stranger, who did not distrust and
+suspect her. She ventured to lift her frank, blue eyes to his face, and
+when she saw how kindly he was regarding her with his attentive gray
+eyes, she took heart of grace to talk to him, because she believed that
+he did not know. Some of her old impulsiveness returned to her. She
+began to take an interest in his conversation.
+
+He on his part began to see what a charming girl she might have been
+if this shadow of some unknown sin had not fallen on the whiteness of
+her life. Once or twice she even laughed aloud, and he said to himself,
+even though he was intensely practical and not in the least romantic,
+that her laughter was as sweet as a chime of music.
+
+He talked to her of the world, of the gay cities, of the people he
+had met, of the places he had visited, and she listened with delight.
+She had never met any one like Mr. Lane before--any one who had seen
+the world and knew it thoroughly in both its good and bad phases. She
+became so interested that she forgot momently the brooding shadow of
+trouble that hung always over her. Her old love of life and the world
+returned to her. A soft color glowed on her cheeks, her eyes beamed as
+she cried out, vivaciously:
+
+“Oh, how I envy you, Mr. Lane! You have traveled, you have seen the
+world, you have enjoyed life! There is nothing I should like better!”
+
+He looked at her with a smile. Her beautiful face was momently radiant.
+She was full of eager anticipation and desire.
+
+“You would like to travel?” he said.
+
+“Oh, so much!” she cried, clasping her shapely white hands together
+in the earnestness of her feelings, and carried out of herself by
+excitement.
+
+“Have you ever been in New York, Miss Rodney?” he inquired, with
+apparent carelessness.
+
+A little laugh that was half pity and half self-scorn rippled sweetly
+over her lips. She was evidently amused at his entire ignorance of her
+traveling record.
+
+“New York!” she exclaimed. “Why, Mr. Lane, would you believe that I
+have never been away from Chester in my life?”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXI.
+
+
+The sweet, high pitched voice reached every ear in the room distinctly.
+Every one was surprised at the assertion; but they saw that Aline had
+forgotten herself, and all were wise enough not to take any apparent
+notice of the admission. She continued, confidentially.
+
+“You see, Mr. Lane, we lived on a farm in the country, about two miles
+from Chester, while I was a child. Before I was grown up papa sold the
+farm, and came to live at the cottage here, and here we have been ever
+since, and I have never been five miles from Chester in my life.”
+
+She saw some sort of a wonder on his face, and added, gayly:
+
+“I see that you are wondering at me, Mr. Lane. Perhaps I should not
+have confessed to such lamentable ignorance of the world around me?”
+
+“On the contrary, I am charmed to have you confess it.
+
+ “‘Where ignorance is bliss,
+ ’Tis folly to be wise.’”
+
+She looked at him in some little wonder. The tone of his voice was
+peculiar; but when she looked at his face, it appeared perfectly calm
+and frank. After a moment’s silence, he continued:
+
+“To one versed in the lore of the world as I am, it is refreshing to
+meet with one so guileless and so innocent of the evil of the world.
+I am not so enviable as you think me, Miss Rodney. A knowledge of the
+world is not conducive to love of life.”
+
+She had been slowly gathering her thoughts together while he talked.
+Quite suddenly the memory of her own knowledge of the world rushed over
+her--the knowledge that had come too late to save her from the evil.
+
+Her face grew suddenly pale. She recalled the admission she had made
+just now, “I have never been away from Chester in my life.”
+
+She grew frightened at the thought that she had almost betrayed the
+secret she was sworn to keep. Fortunately, this man to whom she was
+talking knew nothing and could make nothing of what she had said. But
+Dr. Anthony and the others--had they heard?
+
+She glanced furtively around her. No one was observing her. Effie’s
+fingers were still straying over the piano, waking low, soft chords,
+and the doctor’s head was close to hers, as he whispered love’s
+delicious nothings in her willing ears. Mr. and Mrs. Rodney were
+looking over the pictures in the new magazine. Max had fallen asleep,
+as usual, on the convenient sofa. She thought, with a sigh of relief,
+that no one except Mr. Lane had been paying any attention to her.
+
+“But I must be more careful next time. I shall betray everything some
+time if I suffer myself to relapse into my old thoughtless self,” she
+thought, and she became so suddenly quiet and _distrait_ that Mr. Lane
+began to wonder in his mind if he had unwittingly offended her.
+
+She did not give him a chance to find out, for just as he was on the
+point of asking her whether he had been so unfortunate, she made some
+slight excuse for leaving the room and did not return that night.
+
+But Mr. Lane’s brief interview with her had given him material for
+grave reflection.
+
+He had quite decided in his own mind that she was pure, true, and
+innocent, as she was beautiful.
+
+He said to himself that her trouble, whatever it was, might have come
+to her through folly or waywardness, but never through deliberate sin.
+
+He was a close reader of human nature, as his profession necessitated
+he should be. He knew that he had made Aline temporarily forget her
+trouble, and he believed that every word that she had spoken to him
+had been the pure, unadulterated truth. Those frank blue eyes were
+the very well of truth and purity. They had looked at him frankly and
+guilelessly, and they had no falsehood in them.
+
+Her frank and thoughtless admission had let in such a flood of light
+upon his mind as would have frightened Aline indeed could she only have
+known it.
+
+“I have never been away from Chester in my life,” she had said, and the
+words rung in his hearing long after her fair, bewildering face had
+vanished from his sight.
+
+If this were true, and Mr. Lane did not in the least doubt the
+assertion, what became of Dr. Anthony’s romantic story?
+
+The place where Dr. Anthony had been called to attend the mysteriously
+wounded girl must have been about five miles from Maywood, declared the
+physician.
+
+“Chester is five miles distant from Maywood.”
+
+Mr. Lane repeated these words to himself, and his face began to burn
+and his heart to thump against his vest pocket.
+
+He seized his hat and went out into the night air to cool his glowing
+face. Out under the cold, wintery sky, with its host of gleaming stars,
+he mentally shook himself.
+
+“I have been a stupid dolt, a stark, staring idiot,” he cried,
+vehemently. “I shall never pride myself on my skill and acumen again.
+Only to think that I never reflected on that plain fact that Chester
+is five miles from Maywood. The girl has never been out of Chester, and
+oh, what a consummate stupid I have been.”
+
+He was angry with himself, indeed. He accused himself of the most
+inexcusable stupidity. Only to think how he had scoured the country
+for miles around Maywood and never thought of Chester. It was the most
+natural mistake in the world, but he was bitterly angry with himself
+for having made it.
+
+He walked along the pavement in front of the cottage, so absorbed in
+thought that he scarcely heeded the cold winter wind that sighed among
+the leafless trees and around the gables of the cottage. With the sight
+of Aline’s beautiful, innocent face had come an even deeper desire to
+fathom the secret of that strange absence.
+
+“I will find it out this time; but will she thank me for it? Will any
+one thank me?” he asked himself, soberly, and he decided that it could
+not hurt Aline Rodney to have the truth revealed. He did not believe
+that any willful guilt could hide behind that smooth, white brow and
+those clear, true eyes.
+
+“She would undoubtedly reveal it herself but for the vow of silence
+that binds her,” he said to himself. “I may even be doing her a favor
+by tracing out the secret and revealing it to her parents. Anyhow, I
+shall make it convenient to remain down here a week or two, and ‘we
+shall see what we shall see.’”
+
+Absorbed in his thoughts he walked on past the strip of fence in
+front of the cottage a few paces down the street, without observing
+that he was directly before the tall, imposing gray stone mansion
+known as Delaney House. It stood well back among its leafless trees
+and ghost-like evergreen shrubberies and cedars that showed like
+sober-suited sentinels in the cold, white light of the moon. The house
+looked gloomy enough with its closed doors and heavily shuttered
+windows from whence no friendly light streamed forth to cheer the weary
+passer-by, but Mr. Lane did not notice it as he walked slowly past
+absorbed in his own vexing thoughts.
+
+Absorbing as they were they were doomed to have a sudden and startling
+interruption.
+
+The night had been intensely still save for the low whisperings of the
+winter wind as it swept past in restless sighs, but suddenly its calm
+was broken by a long, low wail that broke shudderingly upon the silence
+and repose of the hour, and swelled high and still higher until it
+became a fearful shriek of mad rage and impotent anger most terrible to
+hear:
+
+“Ah--h--h! Ah--h--h!”
+
+That loud, terrible, prolonged shriek fell suddenly and startlingly
+upon the ears of the detective. He sprung backward with a smothered cry
+and stared upward to where the sound seemed to issue forth.
+
+His eyes fell upon the dark, silent façade of Delaney House.
+
+“Ah!” he breathed, and like a horrible echo came that fearful shriek
+again.
+
+“Ah--h--h! Ah--h--h! Ah--h--h!”
+
+It seemed to float over his head and die away in the wandering breeze.
+Again he glanced up at the dark lowering front of Delaney House.
+This time its darkness was illumined by a line of light that glanced
+momentarily through the shutters, then abruptly disappeared.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXII.
+
+
+He stood silently gazing at the windows where the light had so
+strangely flickered and disappeared with almost the swiftness of a
+flash of lightning. He was full of wonder over what he had heard and
+seen.
+
+“What a horrible voice!” he said to himself. “It was neither that of a
+man nor woman, and yet it sounded distinctly human. What was it? I have
+heard such shrieks within the walls of madhouses, nowhere else. Can it
+be that some unfortunate lunatic is confined in Delaney House?”
+
+He stood still, listening and watching some time, but he neither saw
+nor heard anything more. The mansion had returned to its usual gloom
+and silence. It almost seemed to him as if those fearful shrieks and
+that swift flash of light had been the figment of his own disordered
+imagination.
+
+He went up to the front gate, which, like the fence, was of tall ornate
+ironwork, surmounted by bristling spear-heads, and softly tried the
+latch. It was unlocked and yielded readily to his touch. He entered the
+lovely neglected grounds and strolled through the quiet paths, careful
+to keep in the shadow and well out of the patches of wintery moonlight
+that gleamed on some of the white, graveled walks. He did not himself
+understand the strange caprice that had driven him to enter the private
+grounds of one who was wholly a stranger to him, but it led him blindly
+on.
+
+“If the owner should catch me trespassing on his grounds I might find
+myself rather _de trop_,” he thought, grimly, but he did not turn back.
+He did not think it likely that the master of Delaney House would
+wander in that dreary, deserted garden on such a night.
+
+Leaving the vicinity of the house, he strolled slowly on and came out
+at that end of the garden which was simply walled by the gable end of
+Mr. Rodney’s cottage. Still in the shadow himself he saw a sudden light
+thrown on the ground by the reflection of the light from a window. He
+glanced up quickly and saw that it shone from the casement of Aline
+Rodney’s room.
+
+He drew back further into the convenient shadow cast by a tall, dark
+evergreen-tree, and looked up. He saw that the curtain at the window
+had been drawn aside by a small white hand. The next moment he saw a
+fair young face gazing out wistfully through the pane into the moonlit
+night whose mystic shadows lay long and dark around Delaney House.
+
+It was Aline Rodney’s face. He gazed upon it, eagerly, as it stared out
+with parted lips and wide, despairing eyes at the dark, gloomy house.
+
+“What is she doing there? What interest can she have in Delaney House?”
+Mr. Lane asked himself, soberly.
+
+The beautiful grave young face gave no answer to his question. There
+was upon it an expression of wistful sadness and pathetic sorrow that
+went to his heart, strong man though he was. She remained for some time
+gazing sadly out into the wintery darkness, then slowly retired and
+dropped the heavy curtain between herself and the dreary scene.
+
+Mr. Lane retraced his steps back through the shrubbery toward the house
+again. He went around to the front entrance and looked curiously at the
+great carved oaken door.
+
+He was struck by a coincidence with Dr. Anthony’s story.
+
+The front door was reached by a flight of wide, marble steps.
+
+“Strange!” he muttered to himself. “What if this should prove to be the
+house!”
+
+He gazed longingly at the dark stone walls. He would have given
+anything could his gaze have pierced through them in quest of the
+hidden blue room of Dr. Anthony’s story. A dozen vague suspicions were
+floating formlessly through his mind, but each thought hovered like a
+dark-winged bird of omen around Delaney House.
+
+“Can it be that the secret is hidden here?” he asked himself. “Have we
+all been searching far and wide for Aline Rodney while she lay wounded
+and hidden at her father’s very door?”
+
+The suspicion took hold upon his mind with startling pertinacity. It
+grew into a settled belief even while he stood there gazing fixedly at
+the close shut, forbidding looking door.
+
+“Well, if it be so or not, I shall find it out before I leave Chester
+again,” he said to himself, with a certain resolution in his tone, as
+he let himself out of the gate into the street again.
+
+He went back to the cottage and met Dr. Anthony coming out to look for
+him.
+
+“I thought you had run away, Lane. Where have you been?” asked the
+doctor.
+
+“I came out to smoke a cigar. You know my old bachelor habits,” Mr.
+Lane answered indifferently.
+
+“You must be half frozen. It is a very cold night. Come in and warm
+your fingers before we go,” said his friend.
+
+They went in, and though they rallied Mr. Lane on his long absence in
+the cold night air, he did not say one word on what he had seen and
+heard. The time had not come yet.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIII.
+
+
+The next night was the wedding-night. It was the first day of January.
+Dr. Anthony and Effie had chosen to begin their new life with the new
+year.
+
+No invitations had been issued for the marriage, but the church doors
+had been thrown open for the accommodation of those who cared to
+attend. When the bridal party entered the church, they were surprised
+to find that it was closely packed by the population of Chester.
+Curiosity had drawn thither all those among whom Effie had formerly
+moved, and who had scornfully dropped her because of the mysterious
+secret that had darkened her sister’s life.
+
+Effie had always been considered very beautiful and graceful. She had
+never looked more so than when she glided up the aisle on the arm
+of her handsome, noble-looking lover. She was so proud to have been
+chosen by him that she carried her fair head undauntedly, in quiet
+indifference to the whispers and glances on every side.
+
+They could not withhold the meed of praise that her beauty claimed.
+After all, she had done nothing herself to merit blame. It was only
+the shadow of Aline’s dishonor that was reflected upon her. Every one
+knew how wild and willful Aline had always been, and how her mother and
+sister had tried to curb her in her mischievous pranks and thoughtless
+way. Seeing the constancy and devotion of the handsome young physician,
+some were moved to repentance for the slights they had put upon the
+beautiful bride who looked queenly in her simply made robe of white
+satin and the long flowing veil fastened to her dark-brown hair with
+snowy orange blossoms. The bridegroom’s gift, a lovely pearl locket
+containing the fac-simile of his own handsome face, rested against
+her heart, suspended by a slender golden chain. It was an amulet of
+happiness to Effie. In spite of the world’s scorn, an ineffable joy had
+come to her through her sister’s adventure, since but for it she might
+never have become acquainted with the doctor.
+
+But curiously as the crowd gazed upon Effie, they regarded Aline with
+even more interest.
+
+She entered the church in advance of the bride, and leaning lightly on
+the arm of Mr. Lane, having been preceded by her parents, who entered
+first of all.
+
+Every eye turned on the tall, slight young figure in its graceful
+drapery of white silk and cashmere. The long, childish curls had been
+put up in womanly fashion on the small head in loose waves and puffs,
+and as if in mute protest or defiance of their censure, Aline had
+fastened a pure white lily in their silken darkness. She carried her
+head high as if in conscious rectitude, and her air was that of one
+whose thoughts were turned wholly inward upon herself with no jarring
+consciousness of the hostile eyes that followed her with scorn and
+suspicion in their cold and curious gaze.
+
+Pausing before the chancel rail, Aline and her companion silently
+separated and permitted the bridal pair to pass between them to where
+the white-robed rector waited, book in hand, to pronounce the solemn
+words of an irrevocable union.
+
+The loud triumphant peal of the wedding-march died away into silent
+echoes. The rustle and murmur of the perfumed throng grew still.
+All waited in thrilling silence while the beautiful words of the
+marriage-service fell slowly on the air.
+
+Aline had never been present at a marriage before. She was deeply
+impressed by the solemn, beautiful service. She listened with
+down-dropped eyes and a grave, sweet look on her fair face.
+
+“What solemn words, and yet how sweet!” she said to herself. “Doctor
+Anthony and my sister will have to love each other very dearly to live
+up to those heavenly words!”
+
+She had never given one serious thought to the subject of marriage
+before; but now, as she gazed at the happy faces of the two, and
+listened to the beautiful, thrilling vows that bound them, some idea of
+the bliss of a true marriage came into her mind.
+
+“It must be like a heaven upon earth,” she said to herself, and then
+quite suddenly she recalled some words her mother had said to her one
+day:
+
+“No one will ever wish to marry you, my poor Aline. No man would take
+you with such a stain upon your life as that hideous mystery you guard
+so jealously.”
+
+Was it true? Would no one ever love her as Dr. Anthony loved her sister
+Effie? Would nothing so beautiful as love ever come into her life? She
+sighed unconsciously, and with the sigh she lifted her eyes--she never
+could have told you why--lifted them, and at a little distance met a
+pair of eyes gazing straight into her own with a strange, magnetic
+fire--Oran Delaney’s!
+
+She did not know what had caused her to look up at that moment, and she
+knew just as little why she blushed when she met that intent gaze--a
+blush that burned her pure face like fire.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIV.
+
+
+Mr. Lane felt rather proud than otherwise as he walked up the aisle of
+the church with Aline Rodney by his side. Her exquisite beauty filled
+him with admiration, and he had already decided in his mind that she
+was as pure and innocent as she was fair.
+
+He did not care in the least for the opinion of censorious Chester.
+If Aline had been a princess, he could not have shown her more
+deferential respect than that which he now accorded her. He had the
+greatest admiration for her, mingled with pity and sympathy. He said
+to himself that he would help her out of her trouble if he could, and
+he honestly believed, that the surest way to do that would be to find
+out the secret she held and make it public. He had been vexed with her
+before he saw her--vexed because she had so baffled investigation and
+curiosity. He had determined then, out of pure vexation, to track her
+down. Since they had met, his feeling had changed. He was none the less
+determined to ferret out her secret, but now he was actuated by pity
+and sympathy combined with a belief in her innocence. He decided that
+he would say nothing to Dr. Anthony or the Rodneys. He would pursue his
+investigations alone. They should hear and know nothing until success
+had crowned his efforts.
+
+He studied the fair face keenly whenever he had an opportunity of doing
+so. Its varying expression, the lights and shadows that shone in the
+dark-blue eyes, had an actual fascination for him. He watched her as
+closely as if he expected to find on her lovely, mobile face the key to
+the mystery that shadowed her life.
+
+Standing a little apart from her while the marriage ceremony progressed
+between her sister and Dr. Anthony, he kept his eyes fixed on her face
+and saw the new softness that came upon it as she listened to the
+beautiful words of the service. He saw the dark, curling lashes flutter
+upward a moment and remain fixed, he saw the blush stealing over her
+face, dyeing even the whiteness of her low brow in its radiant glow. He
+followed the direction of her eyes, and saw the apparent cause.
+
+At a little distance from the bridal party stood a tall distinguished
+looking man leaning lightly against the chancel rail. He was a man to
+be looked at twice, for his dress and hearing betokened both wealth and
+refinement. It was a handsome face, too, dark and proud and reserved,
+with a latent fire in the eyes that had a dark, southern splendor, all
+their own.
+
+It was this man at whom Aline Rodney was looking with startled pathetic
+blue eyes while the beautiful color rose in burning waves over her fair
+young face. Mr. Lane saw the dark eyes and the blue ones hold each
+other one moment with a glance he could in nowise fathom, and then,
+without a sign of recognition, the gentleman turned his head away.
+Aline’s dark lashes fell and the color slowly faded from her face.
+
+Mr. Lane was puzzled.
+
+“Does she know the man? It is not likely that she would blush so at the
+glance of a stranger. And yet they gave no sign of recognition,” he
+said to himself.
+
+He watched Aline more closely than ever, but he made no discovery. She
+did not look at the handsome stranger again; neither did he look at
+her; and when the brief service was over he hurriedly left the church
+and disappeared in the moving throng.
+
+The Rodneys with Mr. Lane and the newly married pair went back to the
+cottage. They were to have tea together, simply and sociably, and then
+the doctor and his bride were going off on a little tour before they
+settled down to housekeeping in the pretty little village of Maywood.
+
+Aline was very silent and _distraite_. She was overwhelmed by the
+parting from her sister. Heavy tears hung on her thick, dark lashes
+as she looked at Effie and realized that their pleasant and loving
+home-life together was forever ended. Henceforth another home would
+claim her sweet sister as its priestess, and she would be the central
+sun around which the lesser planets of another household revolved.
+
+ “Sitting by the fireside of the hearth,
+ Feeding its flame.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXV.
+
+
+Mr. Lane was anxious to find out if Aline was acquainted with the
+stranger who had made her blush in the church. He watched his chance,
+and when the family were discussing the crowd that had filled the
+church, he said, carelessly:
+
+“I saw one person who was so handsome and distinguished looking that my
+curiosity was awakened. One but seldom sees such a fine-looking man.
+He stood on the left of the chancel rail. Perhaps you noticed him, Mr.
+Rodney?”
+
+“Yes, I did; and the more particularly because I was surprised to see
+him there,” Mr. Rodney answered. “It was our unsocial neighbor, Mr.
+Delaney.”
+
+“Mr. Delaney!” The detective started and glanced furtively at Aline.
+He saw that she had turned her head away abruptly, but the side of her
+cheek that was visible was crimson, like a rose. She was holding her
+satin fan against her breast, and its plumed edge fluttered with the
+quick beat of her heart.
+
+“I have not seen Mr. Delaney at any public gathering or church for
+several years before,” continued Mr. Rodney. “He is one of the most
+inveterate recluses I ever heard of. His presence in the church must
+have been intended as a special mark of respect and compliment to
+Effie.”
+
+“But, papa, we have none of us the least acquaintance with him,” said
+the bride.
+
+“No matter. He is our next door neighbor. I have no doubt but he
+attended the wedding out of respect to us,” insisted Mr. Rodney.
+
+“For my part, I cannot imagine how he ever found out about the
+marriage,” said Mrs. Rodney. “He never goes out, and no one is ever
+seen going in. It is quite too bad that Mr. Delaney does not marry,
+and give his grand old house a mistress. She would lead society in
+Chester--that is, if she would condescend so far, which is not likely,
+the Delaneys being proverbially proud.”
+
+Mr. Lane having adroitly turned the conversation into the channel he
+wished, listened eagerly, just throwing in a word here and there until
+he had elicited all that there was to tell, or, at least, all that
+was known of the taciturn master of Delaney House. To that part which
+related to the alleged ghosts that haunted Delaney House, he listened
+with a great deal of interest.
+
+“Since you have named it, I will relate my own experience,” he said.
+“Last night I supposed you would laugh at it. Now I see that you will
+not even be surprised.”
+
+“What is it?” they asked him in surprise.
+
+“It is only that I heard the ghost of Delaney House last night,” he
+replied.
+
+“You heard it!” they echoed, and Dr. Anthony asked, gravely:
+
+“When?”
+
+“It was last night when I went out on the pavement to smoke my cigar.
+I strolled down the street a little way, and was suddenly brought to
+a dead stop by the sound of a loud ringing shriek fearful enough to
+have proceeded from one of the denizens of Hades. I paused and looked
+up, for the sound had seemed to float in the air above me, and I found
+myself in front of Delaney House.”
+
+Every one was deeply interested--every one uttered some exclamation or
+another except Aline. She alone took no part in the conversation. She
+had not even looked around. She sat by the reading-lamp and was looking
+into a book, but Mr. Lane saw that she was turning its leaves quite at
+random and with strangely nervous hands.
+
+“Is her indifference real or feigned?” he asked himself. “The most of
+people would be interested in my story--why not Miss Rodney? Her sex
+are not usually deficient in curiosity.”
+
+“And you really heard the ghost, Mr. Lane?” cried Effie, with awe
+struck eyes. “Well, you have been more highly favored than we have! In
+all the years since we came to Chester we have never heard the reputed
+ghost.”
+
+“That is because you are so widely separated from the house by the
+beautiful grounds,” said Mr. Lane. “Now, I heard it twice, for when I
+looked up at the first sound it was repeated in a louder and even more
+blood-curdling voice than before, and a flash of light gleamed through
+the shutters for an instant, then faded into Cimmerian darkness and
+gloom again.”
+
+“Do you hear that, Aline?” cried little Max. “Oh, don’t you wish that
+you had heard it? Do you remember how we used to talk about the Delaney
+ghost before you went away?”
+
+“Yes, dear,” she answered in a constrained voice, without turning
+toward the little social group gathered around the fire.
+
+“I was puzzled and alarmed when I heard that sound last night. I
+thought perhaps Delaney had a crazy wife or sister. I had not heard
+about the ghost then,” said Mr. Lane.
+
+“Mr. Delaney is not married,” said Mrs. Rodney.
+
+“No? And are there no females resident in his house?” inquired the
+detective.
+
+“I have heard that there is a solitary housekeeper, but I have never
+seen her,” she replied.
+
+“It was, then, really a ghost that I heard,” said Mr. Lane. “I am
+surprised. I did not really believe in the existence of spirits in this
+practical nineteenth century.”
+
+No one made him any direct answer. It is true that a vein of
+superstition runs through most people even in this enlightened age.
+The Rodneys had heard so much about the Delaney ghost that they hardly
+questioned the veracity of the story. And yet they did not care about
+confessing it to Mr. Lane. It was just possible that he might turn the
+story into ridicule. He appeared to be very hard and practical, without
+any romantic weaknesses.
+
+So the conversation drifted into other channels, and Mr. Lane made no
+effort to prevent it, having learned all that there was to be told on
+the subject. He quietly stored away all that he had heard in his mind,
+and no one had any idea that he was specially interested in Delaney
+House and its strange master.
+
+In a little while the time for the parting came. Dr. Anthony and his
+bride were to have a little bridal tour South. They went away, followed
+by tears and regrets and a score of good wishes, symbolized by lavish
+shower of old slippers that Max threw after the departing bride.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVI.
+
+
+“Aline, will you come down to the river and skate this morning? The ice
+is ten inches thick, and as smooth as glass,” said Max Rodney to his
+sister the morning after Effie’s marriage.
+
+She shook her head with a slight, wintery smile.
+
+“Do not tempt me, Max,” she said, “you have got me into too many
+scrapes in the past, and now I have promised mamma that I will never do
+so any more.”
+
+The handsome, rosy-cheeked boy, with the skates slung carelessly over
+his shoulder, regarded her with palpable disappointment.
+
+“Oh, Allie, do come,” he said. “Do you remember last winter what
+glorious fun we had on the river? And now it is smoother and better
+than it was then. I know you would like it, and I’m sure mamma would
+not care.”
+
+“I cannot go, Max,” Aline answered, sadly. “Please do not tease me,
+there’s a good boy.”
+
+The light-hearted boy went up to her and pulled away the white hands
+that half shielded the pale, pretty face. He was too young and
+thoughtless to know much of the sorrow that had come to Aline.
+
+“Aline, what has come over you?” he said. “It used to be that I would
+rather you came out with me for a lark than any fellow I know. But ever
+since you were lost and came back, you have been changed. Why is it?”
+
+“It is nothing, Max, only that mamma thinks I am getting too old to be
+your childish playmate any longer,” Aline answered with a forced smile.
+
+“Bosh! Is that all? Why, there’s lots and lots of grown people on the
+river this morning. You need not be a childish playmate this time.
+There are lots of older people to keep you company. Say, will you come?”
+
+“I cannot. I would not go among those people for anything,” she
+answered.
+
+“I don’t see why. You can skate better than any of them--you are just
+like a bird,” he said. “I say, sister, I shall ask mamma. Will you go
+if she says yes?”
+
+“Not even then!” she answered, half hesitatingly, for the proposal was
+not without its charms.
+
+Her old passion for out-of-door sports returned to her. She longed
+to be skimming the glittering ice with her light swift feet, and
+feeling the rush of the cold sweet breeze against the cheeks that had
+grown pale and thin in the months while she had been hiding herself
+sensitively within doors from the sneers and frowns of those who had
+traduced her so bitterly.
+
+“You will come if mamma will come too, won’t you?” persisted Max,
+unwilling to yield the point.
+
+“Mamma will not go,” replied Aline.
+
+The door opened, and Mrs. Rodney came suddenly into the room. She had
+a lugubrious look on her face and her eyelids were pink from weeping.
+She had been having a private crying spell over the loss of her elder
+daughter.
+
+She had caught Aline’s words, and now looked inquiringly into her pale
+face. But eager Max forestalled the question that trembled on her lips.
+
+“Mamma, I want you and Aline to come down to the river with me for the
+skating. Will you come?”
+
+Mrs. Rodney looked at Aline’s pale cheeks and heavy eyes, and her first
+resolve to negative the proposal died on her lips. She saw the girl was
+fading and drooping in her enforced seclusion.
+
+“Should you like to go, my dear?” she asked.
+
+“With you, mamma,” Aline answered, wistfully.
+
+“Very well. We will go for a little while. Wrap yourself up warmly,
+dear, and Max shall get your skates ready.”
+
+Aline ran up to her room, full of pleasurable anticipation, for she
+was an expert skater, and always enjoyed being on the ice. A girlish
+impulse prompted her to make herself as pretty as possible. She let
+down her dark, curling hair loosely over her shoulders, and donned a
+dark-red cashmere trimmed with silvery fur, a warm, wadded jacket of
+red, and a jaunty fur cap having a little bird perched on one side.
+Then she sallied forth with Max and Mrs. Rodney, who was so warmly
+wrapped up in cloth and fur and thick veils that barely the tip of her
+aristocratic-looking nose was visible to the beholder.
+
+They had a bracing walk of half a mile in the cool, fresh air of the
+clear, wintery morning, and then the river burst upon their view like
+a sheet of silver, dotted about with merry youths and maidens who were
+sliding merrily about over the crystal expanse, without a thought of
+danger.
+
+Many of them were Aline’s old friends and companions with whom she had
+been a prime favorite until that mysterious trouble fell upon her. Her
+heart warmed to them as she saw the smiling, familiar faces and heard
+their merry voices. A longing came over her to be friends with them
+again, to touch their hands, to hear their voices talking to her in
+the old friendly, familiar way. Everything was so gay, so merry, so
+unceremonious, she half hoped they would relent and welcome her to her
+old place among them.
+
+Poor Aline! The light came into her violet eyes, the rich color flushed
+her cheeks at the thought. She looked wistfully at the groups that
+dotted the shore and the river as she came up. Her heart beat with
+anxiety and expectation. Would any one speak to her? Would any one of
+all these, her old friends, give her one friendly clasp of the hand?
+
+Vain thought, vain hope! As they saw her coming among them with her
+eager, expectant face and her winning beauty, every one turned aside
+with cold, averted looks, and scarcely restrained sneers. In a moment
+she stood solitary, with her mother and Max, in a spot where only a
+moment ago more than a score of people had been. They had tacitly
+deserted and ignored her. That strange sense of loneliness in crowds
+so often felt by the sensitive heart came over her now. Something
+like a strangling gasp came from her lips, and then she shut them
+tightly together, and held her small head high, with a proud, stag-like
+movement that was almost defiance. In her heart she was saying,
+bitterly: “They may scorn me as they will, but they shall not crush
+me! I have done no wrong, and in time I shall live down their cruel
+slanders!”
+
+“Do not mind them, Aline,” her mother whispered tenderly; but Aline
+heard the quiver in her mother’s voice, and it sent a fresh pang to her
+own heart.
+
+“Never mind, Max,” she said to the boy, who was kneeling down to fasten
+her skates. “Do not put them on, please. I shall not skate. I had
+rather go home.”
+
+“Oh, no, not yet--” he began; but just at that moment a shabbily
+dressed old woman pushed him aside and came up in front of Aline.
+She had a basket of cheap laces on her arm, which she paraded
+ostentatiously.
+
+“Will the leddies buy some of my pretty things--collerettes, _jabots_,
+cuffs, scarfs--de finest things in lace,” whimpered she.
+
+Mrs. Rodney shook her head with a smile.
+
+“We want nothing at all, my good woman,” said she.
+
+“Let me tell the young lady’s fortune, then. I am a fortune-teller, and
+I tell de truest fortunes you ever heard. I have told a many for the
+young gents and leddies this morning. They say every word is true. This
+is the sweetest face I have seen yet. Let me tell her what is past and
+what will be,” cried the old crone, loquaciously.
+
+“No, no, go away! We do not wish to hear anything!” said Mrs. Rodney,
+impatiently.
+
+But Aline turned her blue eyes wistfully upon her mother’s face.
+
+“Oh, mamma, I should like it so much,” she said, pleadingly.
+
+“Like _what_, my dear?” inquired Mrs. Rodney, uncomprehendingly.
+
+“To have this good woman read my past and future,” Aline answered, with
+a blush.
+
+“But, my dear, she cannot possibly know anything of the kind.
+Fortune-tellers are all frauds. They only guess at things,” said Mrs.
+Rodney.
+
+“I should like to hear what she has to say,” insisted Aline, willfully.
+
+“Oh, very well, my dear, just as you please, but you will only hear
+a pack of stories,” Mrs. Rodney replied; but she crossed the old
+fortune-teller’s coarse palm with the traditional silver piece, and
+Aline drew the warm glove from her delicate hand expectantly.
+
+The old lace-vender set her basket down on the ground and took the
+little hand into her own large and brown one.
+
+“What is this I see?” she said, squinting her gray eyes at the rosy
+palm. “The line of life is crossed with sorrows. You have had a great
+trouble in your life. You are very unhappy, and you are doomed to be
+even more unhappy--”
+
+“Do not tell her such jargon,” broke in Mrs. Rodney, impatiently.
+
+“I but read what I see, madam,” said the seer. “And I see nothing but
+blight and sorrow. I cannot understand it, for I see no love in her
+past--none of that love that makes or mars a woman’s life. The shadows
+come from other things, from other influences. And yet--” she paused
+and looked searchingly into Aline’s marble-white face.
+
+“And yet--” repeated the girl in a tone of eager inquiry.
+
+The fortune-teller went on without removing her keen gaze from Aline’s
+wistful face:
+
+“And yet, although you have never loved, there is a man mixed up in
+your past and future strangely. He is dark and grand and handsome,
+but he has cast a shadow on your life, a thick, dark shadow so dense
+you cannot see beyond it. You blush, yet the man is nothing to you. I
+cannot understand it.”
+
+It was true that Aline was blushing hotly, and she was gazing in wonder
+at the strange old woman.
+
+“Go on,” she said, in a low, almost pleading voice “Tell me--will those
+dark clouds ever be lifted from my life?”
+
+“It is hard to tell. I said I could read your future, but the clouds
+that overhang it are too dark and heavy. I cannot pierce their gloom.
+Perhaps the sun may shine for you again, perhaps, never! Let me see!”
+
+She held the little palm close up before her eyes.
+
+“Ah, there is a _secret_! You are young to hold so much hidden in your
+heart. I may tell you this much. You will never be happy until that
+secret is openly revealed! It will cost you too much to keep it hid! If
+there are any who love you they will never rest, they will never cease
+striving to fathom the secret that has shadowed your life so darkly.”
+
+She dropped the little hand abruptly, caught up her basket, and strode
+quickly away, leaving Aline and her mother stupefied with surprise.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVII.
+
+
+“What an old hag! Her hands were coarse like a man’s and her voice
+too!” cried vivacious Max. “It was no kind of a fortune, either. She
+did not say anything about your marrying. But I hope you never will;
+it was bad enough to lose Effie. I hope no one will ever persuade you
+away, Allie. No one is good enough for you!”
+
+“I am flattered by your extravagant opinion of my perfections. I think
+you need give yourself no uneasiness as to losing me,” Aline replied,
+making him a demure little courtesy.
+
+He laughed, and nodded.
+
+“I am glad of that. But come now, let me fasten your skates. You must
+come on the ice with me. You promised, you know, and I shall not let
+you go back on your word.”
+
+“I would rather go home, Max,” Aline answered.
+
+“No, dear, you need not be put down so easily. You may go on the ice
+with your brother a little while, then we will go home,” said Mrs.
+Rodney. Her pride and resentment had both been roused by the cavalier
+treatment Aline had received. She knew that her daughter was the most
+beautiful girl on the spot. No one there could at all compare with her.
+She was an accomplished skater too. Something like defiance rose in her
+mind. She would not let them drive Aline away with their scorn. She
+had as much right here as her severe judges. “Go on the ice with your
+brother a little while,” she repeated; “then we will go home.”
+
+She stood silently on the shore watching them as hand in hand they
+skimmed blithely across the icy surface of the beautiful river. Her
+thoughts were busy while her eyes followed the form of her beautiful
+girl in the bright costume that accorded so well with the gay scene.
+
+The strange words of the old lace-vender filled her with wonder.
+
+“How did she chance upon the truth so cleverly?” she asked herself.
+“What did she know of Aline’s troubles and her fatal secret? What did
+she mean by the dark man who influenced Aline’s life? Was it true--or
+why did Aline blush at her words? I have a mind to follow the woman and
+find out what she knows.”
+
+She looked around her, but the old woman had already disappeared from
+sight.
+
+“As well, perhaps,” Mrs. Rodney, muttered to herself: “she could tell
+me nothing. I dare say it was all guess-work. It is so easy to prate
+of dark clouds and secrets and dark men--it is the stock in trade of
+fortune-tellers.”
+
+But she was very uneasy in her mind. There was a great pain in her
+heart as she watched Aline.
+
+The girl had forgotten her trouble for a little while in the
+exhilarating excitement and exercise. Her eyes sparkled, her cheeks
+glowed with pleasure. She and Max were the best skaters on the river,
+and the girl thoroughly enjoyed her triumph. She looked like some
+bright winged bird in her scarlet costume, and many eyes followed her
+course in unwilling admiration.
+
+“Aline, I will tell you something,” said Max, as they skated sociably
+along, side by side. “I believe that old woman was a man dressed in
+woman’s clothes!”
+
+Aline’s heart gave a quick throb.
+
+“Why do you think so, Max?” she said.
+
+“Well, because she had boots on, and her feet were large, and her
+hands, too, and her voice was coarse and squeaky, as if she tried to
+alter it to a woman’s. Didn’t you notice it yourself, Aline?”
+
+“She was rather masculine-looking, certainly; but, then, many women are
+so. I have no doubt she was what she appeared to be,” said Aline, after
+giving the matter a moment’s grave consideration.
+
+Max was silenced but not convinced, and presently he looked round at
+her again.
+
+“I will tell you something else,” he said. “There is a man watching
+you. Perhaps it is the dark man the fortune-teller talked about.”
+
+“Where?” asked Aline, with a start.
+
+“Do you see that great tree down the bank at some distance from the
+crowd? There is a man round one side of it. He is looking at you. He is
+tall and dark, and has on a great fur overcoat. I believe--that is, he
+looks like him--that it is Mr. De--Ah! ah! help! help!”
+
+The revelation of what Max believed was never finished, for, all
+unknowingly, and in her interest in his words, Aline had gone upon
+a dangerous place, where the ice was cracked and thin. A little in
+advance of her brother, although clinging to his hand, she felt the
+treacherous ice giving way beneath her, and, like a flash, tore her
+hand from his and threw it far from her. All in an instant there was
+a loud crash, the treacherous element gave way, and Aline sunk down
+into the cold waves. Max was left alone upon the ragged edge, screaming
+aloud for help in the frenzy of his despair.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+All in a moment there arose a great hubbub of excitement. All eyes
+turned upon the spot where Aline had broken through the thin crust of
+ice and gone down into the cold, dark waves. With the thoughtlessness
+born of excitement, the crowd made a rush for the spot. Some slipped
+and fell, and were heedlessly trampled, and deserted in the terrible
+rush. A panic was imminent. It seemed as if all were bent upon
+satiating a wild curiosity, and the solid ice, beginning to tremble
+beneath the burden upon it, might have broken through, and precipitated
+the crowd, pell-mell, into the same dark waves that had ingulfed Aline;
+but, at that moment, a loud, stern, authoritative voice rang out
+clearly and sharply:
+
+“Stand back, all of you! Do you not see that you are liable to cause
+her death as well as your own? Go back before the ice breaks through
+with your weight!”
+
+The stern voice seemed to put reason into their bewildered minds. There
+was a moment of flurry and indecision, and then the excited crowd
+began to veer toward the shore. No one was left in the vicinity of the
+dangerous ice except little Max, screaming piteously on the brink of
+the abyss into which his sister had disappeared.
+
+But, an instant more, and the form of a tall, handsome man was seen
+crossing the ice, carefully yet fearlessly. As he neared the thin ice,
+he threw himself carefully down upon it, and crept slowly along to the
+edge of the precipice. He had thrown off his coat, and was in his shirt
+sleeves, so that every one knew what was in his mind, and no one was
+surprised to see him drop cautiously over the ragged edge of the ice,
+and so down into the deep, running water.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVIII.
+
+
+It was an act of heroic daring that appealed to all, even to hearts
+less brave. A cry rose up from the shore, a shout of admiration for the
+hero’s bravery, a cheer to give him courage in his daring deed.
+
+Some one drew little Max away from his perilous position, and carried
+him screaming to the shore, where Mrs. Rodney had fallen down
+fainting with the shock of Aline’s fall. Some men went for a rope,
+knowing instinctively that it would be needed if Aline Rodney and the
+adventurous hero were ever rescued from the river.
+
+When they had found one, fortunately near at hand, they returned, and
+went over the ice cautiously, by lying down flat upon it and creeping
+slowly along. Then they peered over the icy edge of the opening into
+the dark, swirling river.
+
+Joy! joy! The icy current had not swept the hero away. He was there,
+with his head above the waves, and supporting on his arm the drenched
+form of a girl whose dark head drooped heavily, and whose chill, white
+face and closed eyelids showed that death or deadly unconsciousness had
+stolen upon her.
+
+He looked up and saw them peering down at him, and shouted, hoarsely:
+
+“A rope, quick, with a slip knot! I cannot sustain her much longer. I
+am freezing to death!”
+
+They knotted the rope hurriedly and threw it down. In a moment he threw
+the rope over the girl’s limp body, tightened it, and they drew her up
+safely. In the same manner they rescued him, and again the loud shouts
+of joy rose up from the shore.
+
+They carried the girl’s limp, wet body to the shore, and her preserver
+followed after. It was the tall man Max had seen behind the tree--it
+was Oran Delaney.
+
+People looked at him in wonder. It was so seldom that he appeared in
+public that it always caused surprise to see him. His sudden appearance
+in this romantic _rôle_ was a nine days’ wonder.
+
+But he did not stay to hear their wondering congratulations. Mrs.
+Rodney had recovered from her faint, and he hurriedly placed her
+with the frightened Max and the still unconscious girl in a passing
+conveyance, then wrapped himself in his furred overcoat and hastened
+home.
+
+Mrs. Griffin was astonished and frightened when her master walked in so
+wet and cold. She exclaimed loudly upon his plight.
+
+“It is nothing. I have only had a fall into the river,” he replied,
+carelessly.
+
+“But I thought that the river was all frozen over?” she said, perplexed.
+
+“Yes, but I broke through the ice,” said Mr. Delaney.
+
+“Oh, dear, dear, then you have got your death of cold!” cried Mrs.
+Griffin in alarm.
+
+“Pray do not make me out a girl or a baby,” he said, impatiently. “When
+I get some warm, dry clothes, I shall do very well.”
+
+She busied herself in laying them out for him, and when she had done
+this she made some warm drinks for him.
+
+“To drive the cold out of your system,” she said, fussily, but kindly.
+
+He drank something just to please her, and then he hurried away from
+her, disregarding her pathetic entreaty that he would go to bed and
+wrap up warmly in blankets, that his wetting and freezing might not do
+him any harm.
+
+“As if there were danger, when my heart and brain are on fire,” he said
+to himself.
+
+He went up to a quiet little chamber in the tower, and peered, with
+burning eyes, down at a little white-curtained window of his neighbor’s
+house. He could dimly see figures moving about the little room as if
+they were busy over something.
+
+“Has she revived?” he asked himself, anxiously. “Poor child! she went
+under the black water twice before I reached her. It was only the
+strength of my despair that enabled me to bring her up to the surface
+again. Oh, how fearful it was! the cold, black water, the jagged ice,
+the terrible danger! And yet I would risk life and limb again a hundred
+times to save her life!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIX.
+
+
+“Ah, dearie me, but it’s a lonesome life, after all,” sighed Mrs.
+Griffin.
+
+The good soul was sitting by the comfortable stove in the commodious
+kitchen of Delaney House, intent upon the concoction of some savory
+broth that was simmering on the stove. It was on the evening of the day
+that Mr. Delaney had saved Aline Rodney from drowning.
+
+The bright, sunny morning had ended in a dreary, overcast evening,
+with hints of snow in the air. The warm, spacious kitchen was very
+comfortable, but it was intensely quiet and still, even to dreariness.
+The audible ticking of the clock, and the soft purr of the little gray
+kitten at Mrs. Griffin’s feet, seemed to make the stillness and quiet
+even more marked and oppressive to her peculiar mood.
+
+“It’s a lonesome life,” she repeated. “It is hard even for me, and I do
+not see how Mr. Delaney bears it at all, used as he has been to society
+and amusement. Sometimes I fairly long for the sight of a friendly face
+and the sound of a kind voice besides my master’s. I never felt the
+dreariness of my life as much as I have done since Miss Rodney came and
+went away. Spoiled child as she was, she brought a bit of life into the
+house!”
+
+She sighed and mechanically lifted the lid of the stew-pan and stirred
+the savory broth with a long-handled spoon.
+
+“Tap! Tap! Tap!”
+
+That ghostly sound broke so suddenly upon the silence of the room,
+that Mrs. Griffin gave a violent start and dropped her long spoon upon
+the floor with a hideous clatter, disturbing kitty’s peaceful slumbers
+by a thump upon her little pink nose, accompanied by a few drops of hot
+broth that sent her pattering into the corner with a spiteful meow. The
+good woman mechanically reached for the spoon and looked toward the
+door.
+
+“Tap! Tap!” came the low knocking again, with as ghostly a sound as
+ever Poe’s fabled raven produced.
+
+Mrs. Griffin stared at the closed door with an air of stupid amazement,
+and made no move to open it.
+
+“Whoever can it be?” she asked aloud, and a squeaky, peculiar voice
+from outside, answered immediately:
+
+“Open the door, my good woman, and see!”
+
+“What impudence! There, then, I won’t do it!” replied Mrs. Griffin,
+who, although dying of curiosity to see her visitor, knew better than
+to admit any one within the walls of Delaney House.
+
+“You’re the first woman, then, that I ever knew to turn a poor peddler
+from the door, and it’ll be to your sorrow as you did so,” replied a
+bantering voice outside. “I have a basketful of notions, and I’m just
+from New York with the biggest bargains of the season. Come, don’t
+be churlish, mistress. Open the door, and let me come in and warm my
+frozen fingers, even if you won’t buy one of my nice lace collars.”
+
+Mrs. Griffin’s eyes had brightened at the mention of the peddler. The
+majority of women have an unexplainable propensity for buying from
+peddlers, and Mrs. Griffin was no exception to the rule. Besides, she
+was dying of loneliness and _ennui_. She intensely desired to speak to
+some one, and to have better companionship, if only for an hour, than
+the purring gray kitten.
+
+She hesitated. And we have always heard--have we not, reader?--that the
+woman who hesitates is lost. She remembered that her stock of pins and
+needles and tapes and buttons needed replenishing. Why not embrace this
+excellent opportunity for the purpose? She might easily do so, and Mr.
+Delaney be none the wiser, and no harm done. She would take care that
+the harmless peddler did not penetrate beyond the kitchen.
+
+The cheery, seductive voice of the person outside sounded pleasantly
+in her hearing. She felt that she would be all the better for a little
+human contact with that world from which she was so closely secluded.
+
+She softly turned the key and opened the door, meaning to have some
+little colloquy with the peddler before she admitted her; but that
+worthy frustrated her intention by immediately stepping across the
+threshold, with the proverbial impudence of the class.
+
+“So you thought better of your first intentions, did you?” she said,
+genially, to the astonished mistress of the kitchen. “Second thoughts
+are best, aren’t they? Well, you were wise to let me in. I shall sell
+you the biggest bargain of the season.”
+
+And then she laughed, and set her basket down upon the floor, and
+warmed her brown fingers by the stove.
+
+Mrs. Griffin was dumfounded by the ease, not to say impudence, of the
+female peddler, who already had taken a seat and was gazing about the
+large apartment with careless curiosity.
+
+“You must please not to laugh so loud,” she said. “If my master hears
+you he will come down and turn you out. I should not have let you in
+anyhow, only that I needed some things in your line. Strangers are not
+allowed in here. You shouldn’t have entered the grounds.”
+
+“I did not know there were any orders against it. You see, I’m a
+stranger about here, and seeing such a fine large house I naturally
+thought to myself, ‘Here’s the place to sell my nice goods to the
+ladies.’ But if there’s any offense, ma’am, I’ll humbly take my leave,”
+said this artful old woman, beginning to replace the tempting things
+she had drawn from her heavy basket.
+
+“Well, well, let me have my buttons and things first,” said Mrs.
+Griffin, who had not expected to be so soon taken at her word. “You may
+show me your things, only be quiet about it. I shouldn’t care to have
+my master disturbed.”
+
+“And your mistress, hey? Wouldn’t she like to buy some of my pretty
+laces?”
+
+“There isn’t any mistress. There’s only my master and me. I’m cook and
+housekeeper both,” Mrs. Griffin replied, as she poised a black lace cap
+on her fingers, and mentally wondered if it wouldn’t be becoming to her.
+
+They had the usual haggling, the old woman good-humoredly putting down
+her goods to Mrs. Griffin’s own prices, remarking as each new purchase
+was laid on the pile at the housekeeper’s elbow: “I told you I would
+sell you the biggest bargain of the season. They don’t call me Cheap
+Jane for nothing!”
+
+“Is that your name? How funny!” said the housekeeper, laughing.
+
+“That’s what they call me,” said the female peddler. “Mrs. Broadcloth
+is my real name, though.”
+
+Mrs. Griffin had to laugh again. She thought that the name of
+Broadcloth was even more amusing than that of Cheap Jane. There was a
+dry humor about the peddler that she rather enjoyed after her forced
+seclusion from companionship with her kind.
+
+“Perhaps you’d like a cup of hot tea before you start out again, Mrs.
+Broadcloth,” said she, with reckless hospitality.
+
+“Thank you kindly,” was the reply, and the old woman drew out a short,
+black pipe from, some recess under her coarse cloak. “While you draw
+the tea, I suppose you will let me smoke my pipe by your fire,” she
+said.
+
+“Certainly,” assented Mrs. Griffin, and then her heart suddenly misgave
+her.
+
+It occurred to her that, under the peculiar circumstances of the case,
+she was making almost too lavish a show of hospitality.
+
+“Only suppose that Mr. Delaney should happen in! It isn’t likely he
+will, but then I’ve heard say that the most unlikely things are always
+happening,” she thought, apprehensively to herself.
+
+“I will step up to his room and see if he wants anything,” was her next
+thought, with a view to forestalling his possible intrusion on the
+prohibited guest.
+
+Fortune favored her artful design. At that moment a bell rung from the
+upper room that Mr. Delaney occupied as a bed-chamber.
+
+Mrs. Griffin turned to Cheap Jane, who was contentedly puffing away at
+her stubby pipe.
+
+“There is my master’s bell now,” she said. “Will you just set here all
+quiet while I step up and see what he wants?”
+
+“Yes, go. Don’t mind me,” replied Mrs. Broadcloth, affably.
+
+The housekeeper opened the door into the hall, closed it carefully
+behind her, and went up to Mr. Delaney’s room.
+
+To her surprise, although it was barely six o’clock, he had retired to
+bed. There was a feverish flush on his face, and his dark eyes gleamed
+restlessly.
+
+“Oh, Mr. Delaney, you are ill,” she exclaimed.
+
+“Hardly that,” he replied, with a forced smile; “but I am certainly
+somewhat the worse for the wetting I received this morning.”
+
+“Oh, sir, you should see a physician!” she exclaimed, alarmed at his
+feverish looks.
+
+“No; the last one did me harm enough by his long tongue,” Mr. Delaney
+answered, angrily. “I will have nothing of the kind. I need no one--I
+shall be all right in the morning.”
+
+She saw that persistence would only irritate him, and dropped the
+subject.
+
+“Can I do nothing for you?” she inquired, anxiously.
+
+“No; I have myself taken some drops that will soon cool my fever. I
+shall not take any supper; but, after a while, you may bring me a cup
+of tea--nothing else.”
+
+She beat a hasty retreat, sorry for his sickness, but reflecting that
+it stood her in good stead at this particular time, when her loneliness
+had led her into such imprudence as admitting a human being under the
+tabooed portals of Delaney House.
+
+“I will go and make the tea, and get her away as soon as I can,” she
+thought, hurrying down the wide stairway, along the hall, and so into
+the kitchen again, where she had left Cheap Jane contentedly, puffing
+at her pipe.
+
+“Well, now, Mistress Broadcloth, I will put the tea to draw,” she
+began, then stopped and stared, and rubbed her hand across her eyes.
+
+The great kitchen was empty, save for the gray kitten under the stove,
+purring away in lazy contentment. The old woman and the big basket were
+vanished from the scene as if they had never been. The door by which
+she had entered a little while ago, stood wide open, letting in the
+cold and the gathering darkness.
+
+Mrs. Griffin ran down the steps and into the grounds in search of the
+missing peddler; but the darkness and a haze of snow were beginning to
+fall together, and they soon drove her into the house again.
+
+“Ah, well-a-day! the strange old creature has taken herself off without
+her tea, and just as well, perhaps, for I was on needles and pins for
+fear of being caught in her company,” commented the housekeeper.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XL.
+
+
+Aline Rodney’s feelings on plunging through the broken ice into the
+cold, black waves of the river may be better imagined than described.
+
+A shiver of mortal cold and terror rushed over her as the icy current
+came in contact with her warm, tender young body. She went down, down,
+down, with a swift rush and a terrible sensation as of suffocation,
+into the infinite depths of death, it seemed to her, and then arose
+to the surface and felt the cold, sweet air in her face again with a
+sensation of exquisite relief.
+
+Aline had some little knowledge of swimming. She tried to hold herself
+up in the water until relief should come. And a great horror came over
+her at the thought of being whirled away under the ice and beyond all
+hope of rescue. How terrible it would be to perish miserably under that
+sheet of solid crystal, where but a little while ago she had sported
+gayly and fearlessly, but which now rose between her and the world like
+a glittering wall of destruction.
+
+She made an effort to keep from drifting away from the wide, ragged
+opening in the ice made by the falling through of her body. She knew
+that if once swept beneath that terrible crust her death would be
+certain. The sounds from above came to her faintly, deadened by the
+ringing in her ears, and by the wild shrieks of her brother nearer
+at hand. She was conscious of a vague anxiety over her mother, faint
+wonder if any of those people who hated her would try to save her life,
+and then a numbness induced by the fearful cold overcame her wholly,
+her arms ceased to beat the waves in frenzied endeavor, and she felt
+herself sinking again to rise no more.
+
+It was at that awful moment that Oran Delaney sprung boldly into the
+terrible death-trap, fearless of danger, and only intent on saving that
+frail, weak girl from imminent danger.
+
+When he first sprung into the river the little dark head was going down
+beneath the waves. He was compelled to dive twice before he succeeded
+in retaining a hold upon her. When, after a desperate struggle, he
+succeeded in holding her above the water, he was almost exhausted
+himself. He feared that he would succumb to the dreadful cold himself
+before assistance could arrive.
+
+The forethought of the man who had so fortunately brought ropes stood
+him in good stead now. A little longer in the cold waves must have
+exhausted his remaining strength.
+
+He was frightened when they were drawn out of the water, and he saw
+Aline’s face clearly. It was pinched and blue, and the parted lips
+and closed eyelids looked like death. Had he been too late? he asked
+himself, anxiously.
+
+He saw the unconscious form placed in the vehicle, and driven away
+toward home with a silent, speechless trouble in his heart. His
+thoughts followed her, in fancy, to that little white chamber where her
+parents and the old family doctor hung anxiously over her, trying to
+infuse life into the chill and rigid form, that seemed as if it would
+never breathe the warm breath of life again.
+
+“Oh, that I had never taken her to that fatal river! She would not have
+gone if I had not urged it!” cried poor Mrs. Rodney, wringing her white
+hands in despair.
+
+She remembered the old fortune teller’s strange words: “The clouds that
+overhang your future are so dark and heavy I cannot pierce their gloom.
+Perhaps the sun may shine for you again, perhaps never!”
+
+“It was a true prognostication! That old crone did, indeed, read the
+cards of fate truly! It was the shadow of death that hung over my poor
+darling!” cried the anguished mother in mingled grief and wonder.
+
+But she was wrong. The tangled thread of poor Aline’s life was not
+broken yet. Her little feet were not done wandering yet through the
+weary mazes of the world.
+
+Insensibly a little warmth began to creep about the poor chilled body,
+under the stress of their patient endeavors, a faint pulse fluttered
+about her heart, and at length the black fringe of the lashes trembled
+feebly against her cheeks. The old physician, standing anxiously over
+her, with his hand upon the blue-veined wrist, looked up, and said,
+kindly, to the distracted mother:
+
+“Thank God, she revives! She will live!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLI.
+
+
+“Aline, you have not asked me who saved your life, yet?”
+
+“No, mamma.”
+
+It was the morning after Aline’s almost fatal accident, and she was
+sitting up in an easy-chair before the fire, in a pretty, bright blue
+wrapper. She was very pale and quiet. She had been listening to her
+mother, who had been telling her the details of her rescue, and who now
+remarked in wonder:
+
+“Aline, you have not asked me who saved your life, yet.”
+
+“No, mamma,” the girl answered, in a tone of visible embarrassment,
+while a faint color rose to her cheeks.
+
+“I should think you would be curious over it,” said Mrs. Rodney, in a
+tone of slight disappointment.
+
+“I have not thought about it,” the young girl replied, evasively.
+
+“Then you will be astonished when you learn who the person was--the
+very last one you or any one else would have thought of,” declared Mrs.
+Rodney.
+
+“You make me feel quite curious, mamma,” said Aline, with a faint
+smile, and a tone so listless it belied her assertion of interest.
+
+“I do not suppose, if you guessed all day, that you would come at all
+near the truth,” pursued Mrs. Rodney.
+
+“I suppose not,” answered Aline, laughingly.
+
+She leaned back wearily, and watched the leaping flames of the fire
+with a smothered sigh. Oh, if only her mother would but drop the
+subject.
+
+But Mrs. Rodney had no intention of doing so.
+
+“Indeed you would not,” she went on. “You would sooner think of any one
+else that you ever knew, though indeed you never knew this gentleman!”
+
+“Then it was a stranger,” said Aline, seeing that an answer of some
+sort was expected, and feeling a guilty consciousness of deceit, for
+she had an intuitive knowledge that Mr. Delaney had saved her life. She
+had caught a glimpse of his darkly handsome face behind the tree Max
+had pointed out to her just as she crashed through the thin ice into
+the river.
+
+“Yes, it was a stranger, although you have seen him a thousand times,
+and although you know his name. Prepare to be surprised, my dear. Only
+think, it was our unsociable neighbor, Mr. Delaney!”
+
+Aline knew that she was expected to appear greatly surprised, but to
+have saved her life she could not have enacted such a fraud. She was
+too frank and honest. She could only falter out, embarrassedly:
+
+“Mr. Delaney!”
+
+“Yes! I knew you would be surprised. Every one was,” said Mrs. Rodney.
+“I was surprised, and, to tell the truth, Aline, I was proud, too. Just
+to think, after the mean way the Chester people had treated us, that
+the richest and grandest man in the place should risk his life to save
+yours! Oh, how grateful I feel to him for his kindness!”
+
+“Grateful!” murmured Aline, in an indescribable tone.
+
+“Yes, indeed!” cried Mrs. Rodney. “Why, my dear, you might have
+perished for any help those other men would have given you--that is,
+they did bring a rope, but that would not have been any good if Mr.
+Delaney had not gone into the water and brought you up from the bottom.”
+
+“It might have been better had he left me there,” the girl murmured,
+half to herself.
+
+Mrs. Rodney shuddered at the bare thought.
+
+“Oh, how glad I am that he did not,” she exclaimed. “I feel like going
+down on my knees to thank him for his bravery!”
+
+“Thank _him_! Thank Oran Delaney? Oh, mamma!” cried Aline, with
+irrepressible agitation.
+
+“Why, yes, my dear; of course we should thank him,” cried Mrs. Rodney,
+“and yet, strange as it seems, your papa and I are at a loss to know
+how to do so. You see, he is so strange. Although he saved your life,
+he has never called or sent to inquire how you are. And yet, one would
+suppose he would take that much interest in you, seeing that he risked
+his life for you.”
+
+“I dare say he would prefer not being thanked,” murmured Aline.
+
+“Do you think so? And yet, it would look very ungracious in us to
+neglect doing so. It would appear as if we thought the saving of our
+daughter’s life not even worthy a word of thanks. I should not like to
+have him think that we undervalued either your life or his services,”
+said Mrs. Rodney, with natural pride.
+
+“What can it matter what he thinks? I should not say one word to him,”
+cried Aline, with sudden peevishness.
+
+Mrs. Rodney gazed at her in surprise.
+
+“Aline, I never did understand your strange nature,” she said, rather
+coldly. “Do you mean for me to think that you are not grateful to Mr.
+Delaney for his inestimable service in saving you from such a horrible
+death?”
+
+Aline flushed under the rebuking glance her mother bent upon her.
+
+“Not exactly that, mamma,” she said. “But Mr. Delaney is so unsocial
+and retiring, I thought he might not care to be intruded upon, even to
+receive our thanks for what he has done. Of course I am grateful. I
+was dreadfully frightened down there in the water. I did not want to
+die, although I had as well be dead as living, since my life is ruined
+and blighted. But I dare say Mr. Delaney has almost forgotten the
+occurrence by now, and I do not think we have any right to intrude upon
+his privacy even to air our gratitude.”
+
+Mrs. Rodney did not take this view of the case at all.
+
+“I should not think it an intrusion if any one came to thank me for
+saving life,” she said. “In any case, I shall thank him; but, since he
+is so reticent and unsocial, perhaps the best way would be to send him
+a letter--don’t you think so?”
+
+“Yes, I think so,” answered Aline, closing her eyes with a weary sigh.
+
+She thought of the letter she had thrown into the garden to him,
+begging him to save her good name by allowing her to break the vow of
+silence he had imposed upon her. He had refused her prayer; he had
+allowed her hopes to be ruthlessly blasted, without lifting a finger to
+prevent it; and yet he had risked his life to save hers. She could not
+understand it.
+
+“Why was he there? People say he never goes out; yet he was at the
+church, and he was at the river. Was he watching me?” she asked
+herself, and the thought only made her wonder the more. What did his
+interest mean? “Twice I have owed my life to him,” she thought. “And
+yet he has suffered me to lose that which was dearer than life--my good
+name! I do not know what to think of him--while I hate him for the one
+thing, I must needs be grateful to him for the other.”
+
+She closed her eyes and lay musing on those perplexing questions. Her
+thoughts went back to the days she had spent at Delaney House, and
+to the horrible mysterious Thing that had so terribly assaulted and
+wounded her. She wondered, as she had often done before, what that
+creature was to Oran Delaney. Why did he shut himself up alone in that
+great gloomy house with such a terrible companion for his solitude? She
+shuddered at the thought of it--the ghost of Delaney House as he had
+called it. The remembrance of those awful, maniacal shrieks rung in her
+hearing often, and often, chilling the bounding life-blood in her young
+veins.
+
+“Perhaps it will kill Mr. Delaney some day,” she said, to herself, and
+she shuddered at the thought. Death seemed a terrible thing to this
+fair young girl in whose veins the tide of life flowed so strong and
+free. She dreaded the cruel grave, its darkness, its nothingness, its
+gloom.
+
+The sudden opening of the door roused her from the gloomy musings that
+began to steal over her.
+
+Mr. Rodney entered abruptly.
+
+Aline turned her head with a smile toward her father, but the gentle
+beam faded from her lips, and a cry of terror broke from her at sight
+of his face.
+
+He was pale to ghastliness, his blue eyes seemed to almost emit sparks
+of fire, so angrily did they blaze upon her. His face was almost
+contorted with the strong agitation that possessed him.
+
+Aline half started up, filled with a blind terror.
+
+“Papa!” she gasped.
+
+He caught her roughly by the shoulder and shook her so fiercely that
+she fell back in her chair, hiding her white face fearfully in her
+hands. He looked as if he were about to kill her as she crouched in
+her chair, with her face hidden from his wrathful gaze, while she
+trembled like a leaf in a storm.
+
+Mrs. Rodney sprung up and ran hurriedly to him. She caught his arm in
+both her delicate white hands.
+
+“Oh, Mr. Rodney, pray do not be so rough with Aline! You will kill
+her!” she cried.
+
+He shook her off rudely almost as he had shaken his daughter. Indeed,
+he was so strongly agitated, that he did not seem to know the extent of
+his violence.
+
+“Better for her if she were dead!” he broke out, bitterly. “Better for
+us if she never had been born!”
+
+“Oh, papa, what have I done?” Aline wailed out, frightened by his
+fierce denunciations.
+
+“Done! What have you not done?” he stormed at her, fiercely. “Oh,
+wretched, shameless girl, whom I have nurtured at my fireside and in my
+heart! How sharper than a serpent’s tooth it is to have such a child!
+Would to God you had perished yesterday rather than live for me to tell
+you your shame to-day!”
+
+“Shame!” the girl broke out with sudden passion and violence, while the
+deep color flooded her exquisite face with crimson. “Do not apply that
+word to me, papa! I have done nothing, nothing!”
+
+“What can you mean?” gasped Mrs. Rodney, growing as pale as her
+daughter.
+
+He glared at them fiercely, his handsome face disfigured by passion.
+
+“I mean,” he said, dropping his voice to a low, tense sound of intense
+bitterness--“I mean that I have discovered Aline’s shameful secret.”
+
+“Papa, papa, you have discovered it! You know it, and yet I have not
+had to break my vow! Oh! how glad I am!” cried Aline, and a light of
+joy broke over the fair face, almost transfiguring its beauty. Such
+happy roses glowed on her countenance, such a radiant light shone in
+the deep blue eyes as struck her father with wonder.
+
+“Aline, I cannot understand what you mean,” he said, sharply. “I have
+discovered nothing that could make you happy. This, that I have to
+tell your mother, is enough to strike you dead with shame at her feet,
+because you have so dishonored her!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLII.
+
+
+A moment of utter silence ensued upon Mr. Rodney’s excited declaration.
+
+Mrs. Rodney had fallen into a chair like one stunned at her husband’s
+dreadful words. She stared alternately from his face to Aline’s in
+hopeless bewilderment.
+
+But although she was in a maze of wonder, her bewilderment did not by
+any means equal that of her daughter.
+
+Aline had attempted to rise from her seat, but her extreme weakness
+forced her to grasp the back of her chair with both hands. She clung
+to it tightly, leaning against it while she regarded her father with
+startled, wide-open eyes, and slightly parted, tremulous lips. As he
+gazed at the fair, wondering, innocent face, he was suddenly reminded
+of her childish days. Just so the beautiful face had looked many a
+time when, as a willful child, she had been reprimanded and blamed
+innocently for many pranks that she had not done; just so the dew of
+unshed tears had seemed to glitter on the dark, curling fringe of her
+lashes. The appealing innocence of that look cut him to the heart for a
+moment, and then he was angry with himself for his weakness. How dare
+she look so pure and true when she was such a sinner?
+
+In a moment she spoke--gently, almost appealingly.
+
+“Papa, there must be some mistake. You said you knew my secret?”
+
+“Yes, to my sorrow,” he replied, bitterly.
+
+“But, papa,” she spoke in a slow, grieved tone, “if you know it, as you
+say, why, then, do you talk of shame to me? It you know that secret you
+say you know, you must be aware that I have done nothing to blush for.
+Why should I fall down dead at my mother’s feet when I have done no
+wrong?”
+
+“Aline, why do you try to keep up that wretched farce?” he exclaimed,
+hoarsely, while his eyes flashed luridly. “My God, you, the child we
+loved so dearly, the child we thought so innocent and true, you have
+been the falsest-hearted girl that ever a mother bore! Even while we
+were searching for you in anguish of soul, deeming you lost or dead,
+you were heartlessly hiding yourself away in the house of the rich man
+yonder. You were living with him in terrible shame. Say, is this not
+true?”
+
+“As God is my judge, papa, you accuse me falsely!” she answered,
+lifting her white hand solemnly to heaven, while her beautiful face
+flushed a vivid burning scarlet.
+
+“You deny that you were at Delaney House?” he asked.
+
+“I cannot answer that question, papa; but I _can_ deny, and I do deny,
+your other accusation.”
+
+“Your word does not signify much in this case,” he said. “I already
+have the proofs that you stayed, during the three months of your
+absence, at Delaney House.”
+
+The beautiful blush seemed to burn deeper on the fair young face.
+
+“Papa, who is my accuser?” she inquired, in wonder.
+
+“You shall know by and by,” he answered. “I am going to ask you some
+questions now. Mind that you answer them truly. There is no longer any
+need to keep back the answer to anything I may ask you. All is known.”
+
+“All?” she echoed, faintly, and with palpable wonder.
+
+“Yes, all,” he replied. “And first you were at Delaney House, during
+the whole three months of your absence. It is too late to deny it. You
+must confess all.”
+
+“But my oath,” she said, looking at him with wide, questioning eyes.
+
+“Is of no avail, since I have found out the truth without your agency,”
+he replied. “The secret is a secret no longer. You may answer freely
+all that I ask you.”
+
+She looked at him dubiously with those beautiful eyes that seemed to
+mirror her soul’s purity.
+
+“I should be glad to answer you, papa, if I thought it were quite
+right,” she said.
+
+“You can take your papa’s word for that,” interposed Mrs. Rodney,
+rather peevishly. “He has never deceived you in anything, has he,
+Aline?”
+
+“No, mamma,” she replied.
+
+“Then tell him what he asks you,” said her mother.
+
+Aline turned her eyes back to the pale, stern face of her father.
+
+“Papa, I admit that I was at Delaney House those three months,” she
+said, simply.
+
+“And you were dangerously wounded in the beginning of your stay there,”
+he said. “Don’t deny that either, Aline. You bear the scar on your
+bosom in witness of the fact.”
+
+“I admit the wound,” she replied, in the same gentle, obedient way as
+before.
+
+“I must now require you to tell me how you received it,” said Mr.
+Rodney, watching her closely.
+
+She started, and looked earnestly at him.
+
+“You said that you knew all, papa,” she replied, with a touch of vague
+reproach in her tone.
+
+He could not conceal the embarrassment her words caused him. His
+eyelids fell and he stood silent a moment gazing down at the floor.
+
+“You said that you knew all, papa,” Aline repeated, reproachfully.
+
+“I know the most and worst,” he replied, looking up at her. “There are
+some trifling details with which I am unacquainted. I depend on you to
+make me acquainted with them.”
+
+“But, papa--” she said, and paused, tremblingly.
+
+“Well?” he said.
+
+“You know, papa, it would be wrong for me to tell you anything about
+that fatal absence of mine. It would be breaking my oath of silence,”
+she replied.
+
+He stifled an impatient exclamation between his mustached lips.
+
+“But, my child,” he said, in a softer tone than he had yet used, “did
+you not promise just now to answer all of my questions?”
+
+The blue eyes dilated in innocent surprise.
+
+“Oh, no, papa,” she replied. “I thought it could do no harm to admit
+anything that you already knew; so I did not hesitate to own that I had
+been at Delaney House, and that I received my wound there. But of the
+manner in which I received my hurt I cannot tell you since you do not
+know. I am bound to silence. I cannot break my word of honor.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIII.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney regarded his daughter with a disappointed and baffled air.
+He had set a trap to surprise all the details of her secret from her,
+deeming it no harm to do so. But she had been too quick-witted for him.
+He saw that he was to learn nothing from her that he did not already
+know.
+
+He was bitterly angry with her. His outraged pride prompted him to
+denounce her in the bitterest terms, and to drive her forth from his
+roof as one unworthy to dwell in the home she had dishonored. Something
+stronger than his own will held him back.
+
+As he gazed at her clinging feebly to the back of the chair, weak and
+white from the effects of her accident yesterday, and with that look
+of helpless innocence on the fair young face, his conviction of her
+guiltiness was staggered. In the face of all the evidence, in the face
+of her terrible silence, he could scarcely believe that his beautiful,
+petted daughter was a deliberate sinner. Yet what was the meaning of
+the mystery in which she shrouded her absence from her home? Why had
+she gone to Delaney House, and what had she been doing there? If Oran
+Delaney had wronged his little darling, he said to himself, fiercely,
+his life should pay the forfeit.
+
+“Aline,” he said to her with startling abruptness; “tell me, what is
+Oran Delaney to you?”
+
+She shivered and started as if an icy wind had swept across her.
+
+“Tell me,” he repeated sharply, “what is Oran Delaney to you?”
+
+The sweet, frank blue eyes lifted earnestly to his face.
+
+“He is nothing, papa,” she replied.
+
+“Nothing _now_, you mean,” he said. “Well, I will put my query in
+another shape. What _has_ he been to you?”
+
+Her heart thrilled bitterly at the pointed question.
+
+An impulse came over her to tell him the truth--to say, bitterly and
+truly, “He has been the evil genius of my life; he has spoiled my
+life for me; he has blighted all the budding hopes of my youth, and
+made earth a wide Sahara, where I must walk with blistered feet and a
+fainting heart.”
+
+This would have been the truest answer she could have made, she
+said, bitterly, to herself; but she shut her lips over the unspoken
+words--they were not for her to say.
+
+“You do not answer me, Aline,” said her father, and then she answered,
+gravely:
+
+“I can only repeat what I said to you before. He is nothing to me.”
+
+He walked away from her, and went over to the window that overlooked
+Delaney House and its beautiful spacious grounds. Drawing aside the
+curtain, he looked out upon the scene. The winter snow was falling in
+soft, thick flakes, and had been falling thus all day. The ground was
+covered with a soft, white carpet, pure and unspotted, for no footfall
+had smirched its virgin purity. Through the veil of softly falling
+flakes the gloomy gray outline of Delaney House glimmered indistinctly
+like a picture. To his wretched, distracted mind, filled with harrowing
+suspicions of his child, recurred a line or two from a familiar poem:
+
+ “Once I was pure as the snow, but I fell--
+ Fell, like the snow-flakes, from heaven to hell!”
+
+A groan forced itself through his pale, drawn lips.
+
+“My God!” he said, hoarsely. “Only to think, Aline, that while we were
+distracted over your unknown fate, while we sought you everywhere,
+while sleep was a stranger to our eyes and food tasted bitter on our
+lips, through the terrible strain of our anxiety for you, that you were
+hidden away in my neighbor’s house, within a stone’s throw of your own
+home! It was wicked, cruel, heartless!”
+
+“Heartless!” she echoed, with weary bitterness, and a look of agony
+came over the white face. She recalled that time so well when she had
+sorrowed to feel what they would think of her at home; how they would
+miss her and grieve for her, blaming her for the terrible silence she
+was forced to keep.
+
+“Aline, will you tell me one thing?” he asked. “I suppose it cannot
+greatly matter in the keeping of your secret. I am most curious to know
+how you left your room that day.”
+
+“I went through that window, papa,” she answered, thinking that she
+might tell him the truth thus far, at least.
+
+“But how?” he inquired, in palpable astonishment.
+
+“Down a ladder,” she replied.
+
+“Placed there by Oran Delaney?” he inquired, smothering a terrible
+imprecation on his writhing lips.
+
+“Yes, papa,” she answered, wearily, for she was weak and tired, and in
+his excitement he had not thought of sparing her feeble strength.
+
+“So then there was really an intrigue carried on between you?” he burst
+out, wrathfully.
+
+“No, papa, there was not. I had never spoken to Mr. Delaney in my life
+until that day,” she replied, with such candor that he could not but
+believe her.
+
+“How then did it happen that you allowed him to place a ladder for you
+to descend upon?” he asked.
+
+The pale face grew suddenly scarlet again.
+
+“Papa, it was the fault of my own willfulness,” she sighed.
+
+“I told you so, Aline. I always knew that your willful ways would bring
+you into trouble,” cried poor, half-dazed Mrs. Rodney.
+
+“Yes, mamma, dearest, and your words came true--as true as any words
+ever spoken in this world,” cried Aline, meekly; and she added, with a
+long, heavy sigh, “I do not believe any one ever paid a greater price
+for an innocent folly than I have done.”
+
+Her mother broke into low, heart-broken sobbing, and buried her face in
+her handkerchief.
+
+“Tell us how it came about, Aline,” said her father, impatiently.
+
+“It was just in this way, papa. I was angry because I was left at home
+that day, and I threw the book mamma had given me to read out of my
+window into Mr. Delaney’s garden.”
+
+“Well, go on,” he said, as she paused a moment.
+
+Aline continued:
+
+“You see, papa and mamma, I had no idea Mr. Delaney was walking in his
+garden that morning. But he was, and when I threw the book it struck
+him sharply on his head. He looked up and saw me, and then I was
+frightened at what I had done. I spoke to him. I apologized to him and
+explained that it was an accident.”
+
+“And then?” asked Mr. Rodney.
+
+“He excused me after amusing himself with me a little while. He
+evidently thought me nothing but a child,” said Aline. “I am sure I
+acted like a child. I told him how much I wanted some of the beautiful
+roses in his garden. So he brought an old step-ladder, placed it under
+the window, and told me to come down and take all the flowers I wanted.”
+
+“My God!” groaned her father, gazing at her in despair.
+
+“I did not mean to do anything wrong. It was only one of my willful
+escapades, and I never thought that it could end more seriously than
+my other girlish freaks. I went down the ladder, papa, but, indeed,
+indeed, I did not mean to stay ten minutes. I just meant to have one
+breath of the sweet air under those shady trees, and a bunch of the
+roses, and then to come back before cook should find out my absence.”
+
+“Why, then, did you stay?” he inquired.
+
+“That, too, was the result of my thoughtlessness and folly. When I
+found myself in the garden, among the beautiful flowers, I wandered
+away by myself, absorbed in the pleasant task of gathering a huge
+bouquet to brighten my lonely room. I was so charmed that I forgot
+everything else in my fascinating task. The poet has given us a pretty
+and appropriate quotation, papa,” she said, looking at him with a
+faint, quivering smile on her marble-white face.
+
+She repeated it softly:
+
+ “Too late I stayed--forgive the crime!
+ Unheeded flew the hours.
+ How noiseless falls the foot of Time
+ That only treads on flowers!”
+
+Then she resumed, in a low, sad voice:
+
+“It was just like that with me, papa. I did not remember anything but
+my pleasure in the sweet, fragrant flowers. I kissed their fragrant
+velvety faces a hundred times. I patted them softly with loving hands.
+I knelt down and whispered to them as if they had been sentient, human
+beings. I was filled with pleasure at their lovely forms and exquisite
+colors. I gathered one here, another there, until my hands were full.
+Never did Time fly so fast. It trod on flowers, indeed, but, ah me! ah
+me!” she sighed, clasping her small hands together in agony, “since
+then its flight has been slow and dreary, over thorny paths with
+bleeding feet.”
+
+They gazed upon her in troubled silence, knowing not what to say.
+
+“Even then, papa, mamma, if I had come home when I found out that it
+had grown so late all might have been well,” she said. “But the fatal
+curiosity our common Mother Eve bequeathed us led me on to my fate.”
+
+Again they had nothing to say to her. They hung eagerly on her next
+words.
+
+“A bell rang from the house, then, for luncheon, and Mr. Delaney
+came to ask me to go to share it,” she went on. “It was then that my
+inexcusable folly began. If I had come back home all would have been
+well. My foolish curiosity led me to enter the great house of which I
+had heard so much.”
+
+Mrs. Rodney groaned aloud in bitterness of spirit.
+
+“I went into the grand dining-room and had my lunch--a delicate,
+luxurious lunch that appeared to have been spread by invisible
+hands, for no one appeared except Mr. Delaney and myself. I feasted
+luxuriously, then came out into the hall to return home, full of sudden
+dread that the cook had discovered my protracted absence.”
+
+“And then?” inquired Mr. Rodney, anxiously.
+
+A look of fear and dread and bitter regret came over the white face of
+the tortured young girl. She answered, slowly:
+
+“Then something happened that was the cause of my remaining hidden away
+wretched and maddened for three long months, that seemed longer to me
+than all the years of my life that had gone before.”
+
+“And that something? You must tell us what it was, Aline,” said her
+father, sternly.
+
+“No, papa, I cannot tell you. I have sworn never to reveal it,” Aline
+replied, despairingly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIV.
+
+
+Again a disappointed and baffled expression crossed Mr. Rodney’s fine
+face. He was cruelly tortured by this dreadful secret that lay, like a
+great, inky blot, on the fair fame of his beautiful, beloved daughter.
+
+“Aline, did you know that it was wrong for you to take such an oath?”
+he inquired.
+
+A piteous look came over the sweet, pale face.
+
+“It was hard for me to do so, but I did not know that it was wrong,”
+she replied. “I was perfectly ignorant, papa, of the dreadful
+consequences that would follow upon my silence.”
+
+“I wish to Heaven that you had never suffered any one to bind you to
+such a promise,” he cried.
+
+“But, papa, he--I mean, I could never have come home unless I had taken
+the solemn vow asked of me. At first I refused. I was determined to
+reveal all when I reached home. I was stubborn in my refusal to submit.
+But--when I found that I would never be permitted to come back unless I
+gave way, I yielded. I was so homesick and wretched, papa, that I could
+not hold out.”
+
+He crossed the room to her and took one of the cold, nerveless hands in
+his.
+
+“Aline, forgive me for asking you so hard a question,” he said, “for
+sometimes I am tempted to believe in your innocence still, in spite of
+all the circumstantial evidences to the contrary. My daughter, will you
+swear that you are as innocent and pure as when you left your home that
+dreadful day?”
+
+She lifted her white hand to Heaven and looked at him fearlessly with
+her bright, clear gaze.
+
+“Yes, papa, I swear before Heaven that I am as pure as when I went
+away,” she replied.
+
+Then there was silence for a moment. Mrs. Rodney had fallen down upon
+the bed, weeping bitter, but quiet tears. Mr. Rodney walked over to
+the window, and stood looking out again at the gloomy outlines of his
+neighbor’s house. It had acquired a strange fascination for him since
+he had learned that his daughter had been hidden there so long
+
+“I wonder,” he broke out, abruptly, “what I have ever done to Oran
+Delaney that he should have done this thing to me?”
+
+Aline had sunk wearily into her chair again. She looked around at him
+now, earnestly.
+
+“Papa, I am sure you have done nothing,” she said. “There are reasons
+relating to himself that compel him to wish the story of my presence in
+his house unknown.”
+
+“One thing I must know, Aline. This man who has so cruelly blighted all
+your prospects in life, does he love you?”
+
+“No, papa,” she replied, with something like wonder at his question.
+
+“Yet yesterday he risked his life to save yours.”
+
+“I think he meant that in some sort as a reparation,” she said, timidly.
+
+“Then it was he that sent you the ten thousand dollars?” interrogated
+her father, quickly.
+
+“It was he,” she replied.
+
+“Then you were right not to accept it,” he exclaimed. “Oran Delaney
+must make you a greater reparation than that for the ill you have
+sustained at his hands.”
+
+“He will not reveal the secret--we need not hope for it,” Aline said,
+despondently.
+
+“A thousand revealed secrets could not clear the stain from your name,
+my poor child,” he answered “You are irretrievably compromised by your
+stay in his house. There is but one atonement he can make you, and I,
+as the guardian of your honor, shall force him to that if it be at the
+point of the sword.”
+
+“Would you murder Mr. Delaney?” she exclaimed, in horror.
+
+“I will meet him on the field of honor and fight him until one or
+both of us be dead,” Mr. Rodney answered, so resolutely that Aline
+shuddered. A vision of the scene he threatened rushed over her mind.
+Oh, what a terrible price she was paying for the willful folly of that
+summer day long past!
+
+“Papa, you said there was one atonement he could make,” she said,
+timidly. “Will you tell me what you meant?”
+
+“He must make you his wife, Aline. He must give you the shelter of his
+proud, honorable name to wash away the stain he has cast upon your
+own. In no other way can he make atonement for his fault,” Mr. Rodney
+exclaimed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLV.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney’s firm and decisive declaration had the effect of
+frightening his fair young daughter. She looked at him, piteously.
+
+“But, papa, I do not want to be married,” she exclaimed, with such a
+childish air of dismay and surprise that he could have laughed if he
+had not been so miserable. “I do not want to be married, I should not
+like to be married,” Aline repeated, forlornly.
+
+“But, my dear, all women marry,” said her father.
+
+“Not all,” replied she; “I know several who did not. There are Miss
+Palmer, Miss Brown, Miss Robinson.”
+
+“Cross old maids, all of them,” Mr. Rodney replied. “I hope you will
+never be an old maid, Aline. Indeed, you must not think of such a
+thing. You will have to marry, and the man you marry must be Oran
+Delaney.”
+
+“I dare say he will not want to be married any more than I do,” said
+Aline, with unconscious hopefulness.
+
+A certain hard and grim expression came over Mr. Rodney’s handsome face.
+
+“He will not have much choice in the matter,” he replied.
+
+“Oh, papa!” the young girl cried, and a deep color rose up all over her
+face.
+
+“Well?” he said.
+
+“Would you give me to one who took me unwillingly?” she asked, in a
+tone of blended shame and reproach.
+
+He was silent a moment, and his brows knitted themselves together in
+a straight, hard line. Aline, gazing wistfully at him, saw that gray
+hairs had come into his brown locks that were not there a few months
+ago. Her heart thrilled with pain and remorse.
+
+“Aline, I do not know how to answer you,” he said. “God knows that I do
+not wish to force you upon any man. But your good name is irretrievably
+compromised, and nothing can clear it except a marriage with Oran
+Delaney. As you are, you can never hope to hold up your head in society
+again. As his wife, you would soon live down the scandal that now
+assails you. You would have some chance of happiness. He owes you this
+reparation, and I, as the true guardian of your happiness and honor,
+shall compel him to make it. It he refuses--” he paused, and an ominous
+light came into his eyes.
+
+“If he refuses,” she echoed, faintly.
+
+“Then I will kill him, or he shall kill me!” he replied, bitterly.
+
+Aline sat gazing at him like one stunned. All the horror of her
+position rushed over her.
+
+Was there indeed no other way out of the labyrinth of error in which
+she was involved than by this dreadful forced marriage?
+
+All the native pride within her rose up in arms against it. Could she
+give herself up to be an unwilling bride forced upon an unwilling
+bridegroom?
+
+She shrunk sensitively from the thought. Better be dead, she thought.
+
+She looked at her father and said, with a babyish quiver of the sweet,
+red lips:
+
+“Papa, I wish that Mr. Delaney had not saved me yesterday. I should
+then have been spared all this trouble and distress. My poor life is
+only a sorrow and disgrace to you all.”
+
+Mr. Rodney did not answer. Perhaps his troubled thoughts ran in the
+same channel.
+
+Aline waited a moment for him to speak, but as he remained silent and
+abstracted, she asked, timidly:
+
+“Papa, will you not tell me how you became possessed of my secret?”
+
+“What good can it do you to know?” he inquired.
+
+“None that I can think of,” she replied, wearily. “It was only my
+natural curiosity that prompted me to ask the question.”
+
+“At some other time, Aline, I will tell you,” said her father. “I would
+prefer not to do so at present.”
+
+And after a moment’s hesitation, he abruptly left the room. Aline
+remained sitting wearily in her chair, gazing into the leaping flames
+of the bright coal fire with sad blue eyes that could scarcely see for
+the thick mist of tears that filled them. Her heart ached drearily in
+her breast. Something like despair thrilled through her as she sat
+there with her small hands folded on her lap.
+
+“It were better if I had died yesterday--ay, it were better if I never
+had been born,” she murmured to herself, with a sudden passionate
+bitterness.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLVI.
+
+
+While Aline sat gazing drearily into the fire that winter eve, the
+grave, taciturn master of Delaney House lay languidly on a silken couch
+in his quiet library.
+
+The dark, handsome face had a worn and weary expression. It was pale,
+too, and the dark eyes were dim and heavy. His head rested wearily on a
+crimson satin cushion, and one hand was pressed against his brow, as if
+in pain.
+
+There was a light tap at the door, and then Mrs. Griffin entered and
+replenished the fire, that had commenced to burn low behind the steel
+bars of the grate. Then she stood looking at him anxiously a moment.
+
+“Your head aches?” she asked, questioningly.
+
+“Slightly,” he replied, indifferently.
+
+“Can I do nothing for you?” the old woman questioned, kindly.
+
+“No; it does not matter. The pain will wear itself out by and by.”
+
+She looked at him wistfully a moment, then went out quietly, leaving
+him to silence and repose again.
+
+The fire crackled merrily in the grate, the clock ticked softly on
+the marble mantel. Outside, the noiseless flakes of snow fell lightly
+against the window-pane. Gradually the twilight began to fall, and
+shadows gathered in the room.
+
+Mr. Delaney lay very still and quiet, with half-closed eyes shaded by
+his hand, his fine features grave even to sadness. In the gathering
+obscurity a heavy sigh drifted over his lips.
+
+Mrs. Griffin came back, lighted the library lamp, then paused and
+regarded him with a strange expression.
+
+He removed his hand and looked at her with his heavy eyes.
+
+“What is it?” he asked.
+
+“Oh, Mr. Delaney, there’s some one to see you!” she exclaimed.
+
+He started up, all his gravity and calmness stirred by angry
+displeasure.
+
+“Some one to see me? Have you forgotten my orders to admit no one?” he
+exclaimed.
+
+“No, sir, I have not forgotten,” she answered. “But she did not knock.
+She came slipping in so softly, like a ghost, that I was frightened.”
+
+“She? Whom?” he exclaimed, hoarsely.
+
+“Miss Rodney, sir.”
+
+“Miss Rodney--Aline--here in this house? My God!” he cried, abruptly.
+
+“Yes, sir, down in the kitchen, waiting to see you,” said Mrs. Griffin.
+“You see, I forgot to lock the door, and just at dark the knob turned
+soft like, and she came gliding in, still as a ghost and pale as one,
+too, sir. And she says to me, weak and nervous-like, ‘I _must_ see Mr.
+Delaney, quick. Go and ask him to give me an interview.’”
+
+He could only stare at her in blank astonishment.
+
+“I was so surprised and frightened, sir, that I did not speak one word
+to her, but just left her standing there shivering in the middle of the
+room, and came away to do her bidding. Now, what answer shall I take
+back? Will you see her, Mr. Delaney?”
+
+He hesitated a moment, and Mrs. Griffin added, respectfully:
+
+“I think she’s in a hurry, sir, and perhaps she’s afraid to stay down
+there alone.”
+
+He drew a long breath and answered:
+
+“Very well. You may show her up here.”
+
+Mrs. Griffin turned the dim lamp up to a brighter flame and hastened
+away to do his bidding.
+
+Oran Delaney remained standing in the center of the beautiful, lofty
+room, gazing expectantly at the door.
+
+In a minute he heard Mrs. Griffin’s heavy footsteps in the hall, with
+light, quick ones pattering beside them. The door opened quickly, and
+Aline entered alone.
+
+She was wrapped from head to foot in a long, dark cloak, from which
+her pale face gleamed like some beautiful white flower. Her dark blue
+eyes were black with excitement, her parted, panting lips, from which
+the breath came in quick little gasps, showed the haste with which she
+had sought his presence. She stood just inside the door, a dark, chilly
+little figure from which the melting snow-drops ran down in little
+rills upon the velvet carpet.
+
+Mr. Delaney shook off the trance of wonder that held him and went
+forward to meet her.
+
+“Miss Rodney, what has brought you back to this ill fated house?” he
+exclaimed.
+
+“I knew you would be surprised,” she answered quickly. “Mr. Delaney, I
+came here to ask you to marry me!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLVII.
+
+
+If the solid earth had parted beneath Oran Delaney’s feet, he could not
+have been more surprised than he was at those words from Aline Rodney’s
+lips. He did not answer, only stared at her in hopeless bewilderment.
+
+“I came here to ask you to marry me,” she repeated, clearly, thinking
+he had not heard her, and no blush stained the pale cheek, the white
+lids did not droop over the blue eyes that gazed at him frankly and
+gravely. What did she mean? Had she gone mad under the stress of her
+great trial?
+
+He went over to her and lifted one of the white hands that hung by her
+side. It was cold as ice as he held it in the warm clasp of his own.
+
+“Aline, child, I do not understand you. What was it you said to me?”
+
+He saw a little shiver creep over the slender form, but she looked up
+at him bravely, and repeated her words:
+
+“I want you to marry me, Mr. Delaney.”
+
+“To marry you, Aline? Do you then love me, my poor child?” he asked,
+gazing into the clear eyes with sudden compassion.
+
+She shook her small head gravely.
+
+“No, but I want to be your wife,” she said, and the words filled him
+with the most utter bewilderment.
+
+There she stood, a young, beautiful, intelligent girl, usurping his
+sex’s prerogative with a calm, unblushing face and clear, frank eyes
+that regarded him with the innocent light of a child’s--the calmness of
+an unawakened heart.
+
+“You do not love me, yet you wish to be my wife! Aline, are you
+dreaming, or am I?” he asked, drawing her forward into the warmth of
+the bright fire, for little shivers of deadly cold were shaking the
+girlish form from head to foot.
+
+He saw a sudden, passionate pain flame into the pale face. She threw
+out her hand with a gesture of despair.
+
+“No, I am not dreaming, nor are you,” she said. “I would to God that we
+were! This reality is more horrible than any dream!”
+
+“But, why--why should you wish--wish to--to--” he began, and paused,
+unable to continue, and feeling a shamed consciousness of a fiery,
+uncontrollable color overspreading his face. To be wooed in this calm,
+business-like fashion by this ridiculous child was too strange, too
+absurd for anything, and yet there were little thrills of rapturous
+emotion tingling along his nerves, his heart was beating quickly with
+emotion.
+
+The girl’s eyes had wandered to the leaping flames of the firelight.
+She turned them back gravely to his face.
+
+“Why do I wish you to marry me?” she said. “I will tell you, Mr.
+Delaney. The secret of my stay in this house has been discovered!”
+
+“You have broken your oath!” he exclaimed in sudden anger.
+
+She stood before him in proud silence, neither denying nor assenting to
+his affirmation.
+
+Gazing at the fair face a moment he felt that he had wronged her by the
+brief suspicion.
+
+“Aline, forgive me. I see that I am suspecting you unjustly,” he said.
+“But tell me, who has revealed the secret?”
+
+“I do not know,” she answered. “But only a little while ago papa came
+in and charged me with it. He was very, very angry.”
+
+“Angry with you?” he questioned.
+
+“Angry with you,” she answered, a faint color creeping into the pallid
+face. “He told me that you had forever compromised my good name, and
+that I could never take my place in the world, in society, unless you
+married me.”
+
+She was speaking to him with the simple directness of a child. He was
+staggered by her simplicity--assurance he would have called it in any
+other woman.
+
+“And so he sent you here to ask me?” he said.
+
+A look of terror came over the fair face. She glanced around her,
+fearfully.
+
+“No, I have stolen away, and if he misses me he will come here to seek
+for me,” she said. “I must hurry back, but first I must have an answer
+to my question. Tell me, Mr. Delaney, will you do as I have asked you?”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLVIII.
+
+
+It was the strangest question Oran Delaney had ever heard from a girl’s
+lips. He said to himself that Aline Rodney’s simplicity was simply
+matchless. If she had been reared within the walls of a convent she
+could not have seemed more ignorant of the offense she was committing
+against society, against the creed of the whole world, in asking a man
+to marry her, and thus usurping his masculine prerogative.
+
+Breaking in upon his stupid silence, she continued:
+
+“Only a marriage in name, you know, Mr. Delaney. I should not live with
+you, of course. Neither of us would care for that. If you gave me the
+shelter of your name at the altar I would go back then to my father’s
+house, and never trouble you again!”
+
+“You do not know what you are saying!” he cried out, passionately.
+“Never trouble me again! Oh, my God!”
+
+“Indeed I should not, Mr. Delaney!” she cried out, hastily, and quite
+mistaking the cause of his agitation. “I should never come here again.
+All that I wish is to satisfy papa and the world. The simple marriage
+ceremony would do that.”
+
+“And you would be content with that, Aline?” he asked, gazing down into
+her splendid violet eyes with a look she could not understand.
+
+“Quite content,” she answered, letting the long fringe of her lashes
+droop low before that anxious gaze.
+
+“But I am a wealthy man, you know, Aline,” he said. “Should you not
+wish to have some of my income settled upon yourself?”
+
+She raised her blue eyes fearlessly to his face.
+
+“I think I have told you before that the wealth of the world could not
+make up to me for the trouble you have caused me,” she said, proudly.
+
+“And you would refuse it even as my wife?” he asked.
+
+“Yes,” Aline answered, steadily, and then there was a brief silence.
+The man turned his back upon her and walked to the furthest corner
+of the room. In that moment he was paltering with the most terrible
+temptation of his life. The angels of good and evil were fighting
+fiercely for his soul.
+
+She waited in nervous impatience for him to return to her, and when he
+did after a few minutes, she spoke eagerly, without waiting for him to
+speak:
+
+“Well, your answer, Mr. Delaney--is it yes or no?”
+
+He parried the question by one that was cruel and cut deep:
+
+“Miss Rodney, do you know that it is a bold and unmaidenly act for you
+to ask a man to marry you?”
+
+The barbed shaft went home. The slight form quivered as if transfixed
+by an arrow, the blue eyes dilated and looked at him with an agony of
+reproach in their lustrous depths.
+
+“Did you not know it?” he repeated, harshly, almost sternly, while he
+averted his eyes in cold disdain.
+
+“I should have known it if--if only I had stopped to think,” she
+cried, and the great waves of crimson began to roll over her face on
+which he would not look. “I was so frightened for you that I put self
+aside. I thought only of saving you, and now”--she broke down suddenly,
+and finished the sentence through hard, dry sobs, “now you scorn and
+despise me!”
+
+“Why were you frightened for me?” he asked, curiously.
+
+“No matter--and yet God knows I would have saved you if I could--do
+not forget that, Mr. Delaney, since you will not marry me!” she cried,
+desperately.
+
+“No, I will _not_ marry you!” he cried, with a furious bitterness that
+was quite inexplainable. “Oh, go, girl, go! Why do you stay here to
+torture me thus?”
+
+“I am going,” she answered, with a proud bitterness, as she tore the
+door open and rushed from the room. She ran along the hall, down the
+stairway, flew through the hall and the kitchen, pausing not until she
+found herself again out in the dark, starless night, with the soft,
+swift flakes of snow still falling steadily, and wrapping old Mother
+Earth in a pure white winding sheet.
+
+“I shall never go home again--never!” said the girl, lifting a white,
+desperate face in the wintery darkness. “May God pity and guide me in
+my wretched exile!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIX.
+
+
+Oran Delaney drew a long breath of relief as the door closed behind the
+slender form of Aline.
+
+He had been face to face with a great temptation, and he had mastered
+it by the strength of an indomitable will. But the great drops of sweat
+beaded his white brow as he sunk into a chair and gazed blankly at the
+carved oaken door that had shut Aline out from his sight.
+
+“She thinks me cold, cruel, heartless,” he muttered. “But, oh, my God,
+what if I had taken her at her word? Ah, no, no, better let her go pure
+and innocent, though miserable, than such a fate as that, poor child.”
+
+He remained silent a few moments, then rose from his chair and began to
+pace restlessly up and down the floor.
+
+“Ah, Heaven, if only I knew what to do!” he cried. “It is a shame that
+her pure, sweet life should be sacrificed to the keeping of my bitter
+secret. Ah, if only I could beat down my wretched pride and confess the
+truth! Aline, Aline, I would give uncounted gold if only I had never
+seen your face.”
+
+His distracted thoughts received a sudden and startling interruption.
+
+A sound he had not heard for years echoed loudly through the house.
+
+It was the peal of the long-unused door-bell. Once, twice, thrice, it
+echoed through the house, loudly and harshly, as if grasped by a hasty
+and authoritative hand.
+
+Mrs. Griffin came flying into the room and met her master coming out.
+
+“Oh, sir, the door-bell,” she gasped, breathlessly.
+
+“Go back and guard her,” he answered. “I will answer the bell myself.”
+
+He went with slow steps along the hall. Something told him what was
+coming. He was not surprised when he opened the door and saw his
+neighbor on the threshold.
+
+“Mr. Rodney!” he exclaimed.
+
+“Mr. Delaney!” replied the other as he stepped deliberately into the
+wide, dimly-lighted hall.
+
+And then they stood gazing at each other in silence a moment. Mr.
+Rodney spoke first in low, deep voice of concentrated bitterness and
+repressed fury.
+
+“I have come for my daughter,” he said.
+
+“She is not here,” Mr. Delaney answered, steadily.
+
+Mr. Rodney’s hand clinched itself as it hung by his side, until the
+sharp nails were buried in the tender flesh.
+
+“Do not answer me with falsehoods,” he said, fiercely. “She has fled
+from her home, and I am quite sure that she is here.”
+
+“I repeat that she is not here,” answered the master of Delaney House,
+with a forced calmness. “She was here but a little while ago, but she
+went away again.”
+
+“Went away again,” repeated Mr. Rodney, with white lips. “Where did she
+go?”
+
+“Where should she go but to her home?” queried Oran Delaney, in amaze.
+
+“Where, indeed?” echoed the distracted father. “You might better ask
+yourself that question, Oran Delaney! You who have ruined her young
+life, might know better how to answer it!”
+
+“Come with me, Mr. Rodney. We have much to say to each other,” said
+Oran Delaney.
+
+He led his uninvited guest up to the quiet library where but a little
+while ago Aline had stood, asking him to save her ruined life by making
+her his wife. It was the father now instead of the daughter--quite a
+difference, Oran Delaney said to himself, with grim pleasantry.
+
+He placed a chair for Mr. Rodney, but the latter declined it and stood
+up stiffly, with his arms folded over his breast. Their glances met,
+and Mr. Delaney saw bitter hatred in the dark-blue eyes whose likeness
+to Aline’s struck him with a strange pain.
+
+“You have come to curse me, Mr. Rodney,” he said, drawing a long, deep
+breath.
+
+“I have come to do more than that,” the man answered, passionately. “I
+have come to demand reparation for my daughter’s wrongs!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER L.
+
+
+It was exactly what Oran Delaney was prepared to hear. Nay, he would
+have been disappointed if the proud, noble looking man before him had
+not made that passionate, determined assertion. He said to himself
+that, if he had been the father of Aline Rodney, he would have killed
+any man who had thus shadowed her life. He knew that he had a true man
+and a devoted father to deal with, and the groan that struggled up
+from his breast was not one of fear, but rather of grief that he could
+not make the reparation demanded.
+
+“Let me ask you one question, Mr. Rodney,” he said. “Who has betrayed
+Aline’s secret to you?”
+
+Mr. Rodney looked at him steadily, as he answered:
+
+“I have no objection to telling you, sir. It was a New York detective,
+who has been upon Aline’s track ever since her first disappearance from
+her home.”
+
+“How has he discovered it?” Mr. Delaney exclaimed, while a terrible
+pallor overspread his face. He knew what those keen New York detectives
+were. Was all his humiliating secret, indeed, revealed to the carping
+world?
+
+“I cannot tell you that,” Mr. Rodney answered. “It is the man’s own
+secret. Suffice it to say that I am now fully aware that Aline spent
+the three months of her strange absence under this roof. You will not
+deny that fact?”
+
+“Would to God that I could!” groaned Oran Delaney, involuntarily.
+
+“Ah! you are frightened at the consequences of what you have done!”
+sneered the outraged father.
+
+It he had expected to arouse a tempest of wrath in the other by his
+contemptuous sneer, he was mistaken. Mr. Delaney looked at him gravely,
+even sadly, but he made no answer to the angry words, His heart and
+mind were in a tumult. He could not think clearly. Aline’s beautiful,
+anguished face kept rising between him and her father. It haunted him,
+he could not banish it from his thoughts.
+
+“Because I have grieved her so, I will speak no angry words to her
+father,” he said to himself.
+
+He turned to the angry man and said, with grave dignity:
+
+“I am quite willing to offer you all the reparation in my power, Mr.
+Rodney, for the injury I have done you and your daughter.”
+
+“I think you know that there are but two ways of settling our
+difficulty,” Mr. Rodney said, gazing sternly into the troubled eyes of
+his neighbor.
+
+“You mean--”
+
+“The first way would be to marry my daughter and give her the shelter
+of your name,” said Mr. Rodney.
+
+“And the second?” queried his neighbor.
+
+“Satisfaction at the sword’s point” the other answered, sharply.
+
+“A duel?” Mr. Delaney exclaimed.
+
+“Yes.”
+
+Then for a brief space they were silent, and gazed gravely at each
+other. The visitor was the first to break the deep, strange silence
+that reigned in the room.
+
+“You have your choice, sir. Which shall it be--a death or a bridal?”
+
+“Most unfortunately, I can have no choice in the matter,” Oran Delaney
+answered, in calm, repressed tones that showed no trace of fear or
+dread. “It must be the duel.”
+
+“You refuse to marry Aline--you prefer death rather than be the husband
+of my beautiful child!” Mr. Rodney exclaimed, in mingled anger and
+wonder.
+
+“I have already told you that I have no choice,” the other answered.
+
+“Of course you will allow me to doubt that assertion?” sneeringly.
+
+“I will allow _you_ to do so for your daughter’s sake: but it would not
+be safe for any other man to say so much before my face.”
+
+They gazed fixedly at each other. Mr. Rodney’s lips were just starting
+to speak, when the contemplated words were frozen on his lips by a
+terrible interruption. That terrible voice, which any one who had ever
+heard it never forgot, rang suddenly and startlingly through the house,
+waking all the sleeping echoes into awful life. Mr. Rodney’s blood
+tingled in his veins, every individual hair on his head seemed to stand
+erect with horror. He sprung forward and caught Mr. Delaney by the arm.
+
+“What is it?” he cried, hoarsely.
+
+His host did not answer for a moment. He stood still, listening to
+those ringing cries with a look like despair on his face.
+
+“What is it?” Mr. Rodney repeated.
+
+Then Mr. Delaney turned his tortured eyes on the other’s face.
+
+“It is the ghost of Delaney House,” he said, in a changed and hollow
+voice.
+
+“The ghost!” Mr. Rodney cried.
+
+“Yes,” Mr. Delaney answered, and then both were silent, while those
+shrill cries filled their ears with a horrible din.
+
+A pause, and then Mr. Delaney said, abruptly:
+
+“Do not think me inhospitable, but you had better go. Delaney House is
+no place for you or any one. It is haunted. It is the abode of unhappy
+spirits. Go now, and send some one to me in the morning on the business
+you propose.”
+
+Mr. Rodney obeyed mechanically. He was so surprised and confused by the
+sudden, dreadful sounds that still assailed his ears that he seemed to
+have no volition of his own. He moved toward the door that Mr. Delaney
+held open, and passed quickly through it, followed by his host.
+
+“Are you sure that Aline is not here?” he asked, as they passed through
+the hall, his mind suddenly recurring to the fact of her absence an
+hour ago which had been discovered by her mother and reported to him in
+a frenzy of alarm.
+
+“I give you my word of honor that she left me only a minute before you
+entered. You must have met her only for the darkness of the night. I
+am quite sure you will find her at home when you return,” Oran Delaney
+answered, confidently.
+
+“I shall send a friend to you in the morning to make arrangements,” Mr.
+Rodney said, presently.
+
+“Very well. I shall make my will to-night,” Mr. Delaney answered, with
+grim pleasantry.
+
+Then he opened the heavy door and ushered his visitor out into the
+snowy night, in whose gloom and darkness Aline had disappeared a little
+while ago.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LI.
+
+
+When the retreating footsteps of his neighbor had died in the stillness
+of the night, Oran Delaney closed and locked the door against the outer
+darkness and returned to the library. He walked to the hearth and stood
+there gazing thoughtfully down into the glowing fire.
+
+“The last night of my life, perhaps,” he said, half aloud. “Ah, me! how
+terribly I have been tempted to-night! How easy it would have been to
+have flung honor to the winds and yielded to the impulse that prompted
+me to seek happiness at whatever cost. Happiness--‘ay, there’s the
+rub’--should I have been happy? Would not conscience have pursued me
+with the bloodhounds of remorse?”
+
+The weird shrieks of the fabled ghost of Delaney Hall had died away
+into silence now. In the stillness of the room a heavy sigh was
+distinctly audible as it drifted across the dark mustached lips.
+
+“Poor child! Now I understand why she came to me on that strange
+mission to-night. She would have sacrificed herself to appease her
+father’s wrath and to save me! And I had to be cruel and unkind to her
+because I was not free!”
+
+The wind sighed in the trees outside, and the bare branches rustled
+eerily. He thought to himself, with a shudder, that the snow must be
+deep by now. It had been falling almost steadily since yesterday. He
+remembered how the melting flakes had trickled down from Aline’s dark
+cloak.
+
+“It must be cold and deep by now,” he thought. “I wish to Heaven that I
+were lying beneath it! Perhaps I shall be soon.”
+
+He went to his desk, drew out writing materials, and began to write
+steadily. Half an hour passed in this occupation, when he was suddenly
+startled again by the loud alarum of the door-bell. The harsh clang
+pealed through the house discordantly. He pushed back his chair and
+hurried out into the hall.
+
+“It grows late. Who can be coming now?” he said.
+
+He opened the heavy door, and in the dim light of the hall lamp again
+saw Mr. Rodney’s face. It was pale with deadly wrath, the blue eyes
+were lurid with rage.
+
+“You have deceived me, Oran Delaney,” he blazed forth, in accents of
+concentrated rage and hate. “Aline has never returned to her home. She
+is still here!”
+
+“Here!” echoed the astonished master of Delaney House.
+
+“Yes, here!” Mr. Rodney answered, stormily. “You need not deny it! Oran
+Delaney, if you do not give me back my child, I will kill you where you
+stand!”
+
+The other reached out and drew the half-frantic man into the hall,
+closing the heavy door.
+
+“My God, what do you mean?” he cried. “Aline not returned to her home?”
+
+Astonishment and dismay were depicted on his countenance, but the
+infuriated man would not believe the signs of alarm and dread written
+on the face of the man whom he believed to be the destroyer of his fair
+young daughter’s happiness.
+
+“Do not act a part with me,” he cried. “I warn you I will not bear it.
+Aline has left her home and fled to your protection. If you do not
+immediately restore her to me, I will not answer for the consequences!”
+
+“She is not here, Mr. Rodney. I swear to you that she left this house
+five minutes before you entered it, this evening.”
+
+“I will not listen to your prevarications. I _know_ that Aline is here.
+I will not leave Delaney House to-night without her!” cried Mr. Rodney,
+in a low tone of deadly menace, as he fixed his lurid, blazing eyes on
+the face of the man whom he hated with a terrible hate.
+
+He was cruelly tortured. The thought of Aline’s dishonor was like a
+thorn in his heart. He was filled with a deadly rage against her. She
+was so young and beautiful to be so wicked. He felt as if he could
+easily kill her--her and the man who had so cruelly wrecked her young
+life.
+
+The grim, hard smile that played around his writhing lips in the dim
+light of the stately old hall was terrible to see.
+
+“I am a desperate man,” Mr. Rodney continued, hoarsely. “You have taken
+from me my ewe-lamb. You must look to yourself. I shall not leave this
+house to-night until I find her. If you do not give her up, I shall
+search the house for her--ay, even if I have to pass over your dead
+body to do so!”
+
+They stood looking at each other steadily. Oran Delaney had whitened to
+a deadly pallor.
+
+“Mr. Rodney, you know not what you ask,” he said. “Can you not take my
+word of honor that your daughter is not here? If you searched my house
+thrice over you would find nothing but dust and gloom and ghosts of the
+dead past.”
+
+“What about the hidden blue room?” sneered Mr. Rodney.
+
+Mr. Delaney changed color at those words.
+
+“The blue room?” he stammered.
+
+“Yes, the blue room where you kept my child hidden so long. Let me look
+there,” said Mr. Rodney.
+
+“It is empty. There is no one there,” said Mr. Delaney.
+
+“It is a falsehood! I do not believe you!” Mr. Rodney cried out, beside
+himself with fury, and for a moment there reigned an ominous silence.
+The hot blood leaped to Oran Delaney’s dark face, his black eyes blazed.
+
+“I come of a race that does not brook such words as those, Mr. Rodney,”
+he said, coldly and sharply.
+
+“Clear yourself of the imputation, then, by proving your innocence,”
+the other retorted.
+
+“My word is my proof,” Mr. Delaney replied, proudly, and again there
+was a short silence.
+
+Mr. Rodney, goaded to madness by his wrongs, raised his head and
+regarded his foe fixedly.
+
+“I do not take your words as proof,” he said, angrily. “I demand the
+right to search this house. Do you allow it?”
+
+“No!” thundered Mr. Delaney, fiercely.
+
+“Then I shall do so without your consent!” exclaimed Mr. Rodney,
+advancing and attempting to thrust him aside.
+
+Oran Delaney firmly barred his further progress by placing himself
+between him and the stairway.
+
+“You dare thwart a wronged and maddened father!” cried Mr. Rodney, in
+almost maniacal wrath. “You thus bring down doom upon your own head!
+Thus do I avenge poor Aline’s wrongs!”
+
+A pistol gleamed in his upraised hand; there was a sharp report, a
+flash of fire, a cloud of thick smoke. Oran Delaney fell forward on his
+face, and lay there motionless.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LII.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney did not pause to see the result of his maddened deed. He
+threw the smoking pistol far from him, sprung over the body of his
+prostrate victim, and rushed up the stairs, two at a time, in his
+eagerness to find his runaway daughter.
+
+At the head of the stairway he found himself in another long, wide
+hall, richly carpeted and dimly lighted by a large swinging lamp. On
+either side stretched a row of closed doors, and as he gazed at them
+irresolutely one on the left opened hurriedly, and a woman rushed out
+and came running down the hall toward him. His heart leaped into his
+mouth. Could that be Aline?
+
+But as she came quickly up to him, he saw that he was mistaken. It was
+not Aline. It was an old woman in a cap and glasses.
+
+She ran up to him and caught him quickly by the arm, and then he saw
+that there had been a mutual mistake, for when she saw his face she
+recoiled from him in terror.
+
+“My God!” she said, “I thought that it was Mr. Delaney. What are you
+doing here, sir?”
+
+“I am seeking my daughter. Bring her to me, woman,” he cried, wildly,
+catching her by the sleeve as she was about to rush away from him.
+
+“You are Mr. Rodney,” she said, looking curiously into the strange face
+with its wild, excited eyes.
+
+“Yes, I am Mr. Rodney,” he answered, in hoarse, strained accents. “I
+am the father of the wickedest girl that ever cursed a father’s life.
+Woman, woman, where is my Aline? Bring her here to me, that I may curse
+her for her sins!”
+
+“O, Mr. Rodney, she is not here,” cried Mrs. Griffin, regarding his
+wild strange visage tearfully.
+
+“It is false. I _know_ that she is here,” he thundered at her.
+
+“Oh, sir, you are mistaken. Miss Rodney is not here,” she answered.
+“But I heard the sound of a shot. What was it? My master--”
+
+“Yes, I have murdered your master. He stole my pure darling from me,
+and now he has paid for the sin with his life. He lies down there in
+his own hall, shot to the heart by an avenging father,” cried Mr.
+Rodney, with a harsh laugh, of satiated hate and revenge.
+
+Mrs. Griffin did not wait to hear another word. She pushed him from
+her, with a piercing cry of grief and terror, and ran headlong down the
+stairway. Mr. Rodney, released from her detaining presence, set about
+his search for his missing daughter.
+
+Outside, the soft, cruel snow still fell with slow regularity, and the
+rising wind tossed it into deep, treacherous drifts. He dreamed not
+that while he sought her amid the gloomy splendor of Delaney House, his
+fair and tender Aline was wandering in all the perils of that winter
+night. He did not believe the combined assertions of Oran Delaney and
+his housekeeper that Aline was not in the house.
+
+Where could she be but here? he thought, and in his heart he vowed that
+if he found her he would kill her, too--the wicked girl who had broken
+her father’s heart and made him a wretched murderer.
+
+In his horror at her sin, he was fast becoming a monomaniac. The blood
+upon his hands only whetted his thirst for more. In his madness, it
+seemed to him that the horror of her sin could only be wiped out in her
+blood, shed as an expiation.
+
+He had vaguely noticed that the door from whence Mrs. Griffin had
+issued had been left slightly ajar. Perhaps she was in there, he
+thought. He would go and see.
+
+He crept softly along the hall toward the door of that room. He vaguely
+wondered if this was the hidden blue room of Dr. Anthony’s story.
+Would his sight be blasted by the sight of her, his little Aline, who
+had been the pet and darling of his life, sitting there contentedly
+in splendid sin, mistress of the vile wretch whom he had slain in his
+anger?
+
+He crept softly to the door and peered in through the narrow crevice
+made by the slight opening of the unlatched door. He peered into the
+room, and it was with difficulty that he repressed a cry of horror.
+Heavens! Was this a fiend that his straining gaze encountered?
+
+It was a large, splendidly furnished room into which he gazed, all
+purple and gold, with soft, luxurious couches and chairs, large, fine
+pictures on the walls, and everything that could please the eye save
+and except the many little objects of delicate _bric-à-brac_ in which
+feminine eyes and tastes delight. The room was utterly void of such
+trifles. It was splendidly, even garishly furnished, but everything was
+strong and substantial. There was nothing light and airy in the large,
+lofty apartment, with its large, white lamp swung from the ceiling
+out of reach, and the glowing fire before which a wire guard had been
+carefully placed.
+
+But the wire guard had been ruthlessly torn away from the fire now, and
+the sole inmate of that luxurious room was a creature that might have
+struck terror to a heart even more desperate than was the lawyer’s as
+he gazed into the room.
+
+“My God, what is it? Can it be a human creature, or is it a fiend from
+the nether world?” he asked himself.
+
+He might well ask himself the question. The creature on which he gazed
+was a small, misshapen thing, with such horribly distorted features,
+as caused a shudder of loathing to run through Mr. Rodney. The crooked
+form was clothed with an almost barbaric splendor of apparel--in
+crimson satin, embroidered in golden thread, while the fire of
+priceless diamonds flashed from the yellow arms and neck, and upon the
+tangled braids of coarse, black hair that fell down her back.
+
+She--for he had concluded that it was a woman from the long, black
+hair, and the womanly apparel--had snatched a fire-brand from the
+glowing grate, and was now running about the room, uttering discordant
+shrieks of fiendish glee, while with a ruthless, vandal hand she held
+the flaming brand now here, now there, against the satin hangings and
+the filmy lace curtains, the lambrequins, the silken fringe of the
+chair-covers, until all became a smoldering mass, through which small
+jets of lurid flame began to creep weirdly.
+
+Mr. Rodney gazed for a moment like one fascinated upon this horrible
+scene, and then he made a bold and desperate dash into the room.
+
+He ran up behind the horrible fire-fiend, threw his arm over her
+shoulder, and wrenched the flaming brand from her clasp, threw it down
+upon the floor, and trampled it into a black, charred mass. Then he was
+obliged to turn round and defend himself.
+
+For the dreadful woman had thrown herself fiercely upon him, and was
+choking his life out with her long, talon-like fingers and sharp nails,
+that held his throat in a vise-like pressure. Half strangled, he made
+a supreme effort against the furious maniac, and succeeded in tearing
+her hands away from their murderous hold. She was wonderfully strong
+and agile, but he held her firmly, and wild screams of rage issued
+from her distorted lips. He recognized the sounds as those that had so
+frightened him in the earlier part of the evening.
+
+“This, then, was the ghost of Delaney House!” he thought grimly. “My
+God what can this terrible creature be to Oran Delaney, and does Aline
+know of her existence?”
+
+He held her firmly by both hands while she bit and tore and raved in a
+frenzy of maniacal fury. He was perplexed what to do with her. He knew
+that she was a dangerous creature, but he would not have harmed her for
+the world. She was already too terribly blasted in body and mind. But
+he longed to make some disposal of her that he might make some effort
+to quench the smoldering flames that already filled the room with a
+thick and suffocating black vapor.
+
+She solved the question for him herself by suddenly wrenching her hands
+from his and making a rapid exit through the open door. It did not
+occur to him to follow her. Instead he threw all his energies into the
+task of subduing the flames.
+
+He tore down the heavy satin hangings and trampled them beneath his
+feet, he found an ewer of water and deluged the smoking cushions of the
+chairs and lounges fighting bravely amid the smoke and fire, reckless
+that his strong hands were torn and burned with the superhuman efforts
+that he made.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LIII.
+
+
+But when all was done that a brave and energetic man could do Mr.
+Rodney found that his efforts had been spent in vain.
+
+The maniac fire-fiend had fired the filmy lace curtains and the blaze
+ran along the inflammable material, licking it up with a fiery tongue
+of flame and mounting to the ceiling where it ignited the curtain-rods
+and then the ceiling. The lawyer gazed at it an instant, and seeing the
+leaping tongues of flame spurting out he realized that he could do no
+more toward stopping the fire. He ran out of the smoking-room to give
+the alarm in the street, forgetting for a moment the terrible deed he
+had done and that his own safety demanded instant flight.
+
+Rushing wildly down the stairs he encountered Mrs. Griffin coming up at
+a pace as headlong as his own.
+
+She caught him entreatingly by the arm.
+
+“Oh, sir,” she cried “you have not quite killed him! He breathes
+yet--he can talk a little. Oh for pity’s sake bring some one to him. I
+cannot leave him alone to go myself.”
+
+Her words recalled him to himself. In the excitement of the past few
+moments he had momently forgotten that down-stairs in the wide hall lay
+a man whom he had ruthlessly slain. It rushed over him now with a keen
+pang of remorse.
+
+“He lives!” he exclaimed and there was a keen note of relief in his
+voice. Already the thought of murder had begun to lie heavily on his
+hitherto unspotted soul.
+
+“Yes, and you must bring a doctor quick,” Mrs. Griffin said imploringly.
+
+He glanced back up the wide stairway into the hall. It was already
+filled with a volume of thick smoke that was pouring out from the
+doorway of the room he had just quitted.
+
+“Look!” he said.
+
+Her glance followed his.
+
+“My God! have you fired the house?” she cried, in a terrified tone.
+
+“No; but it was fired by the hand of a deformed maniac in that room you
+quitted,” he answered.
+
+“And she?” cried Mrs. Griffin.
+
+“Has escaped!” he answered.
+
+“Oh, I always thought it would come to this!” cried the housekeeper,
+wringing her plump hands. “I thought she would murder us all in our
+beds, or set fire to the house; and she has done it, just as I thought
+she would. And where is she, Mr. Rodney--not in that room, surely?”
+
+“No; she ran away after she had half strangled me!” he replied, with a
+shudder at the remembrance of the uncanny creature.
+
+“My God, then she has escaped! Oh, what will Mr. Delaney say? I must
+go and find her! She must not leave the house!” cried Mrs. Griffin,
+breaking from him and continuing her flight up the stairs.
+
+He followed and overtook her.
+
+“Woman, are you mad?” he cried to her. “Of course she must leave
+the house. Every one must leave it. It will be burned to the ground
+presently! And hark you, if my erring child is here--if she perishes in
+this holocaust of flame--her blood will be upon your head!”
+
+“Oh, Mr. Rodney, she is not here!” Mrs. Griffin answered, so earnestly
+that he could not but believe her. “She was here a little while ago,
+but she went away. I let her out of the kitchen door myself. I saw her
+go away.”
+
+“Then, where can she have gone?” he cried distractedly.
+
+“I do not know; but I must find that poor crazy soul!” she cried,
+again breaking from him and fearlessly rushing into the smoke filled
+hall.
+
+Mr. Rodney ran down the steps, flung wide the front door, and sent his
+voice ringing out into the snowy night:
+
+“Fire! fire! fire!”
+
+A distant shout answered him from some belated wayfarer whose ear had
+been caught by the ominous words. He waited for no more, but, leaving
+the door ajar, ran back into the hall, and knelt down by the side of
+the man whom, in his murderous wrath, he had tried to murder just now.
+
+Mr. Delaney lay quite still and motionless in the spot where he had
+fallen, save that Mrs. Griffin had turned him over upon his back,
+giving him better facilities for breathing. The long fringe of the
+lashes lay dark and stirless, against his cheeks, but his chest heaved
+faintly, showing that life was not quite extinct. Strange to say, Mr.
+Rodney was overjoyed to find that he lived.
+
+“I am glad I did not kill him,” he muttered. “For deeply as I have been
+wronged, it was terrible to feel myself a murderer.”
+
+He examined the wound, and found that his bullet had entered Mr.
+Delaney’s shoulder near the breast, but not necessarily in a vital
+part. With care he might, perhaps, recover.
+
+“But what shall I do with him now?” he thought, in perplexity, hearing
+a babel of voices outside. “He cannot remain here, and it would be too
+dangerous to remove him far.”
+
+He decided rapidly that he could not do less than to remove him to the
+cottage.
+
+By some strange revulsion of feeling, he was now most anxious to save
+the life of the man whom but a little while ago he had been tempted to
+kill.
+
+A score of men came hurrying over the threshold of the open door just
+then. By the help of some of these the wounded man was carefully
+removed to Mr. Rodney’s house, a physician was hastily summoned, and
+the men returned to the scene of the fire. The only fire-engine the
+small town afforded was quickly upon the spot, and every effort was
+made to save the burning house.
+
+But all in vain. The devouring element had obtained too deadly a
+headway. It was impossible to beat back the swiftly encroaching
+flames. They leaped into the air like hydra-headed serpents, coiling
+and twisting in mad delight over their doomed prey; they lighted the
+darkness of the snowy night into fierce and lurid grandeur; they licked
+up at a breath the beautiful articles of _virtu_ that generations of
+dead and gone Delaneys had gathered in their ancestral home at the
+cost of many thousands of dollars. They spared naught that came in
+their way, and when the gray dawn looked with dim eyes at the scene of
+desolation, nothing remained of the Delaney House but a huge black pile
+of smoking ruins.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LIV.
+
+
+It was a strange mockery of fate that had thrown Oran Delaney, wounded
+and helpless, beneath the roof of the man whom he had injured, and who
+had wounded him near unto death.
+
+Yet so it was; and he was likely to remain there several weeks, for
+the physician, who was summoned to attend him, declared that the wound
+was a serious, if not fatal, one, and that it would be some time before
+he could be moved with safety.
+
+Mr. Rodney, who had been temporarily maddened by excitement last
+night, had come to his senses now. He made no attempt to fly from the
+consequences of his assault upon Oran Delaney. He went and delivered
+himself up to the authorities, accusing himself of the crime.
+
+They laughed at him at first--it was so strange for a man to accuse
+himself of crime without even a witness to testify against him--but
+he insisted that his statement was true; so they put him under bonds
+to appear when Mr. Delaney was well enough to come into court, and
+released him.
+
+In a day or two, when he was well enough to be seen, he told Oran
+Delaney what he had done.
+
+“So that, whether you live or die, your wrong will be avenged,” he
+said, grimly.
+
+“I do not wish it so,” said Oran Delaney, gravely. “In any case, I
+shall not appear against you. You only did what I, in your place, would
+have done. No one can blame you.”
+
+Mr. Rodney said to himself that if the man’s sense of honor was so
+lively, he should not have acted as he did with regard to Aline. He
+said nothing, however--only turned upon his heel and left the room. His
+heart was on fire with anxiety, for he had heard no word of Aline since
+that snowy eve when, finding that her secret was discovered, she had
+fled from her home.
+
+Neither had any trace been found of the escaped lunatic who had fired
+Delaney House. Mrs. Griffin had been so suffocated by the smoke and
+flame of the hall that she had been unable to prosecute her search far.
+She had been forced to retreat before she had penetrated all the rooms.
+It was the same way with the men who had gone to the rescue. The smoke
+and flame had beaten them quickly back. So it was not certainly known
+yet whether the dreadful creature had fallen a victim to the fury of
+the fire her own hand had kindled, or if she had wandered out into the
+stormy night and perished in some of the huge drifts of snow that the
+wild wind had blown together in out-of-the-way places.
+
+But the storm was over now, and the deep snow was melting away. It was
+three days since Delaney House had been burned.
+
+The hidden secret for whose keeping poor Aline Rodney had paid so dire
+a penalty, belonged to the world now. Oran Delaney, in the troubles
+that had crowded thickly upon him, had thrown pride to the winds and
+revealed all.
+
+Let us listen to him as he tells his own story to Mr. Rodney.
+
+“I will tell you my story briefly now,” he said, “and then you will
+understand why I have led such a strange, retired life. And,” he added,
+with a dark-red flush creeping over his handsome face, “you will know,
+too, that I have never harmed your beautiful young daughter as you
+think. She is as innocent and pure as she is fair.”
+
+Somehow the words carried conviction to Mr. Rodney’s heart. He waited
+eagerly for the story Mr. Delaney had promised to tell him.
+
+His first words filled him with horror and amazement.
+
+“That poor, deformed maniac whom you saw in that upper room, who set
+fire to Delaney House, was my wedded wife,” he said, with a shudder he
+could not repress.
+
+“Great Heavens, your wife! How could you wed that creature?” Mr. Rodney
+cried out, startled.
+
+“How, indeed!” echoed Mr. Delaney, with a groan. “But that is what I am
+about to tell you. I was made the innocent victim of a terrible fraud.”
+
+Mr. Rodney began to feel strangely interested in this man whom his
+avenging bullet had laid low upon a bed of pain. He waited eagerly for
+further disclosures.
+
+“Who could have perpetrated such a monstrous fraud?” he exclaimed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LV.
+
+
+A look of bitter pain came over Mr. Delaney’s handsome face at those
+words from Mr. Rodney’s lips.
+
+“Who could have been so cruel, so wicked?” repeated the lawyer.
+
+And then Mr. Delaney answered:
+
+“One to whom I owed a debt of gratitude, and who caused me to pay the
+heaviest price man ever paid for a like debt.”
+
+“I do not understand you,” said Mr. Rodney.
+
+“I did not suppose you would. My reference was too obscure. I will
+make my meaning more clear,” said Mr. Delaney. “When I first went on
+my travels abroad, I met in France a native of that agreeable country,
+by name Monsieur Sanson. Our first meeting was on an occasion, when he
+saved my life, in what manner I will not now relate, as my strength
+would not hold out for the recital. But we became friends from that
+hour, and in course of time fellow-travelers. I found my new friend one
+of the best-read and most agreeable men I had ever met. He was clever,
+cultivated, full of _bon camaraderie_--in short, a man of the world,
+full of wit and _bel esprit_. He was middle-aged and good-looking and
+appeared to have the means of living well, and even extravagantly, at
+his command. He told me that he had no family ties with the exception
+of one daughter, a young and lovely creature then being educated in the
+retirement of a convent school. Of this daughter, his ‘_chère_ Julie,’
+as he lovingly called her, he never wearied of talking and expatiating
+on her manifold perfections. Once he showed me a small portrait of her.
+It represented the loveliest brunette I ever beheld. I fell in love
+with her and begged to be presented, but he laughingly refused, telling
+me that he did not intend to have his plans for _chère_ Julie spoiled
+in that way. After awhile he told me more seriously that in France the
+parents seldom permitted daughters to have any male acquaintances,
+fearing unfortunate love-affairs for them, as they were usually
+affianced by their parents to men of wealth and position.”
+
+“I have heard that that is the way they manage affairs of marriage in
+France,” said Mr. Rodney at this point.
+
+“I found it so to my cost,” groaned Oran Delaney, and then there was a
+short silence. He lay still with closed eyes, breathing heavily.
+
+“You have unduly wearied yourself in talking so much. Defer the
+remainder of your story until you are better,” said Mr. Rodney.
+
+“No, I will go on. I am anxious now that the secret I have kept so long
+in my morbid pride should be revealed. I am anxious to clear the name
+of Aline from the stain I suffered to rest upon it to save my own,” he
+answered.
+
+“My poor Aline. Shall I ever find her?” sighed the wretched father.
+
+“God grant you may. Oh, if I only were not chained down to this bed
+by my weakness, I would search the world over, but I would find her!”
+cried Oran Delaney with feverish impatience.
+
+A vision came over his mind of the fair young face and the sweet
+supplicating eyes, he seemed to hear her voice again as she spoke the
+strange words that made the warm blood run tingling through his veins
+with rapture.
+
+“I want to be your wife,” she had said, in her clear, frank voice, with
+her large eyes lifted childishly to his face, while in her exceeding
+innocence she had never dreamed of the passion of pain and despair in
+the man’s heart as he refused her request.
+
+“Ah, Heaven, if only I might have taken her at her word,” he sighed to
+himself, “I would have taught that young heart to love, and that soft
+cheek to blush at my glance. I would have won her heart as well as her
+hand. Aline, my poor darling, where are you to-night?”
+
+He put away the thought of her with a great effort of will and returned
+with a shudder to the subject of his story.
+
+“I was young and impressible, Mr. Rodney. My heart was touched by the
+beauty of the picture I had seen, and Monsieur Sanson’s refusals to
+present me to the original only fanned my boyish passion into hotter
+flame. I importuned him often, but he only laughed at me, artfully
+leading me on by his apparent reluctance to yield to my desires. Ah,
+what a simple, gullible young fool I was in those days.”
+
+He paused and drew his breath with a heavy tortured sigh.
+
+Mr. Rodney held a reviving cordial to his lips. His heart was pierced
+with remorse as he looked at the pale face and heard the weak voice,
+and realized what a wreck he had made of the strong man.
+
+“It would be much better if you waited until you are stronger before
+you finish,” he said, compassionately, though his anxiety to hear the
+rest was very strong.
+
+“No, I cannot wait. Let me tell my story and clear Aline’s name, then
+if I die, what matter? I have long been weary of life,” sighed Oran
+Delaney.
+
+There came to him across the mist of the long intervening months a
+memory of the words he had read to Aline when she lay wounded and
+impatient in the beautiful blue room--the words she had rejected in the
+blindness of her ignorant youth:
+
+ “How many days will it be, I wonder,
+ And how will their slow length pass
+ Till I shall find rest in silence under
+ The trees and the waving grass?”
+
+“Not long now, perhaps,” he thought, wearily, for he felt strangely
+weak and faint, and his sufferings were most severe from his wound.
+
+He cleared his throat and slowly proceeded:
+
+“When I look back at that past time, Mr. Rodney, I am lost in wonder at
+the consummate young fool I was in those days. Would you believe me,
+sir, that in my infatuation for a girl I had never seen, but of whose
+perfections I had been told day by day for months, I proposed to marry
+Monsieur Sanson’s pretty little school-girl daughter?”
+
+“Impossible!”
+
+“I did, Mr. Rodney, and I was in the most serious earnest. Monsieur
+Sanson pretended to be shocked when I laid the matter before him, but
+promised that he would consider it, and assured me that he would have
+no objection to an American son-in-law, declaring that he admired
+Americans individually, and as a nation, to a most excessive degree. I
+was delighted at his blarney, which slipped from his tongue as easily
+as from a son of the Emerald Isle.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LVI.
+
+
+“Monsieur Sanson must have been a villain,” exclaimed Mr. Rodney,
+vehemently.
+
+“He saved my life once, and now he is dead. I scarcely feel at liberty
+to express my real opinion of the man,” said Mr. Delaney.
+
+“All obligations were canceled by the wrong he did you,” said Mr.
+Rodney.
+
+“Perhaps so. He saved my life, but then he certainly made it valueless
+to me,” said the wounded man, musingly.
+
+After a moment, he continued:
+
+“After a short time and without any further solicitation on my part,
+he consented to allow me to consider the beautiful Julie my _fiancée_,
+but only on condition that we never met until the bridal day. Although
+I was most eager to meet my fair intended bride, I was forced to
+acquiesce in his decision. Indeed, I did not greatly care to change
+it. I was carried away by the romantic idea of never meeting my bride
+until the hour that gave her to my eager arms. Its very difference to
+the customs of my own country had its peculiar charm for me. Monsieur
+Sanson wrote to his daughter, and she consented to the marriage in a
+_naive_ pretty letter that transported me with rapture. It was arranged
+that the fair one would leave her convent school to become my bride in
+about six months. Do I weary you with all this preliminary explanation,
+Mr. Rodney?” inquired the invalid, pausing suddenly.
+
+“On the contrary, I am deeply interested in your story,” replied the
+lawyer.
+
+“I will hasten to the end, then,” said Oran Delaney. “We continued our
+travels for awhile, when about two months before the time set for my
+marriage, Monsieur left me, to return to his villa at Nice, ostensibly
+to make preparations for the marriage. He was to write to me when to
+come, but in little more than a week I was telegraphed to go to his
+death-bed. He had accidentally shot himself.”
+
+He was growing excited now. The feeble breath came from his lips in
+great palpitating gasps.
+
+“You are over-tasking yourself,” Mr. Rodney reminded him again.
+
+“No, I shall soon have done now,” Mr. Delaney answered. “Well, I went
+with all haste to Nice, and I arrived there late one night, and found
+Monsieur Sanson dying, indeed. They told me that he had been handling
+a revolver when it exploded in his hand, fatally wounding him. He lay
+at the point of death, and his one anxiety was his fair young daughter
+whom he was leaving alone in the world. Would I have any objection to
+fulfilling my marriage contract now, he asked me, that he might die
+satisfied?
+
+“I told him I would marry Julie at once, and his mind was at once
+relieved of its load of care. Preparations were made for a midnight
+marriage. A priest was summoned. Everything was arranged with perfect
+legality.”
+
+He paused and swept his aristocratic white hand wearily across his brow.
+
+“How it all comes back to me,” he said. “It was a beautiful summer
+night. A wind from the sea came into the room through the open windows,
+mingled with the breath of tropic flowers. A dim light burned in the
+room where the dying man lay breathing heavily. They brought my bride
+in to me. I could not make out either her face or her form for the
+great billows of snowy lace in which she was enveloped from head to
+foot, but I fancied that all womanly loveliness was centered in her
+form. Well, they made her my bride, and then led her quickly from the
+room, for Monsieur Sanson’s death-hour was near at hand. He thanked me
+feebly for what I had done, and then he bound me by a solemn oath to
+protect and cherish his Julie as long as she lived, never leaving nor
+forsaking her.
+
+“‘I have already promised the priest all that,’ I said, in wonder.
+That was no matter, he said, and persisted in his request that I would
+solemnly swear to do what he asked. An oath made to a dying man would
+be more sacred, he said.
+
+“Though I thought him unreasonable, I could refuse nothing to a dying
+man; so I took the oath he asked of me. I thought it could not greatly
+matter anyhow. I had no idea of ever forsaking my fair young foreign
+bride. I was too much infatuated with the charming young creature the
+fertile imagination of the Frenchman had painted for me.
+
+“He died in a little while after the ceremony and left me to comfort
+his bereaved daughter. It was not until after the funeral that she
+allowed me to see her. She was prostrated by the shock of her father’s
+death, they told me.
+
+“Oh, Mr. Rodney, can you guess what a terrible shock it was to me when
+I beheld her at last?
+
+“I had in my mind the vision of an angel. I imagined my bride lovely in
+mind as in person, and thought myself most fortunate in the possession
+of such a perfect creature.
+
+“When they showed me the creature to whom I had bound myself--the
+misshapen, deformed, blighted creature, with a mind as blasted and out
+of shape as her body--do you wonder that I almost went mad?”
+
+“Surely the laws of any land would have freed you from such a
+creature!” exclaimed Mr. Rodney, indignantly.
+
+“I made no attempt to free myself,” said Oran Delaney. “I was so
+shocked at finding myself placed in such a terrible position, so
+ashamed of the foolish ease with which I had fallen into the trap set
+for me, that I was like one dazed or stunned. It was some little while
+before I realized it, and then the weight of my oath to the dying held
+me back from taking any steps toward freeing myself from my horrible
+incubus.
+
+“Monsieur Sanson had left a letter for me, too. It was a confession.”
+
+“A confession!” repeated Mr. Rodney.
+
+“Yes. It appeared that the story of the accidental shooting was all a
+hoax. The man had given himself the death-blow with a suicidal intent.”
+
+Mr. Rodney uttered an exclamation of horror and dismay.
+
+“He had committed suicide, but why?”
+
+“Because he had run through his property and was reduced to beggary.
+He had led a fast and gay life and had nothing left to live upon. The
+villa and all its furniture were mortgaged beyond their value, and were
+to be seized. There would be nothing left for him and the deformed
+maniac, his daughter, whom, despite her afflictions, he seemed to
+cherish with a strange morbid affection.”
+
+Mr. Rodney could not repress a shudder of disgust. He thought of his
+three brilliant, beautiful children with a feeling of pride, and he
+wondered that even a father’s heart could have cherished tenderness for
+the dreadful, misshapen maniac of Delaney House.
+
+“So he formed that dreadful plan for providing his deformed and maniac
+daughter with a husband to take care of her, and then he consummated
+it in the way I have told you. When it became impossible to enjoy the
+wealth and pleasures of this world any longer, he sent himself out of
+it, with a shocking deliberateness, and shifted his burden upon my
+shoulders.”
+
+“He was a villain! But you were not compelled to accept the loathsome
+legacy he bequeathed to you. The marriage, being with a person of
+unsound mind, was really null and void in the eyes of the law,” said
+the lawyer.
+
+“I did not resort to the law to help me out of my trouble,” said Oran
+Delaney. “I was too proud, for one thing, to let the public know
+how shamefully I had been duped. I was bitterly ashamed of my own
+credulity; besides, I was weighted down by the solemnity of my oath to
+the dying. I could not forsake poor Julie Sanson, even though I had
+been so horribly duped and deceived. I had sworn to devote my life to
+her; and, in his letter of confession to me, Monsieur Sanson again
+committed his daughter solemnly to my care, urging that, as he had once
+saved my life, it was but right that I should devote it to the daughter
+left so helpless and forlorn by his sinful death.”
+
+“He had much better have let you die, than saved your life to such a
+horrible end!” exclaimed Mr. Rodney.
+
+“Much better,” sighed Oran Delaney. “But, as it was, I accepted his
+dying charge. I brought Julie Sanson to America, and confided her to
+the care of my old nurse, Mrs. Griffin. I have lived at Delaney House
+in seclusion for years, shunning my kind, because in my morbid pride,
+I had sworn that the carping, censorious world should never know my
+dreadful secret. Mrs. Griffin has been most faithful in her trust.
+
+“We lived on quietly there, and poor Julie’s mania developed itself
+in two forms. She had a fierce thirst for human blood, and a most
+inordinate love for finery, delighting to array her dreadful form in
+the richest robes and most brilliant jewels. In the hope of subduing
+her bloodthirsty mania, I humored the harmless taste for dress to a
+great extent. I constantly made additions to her wardrobe, of the most
+gorgeous and dazzling apparel, and I provided her with a jewel-box of
+splendid paste imitations of diamonds. She never wearied of decking
+herself in these things, and would be quiet and docile for weeks
+together in placid enjoyment of them. Again her mania for shedding
+blood would seize upon her, and she would fly at me and at Mrs.
+Griffin in a fury of rage, with murder flashing from her eyes. On one
+occasion she accidentally got out of her room, possessed herself of a
+tiny jeweled dagger, and flew through the house like a raging lioness
+seeking her prey. On that occasion she wounded me first, and then your
+beautiful Aline!”
+
+As if overcome with horror, he groaned aloud and buried his face in the
+pillow.
+
+“Much as I would like to hear the remainder of your story, I must
+refuse to listen to you longer now, for I can see that you are
+completely exhausted,” said the lawyer. “I shall leave you now to
+repose. To-morrow, if you are better, you may continue your story.”
+
+“But I am so anxious to clear Aline in your eyes that I am too
+impatient to postpone my story,” said Oran Delaney feebly, for it was
+quite true that he was exhausted by the efforts he had made.
+
+“Nevertheless, I shall refuse to hear any more to-day,” answered the
+lawyer, with a smile. “I am going out now, and I shall send Mrs.
+Griffin in to take charge of you.”
+
+He left the room, and the old nurse came in and installed herself by
+his pillow. The next morning, after the refreshment of a sound night’s
+sleep, he continued his story to Mr. Rodney.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LVII.
+
+
+“I would sooner have died than have wronged your willful, innocent
+child, Mr. Rodney,” he said. “When she came into the garden that day I
+had no thought but her pleasure. She seemed but a child to me, and I
+saw no harm in her going into Delaney House with me to share my lunch.
+I had been so long secluded from the world that I did not remember its
+hard rules. I was pleased with the beautiful, happy girl, and I thought
+that her people had treated her unfairly, in leaving her at home,
+while they went away to enjoy themselves. In a languid, careless way I
+allowed her to enjoy herself. It seemed very easy to her to do so.”
+
+“She had a sunny, happy temper when all went well with her,” said Mr.
+Rodney, with a heavy sigh to the memory of his self-exiled daughter.
+
+“Yes, I thought so,” said Oran Delaney, echoing the sigh. “I saw that
+she was willful and a trifle wild, but I thought nothing of it. She was
+too young and fair to be worldly-wise. Poor child, would that she had
+been! She had never then entered the fatal portals of Delaney House.”
+
+“Fatal indeed!” groaned the afflicted father.
+
+“I blame myself that I let her enter there,” said Oran Delaney. “The
+child must have charmed me, for I forgot my usual prudence and allowed
+myself to be pleased in her happiness. She ate her lunch with me, then,
+frightened at the flight of time, left me and ran out into the hall to
+go home. It was then that the accident happened to her.”
+
+Mr. Rodney listened with painful interest.
+
+“While she was going though the hall,” continued Mr. Delaney, “a series
+of horrible shrieks saluted our ears from the upper hall. Horrified at
+my carelessness I bade Aline fly home, and I rushed up the stairs to
+confront the dangerous maniac. I met her in the upper hall, arrayed in
+all the splendor of her wedding-robes, with a flashing dagger in her
+hand and fury flashing from her eyes. She rushed at me with a murderous
+shriek, and before I could disarm her she had thrust the keen point of
+her dagger into the fleshy part of my arm. The keen pain threw me off
+my guard a moment, and in that moment the would-be murderess escaped
+me and flew down the stairs. Heedless of my wounded arm, I followed
+her, but was just one minute too late. Just as I reached her, she had
+pursued Aline through the deserted parlor, and the poor girl fell
+across the threshold wounded in the breast by the maniac’s dagger. I
+came up to them just in time to arrest the second descent of the blade.
+Mrs. Griffin came to my assistance, and together we disarmed Julie, and
+locked her into her room again.”
+
+He paused, drew a heavy sigh, and then continued:
+
+“Then my folly and selfishness began. I knew that I ought at once to
+apprise Aline’s parents of her accident, and yet I also knew that to
+do so must be to disclose the hidden secret of my deformed and maniac
+bride to the world. My morbid self-consciousness shrunk from it. I felt
+that I could not endure the ordeal. Hastily, and without counting the
+cost to the victim of Julie’s dreadful mania, I decided upon my course.
+I removed Aline to a comfortable chamber, and Mrs. Griffin attended
+upon her faithfully. I went to Maywood and brought Doctor Anthony to
+see her. He did not consider the wound dangerous, so I did not have him
+renew the visit. I considered it too hazardous to my secret. You may
+well look at me reproachfully, Mr. Rodney. I can understand now how
+culpably I acted, but then my conscience was deadened within me by my
+sensitive horror of the world’s finding out my bitter secret.”
+
+Mr. Rodney had no words to answer him. He sat listening in painful
+silence.
+
+“Aline was very angry, when she recovered consciousness and found that
+I was determined not to apprise her parents of her situation. I told
+her that she should never leave Delaney House until she swore solemnly
+never to divulge the secret of her whereabouts and the manner in which
+she came by her wound. She refused in the bitterest terms at first,
+declaring that she would never keep the secret from her parents. I
+told her that she should never even see them again until she obeyed my
+dictation.”
+
+“My poor girl!” sighed Aline’s father.
+
+“I was hard and cruel; I recognize it now, although I did not then
+comprehend the enormity of what I was doing,” said Oran Delaney. “Aline
+was bitterly angry. She declared that she would never submit to such
+injustice; and she worked herself up into such a state that she became
+dangerously ill. There were six weeks when we nursed her night and day,
+scarcely believing that she would live from one day to another.”
+
+“And yet you would not let us know! I do not believe that I can ever
+forgive you,” cried Mr. Rodney.
+
+“I can never forgive myself,” Mr. Delaney answered, sadly. “But I was
+willfully blind; I never once realized the full enormity of my offense
+against you and your daughter--my selfish misery made me desperate. I
+was agonized by her sufferings, but I never once relented. When she at
+length convalesced and renewed her entreaties to go home, I steadily
+refused to allow her to do so until she had bound herself to solemn
+silence. She was as obdurate as I was, at first. She affirmed that
+she would never do so. But, at the end of three months, her girlish
+patience gave way, and, in her anxiety to see her dear ones again, she
+weakened and solemnly bound herself to all that I asked her. Then,
+after telling me, in a gush of girlish passion, that she hated me, she
+went home.”
+
+He paused, and there was a deep silence in the room. He was thinking
+of the night when the graceful young figure had flitted out from the
+doors of Delaney House, leaving it darker and more gloomy than ever.
+He recalled the last moment of her stay, when, with her small hand
+clinched in bitter, impotent wrath, she had said, scathingly:
+
+“I hate you, Oran Delaney, for all that you have made me suffer!”
+
+The words had pierced his heart like a sword point. They had remained
+with him ever since, growing harder to bear day by day. He could not
+bear that those frank blue eyes should rest on him with hate and scorn.
+It was like a wound in his heart.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LVIII.
+
+
+Mr. Rodney was thinking too. He remembered the night that Aline had
+come home. All that was strange in her manner then was explained away
+now. He remembered how hard and stern he had been with her; how he had
+been goaded to desperation by the fear that she was a miserable sinner.
+A weight of care was lifted from his mind by Oran Delaney’s revelation.
+
+“God, I thank Thee!” he cried, lifting his hands involuntarily to
+heaven, “that my beloved daughter is proved innocent of all the evil
+laid to her charge.”
+
+“She is innocent as an angel,” said Oran Delaney. “I do not ask you to
+believe my unsupported testimony. Mrs. Griffin will confirm all that I
+have told you.”
+
+He was silent for a moment, then added, gravely:
+
+“I wish you to make public to the world all that I have told you, Mr.
+Rodney. It is my dearest wish, whether I live or die, to have Aline’s
+memory cleared from all stain. Let all my folly and shame be known, all
+my pride and weakness, so that she be proven innocent and deserving.”
+
+“It is hard upon you, but it is only just to Aline and her family,”
+said Aline’s father.
+
+“It is just, and I deserve it,” said Oran Delaney. “The world will
+censure me; but let it do so, I am ready to bear it. Indeed, it will be
+a relief to my mind to have the truth known. I am weary of evasion and
+concealment, even if concealment were possible any longer.”
+
+A look of grave anxiety was on his pale, drawn face.
+
+“There is a weight upon my heart that nothing can shake off,” he said.
+“Poor Julie Sanson--she whom I swore to the dying never to leave nor
+forsake--oh, what has been her terrible fate? Is she dead in the ruins
+of Delaney House, or in the drifts of snow?”
+
+“Whichever has been her fate, it is a most happy release for her
+imprisoned soul,” said Mr. Rodney. “You cannot regret her!”
+
+“No; only the horrible manner of her death, if, indeed she be dead,”
+Mr. Delaney answered.
+
+“I do not believe that there can be any doubt as to that,” said Mr.
+Rodney. “If she had lived, we must have heard of it. My own opinion is
+that she never escaped from the burning house.”
+
+“It is most unlikely,” said Mr. Delaney, and then he lay silent, musing
+deeply: “Was Julie Sanson, the poor, deformed lunatic dead, indeed? Was
+he free, indeed? Free--his heart gave a great throb of almost painful
+rapture at the thought--to marry Aline Rodney if she would give herself
+to him?”
+
+“Tell me one thing,” said Mr. Rodney, breaking in, abruptly, on his
+musing mood. “Why did Aline come to you that night when I found out her
+secret?”
+
+They looked at each other, steadfastly. A hot, red flush mounted to
+Oran Delaney’s face.
+
+“She wished me to save the honor of her name by linking it with mine,”
+he said, in a low, pained voice.
+
+“And you?” said Mr. Rodney, anxiously.
+
+“I was not free, you know. I was bound to Julie Sanson by that wretched
+farce,” answered the other.
+
+“You refused her request?”
+
+“I could do no less,” Oran Delaney answered, in a low, tortured voice.
+
+“My God, then, the child has been driven desperate! Who would have
+dreamed that my fury that night would have driven her to such a step!
+I shall never see her again. She has gone away and died of shame for
+her thoughtlessness,” cried Mr. Rodney, wringing his hands in impotent
+despair.
+
+“No, no, it was not thoughtlessness, it was the act of an angel,”
+cried Oran Delaney. “It was to save me from the threatened duel. She
+had no thought of self at all! And I, oh, my God, if she had not been
+an angel, I should have taken her at her word, for the temptation was
+almost too great for human endurance. For I love her, Mr. Rodney, with
+all the madness of a first, great love. Guess how cruelly hard it was
+to me to hear her sweet voice pleading for that which would have been
+Heaven itself to me, and to be forced to put her away from me!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LIX
+
+
+There was a moment’s silence and Mr. Rodney gazed steadily at the
+flushed face and sparkling eyes of the man who thus avowed his love for
+beautiful Aline.
+
+“I love her,” he repeated. “She won my heart in the three months while
+she stayed in Delaney House. At first I thought her a spoiled willful
+child, whose sharp tongue and determined obstinacy excited my anger,
+but as I grew to know her better, when I found out what a warm and
+tender little heart beat under all her brusqueries and waywardness,
+she stole into my heart, unconsciously to myself. I would have given
+all the world for the power to make her my wife. But, alas! even as I
+love her, she hates me, and justly, too, I own, for she has been most
+deeply wronged by my cowardly silence: I cannot blame her if she never
+forgives me for my fault.”
+
+Mrs. Griffin came in with some tea and toast. While she was arranging
+it Mr. Delaney asked, suddenly:
+
+“Will you tell me now, Mr. Rodney, how you became possessed of the
+secret of Aline’s whereabouts?”
+
+The lawyer glanced with a smile at Mrs. Griffin.
+
+“If I should tell you that your good nurse there is the traitor, would
+you believe me?” he said.
+
+Mrs. Griffin looked at him, red with indignation.
+
+“Indeed, sir, you need not charge it on me,” she said, quickly. “Mr.
+Delaney knows that no one is more faithful to his interests than I am.
+Why, sir, I carried him in these arms when he was a baby, and do you
+think any one could make him believe I could betray anything he wanted
+kept secret?”
+
+The humorous twinkle in Mr. Rodney’s blue eyes deepened. He waited
+until the old woman had arranged the invalid’s repast to his
+satisfaction, and then said slyly:
+
+“Your new lace cap is very becoming, Mrs. Griffin. I should like to
+know where you bought it?”
+
+It was very fortunate that the nurse had put down the tea-tray, for
+otherwise she must certainly have dropped it, such a start she gave
+at those words. She stared at Mr. Rodney, her complexion turning to a
+brilliant crimson.
+
+“Why, what do you mean, Mr. Rodney?” she gasped amazedly.
+
+“Have you forgotten Cheap Jane?” he asked, smiling.
+
+Instantly Mrs. Griffin’s mind went back to that snowy eve when, in
+her loneliness, she had been overpowered by the temptation to admit
+the female peddler within the tabooed precincts of Delaney House. The
+guilty red of her cheeks grew brighter. She glanced apprehensively at
+her master. He was gazing at her in wonder.
+
+“What does he mean?” Oran Delaney asked her.
+
+She shook her head, and glanced inquiringly at Mr. Rodney.
+
+“Yes, I remember Cheap Jane,” she said. “But what has that to do with
+Miss Rodney and my master?”
+
+“If you will tell Mr. Delaney all that you know about Cheap Jane, I
+will show you the connection,” he replied.
+
+Mrs. Griffin was heartily ashamed at the thought of her adventure with
+Cheap Jane being exposed; but she saw that it was too late to attempt
+concealment. She made a virtue of necessity, and related the story to
+Mr. Delaney, frankly apologizing for her fault.
+
+“I know I did wrong,” she said, turning to Mr. Rodney; “but still I
+cannot see what harm was done by my imprudence. The old creature only
+stayed a little while.”
+
+“That is where you are mistaken,” said Mr. Rodney. “Cheap Jane spent
+the night in Delaney House.”
+
+“Spent the night?” she echoed, staring at him stupidly:
+
+“Yes,” he replied.
+
+“But how could that be?” exclaimed Oran Delaney, looking up from his
+untasted toast. He was too much excited to eat.
+
+“It happened in this way,” said the lawyer. “When Mrs. Griffin went
+to answer your bell, the peddler slipped into a deserted room, and
+hid herself and her basket of potions in an unused closet. She thus
+remained in Delaney House all night.”
+
+Mrs. Griffin wrung her plump hands, and cried out, dejectedly, “The
+wretch!”
+
+But Oran Delaney did not utter one word; he only gazed inquiringly into
+the face of the lawyer.
+
+“She remained at Delaney House all night,” repeated Mr. Rodney. “After
+the inmates were locked in unsuspecting slumber, the hidden peddler
+came forth and prowled through the house. You were sick that night,
+Mr. Delaney. In your fever and unrest you talked to the walls in your
+room--you revealed the secret of Aline’s stay in your house.”
+
+“Great Heaven!” he cried.
+
+“It is strange, but true,” said the lawyer. “And your uninvited guest,
+the peddler, who had stolen into your house like a thief by night,
+heard all. It was from him I learned all I knew--namely, that Aline had
+been a wounded prisoner in Delaney House.”
+
+“You said ‘from him’--yet I understood that the peddler was a woman,”
+exclaimed Oran Delaney, quickly.
+
+“A man in disguise,” explained the lawyer.
+
+“Then it was no common person--the plan was a deep-laid one,” said Oran
+Delaney, with an inquiring look into the other’s face.
+
+Mr. Rodney shook his head.
+
+“No, it was not I,” he said. “It was a detective whom I employed last
+summer to trace Aline. He failed at first, but when she came back to us
+and refused to reveal the secret of her absence, he set himself to work
+to ferret out the truth.”
+
+“And succeeded,” said Oran Delaney, with bitter sadness. “And where is
+your clever detective now?”
+
+“He is again on the track of my missing daughter. I have for the second
+time employed him to find her.”
+
+“He shall be richly rewarded if he succeeds,” exclaimed Oran Delaney,
+earnestly.
+
+He lay silent for a moment, and then added gravely and thoughtfully:
+
+“I can bear no resentment against your clever detective, Mr. Rodney. I
+am glad now that the truth has been found out. A burden is lifted from
+my heart.”
+
+“You are not angry with Mr. Lane for his bold invasion of your house,
+and his betrayal of your secret?” exclaimed Mr. Rodney.
+
+“No, I am not angry. I am glad that the truth has been revealed. I feel
+quite curious to see your Mr. Lane.”
+
+“Perhaps you will permit me to bring him to see you?” said the lawyer.
+
+“Willingly,” answered Oran Delaney.
+
+He did so the next day, after he had told Mr. Delaney’s story to him,
+and the good-looking detective spent an hour with the wounded man. Mr.
+Delaney was most anxious that Aline should be found.
+
+“Only find her,” he said, earnestly, to Mr. Lane, “and you shall name
+your own reward.”
+
+A strange expression gleamed in the eyes of the detective.
+
+“I shall make every effort to find her,” he said. “But I tell you
+frankly, Mr. Delaney, I am not working up this case for money.”
+
+“Of course you have a professional interest and reputation at stake,”
+said Mr. Delaney.
+
+“It is not that, either,” said the detective.
+
+They gazed steadily into each other’s eyes.
+
+“I will tell you the truth, Mr. Delaney,” said Mr. Lane. “I find that
+my early professional interest in this case has merged into a romantic
+one. People call me a woman-hater where I am best known, and I confess
+that female society has hitherto had no charms for me. But the beauty
+and sweetness of Miss Rodney have won my heart. If I find her I shall
+ask no reward from her father except her hand, if she will give it to
+me.”
+
+Mr. Lane paused and waited for a reply. He did not dream what an
+agonizing pang tore through Oran Delaney’s heart in that moment.
+
+“Do you think she loves you, Mr. Lane?” he faltered then, in a hollow
+voice.
+
+“Scarcely; for I have had no chance to woo her,” said Mr. Lane. “And
+yet it is so much better that she should marry that perhaps she will
+waive that consideration. Afterward I could teach her to love me.”
+
+Again that fierce, jealous pang tore through Oran Delaney’s heart. A
+vision came over him of the beautiful young face and the violet eyes
+with their shady lashes of deepest jet. How much more beautiful it
+would be when the woman’s heart was awakened in her. How that charming
+face would be glorified by love!
+
+“Ah, Heaven, only to call her mine!” he groaned to himself. “It is
+cruel, cruel, that this man should take advantage of her trouble to try
+to win her. He has no right to her. She is far above him. Her beauty
+and sweetness make her the peer of any one in the land.”
+
+He silently repeated some lines to himself:
+
+ “A king might lay his scepter down,
+ But I am poor and naught;
+ The brow should wear a golden crown
+ That wears her in its thought.”
+
+He looked fixedly at Mr. Lane.
+
+“Why do you say that it will be better for Miss Rodney to marry?” he
+asked, slowly.
+
+“Surely, you know that her long stay in Delaney House has so damaged
+her maiden fame that she can never take her proper place in the world
+until sheltered by some good man’s name,” said the detective.
+
+“You forget that I have explained everything, and that Miss Rodney’s
+reputation is cleared from every shadow of blame,” exclaimed Mr.
+Delaney.
+
+“No, I do not forget it. But I know that the world is censorious and
+cruel, and I am not sure whether it will accept your statement as true.
+At any rate, I am prepared to help Miss Rodney all that I can. I am
+rich and prosperous. I will marry her and take her away forever from
+this place where she has suffered so much if she will have me.”
+
+He paused a moment, and then added:
+
+“Of course if you were not already married, Mr. Delaney, you would be
+the most proper husband for Miss Rodney, but, as it is, I feel myself
+quite free to woo and wed her if I can, and to save her from all the
+troubles she would be likely to endure, unmarried.”
+
+He went out and left Mr. Delaney to some bitter reflections.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LX.
+
+
+When Mr. Delaney’s physician came next day he declared that his patient
+was not as well as he had expected to find him. He looked apprehensive
+over him.
+
+“What have they been doing to you?” he asked, brusquely.
+
+“I have had the best of care, doctor,” Mr. Delaney answered.
+
+The old physician looked at him, curiously. The dark, handsome face was
+grave, and there was a settled sadness on it. But the tone, more than
+the words, struck the physician. A heartache ran drearily through it.
+
+“You are fretting over something,” he said. “Come, Delaney, this will
+not do. You will never get well at this rate.”
+
+Oran Delaney only smiled, but he said to himself that he did not
+greatly care. He had long been tired of his life. What matter how soon
+the end came. There would be no one to grieve for him, except his
+faithful old nurse. He thought of Mr. Rodney, but he said to himself
+that no jury in this southern land would convict him even if his victim
+died. All would think him justified in avenging his daughter.
+
+That day Mr. Delaney made his will. He left Mrs. Griffin a comfortable
+legacy, left a large sum of money to take care of the maniac, Julie
+Sanson, if she was ever found, and the residue of his large fortune he
+bequeathed unconditionally to Aline Rodney.
+
+And then he said to himself that he was ready to die. He had provided
+the best he could for the future of the girl whom he loved, and he had
+no more left to live for. His life had been ruined in its prime by a
+bad man’s treachery. Hope, love, happiness, henceforth could be only
+names to him. He did not care to live.
+
+A great despair had fallen upon him. He had wakened up to the one
+grand passion of his life, and it was utterly hopeless. He loved Aline
+Rodney, but she hated him for the sorrow he had brought into her young
+life. She would marry Mr. Lane, perhaps, when she came home again, and
+Oran Delaney said to himself, with a pang of the bitterest despair,
+that he would rather be dead than live to see the fair young creature
+he loved the wife of another.
+
+Days went and came, and he lay there wearily and hopelessly, and the
+physician went and came daily, growing more and more puzzled over him.
+
+“He goes down hill every day, and yet, the case was very favorable at
+first,” he said to Mr. Rodney. “I am puzzled over him. I am afraid it
+is the mind wearing out the body. What do you think about it?”
+
+“I have the same opinion as you,” the lawyer answered. “It is not the
+wound I gave him, it is mental trouble that is killing him. It is the
+old fable of the sword wearing out the scabbard.”
+
+“Can nothing be done?” asked the old physician, who had become deeply
+interested in his new patient.
+
+“Nothing, I am quite sure,” Mr. Rodney answered, for he knew now all
+the pain and sorrow and remorse that were killing Oran Delaney.
+
+“Then he must die. All my medical skill can avail nothing to save him,”
+answered the physician, regretfully.
+
+In the meantime Mr. Rodney had followed out Mr. Delaney’s wishes. He
+had made public all that strange secret, whose keeping had cast that
+black shadow over Aline’s life.
+
+Chester was all agog with curiosity and excitement. It was a nine days’
+wonder.
+
+As often happens in such cases, there was a complete revulsion of
+feeling. The great wave of public sentiment rolled toward Aline in
+a gush of pity and sympathy. The world was not as bad as Mr. Lane
+had believed it. No one was found to doubt the story Mr. Delaney had
+told on what all believed to be his death-bed. It was so strange and
+romantic, it appealed so powerfully to that love of the wonderful and
+mysterious inherent in all hearts, that every one believed it. If Aline
+had been at home society would have made her the heroine of the hour.
+It would have taken her to its heart of hearts, and worshiped her as
+blindly as it had wronged her. It would have made atonement for its
+hasty judgment, but pity and regret were now alike too late. Aline had
+vanished out of her old life as utterly as if she were dead and buried.
+The places that had known her knew her now no more. In her home they
+mourned her as one dead.
+
+In the stress of her trouble and anxiety, poor Mrs. Rodney had taken
+down to her sick-bed again. The pretty, self-possessed, dignified lady
+was completely broken down. She blamed herself as the author of all her
+beautiful daughter’s sorrow.
+
+“I was too harsh, too strict with her. Her faults were only those of
+youth and inexperience, united to high spirits. Her punishments were
+too severe, and I am rightly punished for my hardness of heart,” wept
+and sighed the poor mother, in the long winter nights, while she
+tossed upon her sleepless bed, tormented with remorse and misery over
+the treatment she had given Aline.
+
+A month passed away, and it was time for the return of Dr. Anthony and
+Effie from their bridal tour. They were to settle down to housekeeping
+in a pretty house the doctor owned at Maywood.
+
+Mrs. Rodney yearned for Effie’s return. She longed to pour into her
+sympathizing ears all her sorrow and despair at the loss, for the
+second time, of her beautiful Aline.
+
+The cottage was a most dreary place for sunny-tempered Max Rodney,
+in those days. He missed his beautiful sisters, the gentle, graceful
+Effie, and the light-hearted, volatile Aline. His mother was always
+in tears, now, and seldom left her room. Besides, there was a real
+invalid in the house, and the enforced quiet was most irksome to the
+high spirited lad whose gay voice, blending with his younger sister’s,
+had been wont to waken joyous echoes from garret to cellar of the roomy
+cottage. In despair, Max took to spending the most of his time from
+home, unreproved by his grief-stricken parents, who had become almost
+apathetic in their dumb, agonizing sorrow for their lost daughter.
+
+And one day, when the sun was shining brightly, and the winter snows
+that had lain for weeks upon the frozen earth were melting under its
+genial glow, Max came home from a long excursion with “the boys,” and
+burst into his mother’s room like a small cyclone or tornado.
+
+“Mamma,” he cried, all in a flurry, “may I go into Mr. Delaney’s room?
+I have something to tell him.”
+
+Mrs. Rodney looked curiously at the flushed cheeks and sparkling blue
+eyes of her handsome boy.
+
+“Why, what is it, my dear?” she asked. “You know the doctor wishes to
+keep Mr. Delaney very quiet. He is very low now, and we must do all
+that we can to make him well; for if he died, people would look upon
+your dear papa as a murderer!”
+
+She shuddered; but the boy’s eyes flashed, and he cried out, proudly:
+
+“No one would call papa a murderer, mamma, even if Mr. Delaney died. He
+was right to shoot Mr. Delaney if he thought he had my sister shut up
+in his house. I have heard a lot of people say so. If I had been a man,
+I should have shot him myself.”
+
+“But you are not a man, Max, so you must not talk so boldly. What is
+this that you have to tell Mr. Delaney?”
+
+“A bit of news that will please him, I dare say,” said the boy.
+
+“Oh, Max, is it news of Aline?” quivered the poor mother.
+
+“No, no, mamma; for of course I would tell you that first,” said the
+boy.
+
+“Then what can it be? You know we must not excite Mr. Delaney, dear. It
+might be his death. You must tell me what you have heard, and then I
+can decide better if you may be allowed to tell him.”
+
+“Oh, mamma, I wanted to be the first to tell him,” objected the boy.
+
+“I am sorry; but we must not run the risk, indeed,” Mrs. Rodney said.
+
+Max looked disappointed.
+
+“Well, then, I cannot keep it any longer!” he burst out. “We--that is,
+the boys and me--we have found Mr. Delaney’s crazy wife--”
+
+“Impossible!” Mrs. Rodney exclaimed.
+
+“Under a melted snow-drift,” continued Max. “She must have been dead
+a long time--ever since that night she set fire to Delaney House, I
+guess--for she is in a very bad state; but we are perfectly certain
+that she is the one. She is dressed just as papa described her, in the
+finery and the jewels. Do you think that Mr. Delaney will be glad,
+mamma?”
+
+“Glad that the poor creature is dead, Max?” she cried, quite shocked.
+
+“Yes, mamma,” he replied, undauntedly. “Everybody should be glad, for
+what pleasure could that poor, afflicted creature have in her life, and
+why should one wish her to live? Mr. Delaney will be glad, I know, and
+no one can blame him!”
+
+“Hush, dear, you do not know what you are saying,” said his mother,
+“and, besides, this is all surmise on your part. It may not be the
+woman at all.”
+
+“Very well, mamma, we shall soon know, for they have sent me to bring
+Mrs. Griffin to identity her,” he said.
+
+It all turned out as the little lad had said. The poor creature who
+had lain for long weeks under the frozen snow-drifts proved to be
+Julie Sanson, indeed. The mystery of her fate was solved at last. She
+had not perished in the fiery flames that consumed Delaney House. She
+had wandered out into the dark and stormy night and met her death in
+the cold, white, drifting snow that wrapped the earth like a ghostly
+winding sheet.
+
+It came upon Oran Delaney with a shock that the deformed maniac was
+dead. It pained him that death had come to her in such horrible shape.
+Indeed, the very existence of such a creature upon the earth had always
+seemed to him something for which one might almost arraign Divine
+Providence. Why was it permitted?
+
+“I cannot understand it,” he said. “And it pains me that she died
+so hard a death. Yet I cannot be sorry that she is dead. She was a
+horrible burden upon my life, and her existence was a joyless one. I
+thank God that having done my duty by her, I am free at last.”
+
+They buried her quietly and simply, but the circumstances were so well
+known that a large number of people attended the burial. Every one
+rejoiced that Oran Delaney was free at last from the horrible fetters
+that had bound him. He had become quite a hero in these few days.
+
+When his strange story became well known it excited the greatest
+sympathy and pity. Many of the townspeople would have liked to call
+upon him to express their feelings, but this was strictly forbidden
+by the physician, who prescribed the strictest quiet for his patient.
+Every one was very sorry for him, although under the peculiar
+circumstances of the case no one ever blamed Mr. Rodney for what he had
+done. Every father sympathized with him, and declared that with the
+same provocation they would have done the same.
+
+Effie came at last. Dr. Anthony drove over from Maywood with her the
+morning after their return. There was a most affecting meeting between
+mother and daughter. Mrs. Rodney fell on the bride’s neck in tears.
+Effie listened to her story of Aline’s disappearance, with a strange
+look upon her beautiful, happy face.
+
+“And he is here, Effie, Mr. Delaney is here,” she said. “It is stranger
+than a novel, is it not? Aline lay wounded and ill in his house once,
+and now here he is in ours, wounded and dying.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXI.
+
+
+Dr. Anthony was most anxious to meet Oran Delaney when they told him
+the story of all that had transpired while he and Effie were absent
+upon their bridal tour.
+
+Mr. Rodney undertook to ask Mr. Delaney’s permission to present his
+son-in-law to him. He felt rather dubious over it. He was not at all
+sure that he would care to meet Dr. Anthony under the new conditions in
+which he found himself.
+
+To his surprise Mr. Delaney was willing and eager to meet the
+young physician whom he had treated so cavalierly on that
+long-to-be-remembered night. He declared that it would not excite him
+at all. On the contrary, it would be a relief to see him and ask his
+pardon for his rudeness.
+
+Dr. Anthony was surprised when he entered the room and saw the man whom
+he remembered so vividly, although he had never seen his face. He now
+beheld one of the handsomest men he had ever seen in his life in spite
+of the pallor and emaciation of illness and hopelessness. He thought he
+had never seen such splendid, fathomless dark eyes as those that now
+turned upon his face with something that was almost humility in their
+sad gaze as he extended his hand.
+
+“Dr. Anthony, I do not know how to ask you to forgive me for the way
+I treated you,” he said. “But I was half maddened with fears for Miss
+Rodney. That must be my excuse.”
+
+“I am not at all angry with you,” said Dr. Anthony, with his frank
+smile. “I can find it in my heart to excuse your rashness, considering
+the circumstances of the case.”
+
+And after that the two men were good friends always. The genial,
+handsome young doctor, who was so happy with his fair young bride,
+had a great fund of pity and sympathy for the man who, while but a
+few years older than himself, had had his whole life blasted by the
+treachery of one whom he believed his friend.
+
+“You cannot know how I regret it all,” said Oran Delaney, unburdening
+his heart to this new friend as men do sometimes on rare occasions to
+one another. “If I could go back to that day and undo all the harm I
+caused Miss Rodney by my stubborn pride, I would give all that I own,
+my poor life into the bargain. I was mad and blind. I had brooded over
+my secret until it assumed such gigantic proportions of shame and
+sorrow that I grew morbid over it. I would have risked anything rather
+than have it revealed to the world. I was frantic with fear when that
+poor lunatic attempted Miss Rodney’s life. I believed that the poor
+girl would surely betray my secret if I let her go free. So I bound her
+by that cruel oath--how cruel I did not know; for I did not think of
+the dreadful consequences to her.”
+
+“Dreadful, indeed!” assented Dr. Anthony.
+
+“And now, if by the sacrifice of my life I could bring her back to
+her friends, I would most gladly die,” said Oran Delaney, with an
+earnestness that carried conviction to the hearer’s heart. “I pray
+daily to God that Mr. Lane will succeed in finding her.”
+
+“I do not believe that he will ever do so,” said Dr. Anthony with
+_empressement_.
+
+“You do not surely believe that she is dead!” cried Oran Delaney, with
+horror and despair in his face and voice.
+
+Dr. Anthony looked pityingly at the pale, handsome face lying on the
+white pillow with the ruddy blaze of the firelight casting a sort of
+false glow on its deep pallor. He saw that Oran Delaney’s remorse and
+despair and grief were most genuine.
+
+“You do not surely believe that she is dead?” he cried in the utmost
+despair, and Dr. Anthony answered, sadly:
+
+“Why not? No tidings have come to you of her fate. Is it not most
+probable that she has perished in the cruel snow-drifts even as poor
+Julie Sanson did?”
+
+Mr. Delaney shuddered, and put up his thin, white hands before his face.
+
+“Oh, for Heaven’s sake, do not name Aline, in the same breath with that
+creature!” he cried. “No, no, I cannot believe that she is dead! Heaven
+would not be so cruel! She will come back, my beautiful darling, even
+if it is not until the cold earth is heaped upon my breast!”
+
+Then with a great effort he threw off the terrible agitation that
+possessed him; he looked at Dr. Anthony and said, sadly:
+
+“In my weakness I have revealed my secret to you, Doctor Anthony. I
+love Aline--have loved her ever since she was an inmate of my home. My
+shame and sorrow and remorse for all that I have done are killing me by
+inches. If she does not come back soon I shall never see her. I shall
+be dead--killed by my love and sorrow!”
+
+“I am sorry for you!” cried Dr. Anthony, melted by the exceeding grief
+of the other. “But indeed you must not agitate yourself like this. It
+is very hurtful to you.”
+
+He hastened to feel the patient’s pulse, and seeing that he was
+considerably agitated, administered the composing draught that stood
+ready upon the little table, and went out to seek his wife, who was
+with her mother.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXII.
+
+
+The early winter eve was falling drearily when Dr. Anthony went out of
+the room, and left Oran Delaney alone, watching the dark shadows that
+already began to creep about the corners--fantastic shadows cast by the
+leaping blue and yellow flames of the fire.
+
+He lay still and watched the eerie darkness closing in with strange
+feelings. Just so was his life ebbing to a close, just so the shadows
+of eternity were falling around him. Life’s brief day was almost
+ended. It seemed to him that already he felt the chill of the grave in
+which he would soon be lying.
+
+“When I am dead she will come back,” he said to himself. “She will be
+here again in her old home, with all the shadows lifted from her, and
+she will be happy. Poor little wronged Aline! I should like to see her
+just once more to ask her to forgive me for my fault. To the dying all
+things are forgiven.”
+
+He closed his eyes and lay thinking of the time when he had first met
+her, a lovely, volatile creature, who half vexed and half amused him.
+He did not dream then that she would be his fate. Now memory went back
+and recalled her to his mind as the fairest vision that ever blessed
+man’s eyes.
+
+He hardly knew how love had come to him first. He could recall the
+time when he had been most angry with her, when he would have liked,
+above all things, to give her a hard shaking for her petulance, her
+unreasonableness, her childishness. He thought it must have been in
+those days when she lay ill and unconscious, and he had hung above her
+in an agony of fear lest she should die there away from all who loved
+her and grieved for her. He had fancied that the blue eyes dwelt upon
+him wistfully, and followed him even in the wildness of delirium with a
+strange half recognition. Then in the long, slow days of convalescence,
+when she was helpless as a child, the sweet, pale, reproachful face had
+crept into his heart. When in her anger she would tell him that she
+would stay at Delaney House and die there before she would take the
+cruel oath required of her, he was conscious that his heart had beat
+half gladly at the thought of her staying beneath the same roof with
+him and his misery. But he put the thought away from him as selfish,
+and tried to be glad when she broke down at last, and pledged herself
+to the silence he required of her.
+
+That night when she went back to the cottage he had spent in a
+miserable vigil watching her window with haggard, anxious eyes, yet
+little dreaming of all that was transpiring behind it, or how bitterly
+the girl would have to suffer for her silence. Man-like, he had not
+thought of the world’s busy tongues, always wagging in cruel despite.
+
+Well, it was all over now for Aline, and all over for him. He would not
+believe that she was dead. He could not fancy those violet eyes closed
+in the eternal sleep--those sweet lips silent forever! God would not be
+so cruel now when life was opening so fairly for her, the shadows all
+gone from her sky and her pathway bright with the sunshine. She would
+come home and be happy after he was dead.
+
+Deeper and deeper grew the shadows in the room. The fire sputtered and
+sparkled, and a cinder fell noisily from the grate. He had become so
+very nervous that even that little thing made him start and open his
+eyes.
+
+He opened them and glanced about the room. A cry broke from his lips.
+He was not alone!
+
+Just between him and the flickering firelight stood a girlish, graceful
+figure with loosely falling hair, and a lovely white face turned
+toward him. The blood around his heart seemed suddenly to turn to ice.
+
+ “What was it? A lying trick of the brain?
+ Yet I thought I saw her stand,
+ A shadow, there, at my feet.
+ High over the shadowing land.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+ The ghastly wraith of one that I know.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXIII.
+
+
+After that one cry of surprise and wonder, Oran Delaney could not
+utter another word. He stared speechlessly at the fair vision that had
+arisen, as it were, between him and the flickering firelight.
+
+Until this moment he had had an abiding conviction that Aline Rodney
+was not dead. His conviction was staggered now. How else had she come
+there, a silent shadow in his room, save from the world of shadows?
+
+ “She is not of us, as I divine;
+ She comes from another stiller world of the dead.”
+
+He lay still and awe-stricken, gazing at the fair young face that shone
+so white in the dim light. It was turned fully toward him, and the
+large blue eyes were fixed upon his face in an intent gaze. He quivered
+under it, and keen arrows of pain shot along his nerves, but he could
+not turn his eyes from the vision. Not a feature, not a curve, not an
+outline escaped him. He noted how soft and long were the dark, curling
+tresses that fell in loose waves upon her shoulders, how gracefully the
+plain dark robe was fitted to the slender figure, how proudly her white
+throat rose from the dark folds.
+
+Death had not robbed her of that superlative beauty that charmed the
+eyes of all beholders. The frank, violet eyes, the arch red mouth, the
+adorable little nose, the cream-white skin, the dark waving hair all
+were here as of yore, and thrilled his heart again with a passion of
+love and despair.
+
+He gazed and gazed, his nerves strained to their utmost tension, and
+she stood there moveless, stirless, breathless, it almost seemed, for
+his own tense, heavy breathing drowned all other sounds in the room.
+
+At length with a great effort of will, he broke the bonds that held
+him, and cried out, hoarsely:
+
+“Aline, Aline, have you come back from the dead to reproach me?”
+
+It was like an electric shock galvanizing the seeming ghost into life.
+The girl started and made a step forward. She came nearer and nearer
+until she was leaning toward him, and her sweet, warm breath floating
+over his cheek. This was no ghost, but a living, breathing, sentient
+woman!
+
+“Oh, Mr. Delaney,” she cried, with something like awe in her voice, “is
+it possible that you take me for a ghost?”
+
+He could not speak for joy. His brain reeled deliriously. Could it be
+Aline Rodney in the flesh? Aline Rodney, come back to him before he
+died, looking at him kindly, speaking to him gently? Should he not
+awaken presently and find it all a delusive dream?
+
+He put out his wasted hand and touched her warm, white wrist.
+
+“Let me touch you, for I cannot believe my eyes,” he said, wistfully.
+“Is it really you, Aline, or only the blessedest dream that ever dazed
+a man’s senses?”
+
+She did not repulse him. She let him hold her hand in his a moment that
+he might assure himself of the reality of this vision.
+
+“Yes, it is really I,” she said, reassuringly, and then she added,
+curiously, “Why did you take me for a ghost? Did any one tell you I was
+dead?”
+
+“No, no, it was only my fancy. I was dazed when I opened my eyes and
+saw you there. I had not heard a sound except the cinders falling from
+the grate. What could I think but that you were a ghostly visitant from
+another world?”
+
+She stood gazing down at him, seeming to forget that her hand still lay
+lightly in the clasp of his.
+
+“They told me to come in softly,” she said. “They thought that you
+might be asleep. So I turned the knob softly and came in. But when I
+saw that your eyes were closed I was just going away quietly again when
+you awakened.”
+
+“It was very good of you to come,” he said, softly pressing the warm,
+white hand that lay passive in his. “I did not deserve it. I thought
+that you would hate and scorn me too bitterly ever to speak to me
+again. Thank you a thousand times for coming.”
+
+Something came into the wistful face into which he was anxiously
+gazing--kindness, pity, almost sadness.
+
+“Yes, I have been very angry with you,” she said, with a curious catch
+in her breath. “I meant that you should never, never see my face again.
+But they told me that you were--were ill, and then I came. You know we
+forgive all things to the dying.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXIV.
+
+
+He had felt that he was slowly dying; he knew that the physician and
+all the others thought so, too. He had not cared for it. He had rather
+exulted in the thought, for he had grown weary of his ruined life.
+
+But when Aline Rodney in those few frank words told him that he was
+dying, it touched a chord in his heart that thrilled with the keenest
+pain. There came to him a pang that was like despair at the thought of
+leaving the world with her in it.
+
+For the first time since that horrible night that had freed him from
+the hated fetters that bound him to the deformed maniac, he recalled
+his freedom with a vague, wild rush of happiness at all that was
+possible to him now, if only--if only that gaunt, black shadow of death
+had not stretched out its dark wings over him.
+
+The pang was sharp and bitter. He loved her, and to his fancy it seemed
+as if fate had created this beautiful woman to be his wife. They had
+been at war with each other, and yet his heart had gone out to her
+with its whole freight of manly love and devotion. Must he die now and
+leave her for some other happy man--Mr. Lane, perhaps, of whom he was
+morbidly jealous?
+
+A great longing for life took possession of him. Oh, if only he had
+battled harder to save this existence, which now he prized so much! He
+hated himself when he remembered that the physician had said that he
+had recklessly flung away his life by his despondency and hopelessness.
+
+He pressed closer in his the little hand, and looked yearningly into
+the sweet girl-face with his hollow, burning, dark eyes.
+
+“So you forgive me all?” he said, and she answered, gravely, “Yes, all!”
+
+“Forgiveness is the boon we grant to death,” he said, mournfully. “But
+if I were going to live, Aline, would you be less kind? Would you
+refuse to forgive me then?”
+
+He waited anxiously to hear what she would say, though he knew that
+it could not greatly matter now whether she answered him yea or not.
+It was too late now. He was drifting too near to the borders of the
+Shadow-Land.
+
+She looked at him with a faint, almost tender smile on her exquisite
+red mouth.
+
+“I would forgive you if you lived just as freely as I forgive you
+dying,” she answered. “You have made all the atonement you could, and I
+thank you and bless you for it.”
+
+“You know all; they have told you all,” he said, with a faint flush
+creeping into his wan cheeks.
+
+“Yes. I have heard all. It was very hard for you, Mr. Delaney. You must
+have been half mad with your trouble; so I forgive you now all that you
+have made me suffer. Perhaps it will make your dying-bed easier,” said
+Aline, with the wonderful pity and forgiveness of a true woman’s heart.
+
+“Easier!” he repeated, with a groan, and she did not know that it only
+made it harder. “For if I lived, and she forgave me, I might win her
+yet,” he said to himself. “Oh, how hard it is to die knowing all this!”
+
+The door opened softly, and the nurse entered with the inevitable tea
+and toast. She laid fresh coal on the fire and lighted the lamp. Then
+she nodded at Miss Rodney, with a smile.
+
+“He will get well, now that you have come back and forgiven him,” she
+said.
+
+“I hope that he may,” Aline answered, with frank simplicity.
+
+And again she did not know how much harder these words of hers made it
+for the man who knew that he was sinking daily in the Valley of the
+Shadow of Death.
+
+“What would I not give to live?” he inwardly groaned.
+
+“I must go back to mamma now,” said Aline moving to the door.
+
+His dark eyes followed her entreatingly.
+
+“Do not go so soon,” he pleaded. “You have not told me yet where you
+have been and how you came back, and I am so anxious to hear.”
+
+“Do stay a little longer, Miss Rodney,” pleaded Mrs. Griffin, and Aline
+readily consented to do so.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXV.
+
+
+It looked very pleasant and cozy in the sick-room, with the curtains
+drawn and the bright fire. Aline sat down in the easy-chair Mrs.
+Griffin wheeled forward for her, and was quite unconscious what a
+picture of fair, girlish beauty she made sitting there, in her pretty
+dark blue dress with her dark hair falling over her slight, pretty
+figure.
+
+“Do you know,” she said, looking at the nurse, “that this reminds me of
+the time when I was at Delaney House?--only that it was I who was ill
+then, and not Mr. Delaney.”
+
+“Can you recall those times without being angry with me, Aline?”
+inquired Mr. Delaney, half fearfully.
+
+“I told you I had forgiven you all, Mr. Delaney,” answered Aline, as if
+that implied everything.
+
+“Thank you,” he answered, dropping his head back, with a sigh, upon the
+pillow.
+
+Mrs. Griffin busied herself in preparing the little table by the
+bedside, which she now wheeled forward with the simple repast neatly
+arranged upon it.
+
+“Do you know that I could not swallow a mouthful now?” he said, looking
+at her with a slight smile. “I am so impatient to hear Aline’s story,
+that I can think of nothing else.”
+
+“But he must keep up his strength, mustn’t he, Miss Rodney?” said Mrs.
+Griffin, anxiously.
+
+“Most certainly! And I shall not begin the telling of my story until
+after he has eaten every bite of his toast and swallowed every
+mouthful of his tea,” answered that young person, with her usual cruel
+directness.
+
+He looked at her imploringly.
+
+“Do you not know that I am far too much excited to eat?” he said.
+
+“If that is the case, I am very sorry that I came,” exclaimed Miss
+Rodney. “I was told, particularly, that you must not be excited. So I
+will take myself off at once.”
+
+“Do not go, Miss Rodney,” pleaded the nurse, while the invalid cried
+out, anxiously:
+
+“Stay, Aline, and I will at once proceed to devour every morsel on the
+plate.”
+
+“Very well. In that case I may permit myself to remain awhile longer,”
+she replied.
+
+She sat down again and watched him taking his tea. There was a very
+sober, grave expression on her face while she did so.
+
+She was shocked at the change that had taken place in Mr. Delaney since
+that snowy night, barely five weeks agone, when she had asked him to
+marry her and he had refused her request.
+
+Then he had been tall, strong, handsome, full of life and health. Now
+how pale, how wan, how shadowy, appeared the wasted face in which the
+great burning black eyes appeared so large and solemn.
+
+“Poor fellow! he will not be here long. How dreadful to think that my
+papa should be the cause of his death,” said the girl to herself, with
+a great wave of pity and regret sweeping over her heart.
+
+He finished his toast and looked at her with a wan smile.
+
+“Now, Aline, you will tell me where you went when you left me that
+night,” he said, pleadingly.
+
+A wave of crimson swept over her face. She recalled the mission upon
+which she had gone to him that time.
+
+“I know what you are thinking of,” he said. “But it was a noble
+motive that prompted you that night. You would have saved me from the
+consequences of your father’s wrath. Ah, Aline, I was horribly tempted
+to take you at your word; but if I had done so I should but have done
+you deeper wrong.”
+
+“Yes, I know now, and I thank you for what seemed cruel then,” she
+answered, simply, but the blush still burned her face. She could not
+recall that hasty, impulsive action without the deepest shame.
+
+He gazed at her with sorrowful eyes and an aching heart. Ah, how soon
+the grave would hide him from the sight of those sweet, blue orbs!
+
+While the blush still burned her fair face she said to him with a half
+smile:
+
+“Did you think I should be rendered so desperate by your refusal that
+night, that I should go away and drown myself?”
+
+“I thought you would go back home, and I was horrified when I found
+that you had not done so,” he replied.
+
+“No, I was too wretched to go back,” she said. “I was in a fever of
+unrest and trouble when I came to you that night. My brain was on fire.
+I had not stopped to think or to reason. I acted on impulse wholly. But
+your sarcasm, your sternness, stunned me, cooled me. When I staggered
+out of Delaney House I was almost dead with shame and despair for what
+I had done.”
+
+She put up her hand a moment to hide the sensitive quiver of her lips,
+then resumed:
+
+“My first thought was to get away from my home. I longed to break loose
+from old associations and hide myself from all who knew me. I turned my
+steps away from Delaney House, and staggered along in the snow until
+my sense of physical discomfort cooled my reckless mood. I began to
+think that I must stop somewhere or I should perish in the cold. Then I
+remembered my sister Effie, who had gone South on a bridal tour.”
+
+She looked from him to Mrs. Griffin, with a smile in her blue eyes.
+
+“You were expecting to hear something tragic, but my story is the most
+prosaic one imaginable. I was not meant for a heroine at all; I am
+too afraid of discomfort and trouble,” she said, with a soft little
+laugh. “When I started I was quite desperate; I did not care where I
+went. But when the snow beat into my face and chilled my feet, I became
+discouraged. I did not want to go back, but I longed intensely to be
+with some one who loved me, and to be warm and comfortable.”
+
+“Poor dear!” sighed Mrs. Griffin, sympathetically.
+
+“I had some money in my pocket,” continued Aline. “Papa had given it
+me to buy a black silk dress. I walked to the next station from here,
+bought a ticket to Florida, and went to Effie and Dr. Anthony. You
+see, Mr. Delaney, there was nothing remarkable at all in my second
+disappearance from home,” she said.
+
+“You should have written to your parents,” he said.
+
+“I am ashamed to say that I would not do so,” she answered. “I thought
+that if I let them all think that I was dead, my father would drop
+the subject of the threatened duel. I did not want him to be killed,
+neither did I want you to be hurt, for, angry as I was, I shrunk from
+the thought of bloodshed. So I would not write myself, nor would I
+suffer Effie to write.”
+
+“You would have spared us all much unhappiness had you done so,” he
+said.
+
+“I came home to Maywood with them at last,” she said. “By that time
+they had argued me into a more reasonable mood. I was willing to return
+home; but that morning they came over to Chester I did not come with
+them. I sent them before me as _avant couriers_, with the caution not
+to tell them unless they were very anxious over me. They brought back
+such news that I was stunned. Delaney House burned to the ground; the
+deformed maniac dead; you wounded by my father’s hand and your whole
+story revealed; my own name cleared from obloquy, and my friends all
+ready to crave my pardon for their unkindness. It took my breath away.”
+
+He smiled in spite of his pain as he saw the sudden joy-light flash
+over her face. What mattered all that had happened to him so that she
+was saved, this fair sweet girl who had suffered so unjustly.
+
+“You must be very angry with papa, aren’t you, Mr. Delaney?” she asked,
+wistfully.
+
+“Angry? No! I have never blamed him. In his place I should have acted
+the same, no doubt,” he replied, calmly.
+
+“But I am very sorry, and so is papa. I came over this morning, and it
+was one of the first things he told me. He would give anything in the
+world to undo what he has done!” exclaimed Aline.
+
+“Anything?” he repeated.
+
+“Anything!” she reiterated, earnestly.
+
+“And you, Aline?” he questioned.
+
+“I feel worse than papa over it,” said the girl in her frank, innocent
+way.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXVI.
+
+
+Mrs. Griffin had slipped out of the room quietly with her tray of empty
+dishes a moment before. They were alone. Aline shivered a little. He
+looked so wan and ill, what if he should die here alone with her?
+
+She half rose from her seat, trembling with agitation, and made a step
+toward the door.
+
+“Are you going so soon?” he asked wistfully.
+
+It flashed over her that it was cowardly to leave him alone because she
+was afraid to see him die. When he held out his hand to her she went up
+bravely to his side.
+
+“I will try not to be afraid,” she said to herself.
+
+“You are going before I have said all that I wish to say to you,” he
+said.
+
+A sudden light flashed over her face.
+
+“Oh, and there is something I must say to you--I had nearly forgotten!”
+she exclaimed.
+
+“Well,” he asked, looking up into the wide blue eyes regarding him
+attentively.
+
+“They told me you had made a will--that you had left me a great
+fortune. Oh, Mr. Delaney, that must not be! I cannot take it!” she
+cried, earnestly.
+
+“You must, Aline. It is but a small reparation for all the sorrow I
+have caused you,” he said.
+
+“But I do not wish to do so. I refuse to accept it!” she cried.
+
+“You are a rash and foolish child, or you would not refuse to accept a
+fortune, Aline,” he said.
+
+“No matter. I will not have it,” she said, resolutely.
+
+“You do not know what pleasures it will procure you,” he argued.
+
+“I shall not care for them,” she replied. “You must leave your fortune
+to some one else, Mr. Delaney.”
+
+“To whom?” he asked.
+
+“I do not know. Any one you wish,” she replied, indifferently.
+
+All in a moment he caught her hand with a strength she had not deemed
+him possessed of, and drew her toward him.
+
+“Aline, darling,” he whispered, with his lips very near to her cheek,
+“will you not let me leave the fortune to my wife?”
+
+She staggered back from him, the color flowing out of her cheeks.
+
+“Your wife?” she faltered.
+
+“Yes, my wife,” he said. “Oh, Aline, do not turn away from me so
+coldly. I love you, my darling, and I could die happy if I could call
+you my wife, if but once before that great final hour. Oh, Aline, will
+you give yourself to me for the little while I have to live? I do not
+deserve such happiness, I know, but it will be such a boon to me that
+you cannot refuse. It is only for a little while, you know, only to
+soothe a dying hour!”
+
+She gazed at him, bewildered by his eloquence, her face growing deadly
+white.
+
+“Do you hear me, Aline?” he asked. “I am asking you to be my wife. I
+love you devotedly. I have loved you ever since I first met you. Will
+you not grant my request?”
+
+“I do not want to be married, Mr. Delaney, and--and--you are only
+asking me because--of--that--night,” she said, slowly, with downcast
+eyes.
+
+“On my honor, no, Aline. I am asking you because you won my heart long
+before that dreadful night, and because it would make me happy in dying
+to know that I had left you my fortune and my proud old name. It is a
+most honorable name. Aline, even you, so beautiful and sweet, need not
+disdain it,” he said.
+
+She did not answer a word. She seemed like one dazed by the suddenness
+of all this.
+
+“You said you would do anything to atone for your father’s sin, Aline,”
+he said, earnestly. “Will you do this? Would it be very irksome to be
+my wife a few days or hours, as the case might be? It would only be a
+little while, remember.”
+
+She raised her large, earnest eyes to his face.
+
+“It would be only a little while--that is true,” she said reflectively.
+“I wonder what my father would wish me to do?”
+
+“Will you let me ask him?” said Oran Delaney, eagerly.
+
+“Yes, you may ask him, and I will do just what he tells me. I owe him
+that much obedience in return for all the sorrow I have caused him,”
+said Aline, with her pretty, childish directness.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXVII.
+
+
+“I will do just what papa tells me,” said Aline, trustingly, and an
+eager light of joy gleamed in Oran Delaney’s eyes. He fancied that Mr.
+Rodney would be kind to him--that he would give him the boon he craved.
+
+He was right in his surmise. The lawyer was disposed to be very kind
+to the man whom he had wounded near unto death. Now that the truth
+had come to light, now that his beautiful daughter was safe at home
+again, he was sorely repentant for what he had done. He was haunted by
+remorse. He would have given anything in his power to undo the deed he
+had done in his bitter wrath.
+
+And now when Oran Delaney told him in a few frank words that his
+descent into the dark grave would be soothed if he might call Aline
+his bride before he died, he was most eager to grant him this boon.
+Aline, touched with a strange awe at the nearing presence of death, and
+willing to atone for her father’s sin, consented at once to give her
+hand to the man who at best could claim it but a few short hours.
+
+Every one of the household was quite willing for this strange marriage.
+They argued that it did not matter, even although Aline did not love
+him, as it was for such a very little while.
+
+So the very next morning there was a strange and quiet marriage in
+the sick-room. Aline, arrayed in all the wedding finery of Effie, and
+lovely as a dream in the new gravity and dignity that had settled
+upon her, stood by the sick-bed with her hand in Oran Delaney’s and
+responded to the solemn marriage service that made her his own until
+Death should part them--Death, that stood silent and unseen in the room
+even now, fearful of being robbed of his prey.
+
+Oran Delaney’s voice rang clear and steady in the beautiful responses.
+Aline’s was low and firm. As in a dream, she felt the wedding-ring
+slipped on her finger, she heard the clergyman’s blessing. There was
+a little stir about her, and then mamma and Effie were kissing and
+crying over her, her father and Dr. Anthony were pressing her hand.
+She shook herself free from them all presently, and tried to realize
+what had happened to her. She, Aline Rodney, who, such a little, little
+while ago had been a willful, thoughtless child, was married! She was
+no longer Miss Rodney--she was Mrs. Delaney, and in a short while she
+would be a widow. How strange, how dream-like it all seemed.
+
+She turned suddenly and looked at her bridegroom. He was regarding her
+with a wistful yearning in his beautiful dark eyes. At the same moment
+Effie whispered in her ear:
+
+“Your husband would like to kiss you, darling.”
+
+She went to his side and bent her head so that he might kiss her
+cheek. He pressed his mustached lips softly against it, whispering,
+fondly:
+
+“Thank you, and God bless you, my wife.”
+
+And then the dark head fell and the eyes closed. For a minute they all
+thought that he was dead, for no breath or pulsation could be detected.
+Mr. Rodney was in despair.
+
+“Oh, this is too dreadful!” he cried. “I had hoped that he would
+rally, that God would spare his life, and that I might be saved the
+wretchedness of knowing myself a murderer. And you, too, my poor child,
+are a widow in the hour of your bridal!”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXVIII.
+
+
+But Dr. Anthony, who had been making a careful examination of the
+patient, looked around at these words, and said, hurriedly:
+
+“No, no, you are mistaken. I can detect some signs of life yet. It is
+only a deep swoon. Let all leave the room except the nurse and myself,
+and let the attending physician be sent for immediately.”
+
+They all retired, and Aline went to her own room to strip off the
+wedding finery. Then she locked herself in for the remainder of the day.
+
+Mr. Lane came that day fresh from an unsuccessful quest after Aline,
+and was amazed and delighted when he heard that she had come home, and
+that she had been in Florida all the time with Dr. and Mrs. Anthony. He
+grew red and pale by turns when he heard that Aline was married to Mr.
+Delaney. She was the only woman he had ever loved. A swift pain tore
+his heart as he realized that she was lost to him forever, for although
+her husband was dying, she would be too far above him socially as the
+wealthy widow of Oran Delaney for him to ever aspire to her hand.
+
+He remained silent a few minutes fighting down his pain and
+disappointment, and at length reason came to his aid and told him
+it was better so. He was quite old enough to be Aline’s father, and
+besides she was socially his superior. He put away his broken dream
+from him with a suppressed sigh, and declared that he was glad that
+all had turned out so well. All would be well with Aline now. Fate had
+settled her future for her. No one would ever dare to asperse her now
+when she bore the proud name of Delaney.
+
+He would have liked to see her and congratulate her, but they told
+him that she was locked into her room, refusing admittance to any, so
+he went away, leaving his best wishes for her and her husband if he
+ever rallied sufficiently to receive them. That night he went back to
+New York, and in his busy life tried to forget the sweet, luring face
+of the girl who had lured him into such a sweet, momentary dream of
+domestic happiness. He never loved again, never wooed nor wedded. A
+memory of Aline always remained with him, but it became in time only
+a sweet and pleasant one, unmixed with pain. Several years after that
+day of disappointment and pain, he met her in New York, and then he saw
+the wisdom of his loss. She was far too brilliant and beautiful ever to
+have linked her lot with his. He smiled and murmured to himself: “Fate
+is above us all!”
+
+Aline was very sweet and kind to him when they met. She had heard the
+story of his attachment to herself long before that, and at first she
+had been inclined to laugh at the old bachelor’s romance, but when she
+heard how kind a motive had blended with his love, she felt more kindly
+toward him. In her youth and beauty and perfect happiness she could
+well spare a kindly thought to one who had loved her in vain.
+
+She laid her round white arms fondly about the neck of him who had made
+her life so bright and blessed.
+
+“I am sorry for him, dear,” she said. “But I never could have loved any
+one but you, my own, own darling one.”
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER LXIX.
+
+
+Aline’s momentous bridal day waned slowly to its close.
+
+The physicians remained with Mr. Delaney all day, then left him to Mrs.
+Griffin’s care and went away. He was better, they said, but he must
+have careful nursing.
+
+The wintery day was fading into darkness. Mrs. Griffin had slipped
+out for the tea and toast again, and Mr. Delaney lay among his snowy
+pillows, gazing thoughtfully into the bright fire. His lips moved, and
+he murmured, sadly:
+
+“She will hate me, perhaps.”
+
+The door opened softly. His bride of a day came gliding in, clad in her
+simple dark-blue dress, the loose curls falling on her shoulders.
+
+“You are better?” she said, coming up to him. “Ah, I thought you were
+dead this morning!”
+
+She sat down in a low chair by the side of the bed, very close to him.
+His heart beat with sudden rapture.
+
+“Yes, I thought that I was dying, too,” he said. “You remember that
+moment when I kissed your cheek? Well, just then I had a sensation as
+of falling from a great height. I thought it was the last of earth,
+that I had looked my last on your beloved face, that I was surely
+dying!”
+
+“We all thought so,” she replied, calmly and gravely.
+
+He reached out and took her hand in both his own.
+
+“Aline, will you look at me?” he asked.
+
+She lifted the shyly drooping lashes from her violet eyes and gazed
+into his face, frankly and steadily.
+
+“Aline, do you realize that you are really my wife?--that you belong
+wholly to me?” he asked her.
+
+“Yes,” she answered quietly.
+
+“Is there any sorrow, any regret, any repulsion in the thought?” he
+inquired, and she answered in a low voice:
+
+“No.”
+
+“I have something to tell you,” he said, “but oh, Aline, I am afraid.”
+
+She grew very pale at those words from his lips. She looked at him
+anxiously.
+
+“You need not be afraid to tell me. Go on. I will try to bear it,” she
+said, with a falter in her voice.
+
+“But, Aline, my own, my darling, you must not hate me for this,” he
+said, passionately. “Indeed I did not know! I believed I was surely
+doomed! And, now, now if only you could forgive me for my unconscious
+deception, I should be the happiest man in the world.”
+
+She bent her blue eyes on him full of reproach and pain.
+
+“Happy--at dying? Happy--at leaving _me_?” she said, in a low, strange,
+bewildered voice.
+
+And for a moment they gazed wonderingly at each other. Then he
+spoke--almost incredulously:
+
+“Aline, have you misunderstood me? I have been trying to tell you that
+the doubt is over. I have rallied from my illness! Love and joy have
+wrought a miracle! _I shall live!_”
+
+“You--will--live?” she gasped, and stared at him, speechless.
+
+“Oh, my dear, are you so sorry? Do you regret that you gave yourself
+to me? Oh, I would far sooner have died than this!” cried out Oran
+Delaney, in a passion of despair.
+
+But she caught the hand he threw out in his frenzy of despair and
+pressed her lips upon it.
+
+“Ah, Heaven, how glad I am!” she cried; and he answered, wonderingly:
+
+“And you are not sorry--you do not hate me, Aline?”
+
+“No, no, I love you,” she answered, hiding her face against his hands.
+“I think I must have loved you long, but I did not know it until I
+believed you dying. Oh, I thank Heaven that it has so kindly granted my
+prayer!”
+
+“Your prayer, darling?” he said, gathering her in both arms tightly, as
+if he never meant to let her go again.
+
+She whispered, with her lips against his cheek:
+
+“I have been locked into my room all day, Oran, praying, praying, on my
+knees, that your life might be spared to me. And Heaven has granted my
+prayer. You will live for me, my husband!”
+
+
+THE END.
+
+
+
+
+“Look it up in the Dream Book.”
+
+THE MASCOT DREAM BOOK,
+
+FORTUNE-TELLER AND HOROSCOPE.
+
+WITH
+
+COMBINATION NUMBERS.
+
+Price 10 Cents.
+
+
+Nothing which is natural in entirely useless. Dreams must be intended
+for some purpose. About one third of our existence is passed in sleep;
+and during sleep we often dream. Why is this? Does the mind naturally
+and irresistibly act in a certain way, while we sleep, and this without
+any possible useful purpose? Certainly not. Common sense, philosophy,
+and history will contradict this supposition. Mankind, in all ages
+and countries, have agreed in believing that dreams have a spiritual
+origin, and, to a certain extent, a useful purpose.
+
+In this little book the interpretation of dreams is reduced to a
+system. If the reader can not assent to the interpretations of dreams
+as here set forth, at least a great deal of entertainment will be found
+in reading them.
+
+
+IN ADDITION TO
+
+THE MASCOT DREAM BOOK
+
+THIS LITTLE MANUAL ALSO CONTAINS THE FOLLOWING:
+
+ Divination by Cards--To Know Whether a Woman will Have the Man She
+ Wishes--To Know Whether a Person will be Married--Concerning Children
+ Born on any Day in the Week--Fortunate Days, Months, and Years--To
+ Cast Your Nativity--The Way to Get Rich, and Live Happy in the
+ Marriage State--Curious and Instructive Information on Physiognomy,
+ etc.
+
+
+The Mascot Dream Book is of pocket size, and it can be carried without
+inconvenience.
+
+For sale by all newsdealers, or sent by mail, on receipt of 10 cents,
+by the publishers. Address
+
+ GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS, PUBLISHERS,
+
+ (P. O. Box 1781.) 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+
+
+
+
+THE SWEETHEART SERIES.
+
+
+ PRICE 15 CENTS PER COPY.
+
+ TWO COPIES FOR 25 CENTS.
+
+
+These books are printed on good paper, in large type, and are bound in
+handsome photogravure covers of different designs. A complete list of
+CHARLOTTE M. BRAEME’S works is published in this series.
+
+
+ Charlotte M. Braeme.
+
+ 22 His Perfect Trust.
+ 24 The Heiress of Hilldrop.
+ 25 For Another’s Sin.
+ 26 Set in Diamonds.
+ 27 The World Between Them.
+ 28 A Passion Flower.
+ 29 A True Magdalen.
+ 30 A Woman’s Error.
+ 32 At War with Herself.
+ 33 The Belle of Lynn.
+ 34 The Shadow of a Sin.
+ 35 Claribel’s Love Story.
+ 36 A Woman’s War.
+ 38 Hilary’s Folly.
+ 39 From Gloom to Sunlight.
+ 40 A Haunted Life.
+ 41 The Mystery of Colde Fell; or, Not Proven.
+ 42 A Dark Marriage Morn.
+ 43 The Duke’s Secret.
+ 44 His Wife’s Judgment.
+ 45 A Thorn in Her Heart.
+ 46 A Nameless Sin.
+ 47 A Mad Love.
+ 48 Irene’s Vow.
+ 49 Signa’s Sweetheart.
+ 51 A Fiery Ordeal.
+ 52 Between Two Loves.
+ 53 Beyond Pardon.
+ 54 A Bitter Atonement.
+ 55 A Broken Wedding-Ring.
+ 56 Dora Thorne.
+ 57 The Earl’s Atonement.
+ 58 Evelyn’s Folly.
+ 59 A Golden Heart.
+ 60 Her Martyrdom.
+ 61 Her Second Love.
+ 62 Lady Damer’s Secret.
+ 63 Lady Hutton’s Ward.
+ 64 Lord Lisle’s Daughter.
+ 66 Lord Lynne’s Choice.
+ 67 Love Works Wonders.
+ 68 Prince Charlie’s Daughter.
+ 69 Put Asunder; or, Lady Castlemaine’s Divorce.
+ 70 Repented at Leisure.
+ 71 A Struggle for a Ring.
+ 72 Sunshine and Roses.
+ 73 Thorns and Orange-Blossoms.
+ 77 Under a Shadow; or, A Shadowed Life.
+ 78 Weaker Than a Woman.
+ 79 Wedded and Parted.
+ 80 Which Loved Him Best?
+ 81 Wife in Name Only.
+ 82 A Woman’s Temptation.
+ 83 A Queen Amongst Women.
+ 84 Madolin’s Lover.
+ 87 The Sin of a Lifetime.
+ 88 Love’s Warfare.
+ 89 ’Twixt Smile and Tear.
+ 90 Sweet Cymbeline.
+ 93 The Squire’s Darling.
+ 94 The Gambler’s Wife.
+ 95 A Fatal Dower.
+ 96 Her Mother’s Sin.
+ 97 Romance of a Black Veil.
+ 98 A Rose in Thorns.
+ 99 Lord Elesmere’s Wife.
+ 291 Queen of the Lilies. Sequel to Lord Elesmere’s Wife.
+ 103 The Mystery of Woodleigh Grange.
+ 185 A Willful Maid.
+ 186 A Woman’s Love Story.
+ 194 Bonnie Doon.
+ 212 Lady Latimer’s Escape, and A Fatal Temptation.
+ 213 My Poor Wife.
+ 214 Jessie.
+ 215 Phyllis’s Probation.
+ 216 Betwixt My Love and Me.
+ 217 Suzanne.
+ 218 Prince Charming.
+ 222 The Ducie Diamonds.
+ 223 Lady Muriel’s Secret.
+ 224 “For a Dream’s Sake.”
+ 225 Under a Ban.
+ 226 “So Near, and Yet So Far.”
+ 227 A Great Mistake.
+ 228 The Wife’s Secret.
+ 229 For Life and Love.
+ 230 The Fatal Lilies.
+ 231 A Gilded Sin.
+ 232 Ingledew House.
+ 238 In Cupid’s Net.
+ 234 A Dead Heart.
+ 235 A Golden Dawn.
+ 236 Two Kisses.
+ 237 The White Witch.
+ 238 At Any Cost.
+ 239 A Bitter Reckoning.
+ 240 My Sister Kate.
+ 241 His Wedded Wife.
+ 242 Thrown on the World.
+ 243 Between Two Sins.
+ 244 The Hidden Sin.
+ 245 James Gordon’s Wife.
+ 246 A Coquette’s Conquest.
+ 247 A Fair Mystery.
+ 292 The Perils of Beauty. Sequel to “A Fair Mystery.”
+ 248 Wedded Hands.
+ 249 Griselda.
+ 250 Margery Daw.
+ 251 In Shallow Waters.
+ 252 Society’s Verdict.
+ 253 If Love Be Love.
+ 254 The Actor’s Ward.
+ 255 A Willful Young Woman.
+ 256 Marjorie.
+ 257 Lady Diana’s Pride.
+ 258 A Hidden Terror.
+ 259 A Struggle for the Right.
+ 260 Blossom and Fruit.
+ 261 On Her Wedding Morn.
+ 262 The Shattered Idol.
+ 263 The Earl’s Error.
+ 264 An Unnatural Bondage.
+ 265 Golden Gates.
+ 266 A Modern Cinderella.
+ 267 Lured Away.
+ 268 Beauty’s Marriage.
+ 269 Guelda.
+ 270 Dumaresq’s Temptation.
+ 271 Jenny.
+ 272 The Star of Love.
+ 273 A Woman’s Vengeance.
+ 274 Dream Faces.
+ 275 The Story of an Error.
+ 276 The Queen of the County.
+ 277 Her Only Sin.
+ 278 A Fatal Wedding.
+ 279 Under the Holly Berries, and Coralie.
+ 282 Redeemed by Love.
+ 286 Lady Ethel’s Whim, and My Mother’s Rival.
+ 287 Daphne Vernon, and An Alluring Young Woman.
+ 289 Love’s Surrender, and Marion Arleigh’s Penance.
+ 309 A Woman’s Honor.
+
+
+Robert Buchanan.
+
+ 220 The Master of the Mine.
+ 221 The Heir of Linne.
+
+
+Rosa Nouchette Carey.
+
+ 50 Not Like Other Girls.
+ 85 Only the Governess.
+
+
+Sylvanus Cobb, Jr.
+
+ 107 Ivan, the Serf.
+ 108 The Queen’s Revenge.
+
+
+Mrs. E. Burke Collins.
+
+ 161 Lillian’s Vow.
+ 162 Sold for Gold.
+
+
+Marie Corelli.
+
+ 20 The Song of Miriam.
+ 92 Vendetta!
+
+
+Jean Corey.
+
+ 148 The Dance of Death.
+ 163 A Heart of Fire.
+
+
+Victoria Cross.
+
+ 144 A Girl of the Klondike.
+ 145 Paula. A Sketch from Life.
+
+
+Dora Delmar.
+
+ 152 Cast Up by the Tide.
+ 153 The Scent of the Roses.
+
+
+A. Conan Doyle.
+
+ 65 A Study in Scarlet.
+ 143 The Sherlock Holmes Detective Stories.
+
+
+“The Duchess.”
+
+ 74 The Honorable Mrs. Vereker.
+ 75 Under-Currents.
+ 76 A Born Coquette.
+ 91 April’s Lady.
+
+
+Alexander Dumas.
+
+ 86 Camille.
+ 281 The Bride of Monte-Cristo.
+
+
+May Agnes Fleming.
+
+ 135 The Heiress of Glen Gower.
+ 136 Magdalen’s Vow.
+ 137 Who Wins?
+ 138 Lady Evelyn.
+ 139 Estella’s Husband.
+ 140 The Baronet’s Bride.
+ 141 The Unseen Bridegroom.
+
+
+Charles Garvice.
+
+ 1 The Marquis.
+ 5 A Wasted Love (On Love’s Altar).
+ 7 Leslie’s Loyalty (His Love So True).
+ 9 Elaine.
+ 11 Claire (The Mistress of Court Regna).
+ 13 Her Heart’s Desire (An Innocent Girl).
+ 15 Her Ransom (Paid For).
+ 17 A Coronet of Shame.
+ 21 Lorrie; or, Hollow Gold.
+ 124 She Loved Him.
+ 207 Only a Girl’s Love.
+ 208 Leola Dale’s Fortune.
+ 209 Only One Love.
+ 210 His Guardian Angel.
+ 288 Farmer Holt’s Daughter, and Woven on Fate’s Loom.
+ 293 The Earl’s Heir (Lady Norah).
+ 294 For an Earldom (Love’s Dilemma).
+ 295 The Lady of Darracourt (Lucille).
+ 296 The Heir of Vering.
+ 297 The Gipsy Peer (The Usurper).
+ 298 Jeanne (Barriers Between).
+ 299 So Nearly Lost (The Springtime of Love).
+ 300 So Fair, So False (The Beauty of the Season).
+ 301 My Lady Pride (Floris).
+ 302 Staunch as a Woman (A Maiden’s Sacrifice).
+ 303 The Spider and the Fly (Violet).
+ 304 For Her Only (Diana).
+ 305 Under the Shadow (Iris).
+ 306 A Woman’s Soul (Behind the Footlights).
+ 307 It Was For Her Sake (Olivia).
+ 308 Staunch of Heart (Adrian Leroy).
+ 310 My Lady of Snow, and other stories.
+ 311 Leave Love to Itself, and other stories.
+ 312 The Woman Decides, and other stories.
+
+
+Wenona Gilman.
+
+ 154 Hearts and Lives.
+ 155 Blind Dan’s Daughter.
+ 156 Val, the Tomboy.
+ 157 My Little Princess.
+
+
+Mrs. Sumner Hayden.
+
+ 8 The Midnight Marriage.
+ 118 Little Goldie.
+
+
+Mary J. Holmes.
+
+ 111 Tempest and Sunshine.
+ 112 The Homestead on the Hillside.
+ 118 The English Orphans.
+ 122 ’Lena Rivers.
+ 126 Meadow Brook.
+ 201 Dora Deane.
+ 202 Old Hagar’s Secret.
+
+
+Rudyard Kipling.
+
+ 115 Ballads and Other Verses.
+ 116 Drums of the Fore and Aft.
+
+
+Laura Jean Libbey.
+
+ 2 Beautiful Ione’s Lover.
+ 4 All For Love of a Fair Face.
+ 6 Daisy Brooks.
+ 8 Little Rosebud’s Lovers.
+ 10 A Struggle for a Heart.
+ 12 Junie’s Love-Test.
+ 14 Leonie Locke.
+ 16 Madolin Rivers.
+ 18 The Heiress of Cameron Hall.
+ 285 Beautiful Victorine’s Folly.
+
+
+Henry Seton Merriman.
+
+ 130 The Phantom Future.
+ 131 Prisoners and Captives.
+ 142 Young Mistley.
+
+
+Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller.
+
+ 165 Lady Gay’s Pride.
+ 166 Lancaster’s Choice.
+ 167 Tiger-Lily.
+ 168 The Pearl and the Ruby.
+ 169 Eric Braddon’s Love.
+ 170 Little Sweetheart.
+ 171 Flower and Jewel.
+ 172 Little Nobody.
+
+
+Oliver Optic.
+
+ 114 The Boat Club.
+ 120 All Aboard!
+ 121 Now or Never.
+
+
+Effie Adelaide Rowlands.
+
+ 149 A Charity Girl.
+ 150 Husband and Foe.
+ 151 Little Lady Charles.
+ 178 The Man She Loved.
+ 184 One Man’s Evil.
+ 205 Carla.
+ 283 Beneath a Spell.
+ 284 Her Punishment; or, With Heart So True.
+
+
+Charlotte M. Stanley.
+
+ 174 Her Second Choice.
+ 175 His Country Cousin.
+ 176 Frou-Frou.
+ 197 Sybil’s Secret.
+
+
+Count Lyof Tolstoi.
+
+ 101 The Kreutzer Sonata.
+ 102 Anna Karénine.
+
+
+E. Werner.
+
+ 105 His Word of Honor: or, What the Spring Brought.
+ 106 She Fell in Love with Her Husband; or, “Good Luck;” or, Success, and How He Won It.
+ 109 The Price He Paid.
+ 110 The Master of Ettersberg.
+
+Miscellaneous.
+
+ 19 Woman Against Woman.
+ Mrs. M. A. Holmes.
+
+ 23 Addie’s Husband.
+ By the Author of “Jessie.”
+
+ 31 Leonie, the Sweet Street Singer. By the Author of “For Mother’s Sake.”
+
+ 37 Lady Audley’s Secret.
+ Miss M. E. Braddon.
+
+ 100 The Dolly Dialogues.
+ Anthony Hope.
+
+ 104 Martha; or, The Story of a Clergyman’s Daughter.
+ W. Heimburg.
+
+ 117 The Royal Chase.
+ Amédée Achard.
+
+ 119 Inez: A Tale of the Alamo.
+ Augusta J. Evans.
+
+ 123 Rubáiyát of Omar Khayyám.
+
+ 125 In His Steps. “What Would Jesus Do?”
+ Rev. Charles M. Sheldon.
+
+ 127 The Iron Pirate.
+ Max Pemberton.
+
+ 128 The Hypocrite.
+
+ 129 Dead Man’s Rock.
+ “Q” (Arthur T. Quiller-Couch).
+
+ 132 A Parisian Romance.
+ Octave Feuillet.
+
+ 133 Carmen: The Power of Love.
+ Prosper Merimée.
+
+ 134 Prue and I.
+ George William Curtis.
+
+ 146 Sappho. Alphonse Daudet.
+
+ 147 Manon Lescaut.
+ L’Abbé Prévost.
+
+ 158 The Banker’s Daughter.
+ Magdalen Barrett.
+
+ 159 The Depth of Love.
+ Hannah Blomgren.
+
+ 160 His Legal Wife.
+ Mary E. Bryan.
+
+ 164 Shadow and Sunshine.
+ Adna H. Lightner.
+
+ 173 Under Five Lakes.
+ “M. Quad.”
+
+ 177 The Little Light-House Lass.
+ Elizabeth Stiles.
+
+ 179 An Impossible Thing.
+ Katharine Wynne.
+
+ 180 Woman, the Mystery.
+ Henry Herman.
+
+ 181 Christie Johnstone.
+ Charles Reade.
+
+ 182 The Blithedale Romance.
+ Nathaniel Hawthorne.
+
+ 183 Through Green Glasses.
+ F. M. Allen.
+
+ 187 Black Rock. Ralph Connor.
+
+ 188 The Type-Writer Girl.
+ Olive Pratt Rayner.
+
+ 189 The Story of L’Aiglon.
+ “Carolus.”
+
+ 190 An Englishwoman’s Love-Letters.
+
+ 191 Elizabeth and Her German Garden.
+
+ 192 The Queen’s Book.
+ Queen Victoria.
+
+ 193 The Best Policy.
+ Katharine Wynne.
+
+ 195 The Danvers Jewels.
+ Mary Cholmondeley.
+
+ 196 Madame Sans-Gene.
+ Edmond Lepelletier.
+
+ 198 Love’s Martyr.
+ Laurence A. Tadema.
+
+ 199 A Crimson Stain.
+ Annie Bradshaw.
+
+ 200 Miss Kate. “Rita.”
+
+ 203 “By the Waters of Babylon.” John B. Hopkins.
+
+ 204 A Fortnight at the Dead Lake. Paul Heyse.
+
+ 205 Mrs. Austen.
+ Margaret Veley.
+
+ 211 Peg Woffington.
+ Charles Reade.
+
+ 219 The Woman of Fire.
+ Adolphe Belot.
+
+ 280 May Blossom.
+ Margaret Lee.
+
+ 290 Wee Macgreegor. J. J. B.
+
+
+The foregoing books are for sale by all newsdealers, or they will be
+sent by mail, postpaid, on receipt of 15 cents per copy, or 2 copies
+for 25 cents, by the publishers. Address
+
+ GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS, Publishers,
+
+ (P. O. Box 1781.) 17 to 27 Vandewater St., New York.
+
+
+
+
+GOOD FORM:
+
+A BOOK OF EVERY DAY ETIQUETTE.
+
+BY MRS. ARMSTRONG.
+
+WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.
+
+PRICE 10 CENTS.
+
+
+No one aspiring to the manners of a lady or gentleman can afford to
+be without a copy of this invaluable book, which is certain to spare
+its possessor many embarrassments incidental to the novice in forms of
+etiquette.
+
+
+MUNRO’S STAR RECITATIONS.
+
+Compiled and Edited by MRS. MARY E. BRYAN.
+
+⁂ WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER ⁂
+
+PRICE 10 CENTS.
+
+An entirely new, choice and entertaining collection of humorous, comic,
+tragic, sentimental, and narrative poems for recitation.
+
+ Suitable for Parlor Entertainments, Summer Hotel Entertainments,
+ School Exhibitions, Exercise in Elocution, Evenings at Home, etc.,
+ etc.
+
+The whole carefully revised, innocently amusing, instructive and
+entertaining, forming a delightful reading book of poetical selections
+from the best authors.
+
+
+THE
+
+ART OF HOUSEKEEPING.
+
+By Mary Stuart Smith.
+
+WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.
+
+PRICE 10 CENTS.
+
+A thoroughly practical book on housekeeping by an experienced and
+celebrated housekeeper. Mrs. Smith is a capable and distinguished
+writer upon all subjects connected with the kitchen and household.
+
+The foregoing works are for sale by all newsdealers, or will be sent to
+any address, postage free, on receipt of price, by the publishers.
+
+ Address GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS,
+ MUNRO’S PUBLISHING HOUSE,
+ 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+
+
+
+
+A PRACTICAL GUIDE
+
+To the Acquisition of the
+
+SPANISH LANGUAGE.
+
+BY LUCIEN OUDIN, A.M.
+
+Price 10 Cents.
+
+
+MUNRO’S FRENCH SERIES.
+
+No. 1:
+
+An Elementary Grammar of the French Language.
+
+BY ILLION COSTELLANO.
+
+Price 10 Cents.
+
+
+MUNRO’S FRENCH SERIES.
+
+Nos. 2 and 3:
+
+Practical Guides to the French Language.
+
+BY LUCIEN OUDIN, A.M.
+
+Price 10 Cents Each.
+
+
+MUNRO’S GERMAN SERIES.
+
+(TWO VOLUMES)
+
+A METHOD OF Learning German on a New and Easy Plan.
+
+BY EDWARD CHAMIER.
+
+
+The above books afford a cheap and easy means of learning the Spanish,
+French, and German languages. They have had a large sale, and have
+invariably given entire satisfaction.
+
+For sale by all newsdealers, or sent by mail, on receipt of the price,
+10 cents each, by the publishers.
+
+ Address GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS,
+ MUNRO’S PUBLISHING HOUSE,
+ (P. O. Box 1781.) 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+
+
+
+
+Transcriber’s Notes:
+
+
+This novel first appeared as a serial in the _Fireside Companion_ story
+paper from October 1, 1883 to February 4, 1884.
+
+Obvious typographical errors have been silently corrected.
+
+Some inconsistent hyphenation (childlike vs. child-like) was retained
+from the original.
+Table of contents has been added and placed into the public domain by
+the transcriber.
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 77775 ***
diff --git a/77775-h/77775-h.htm b/77775-h/77775-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..52c7c19
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-h/77775-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,12092 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html>
+<html lang="en">
+<head>
+ <meta charset="UTF-8">
+ <meta name="viewport" content="width=device-width, initial-scale=1">
+ <title>
+ Sworn to silence; or, Aline Rodney's secret | Project Gutenberg
+ </title>
+ <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
+ <style>
+
+body {
+ margin-left: 10%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+}
+
+h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 {
+ text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
+ clear: both;
+}
+
+p {
+ margin-top: .51em;
+ text-align: justify;
+ margin-bottom: .49em;
+}
+
+.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
+.p4 {margin-top: 4em;}
+
+hr {
+ width: 33%;
+ margin-top: 2em;
+ margin-bottom: 2em;
+ margin-left: 33.5%;
+ margin-right: 33.5%;
+ clear: both;
+}
+
+hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
+hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
+@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
+
+hr.r5 {width: 5%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; margin-left: 47.5%; margin-right: 47.5%;}
+
+div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
+h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
+
+table.autotable { margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto; border-collapse: collapse; }
+table.autotable td,
+table.autotable th { padding: 0.25em; }
+td.tdl { text-align: left; }
+td.tdr { text-align: right; }
+
+.pagenum {
+ position: absolute;
+ left: 92%;
+ font-size: small;
+ text-align: right;
+ font-style: normal;
+ font-weight: normal;
+ font-variant: normal;
+ text-indent: 0;
+} /* page numbers */
+
+blockquote {
+ margin-top: 0;
+ margin-bottom: 0;
+ margin-left: 5%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+}
+
+.center {text-align: center;}
+
+.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
+
+.u {text-decoration: underline;}
+
+/* Images */
+
+img {
+ max-width: 100%;
+ height: auto;
+}
+img.w100 {width: 100%;}
+
+
+.figcenter {
+ margin: auto;
+ text-align: center;
+ page-break-inside: avoid;
+ max-width: 100%;
+}
+
+.figleft {
+ float: left;
+ clear: left;
+ margin-left: 0;
+ margin-bottom: 1em;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-right: 1em;
+ padding: 0;
+ text-align: center;
+ page-break-inside: avoid;
+ max-width: 100%;
+}
+/* comment out next line and uncomment the following one for floating figleft on ebookmaker output */
+.x-ebookmaker .figleft {float: none; text-align: center; margin-right: 0;}
+/* .x-ebookmaker .figleft {float: left;} */
+
+/* Poetry */
+/* uncomment the next line for centered poetry */
+/* .poetry-container {display: flex; justify-content: center;} */
+.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
+.poetry {text-align: left; margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 5%;}
+.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
+.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
+
+/* Transcriber's notes */
+.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
+ color: black;
+ font-size:small;
+ padding:0.5em;
+ margin-bottom:5em;
+ font-family:sans-serif, serif;
+}
+
+
+/* Poetry indents */
+.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3.0em;}
+.poetry .indent1 {text-indent: -2.5em;}
+.poetry .indent3 {text-indent: -1.5em;}
+.poetry .indent9 {text-indent: 1.5em;}
+.poetry .indent12 {text-indent: 3.0em;}
+.poetry .indent14 {text-indent: 4.0em;}
+
+.small {font-size: 75%;}
+.medium {font-size: 125%;}
+.large {font-size:150%;}
+.huge {font-size:200%;}
+.sig {text-align: right; margin-right: 2.5em; }
+.inverted { transform: scale(1, -1); display: inline-block; }
+
+/* Illustration classes */
+.illowp49 {width: 49%;}
+.x-ebookmaker .illowp49 {width: 100%;}
+.illowe15 {width: 15em;}
+.illowe2_5 {width: 2.5em;}
+.illowe25 {width: 25em;}
+.illowe20 {width: 20em;}
+ </style>
+</head>
+<body>
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 77775 ***</div>
+
+<figure class="figcenter illowp49" id="cover" style="max-width: 115.375em;">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+
+<div class="chapter">
+<p class="center u">PRICE 25 CENTS</p>
+<h1>
+ SWORN TO SILENCE<br>
+ <span class="small">or, ALINE RODNEY’S SECRET.</span>
+</h1>
+</div>
+<p class="center medium">By MRS. ALEX. McVEIGH MILLER.</p>
+<p class="center">THE SWEETHEART SERIES</p>
+<table class="autotable"><tr><td class="medium">
+ GEORGE<br>
+ MUNRO’S<br>
+ SONS,<br>
+ PUBLISHERS.<br>
+</td><td class="medium">
+ 17 to 27<br>
+ VANDEWATER<br>
+ STREET,<br>
+ NEW YORK.<br>
+</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="small">
+ Copyright, 1898, by George Munro’s Sons.<br>
+</td><td class="small">
+ By Subscription, $10.00 per Annum.
+</td></tr></table>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_NEW_YORK_FASHION_BAZAR">
+ <span class="small">THE NEW YORK FASHION BAZAR</span><br>
+ Model Letter-Writer and Lovers’ Oracle.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p class="center">WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>PRICE 10 CENTS.</b></p>
+
+<p>This book is a complete guide for both ladies and gentlemen in elegant
+and fashionable letter-writing: containing perfect examples of
+every form of correspondence, business letters, love letters, letters to
+relatives and friends, wedding and reception cards, invitations to entertainments,
+letters accepting and declining invitations, letters of introduction
+and recommendation, letters of condolence and duty, widows’
+and widowers’ letters, love letters for all occasions, proposals of
+marriage, letters between betrothed lovers, letters of a young girl to
+her sweetheart, correspondence relating to household management,
+letters accompanying gifts, etc. Every form of letter used in affairs of
+the heart will be found in this little book. It contains simple and full
+directions for writing a good letter on all occasions. The latest forms
+used in the best society have been carefully followed. It is an excellent
+manual of reference for all forms of engraved cards and invitations.</p>
+
+
+<hr>
+
+<h2>The New York Fashion Bazar Book of the Toilet.</h2>
+
+<p class="center">WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>PRICE 10 CENTS.</b></p>
+
+<p>This is a little book which we can recommend to every lady for the
+Preservation and Increase of Health and Beauty. It contains full directions
+for all the arts and mysteries of personal decoration, and for
+increasing the natural graces of form and expression. All the little affections
+of the skin, hair, eyes, and body, that detract from appearance
+and happiness, are made the subjects of precise and excellent recipes.
+Ladies are instructed how to reduce their weight without injury to
+health and without producing pallor and weakness. Nothing necessary
+to a complete toilet book of recipes and valuable advice and information
+has been overlooked in the compilation of this volume.</p>
+
+
+<hr>
+
+<h2>The New York Fashion Bazar Book of Etiquette.</h2>
+
+<p class="center">WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>PRICE 10 CENTS.</b></p>
+
+<p>This book is a guide to good manners and the ways of fashionable
+society, a complete hand-book of behavior, containing all the polite
+observances of modern life: the etiquette of engagements and marriages;
+the manners and training of children; the arts of conversation
+and polite letter-writing; invitations to dinners, evening parties and entertainments
+of all descriptions; table manners; etiquette of visits and
+public places; how to serve breakfasts, luncheons, dinners and teas;
+how to dress, travel, shop, and behave at hotels and watering-places.
+This book contains all that a lady or gentleman requires for correct behavior
+on all social occasions.</p>
+
+
+<p>The foregoing works are for sale by all newsdealers, or will be sent
+to any address, postage free, on receipt of price, by the publishers.</p>
+
+<p class="center">
+ Address GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS,<br>
+ <span class="smcap">Munro’s Publishing House</span>,<br>
+ 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a id="Page_1"></a><a id="Page_2"></a>[Pg 2]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="A_Skin_of_Beauty_is_a_Joy_Forever">
+ A Skin of Beauty is a Joy Forever
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<p class="center medium">DR. T. FELIX GOURAUD’S</p>
+
+<p class="center huge">Oriental Cream</p>
+
+<p class="center medium">OR MAGICAL BEAUTIFIER</p>
+
+<p class="center medium"><i>For the Skin and Complexion</i></p>
+
+<figure class="figleft illowe15" id="i1">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/i1.jpg" alt="Bottle with label: Oriental Cream, the Magical Beautifier">
+</figure>
+
+<p>The only toilet preparation
+in America that has stood
+the actual test of public approval
+for over half a century.</p>
+
+<p>It will purify and beautify
+the skin and remove Pimples,
+Blackheads, Moth Patches,
+Rash, Freckles and Vulgar
+Redness, Yellow and Muddy
+Skin, giving a delicately
+clear and refined complexion.
+It is highly recommended by
+leading society and professional
+ladies, and cannot be
+surpassed when preparing
+for evening attire.</p>
+
+<p>Price $1.50 per bottle.</p>
+
+<p>For sale at druggists’ and
+fancy goods dealers’, or will
+be sent direct on receipt of
+price.</p>
+
+
+<p class="center large">Gouraud’s Oriental Velvet Sponge</p>
+
+<p>The most satisfactory article for applying <b>Gouraud’s Oriental
+Cream</b>. 50 cents each, by mail on receipt of price.</p>
+
+<p class="center large">Gouraud’s Oriental Toilet Powder</p>
+
+<p>An ideal antiseptic toilet powder for infants and adults. Exquisitely
+perfumed. 25 cents a box by mail.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>FERD. T. HOPKINS, Proprietor, 37 Great Jones Street, New York</b></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[Pg 3]</span></p>
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+
+<div class="chapter">
+<h2>
+ Sworn to Silence;<br>
+ <br>
+ <span class="small">
+ or,<br>
+ <br>
+ ALINE RODNEY’S SECRET.</span></h2>
+</div>
+<p class="p2 center medium"><b>By MRS. ALEX McVEIGH MILLER.</b></p>
+<p class="p2">&nbsp;</p>
+<figure class="figcenter illowe2_5" id="i2">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/i2.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+<p class="center small">
+ Copyright 1883, by George Munro.<br>
+</p>
+<figure class="figcenter illowe2_5" id="i2a">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/i2.jpg" alt="">
+</figure>
+
+<p class="center small p4">(SWEETHEART)</p>
+
+<p class="center p4">
+ NEW YORK:<br>
+ <b>GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS, PUBLISHERS,</b><br>
+ 17 to 27 Vanderwater Street.
+</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[Pg 4]</span></p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+<figure class="figcenter illowe25" id="i3">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/i3.jpg" alt="FOR THE WOMAN OF FASHION à la Spirite C/B Corsets Straight Front Models">
+</figure>
+</div>
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_MOTHERS_MISSION">
+ THE MOTHER’S MISSION.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<figure class="figleft illowe20" id="i4">
+ <img class="w100" src="images/i4.jpg" alt="1840-1907. Mrs. WINSLOW’S SOOTHING SYRUP. For Children While Teething">
+</figure>
+
+<p>A great Emperor once
+asked one of his noble
+subjects what would secure
+his country the first place
+among the nations of the
+earth. The nobleman’s
+grand reply was “Good
+mothers.” Now, what constitutes
+a good mother?
+The answer is conclusive.
+She who, regarding the future
+welfare of her child,
+seeks every available means
+that may offer to promote a sound physical development, to the
+end that her offspring may not be deficient in any single faculty
+with which nature has endowed it. In infancy there is no period
+which is more likely to affect the future disposition of the child
+than that of teething, producing as it does fretfulness, moroseness
+of mind, etc., which if not checked will manifest itself in after days.</p>
+
+
+<p class="center"><b>USE MRS. WINSLOW’S SOOTHING SYRUP.</b></p>
+
+<p class="center small">Guaranteed under the Food and Drugs Act, June 30th, 1906. Serial Number 1098.</p>
+
+
+<p class="center"><b>FOR OVER SIXTY YEARS</b></p>
+
+<p class="center medium"><b>An Old and Well-Tried Remedy</b></p>
+
+<p><b>MRS. WINSLOW’S SOOTHING SYRUP</b> has been used for over <b>SIXTY</b>
+YEARS by MILLIONS of MOTHERS for their CHILDREN WHILE TEETHING,
+WITH PERFECT SUCCESS. IT SOOTHES the CHILD, SOFTENS the GUMS,
+ALLAYS all PAIN; CURES WIND COLIC, and is the best remedy for DIARRHOEA.
+Sold by Druggists in every part of the world. Be sure and ask for <b>MRS. WINSLOW’S
+SOOTHING SYRUP</b>, and take no other kind.</p>
+
+
+<p class="center medium"><b>Twenty-Five Cents a Bottle.</b></p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[Pg 5]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="SWORN_TO_SILENCE">
+ SWORN TO SILENCE.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CONTENTS">
+ CONTENTS
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p class="center">
+<a href="#CHAPTER_I">CHAPTER I.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">CHAPTER XXIX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">CHAPTER XXX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXI">CHAPTER XXXI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXII">CHAPTER XXXII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIII">CHAPTER XXXIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIV">CHAPTER XXXIV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXV">CHAPTER XXXV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVI">CHAPTER XXXVI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVII">CHAPTER XXXVII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVIII">CHAPTER XXXVIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIX">CHAPTER XXXIX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XL">CHAPTER XL.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLI">CHAPTER XLI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLII">CHAPTER XLII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLIII">CHAPTER XLIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLIV">CHAPTER XLIV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLV">CHAPTER XLV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLVI">CHAPTER XLVI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLVII">CHAPTER XLVII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLVIII">CHAPTER XLVIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_XLIX">CHAPTER XLIX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_L">CHAPTER L.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LI">CHAPTER LI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LII">CHAPTER LII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LIII">CHAPTER LIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LIV">CHAPTER LIV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LV">CHAPTER LV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LVI">CHAPTER LVI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LVII">CHAPTER LVII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LVIII">CHAPTER LVIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LIX">CHAPTER LIX</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LX">CHAPTER LX.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXI">CHAPTER LXI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXII">CHAPTER LXII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXIII">CHAPTER LXIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXIV">CHAPTER LXIV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXV">CHAPTER LXV.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXVI">CHAPTER LXVI.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXVII">CHAPTER LXVII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXVIII">CHAPTER LXVIII.</a><br>
+<a href="#CHAPTER_LXIX">CHAPTER LXIX.</a>
+</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_I">
+ CHAPTER I.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Fair roses from far countries</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Around my portals twine;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Bright on their radiant faces</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Caressing sunbeams shine,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">But my neighbor over yonder</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Has a fairer rose than mine.</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“I see his dainty cottage</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Beyond my garden bowers,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">High o’er it, tall and stately,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">My shadowing mansion towers;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">But my neighbor’s Rose of roses</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Is sweeter than my flowers.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The family carriage of the Rodneys stood before the gate, and
+Mouse and Kitty, the two sleek gray ponies, champed their bits impatiently
+while the Rodneys, great and small, issued forth in gala
+attire.</p>
+
+<p>They were going to the picnic in Walnut Grove—mamma, papa,
+Effie, and little Max—all but Aline, and <i>she</i> was in disgrace and forbidden
+to go. (Not that the command itself would have been sufficient
+to detain her, but she was locked into her room, “in durance
+vile,” and left in charge of the cook for safe-keeping.)</p>
+
+<p>Aline was usually in disgrace with the family. She had the
+sweetest face and the warmest heart in the world, but with her high
+spirits and willful ways she had a most lamentable faculty for getting
+into mischief of some sort daily, and it was for some more
+flagrant offense than usual that mamma had sternly vetoed the picnic
+to-day and locked her into her room to meditate on her many and
+grievous faults.</p>
+
+<p>The culprit, from her upper window, flattened her pretty piquant
+little nose against the window-pane and gazed after the departing
+quartet with great sparkling tears in the lovely eyes whose rare and
+peculiar shade of deep purple-blue had been caught from the far-off
+strain of Irish blood that flowed in her veins. They were “sweetest
+eyes were ever seen,” at once arch and tender and shaded by long,
+black-fringed lashes overarched by—</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Slender brows of shining jet,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Limned against the forehead’s snow,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Like triumphal arches set</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">O’er the conquering eyes below.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>The Rodneys entered the carriage, and Aline flung them one last
+despairing kiss from the tips of her slim white fingers, but no one
+saw except, perhaps, her little brother, who looked up regretfully
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[Pg 6]</span>and saw the lovely, girlish face smiling at him through its sparkling
+tears. Then the carriage door was closed, Mouse and Kitty broke
+into a sedate trot, and the sweet face retired from the window and
+hid itself in a small square of snowy linen. Aline’s heart was for
+the moment completely broken.</p>
+
+<p>It was no small trial to be shut up in that hot, stifling little chamber
+all that lovely, sunny July day. She thought of the beautiful
+green grove close by the shining river, with the light winds ruffling
+its cool breast, of the happy gathering of young people, the games,
+the dancing, the hamper baskets of cold chicken and sweetmeats, indigestible
+pickles and pies and cakes, prepared for the gay, unceremonious
+dinner, and her heart sunk heavily. She would not willingly
+have foregone the delights of that day for anything she
+possessed. Any other punishment she could have borne with
+equanimity, but it did seem as if mamma had been actuated by
+malice prepense in forbidding the picnic to which Aline had looked
+forward eagerly for two long weeks.</p>
+
+<p>She wept some bitter tears, distinctly tinctured with anger, into
+her snowy handkerchief, then she wiped her eyes and looked about
+her for some means of passing the tedious time away. Her mother
+had brought her up a volume of sermons, by way of profitable reading.
+Aline vented her spite and disappointment most unjustifiably
+on the unoffending volume, by tossing it out of the little end window
+into her neighbor’s garden, and the innocent missile, in its rapid
+descent, hit her neighbor sharply upon the head.</p>
+
+<p>When she saw what she had done, a little cry of dismay broke
+from her lips. The great gray stone mansion standing in the beautiful
+garden next door to Mr. Rodney’s cottage was known throughout
+the little village of Chester as a haunted house; and its owner,
+the dark, moody-looking man who had just returned from a protracted
+sojourn abroad, was generally considered a very mysterious
+man. He was immensely rich, a bachelor, and handsome in a dark,
+corsair-like style that the girls of Chester considered very fascinating
+although it was so inaccessible.</p>
+
+<p>As for the gentleman himself he neither knew nor cared what the
+good villagers thought of him. He was among them, but not of
+them. He sought no society and received no guests. He dwelt
+alone and lonely in the grand old mansion where several generations
+of his ancestors had lived and died, and which popular imagination
+peopled with ghosts. Indeed, it was positively asserted that at the
+dread midnight hour shrieks of woe had been heard to issue from
+the deserted house, and lights had been seen flashing from window
+to window as if waved in phantom hands. The Delaneys had been
+a hard, proud, cruel race, so said Mme. Rumor, that knowing dame,
+and it was no wonder if some of them returned to earth in spirit to
+bewail the deeds done in the flesh.</p>
+
+<p>The humbler home of the Rodneys, a simple two-storied cottage,
+stood next the gloomy gray stone mansion, and the small end window
+of Aline’s little room overlooked the beautiful garden where the
+taciturn, grave-browed master strolled at will, and smoked his choice
+Havanas and switched off the heads of his splendid roses and lilies
+with his slender ebony cane as if hating all things beautiful and
+sweet.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[Pg 7]</span></p>
+
+<p>Many a time and oft Aline had watched this strange, mysterious
+unknown neighbor of theirs through a crevice in the white curtain,
+and speculated curiously over his history, while she inwardly deprecated
+the fact that those splendid flowers belonged to such a
+monster.</p>
+
+<p>“The cruel wretch! To snap off their heads with his ugly stick!
+I should like to knock <i>his</i> head off!” Aline often muttered indignantly
+to herself, and lo! now in her eagerness to place the obnoxious
+book forever beyond her mother’s reach, she had almost compassed
+her wish. She saw the tall, straight figure reel a moment
+under the suddenness of the blow, saw him put his white hand
+quickly to his head, where a sharp corner of the book had inadvertently
+struck it. In her terror and dismay she uttered a little
+cry of alarm and regret. He looked up quickly at the sound—so
+quickly that she could not retreat.</p>
+
+<p>As he looked up he saw the sweetest girl face he had ever beheld
+in his life—beautiful even through its frightened pallor—with
+startled, wide-open blue eyes, the long black lashes curled upward,
+giving them an expression of almost infantine innocence and purity.
+The delicate oval of the lovely face was daintily broken by a deep
+dimple in the rounded chin, the parted red lips disclosed teeth like
+pearls, and the dark, silken hair, worn in short, babyish rings on
+the round, white forehead, fell over her shoulders in long, loose,
+natural ringlets to the slender, rounded waist. Framed in the small,
+white-draped window, with a vine of his own rare clematis clambering
+up from his garden and twining luxuriantly about the casement,
+she looked like some beautiful picture—a picture that Oran Delaney
+carried in his heart to his dying day, “unforgotten in every charm.”</p>
+
+<p>For her, she looked down into the dark, wondering eyes of her
+mysterious neighbor, and set her little teeth and held her ground
+bravely, determined not to fly from his wrath. Some confused, remorseful
+dread of mamma’s and Effie’s anger at this new scrape
+flashed into her mind momentarily; poor mamma, who thought that
+for this one day, at least, she had secured her willful, thoughtless
+darling from the commission of the smallest bit of mischief—and
+she determined to make a treaty of peace with this <i>bête noir</i> of hers,
+in order to secure his silence, little dreaming that with this culminating
+act of folly the story of her life would begin.</p>
+
+<p>Aline was ordinarily a brave girl, but she was honestly frightened
+now at what she had done. Oran Delaney was an ogre in her eyes,
+and her youthful imagination, fired by the descriptions she had heard
+of him, recoiled in dismay at the thought of his wrath. Of course
+he would suppose that she had hurled the book at his head on purpose.
+His anger would be something fearful, she did not doubt.
+Would he report her conduct to her parents? She resolved frantically
+that, at all odds, he should not do that. She could not endure it.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">
+ CHAPTER II.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>She tried to summon a smile to her lips, but they only quivered
+instead. Spite of her innocent propensity for getting into trouble,
+Aline was very sensitive. The ludicrous side of her position did
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[Pg 8]</span>not strike her in her awe of Oran Delaney. She summoned all her
+fortitude to her aid, and looked down into the dark, handsome face,
+waiting to hear him speak.</p>
+
+<p>But he did not do so. His upraised eyes stared straight into her
+own with a gaze full of wonder and perplexity; his dark mustached
+lips even smiled slightly. He would not speak. He was evidently
+waiting for her to take the initiative.</p>
+
+<p>Seeing this, Aline made a great effort. She leaned out of the window,
+and gasped, rather indistinctly:</p>
+
+<p>“I—I beg your pardon, Mr. Delaney. I didn’t mean to throw the
+book out—that is, I meant to throw it out, but I didn’t mean to hit
+you! I didn’t know you were there!”</p>
+
+<p>Having mumbled out this comprehensive apology, Aline waited
+anxiously for his answer.</p>
+
+<p>She saw a smile creeping around his lips, as the ludicrous state of
+the case dawned on him. The face that looked so cold and stern,
+as she watched it daily under the shadow of his broad-leaved hat,
+did not appear so terrible now, as he stood with uncovered head
+gazing up at her. It even had a beauty of its own, if one fancied
+straight, even features, an olive skin, dark, magnetic eyes, dark,
+clustering locks, tossed carelessly back from a broad, intellectual
+brow, and a smile that, when it curved the mustached lips, lent the
+charm of fascination to his whole face. That smile, as it shone on
+Aline now, inspired her with unconscious courage. She continued,
+pleadingly:</p>
+
+<p>“I hope you will excuse me, sir, and—and—if you please, I hope
+you will not tell mamma.”</p>
+
+<p>He picked up the book, and, turning the leaves, asked, in a deep,
+musical, slightly amused voice:</p>
+
+<p>“If you did not intend the missile for me, may I ask why you
+threw the book out at all?”</p>
+
+<p>“I was mad,” said Aline, flushing a little at the admission.</p>
+
+<p>“Mad—with such a good book as this? Sermons, aren’t they?”
+inquired Oran Delaney, lightly, as if talking to a child, which, in
+fact, she appeared to be, as seen at the window. Her face looked
+very young. He could not judge of the tall, rounded figure as she
+rested on her elbows, and looked down at him.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes—sermons—but awfully dry, you know,” she returned
+apologetically; “but, after all, you know, I oughtn’t to have thrown
+them away; mamma wouldn’t like it. Will you please throw the
+book back to me, Mr. Delaney?”</p>
+
+<p>He made several attempts to do so, but Aline was not clever at
+catching. It eluded the white, outstretched hands every time, and
+fell back into her neighbor’s garden. They both laughed. Aline
+began to think that her neighbor might not be such an ogre, after
+all.</p>
+
+<p>“Twice you have let it fall back upon my head,” he said. “You
+are too clumsy to catch it at all. Come down to the window in the
+first story, and I will hand it up to you.”</p>
+
+<p>“I—can’t,” replied Aline, flushing very red indeed.</p>
+
+<p>“Why not?” wonderingly.</p>
+
+<p>“I am locked into my room,” flushing deeper with shame.</p>
+
+<p>“Impossible! Who is your jailer?” inquired the gentleman.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[Pg 9]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Mamma; she has locked the door and gone off, leaving me here
+to read those dreary sermons that I threw away.”</p>
+
+<p>There is a moment’s silence. Aline reads palpable surprise on her
+neighbor’s face. The shame-flush deepens on her own.</p>
+
+<p>Presently, with a laugh, he says:</p>
+
+<p>“You must have been a very naughty girl, weren’t you?”</p>
+
+<p>“I didn’t mean to be, but mamma and Effie said I was. So they
+went off to the picnic, and locked me in here to punish me,” Aline
+said, growing confidential as her dread of Mr. Delaney grew less.
+“And oh, if they ever find out that I threw a book and knocked
+your hat off, I shall never hear the last of it. You won’t tell—will
+you?” pleadingly.</p>
+
+<p>“What would they do to you?—lock you into your room again?”</p>
+
+<p>“Worse than that, perhaps. I dare say they would devise some
+new punishment worse than any I have suffered yet,” sighing.</p>
+
+<p>“Are they cruel to you?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, no, only when I get into scrapes, as they say I am always
+doing. I am mischievous, they say, but I never mean to be. The
+way I get into trouble is like I did just now, you see, without
+knowing it,” she explains, plaintively.</p>
+
+<p>“A spoiled, willful child,” Oran Delaney says to himself, smiling;
+then, aloud: “Well, about this book—how am I to return it
+to you?”</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t know—and mamma will be so vexed with me,” plaintively.
+“Cannot you think of a plan?”</p>
+
+<p>The sweet entreaty in the blue eyes moved him strangely. He
+looks around.</p>
+
+<p>“Let me see. There is a step-ladder hereabouts used by the gardener
+in training vines against the wall. I might climb that.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, pray do,” she clasps her hands entreatingly, and he goes
+away in search of the article.</p>
+
+<p>Returning with a light, convenient step-ladder, he places it against
+the side of the house beneath the window. Her voice arrests him as
+he is about to ascend it.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, if you please, Mr. Delaney, I should like a bunch of your
+nice roses,” this rather timidly.</p>
+
+<p>“Should you?” he says, surprised; then he looks around him at
+his beautiful garden glowing with all the lavish wealth of July—roses
+and lilies, and all the sweet sisterhood of flowers. From the
+green bowers and blooming beds of the garden, he lifts a keen glance
+to the upper windows of his stately house. The blinds are tightly
+closed at every window, an air of gloom and desertion pervades the
+scene. His glance goes back to that girlish face that is sweeter than
+all his flowers.</p>
+
+<p>“You love flowers?” he says.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, so much!” she breathes, clasping her hands in pretty unconscious
+earnestness. “I wish that your garden were mine!”</p>
+
+<p>“Are you aware that you are transgressing the tenth commandment?”
+he inquires, dryly.</p>
+
+<p>“Am I? I don’t care. I can’t help envying you that splendid
+garden. You may have your house, and its ghosts, and welcome,
+but I do want your flowers.”</p>
+
+<p>“Ghosts,” he says, and a slight frown darkens on his brow.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[Pg 10]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Yes, there <i>are</i> ghosts in that big, gloomy house, aren’t there?
+People say so, at least,” she answers.</p>
+
+<p>He makes no answer. The half smile he has worn until now
+fades from his face. He remains lost in thought a moment, then
+abruptly turns the subject.</p>
+
+<p>“Since you like flowers so well, you may come down and take
+all you want.”</p>
+
+<p>“How?” she asks, bewildered.</p>
+
+<p>“Down the ladder,” he replies, carelessly, and Aline catches her
+breath.</p>
+
+<p>To be permitted to set foot in that lovely spot, than which it seems
+to her the garden of Eden had not been lovelier—to fill her hands
+with those exquisite flowers, and her heart and soul with their fragrance.
+It seems too good to be true. But, down the ladder? Would
+that be right? A premonitory vision of mamma’s horror darted into
+her mind. She set the temptation side by side with the scolding and
+the punishment, and weighed them, and, a true daughter of Mother
+Eve, she let her own willful desires triumph.</p>
+
+<p>It was so pleasant to think of escaping from that stifling chamber,
+and reveling in green grass and tender flowers and springing fountains.
+She asked herself if it could be very wrong to escape from
+her prison for a very little while? As for descending the ladder, she
+did not mind that very much. I am ashamed to state that my heroine
+had been reproachfully accused of tomboyish propensities by her
+relations.</p>
+
+<p>She looked down a little wistfully into Oran Delaney’s dark, proud
+face.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you think it would be very wrong if I came down?” she
+said.</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot see where the harm would be,” he replied, lightly.</p>
+
+<p>“Then, if you will go away down that path there, I will come
+down the ladder and get some roses,” said Aline; and he laughed
+and walked away.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">
+ CHAPTER III.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>When she had set foot in the garden and he came back to her,
+he was honestly surprised. He had thought her a precocious child
+of thirteen. Here was a tall girl up to his shoulder, with a figure
+that was rounding into the gracious curves of womanhood—eighteen
+at the very least, he decided, in spite of her childish manner and the
+simple blue gingham dress whose ruffled skirt was still short enough
+to betray half an inch of <i>écru</i> stocking above the top of her trim
+little buttoned boots.</p>
+
+<p>She looked back a little apprehensively at the step-ladder at the
+window.</p>
+
+<p>“You may move the ladder until I get my flowers,” she said.
+“I am afraid that if cook came up to see after me she would find
+me out.”</p>
+
+<p>He was rather amused at her pretty air of command as contrasted
+with her frightened, appealing tones of a little while ago. He obeyed
+her command, then sat down carelessly on a rustic seat, and watched
+her as she flitted about among his flowers. First she adorned herself,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[Pg 11]</span>after the manner of a vain woman, with a bunch of rosebuds
+in the soft little fichu of white lace at her neck, and another at the
+belt of her white apron. Then she roved about from flower to flower,
+daintily and capriciously as a butterfly, but culling sweets as industriously
+as a bee, her white apron soon being filled with the scented
+beauties. Absorbed in her delightful occupation, time flew unheeded.
+She seemed to forget her neighbor, and the grim, gray house,
+whose shadow reached out long and dark and forbidding across the
+garden and compassed her in its gloom like a fateful prophecy.</p>
+
+<p>He watched the child, as he called her to himself, idly, and yet
+with that something of interest that even the cold and world-hardened
+cannot deny to youth and happiness. Something of pity
+mingled with his careless thoughts. She seemed so young, and gay,
+and light-hearted, and he knew that it could not last, that the years
+would overtake her, and teach her that</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Youth’s life is but a brief one,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Foam from an ebbing sea.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>She passed out of sight under the shady arches of the trees, and
+for a little while Oran Delaney forgot her. He smoked a cigar with
+his hat drawn over his eyes, and his moody brows drawn together.
+The sudden silvery tinkle of a bell from the house aroused him to
+a remembrance of luncheon and his guest.</p>
+
+<p>He glanced around him, and caught the glimmer of a blue dress
+among the trees. Following it, he found her hovering over a bed of
+exquisite pansies, murmuring softly to herself little exclamations of
+girlish pleasure and delight.</p>
+
+<p>“I hope you will forgive me for rousing you to the prosaic realities
+of life,” he said, “but my luncheon is ready, and I came to ask
+you to share it.”</p>
+
+<p>“Luncheon!” She glanced up with a startled face. “Is it so
+late as that?”</p>
+
+<p>“‘How softly falls the foot of Time, that only treads on flowers!’”
+he quoted. “Yes, it is two o’clock”—glancing at his watch—“has
+not your physical entity already reminded you of that fact?”</p>
+
+<p>“If you mean that I ought to be hungry by this time, I believe
+it is true,” said she, smiling. “Although I had not thought of it
+before, I believe I should like a biscuit. But I must go home now;
+I cannot stay to lunch with you. Do not look at this great load of
+flowers, Mr. Delaney; I am afraid you will scold.”</p>
+
+<p>“You have tried to carry off every one in the garden, I see,” he
+returned, uncaring. “But my peaches and grapes are as sweet and
+lovely as my flowers. Come and try them.”</p>
+
+<p>Another temptation! Nothing ever tasted so delicious to Aline as
+the sunny side of a peach. She was curious over Mr. Delaney’s
+lunch, too, and wondered who prepared it, and what the inside of
+that great house looked like. Ever since they had come to the cottage
+to live, she had been curious over it. Should she let the opportunity
+to enter it and see go unimproved?</p>
+
+<p>Aline was a true descendant of our common mother Eve—she
+preferred knowledge at any risk. Her curiosity and her liking for
+peaches carried her beyond the bounds of prudence. She went
+boldly into the “lion’s den.”</p>
+
+<p>Dear reader, do not think my heroine altogether bold and frivolous.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[Pg 12]</span>She was only simple, innocent, and ignorant. She had never
+been to Wisdom’s school. She was at heart a child still, with a
+child’s free, willful impulses.</p>
+
+<p>It did not occur to her that it was very improper to accept Mr.
+Delaney’s careless invitation to go into his house and take lunch
+with him. She wished very much to do so, and, being used to having
+her own way—very often with only occasional condign punishment,
+such as she had received to-day—she went.</p>
+
+<p>She went, and she was almost startled at the gloomy magnificence
+of the long and stately dining-hall, with its costly carpet, thick and
+soft as moss, its dark, rich, walnut furniture, glittering side-boards,
+paneled walls, and splendid pictures. On one end of the long, imposing
+table was spread a delicate, luxurious luncheon of cold
+chicken, flaky biscuit, sweetmeats, and cake, with grapes, peaches,
+and wine. The service was of gold, and silver, and crystal, and
+glittered in the subdued light that stole into the room through the
+closed curtains. There was no attendant in the room, and the whole
+house appeared as silent as the tomb. Nevertheless, Aline enjoyed
+her lunch very much; its mysterious origin seeming as if served by
+magic, and the costly plate on which it was laid did not detract from
+its charm. In her enjoyment of the delicate repast she quite forgot
+her original intention of eating only just one peach and hurrying
+home. She discussed the whole bill of fare with the keen appetite
+of a healthy girl used to out door exercise and fresh air; and then
+she was quite frightened to find that it was three o’clock.</p>
+
+<p>“Cook will have taken luncheon up to my room and found out
+that I have gone. What shall I do?” she said, growing suddenly
+frightened and lifting her large, anxious eyes to her entertainer’s
+face.</p>
+
+<p>“Cook will not tell of you, I hope. Will she?” asked Mr. Delaney,
+coolly peeling a peach with his white, aristocratic hand, on
+which a magnificent diamond glowed with iridescent fire. “Have
+this peach, Miss—Miss—do you know I haven’t found out your
+name yet?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is Aline—Aline Rodney. I thought you would know that
+much, as we are neighbors,” she said; then returning to her grievance,
+she added: “Cook will certainty betray me. You should
+have sent me home sooner. Why didn’t you?”</p>
+
+<p>“That would have been discourteous,” said Oran Delaney, with
+his winning smile; “and, besides, Miss Rodney, I forgot you. Will
+you pardon me for it? I was smoking and dreaming, you see, and
+you escaped my mind for the moment.”</p>
+
+<p>“‘Out of sight, out of mind,’” said Aline, quoting the old adage
+with perfect good humor. “Well, it was just the same with me. I
+thought of nothing but the flowers until you came up suddenly behind
+me. But I must go home now and see if I am found out. Ah,
+dear me, I am into another scrape, and, indeed, indeed, I never
+dreamed of it when I came down into the garden. I shall have to
+go down on my knees to cook, and beg her to keep it silent about
+the ladder and the book.”</p>
+
+<p>“Since you feel so sure that you are found out, there can surely
+be no need to haste to return to your prison,” said Oran Delaney,
+toying with a purple, bloomy bunch of grapes. “An hour more or
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[Pg 13]</span>less cannot matter materially, I suppose, in the extent of cook’s
+wrath?”</p>
+
+<p>“N—no, I suppose not,” said Aline, paltering with temptation
+weakly. “And I do hate to go back to that lonely room just yet.
+But, perhaps,” gazing at him, anxiously, “perhaps you would like
+for me to go. Perhaps you are weary of me.”</p>
+
+<p>A sudden sigh, deep, subtle, profound, breathed over his lips. He
+looked at her strangely.</p>
+
+<p>“I am weary of everything,” he said, abruptly. “But if it
+pleases you to stay, child, pray do so. It will be no annoyance to
+me.”</p>
+
+<p>From being terribly afraid of him at first, Aline had become quite
+trusting and confidential. She looked at him with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you for your kind permission,” she said. “I will not
+go just yet. There are some things I should like to find out before
+I go home.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are very frank.”</p>
+
+<p>“Do you think so?” asked his unconventional guest. “And will
+you answer truly what I am about to ask you?”</p>
+
+<p>“<i>Cela depends</i>,” he replied, with a slight frown.</p>
+
+<p>“That means that you anticipate impertinent questions from me!”
+she laughed, easily. “But do you know, Mr. Delaney, that you
+have long been an object of curiosity to me?”</p>
+
+<p>“You flatter me,” said Oran Delaney, lightly.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t know whether the curiosity is flattering or not,” said
+frank Aline. “The greater part of my curiosity is over this great,
+gloomy-looking house of yours. Is it really haunted, as they say?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is haunted by my presence—nothing more ghostly than that,”
+he replied, laconically.</p>
+
+<p>Aline looked as if she did not quite believe him, but she went on,
+perseveringly:</p>
+
+<p>“Do you really live in this house all alone, sir?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>Her large eyes wandered over the delicately prepared luncheon,
+then returned to his quiet face.</p>
+
+<p>“But, really now, Mr. Delaney, there must be a housekeeper here.
+Else by whom could your meals be served?” she said.</p>
+
+<p>“By the fairies,” he replied, with perfect gravity.</p>
+
+<p>“You don’t expect me to believe that?” said Aline, pouting her
+rosy lips.</p>
+
+<p>“I hope you will. At least it is the only answer I can give you,”
+he retorted.</p>
+
+<p>Aline looked curiously at him. There was a slight smile on his
+face, but he spoke in grave earnest. She understood then that the
+secrets of the haunted house would remain secret still. He had no
+mind to reveal them to her.</p>
+
+<p>The rich color rose to her face as it suddenly flashed over her that
+he must think she made him a poor return for his courtesy by her
+pointed questions.</p>
+
+<p>“I beg your pardon for my impertinent questions,” she said. “I
+did not really mean to be rude. I was merely thoughtless.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are freely forgiven,” he answered, courteously.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[Pg 14]</span></p>
+
+<p>“And now I will thank you for your kindness, and go,” Aline
+continued, moving from the table and turning toward the door.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Delaney walked by her side and opened the door for her with
+his quiet, courteous air.</p>
+
+<p>“You have done me the honor to be curious over my old house,
+Miss Rodney,” he said. “Perhaps this glimpse of its interior has
+not satisfied you. Do you care to examine any of the other rooms?”</p>
+
+<p>They were walking slowly along, side by side on the echoing floor
+of the wide, marble-paved hall, and Aline had just opened her lips
+to speak, but her answer, whether negative or affirmative, will never
+be recorded. It was frozen on her lips by a terrible interruption.</p>
+
+<p>The strange, brooding stillness that reigned throughout the great,
+gray stone mansion, was broken startlingly by a loud, prolonged
+shriek—a shriek of such terrible, diabolic, blood-curdling rage and
+hate, that it seemed to freeze the blood in Aline’s veins, and to cause
+every individual hair to stand erect upon her head with horror.</p>
+
+<p>Instinctively she threw out her hand, and clutching Mr. Delaney’s
+arm, stared up into his face with wide, terrified blue eyes, like a
+child’s appealing for protection.</p>
+
+<p>The shriek was repeated, followed by another, and another, each
+more terrible than the last. Those fearful cries struck terror to
+Aline’s heart. She could not determine whether they issued from
+male or female lips. It seemed to her frenzied fancy as if they did
+not belong to a human being, but rather to some vicious and diabolic
+spirit of the nether world. It</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Was neither man nor woman,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">It was neither brute nor human,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">’Twas a ghoul.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">
+ CHAPTER IV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>As those wild, unearthly cries rang through the house, Oran Delaney
+stood for a moment like one rooted to the floor. His face had
+whitened to the ghastliness of death, a smoldering fire flashed from
+his splendid dark eyes, he ground a fierce, smothered imprecation
+between his strong, white teeth.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it? Oh! Mr. Delaney, what is it?” shuddered Aline,
+clinging convulsively to his arm.</p>
+
+<p>He started, and looked down at the sweet, white face, with its
+frightened blue eyes and chattering teeth. He did not answer, for
+again that dreadful, diabolic shriek of anger, frightening all the
+sleeping echoes into hideous sound, rang through the house:</p>
+
+<p>“Ah—h—h! Ah—h—h!”</p>
+
+<p>This time it sounded nearer, as if the ghostly utterer were coming
+rapidly upon the scene. Horror flashed from Oran Delaney’s eyes.</p>
+
+<p>With a sudden, swift, abrupt movement he shook the little, clinging
+hands from his sleeve, and moved toward the grand stairway
+that led to the upper regions of the house.</p>
+
+<p>With his foot upon the stair, he turned and looked back, pierced
+by the low, reproachful wail of fear and pain that burst from
+Aline’s lips.</p>
+
+<p>He saw the beautiful, graceful figure of the girl standing in the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[Pg 15]</span>dark, gloomy hall, lighting its gloom with her beauty, like a flower
+or a star.</p>
+
+<p>Like one distraught, he waved his hand to her.</p>
+
+<p>“Fly, fly!” he shouted, hoarsely. “Lose not a moment! To
+linger in this terrible place means death!” Then he flew up the
+wide and winding stairway as if his feet were winged, and the girl,
+whose own willful folly and curiosity had brought her to this pass,
+stood like one rooted to the spot, filled with trembling and horror.</p>
+
+<p>She knew not where to fly. She was in the center of a long, dark
+hall, with doors opening into rooms on either hand and at either end.
+Through one of these latter doors she had come with Oran Delaney
+to the dining-room, but to save her life she could not have told
+which one. Oh, how horrible it was standing there, with those
+strange shrieks ringing in her ears, and feeling, with a strange despair
+at her heart, that Oran Delaney had fled from her like a coward,
+and left her to perish of this mysterious, unknown danger, rushing
+nearer and nearer!</p>
+
+<p>“Ah—h—h! Ah—h—h!” again rang shrilly in her frightened
+hearing, and, impelled by maddening fear, Aline sprung wildly forward
+and rushed to one of those wide hall doors, which she hoped
+would give her egress from this horror-haunted house, into sunshine
+and security again.</p>
+
+<p>She reached out her white hand gropingly for the door-knob,
+opened and fled through it as if pursued by a legion of fiends. It
+swung to heavily behind her, and her feet sunk deep into the velvet
+pile of a fine, rich carpet like softest moss. She was in the long and
+lofty parlors, where the dust lay thick upon the linen covers of the
+costly furniture, and the gleaming mirrors and splendid paintings
+were curtained from the sight. A cry of despair escaped her lips as
+she realized the truth.</p>
+
+<p>“It was the wrong door. I must retrace my steps,” she thought;
+but even as she laid her hand upon the knob she was startled by
+those hideous screams again—this time they seemed to come from
+the hall itself, and with a stifled exclamation Aline darted into the
+curtained alcove of a bay-window and let the heavy draperies of velvet
+and brocade fall heavily around her. She had scarcely done so
+before a hand turned the door-knob softly, something swished
+through the door, it closed again and she was conscious of an alien
+presence in the room. She could hear distinctly a heavy, muffled
+breathing, and the rustle of drapery trailed over the floor.</p>
+
+<p>Aline’s heart seemed beating in her throat almost to suffocation.
+She crouched upon the floor, her young face pale as death, her sweet
+eyes wild with horror of she knew not what invisible evil that was
+approaching her with swift, cat-like movements across the echoless
+floor. Was it ghost or human? she asked herself, fearfully.</p>
+
+<p>Crouching there, a little crumpled blue heap in the darkness, fearing
+to breathe lest her presence might be betrayed by even that stifled
+sound, Aline summoned courage to draw aside the lightest fold of
+the curtain to form a tiny aperture through which, herself unseen,
+she might see what or who had entered the darkened, dreary, deserted
+parlor. Curiosity, our little heroine’s besetting sin, had not deserted
+her yet, despite her fear and terror.</p>
+
+<p>She gazed fearfully through the tiny crevice in the curtain, and it
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[Pg 16]</span>was only by the exercise of a strong will power that she prevented
+herself from crying out aloud.</p>
+
+<p>A little dwarf-like, misshapen <i>something</i>, clothed in trailing garments
+like a woman, was approaching the alcove steadily and swiftly,
+as if guided by the unerring instinct of hate and murder to the
+hiding-place of its prey. The crooked hideous form was clothed
+with rich white satin and lace, all soiled and frayed as if from a terrible
+struggle, for there were wet and gory blood drops all spattered
+down the deep flounces of white lace that adorned the front breadth
+of the robe.</p>
+
+<p>Over a monstrous head, covered with rough matted locks of coarse
+black hair was thrown a long and splendid bridal veil of costly
+Brussels lace, and this, too, was soiled and tattered like the bridal
+robe. There was no face visible, for a mask was worn above it—a
+horrible mask of thick black crape; and Aline shuddered as she
+thought of the distorted features it hid, for the narrow slits for the
+eyes were not cut in a level line below the brows, but by some
+dreadful freak of nature the eyes of the creature were placed one
+below the brow, the other far down upon the cheek, and in this
+distorted form they glared through the holes of the mask like the
+yellow orbs of a tigress filled with the spirit of destruction.</p>
+
+<p>But these monstrous, baleful eyes were not all that struck terror
+to Aline’s heart as she knelt there, shuddering in the semi-darkness
+of the death-trap into which she had blindly rushed.</p>
+
+<p>The long, skinny, claw-like hand of the creature presented a yet
+more terrible aspect to her straining gaze, for the long white kid
+gloves that covered them were stained with crimson gore, and one
+hand grasped a slender, jewel-hilted dagger, from whose shining
+blade dripped human blood!</p>
+
+<p>The wild instinct of self-preservation blazed up in Aline’s heart.
+She thought of the beautiful, sunny world outside this horrible
+haunted house, and the fierce desire for life flamed up within her.
+Should she die here like some wild thing caught in a trap, without
+one effort for escape?</p>
+
+<p>She sprung to her feet and made a desperate rush past that horrible
+creature toward the door, but the footsteps of hate were swifter
+even than those of fear. Even as she tore open the door she felt the
+sharp clutch of cruel fingers on her arm, she was whirled violently
+backward, and the murderous dagger, already red with human
+gore, flashed in the creature’s hand, and the next instant sheathed
+itself in Aline’s breast. She fell across the door-sill, and lay motionless
+in a pool of her own spurting life blood.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">
+ CHAPTER V.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The town-clock of Chester clanged the midnight hour out heavily
+from its hoarse, brazen throat—twelve!</p>
+
+<p>Aline opened her blue eyes languidly—they were heavy, as if
+weighed down with lead—and looked about her.</p>
+
+<p>They fell upon a scene utterly new and strange to her.</p>
+
+<p>She was lying on a downy, rosewood couch, with draperies of pale
+blue silk and snowy lace, in the center of a large and high-ceiled
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[Pg 17]</span>room hung with azure silk, the elegant rosewood furniture being
+upholstered in the same lovely material. Everything about her
+breathed of unlimited wealth and taste, and the sweet aroma of
+flowers floated delightfully through the beautiful apartment from
+the delicate vases on the mantel, which had been filled with the
+choicest wealth of the garden by a lavish and unsparing hand.</p>
+
+<p>“She revives, doctor,” said a woman’s voice.</p>
+
+<p>Aline lifted her eyes quickly. An elderly grave-faced woman
+had come forward to the bedside, and was bending curiously over
+her. She was dressed in a nurse’s cap and apron, and had a kind,
+though homely looking face.</p>
+
+<p>“Who are you, and where am I?” asked Aline, gazing at this
+strange face in bewilderment.</p>
+
+<p>“Hush, my dear! You are sick, and must not talk,” answered
+the nurse with a slight frown.</p>
+
+<p>She moved aside, and Aline saw two men behind her. A cry of
+fear broke from her lips. Both wore masks upon their faces; but,
+in the tall, well-knit figure of the foremost one, she recognized Oran
+Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>He came forward and bent over Aline, whispering, hurriedly:</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney, I beg you, as a special favor, to keep silence a
+little while. Say nothing to this stranger of how you came by your
+wound.”</p>
+
+<p>Her wound! She gave a start and memory rushed over her. She
+was conscious too of a sharp, stinging pain in her breast, and the
+clothing upon it, she perceived, was stiffened and red with clotted
+blood. So that horrible creature had not quite killed her!</p>
+
+<p>She made no answer, for Oran Delaney moved quickly away,
+giving place to the masked physician. The nurse brought a basin
+of water, sponges, and linen, and he deftly bathed and dressed the
+wound, gazing curiously, now and then, at the beautiful, frightened
+face of his patient, who lay still as death with only a smothered
+moan, now and then, instantly stifled on her pale, almost icy,
+lips.</p>
+
+<p>“I will be as gentle as I can,” he said to her, kindly, but Aline
+did not speak. She had closed her eyes and relapsed into unconsciousness.</p>
+
+<p>When she unclosed them again, the masked physician was gone.
+She was alone with the quiet, grave-looking nurse in the dimly
+lighted room. A sensation of fear came over her. Why was she
+kept in this mysterious house with this strange woman? Where
+was her mother?</p>
+
+<p>She looked at the stranger, and asked, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>“Am I in Mr. Delaney’s house?”</p>
+
+<p>The woman gave her a quiet, affirmative nod in reply.</p>
+
+<p>“And mamma—have you sent for her?” inquired Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“You must not talk, my dear,” answered the woman, soothingly.</p>
+
+<p>“You have not answered my question, and I want mamma, I
+must have her!” Aline cried out, in her imperious young voice, for
+she had forgotten her fear of her mother’s anger in her terror at the
+mysteries surrounding her. Oh, to be back under the safe little
+roof of the cottage that nestled under the shadow of this frowning
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[Pg 18]</span>mansion, to fling her arms around her mother’s neck, confessing
+her folly and pleading for forgiveness.</p>
+
+<p>“You do not answer me,” she said, after waiting vainly for an
+answer from the quiet nurse. “Tell me, why am I detained in this
+house?”</p>
+
+<p>“You ought to know how you came to be here, miss,” the
+woman answered, almost sullenly. “As for the rest, you are seriously
+wounded, and not able to be moved.”</p>
+
+<p>“Then you should have sent for my mother,” said Aline, with
+pretty, peremptory dignity. “She will be dreadfully frightened at
+my absence. Let some one bring her at once.”</p>
+
+<p>“Let us wait until to-morrow, dear,” said the nurse, persuasively.</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot wait,” said the girl, uneasily, and with an unutterable
+yearning at her heart for the mother whom she had so often grieved
+by her follies and willfulness. “Where is Mr. Delaney? Go, and
+send him here. Surely he will let me have mamma.”</p>
+
+<p>The woman glided softly out, and Aline, left alone in the strange
+room with its shadowy corners and dimly burning lamp, shuddered
+with fear. What if that dreadful, murderous creature should return
+and finish her work!</p>
+
+<p>“I shall die here miserably, and never see mamma and home
+again. Oh, how terribly I am punished for my thoughtlessness and
+folly!” wept Aline, filled with bitter repentance.</p>
+
+<p>The door unclosed, and Oran Delaney walked slowly into the
+room, followed by the nurse, who sat down discreetly at a distance
+from the bedside of her troublesome patient.</p>
+
+<p>He turned up the dim, flaring night-lamp so that its full light fell
+on Aline’s beautiful, pale, distressed face. He had removed the
+disfiguring mask that hid his features from the masked physician,
+and his dark face looked stern and pallid and troubled.</p>
+
+<p>“You sent for me?” he asked, in his grave, quiet voice.</p>
+
+<p>“I want mamma,” she answered, like a child.</p>
+
+<p>His slender, straight, dark brows met in a slight frown.</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney, you must not excite yourself. I cannot answer
+for the consequences if you do,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“I am not excited, I am quite calm; but I want mamma. Will
+you not bring her to me?” she pleaded.</p>
+
+<p>He laid his warm, strong hand gently for a moment on the dimpled
+little white ones that lay outside the silken counterpane.</p>
+
+<p>“My child, I am very sorry, but—I cannot,” he answered, slowly.</p>
+
+<p>She tore her small hand violently from his clasp, and looked at
+him with the dignity of a suddenly awakened womanhood flashing
+into her fair young face.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Delaney, surely I have misunderstood you,” she said.
+“You do not mean that you will let me lie here suffering, dying,
+and refuse to bring my friends to me?”</p>
+
+<p>“Dying? Oh, no, it is not so bad as that,” he said, almost shudderingly.
+“You have only a flesh wound, Miss Rodney. With
+patience on your part, and good nursing from Mrs. Griffin, here,
+you will be quite sure to recover.”</p>
+
+<p>“And in the meantime?” she asked, with a wistful meaning in
+her voice that he could not affect to misunderstand.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[Pg 19]</span></p>
+
+<p>He turned his head aside, disconcerted, perhaps, by the steady
+gaze of the blue eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“In the meantime, Mr. Delaney?” she repeated, in a slightly
+raised voice.</p>
+
+<p>He turned toward her again, and answered, abruptly, almost
+sternly:</p>
+
+<p>“I hope they will not be seriously alarmed about you, Miss Rodney,
+for it is quite impossible for me to make any communication to
+them regarding your whereabouts.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">
+ CHAPTER VI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>A cry of reproach, astonishment, and dismay came from Aline’s
+lips.</p>
+
+<p>“You will not be so cruel,” she cried. “What have I done to
+you that you should punish me so?”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not mean to punish you, Miss Rodney. On the contrary,
+I am exceedingly sorry that I cannot grant your wish,” he said.
+“But there are reasons—” he paused abruptly, and did not finish
+the sentence.</p>
+
+<p>“Strange reasons they must be that can keep a mother from the
+side of her suffering child,” cried Aline, with all the harshness of a
+young girl’s judgment.</p>
+
+<p>A heavy sigh breathed over Oran Delaney’s lips. His dark eyes
+turned to hers with more sadness than sternness in their gloomy
+depths.</p>
+
+<p>“They <i>are</i> strange reasons,” he said, bitterly. “Ah, Miss
+Rodney, I was wrong, I was culpably thoughtless when I
+brought you into this house! You should not have come! No
+one ever crosses the threshold of my home. Do not ask that your
+friends should be brought here. I can never consent. I can only
+beg your pardon for my folly in leading you into this death-trap. It
+is a horror-haunted house. The legend of Hades should be written
+over its portals: ‘Who enters here, leaves Hope behind.’”</p>
+
+<p>His voice had an indescribable cadence of bitterness and regret in
+it. The dark, handsome face was profoundly grave and stern, the
+gesture of the hand as it brushed back the waving locks of dark
+hair that fell over his broad brow, was full of a hopeless woe. But
+Aline was too young and thoughtless to comprehend the tokens of
+despair in a man whose age almost doubled her own. Yet she was
+strangely impressed by his concluding words. She repeated them
+over thoughtfully:</p>
+
+<p>“‘Who enters here, leaves Hope behind.’ Ah, Mr. Delaney, I
+hope the legend will not come home to me!”</p>
+
+<p>But the day came when she knew that it had done so—that the
+shadow of the old gray stone house had stretched itself out long and
+dark, and fatally, across the budding hopes of her lifetime.</p>
+
+<p>He did not answer, and she went on impatiently;</p>
+
+<p>“If my friends may not come to me at least let me go to them. I
+am not too ill. Surely, I may be moved. It is such a little distance,”
+pleadingly.</p>
+
+<p>“It is quite impossible that you should leave this house until your
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[Pg 20]</span>wound is healed,” he answered, decisively, and Aline, completely
+crushed by his answer, began to weep heart-brokenly.</p>
+
+<p>He waited in painful silence for her to grow calmer. Like many
+another man, he was unable to reason with a woman’s tears.</p>
+
+<p>But Mrs. Griffin came forward, feeling her presence needed now.
+She said grimly to her master who stood gazing blankly before him:</p>
+
+<p>“If she is allowed to go on like this she will fall into a fever. I
+shall administer the composing draught the doctor left with me.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, that will be best,” he said, relieved. “I do not wish her
+to be excited, certainly. Miss Rodney,” he just touched one of the
+hands that hid Aline’s face, “pray do not take it so hard. You
+shall soon be restored to your home and friends, I pledge you my
+sacred promise! Only be patient a few days.”</p>
+
+<p>But the girl only wept more bitterly, and when Mrs. Griffin
+brought the composing draught she angrily waved it away. She
+would have none of it.</p>
+
+<p>“I never saw such a great, willful baby,” declared Mrs. Griffin,
+vexedly. “She needs the medicine. I’m afraid she’ll not get on
+without it.”</p>
+
+<p>“I hope you will not drive us to use force with you. It is quite
+imperative that you should obey the physician’s orders,” remonstrated
+Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not wish to be put to sleep like a child. I wish to talk to
+you about your cruelty in keeping me here!” Aline sobbed out
+angrily through the white hands that hid her tear-stained face.</p>
+
+<p>“We will talk about that to-morrow,” he replied, and suddenly
+Aline felt a strong arm passed around her shoulders, her hands were
+drawn away from her face, the point of a teaspoon was pressed
+against her lips, and held there firmly in spite of her struggles, until
+she had swallowed every drop of the odious draught.</p>
+
+<p>“How dared you?” she cried, her face flaming with anger and
+resentment; and Mrs. Griffin remarked dryly:</p>
+
+<p>“If you act like a baby, you must expect folks to treat you like
+one.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline turned from her to the rash offender, who did not look very
+frightened or sorry, but only amused at her ebullition of wrath.</p>
+
+<p>“I beg your pardon,” he said, gently, but coolly. “I did not
+wish to offend you, Miss Rodney, but it was quite necessary you
+should take the doctor’s prescription. Do not think too hardly of
+me for doing my duty,” and then he walked quietly out of the room.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">
+ CHAPTER VII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline was so indignant at the gentle force Mr. Delaney had used
+in compelling her to swallow the physician’s prescription that she
+angrily resolved not to submit to its influence, but to lie awake in
+spite of it, and bemoan her hard fate, in being thus cruelly separated
+from home and friends. She indulged herself for a little while in
+the most vehement sobs and tears, reckless of the injury she was
+doing herself in her feverish condition, and willfully intent on making
+herself as disagreeable as possible to her hard-hearted jailers.</p>
+
+<p>But the potent drug she had unwillingly taken was stronger than
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[Pg 21]</span>her will. The lids fell lower and lower over the heavy, tearful eyes,
+her moans grew fainter and fainter, until at last they ceased altogether,
+the dark lashes drooped upon the warm, flushed cheeks, and
+she fell asleep like a grieved child, sighing now and then in her
+slumber, and tossing restlessly, as if her sorrow had followed her
+even into the land of dreams.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin remained on guard by her side a patient, untiring
+watcher, like one accustomed to such nightly vigils, until the brief
+summer night passed away and the “gray-eyed morn” peered in
+through the close drawn shutters upon the beautiful girl who still
+remained wrapped in deep, unbroken slumber.</p>
+
+<p>The grim, careful nurse looked at the fair, sleeping face from
+time to time with irrepressible admiration. She contrasted it, in
+fancy, with a monstrous face on which she was compelled to gaze
+daily, and she shuddered at the difference.</p>
+
+<p>“She is as beautiful as an angel. How terrible it would have
+been if that devil had murdered her!” she thought.</p>
+
+<p>She left the room after awhile, and locked the door after her, remaining
+absent nearly two hours. When she returned with a light,
+appetizing breakfast arranged upon a tray, Aline was awake and
+gazing dreamily around her at the unaccustomed room.</p>
+
+<p>“You feel better after your sleep, I hope, Miss Rodney, do you
+not?” she inquired, and Aline was obliged to admit that she did,
+feeling half ashamed at the petulance she had displayed before
+falling asleep.</p>
+
+<p>She found that, in spite of her painful wound and her anxiety,
+she had a very fair appetite for breakfast. She determined that she
+would get well, as fast as she could, in order to leave this dreadful
+house and return to her home. She wondered anxiously what poor
+mamma would say to this last new adventure of hers, more terrible
+than all the rest. She would not punish her by anger and blame
+and coldness, surely. Had she not already suffered enough?</p>
+
+<p>Poor Aline thought that she was well cured now of her mischievous
+propensities. After this she would never indulge her willful,
+thoughtless desires again. She would be as prim and perfect as her
+sister Effie, whom now she heartily reproached herself for having
+called a “starched-up old maid.”</p>
+
+<p>When she went home again she would beg Effie’s pardon, she
+was resolved upon that. They would be so frightened, so glad to
+have her back, they would forgive her for all her wildness and carelessness
+in the past if she promised never, never to do so again.</p>
+
+<p>She lay musing in this wise, remorsefully, when she was suddenly
+startled from her castle building by a repetition of the terrible
+shrieks of the day before. The awful sounds woke all the sleeping
+echoes of the place into dreadful concert. Aline screamed aloud
+in nervous terror and hid her face in the bed-clothes.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin bent hurriedly over her.</p>
+
+<p>“Do not be frightened, my child,” she said. “I am compelled
+to leave you for a little while. But I shall lock your door securely.
+No harm shall come to you again.”</p>
+
+<p>She went away, and even though Aline heard the bolt turned
+carefully in the lock and the key drawn out, she felt terribly afraid
+that that hideous creature who had assailed her on yesterday, would
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[Pg 22]</span>gain access to her again and complete its murderous work. The
+cold dews of anguish beaded her white brow as she lay there alone
+in the beautiful azure room, listening to those wild, unearthly
+screams. She was afraid to look out from behind the shelter of
+the silken cover where she had hidden her eyes, fearful that they
+might be blasted by the sight of the <i>thing</i> that had appeared to her
+in the parlor yesterday.</p>
+
+<p>She thought of the simple cottage home where papa and mamma
+and Effie and Max were even now bewailing her loss, perhaps, and
+her heart swelled with passionate longing and regret. Ah, only to
+be with them again in the safe shelter of home and love!</p>
+
+<p>The key clicked softly in the lock again. This time Mr. Delaney
+entered. He looked very pale and grave, but he carried a delicate
+basket of fresh flowers in his hand that filled the room with sweetness
+and beauty. He drew the silken cover gently away from
+Aline’s face.</p>
+
+<p>“Poor child, are you so frightened?” he said, compassionately.
+“Look up. The cries are hushed now. There is nothing for you
+to fear.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">
+ CHAPTER VIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The terrible, blood curdling cries that had so startled Aline had,
+indeed, suddenly ceased. The mysterious mansion had returned
+to its strange, brooding silence.</p>
+
+<p>Forgetful of her anger against Mr. Delaney in her fear and terror,
+Aline clung nervously to his arm with one trembling little hand.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh! Mr. Delaney, what is it—that terrible creature I saw yesterday?”
+she cried out fearfully.</p>
+
+<p>His dark face was strangely agitated as he turned it upon her
+wistful face.</p>
+
+<p>“Then you really <i>saw</i> it?” he said, almost as if speaking to himself.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I saw it. Did you suppose it struck me that murderous
+blow <i>invisibly?</i>” she questioned, with something like awe.</p>
+
+<p>“I had hoped—” he began, then paused, after his abrupt fashion
+of leaving sentences unfinished.</p>
+
+<p>“Answer me,” exclaimed Aline, in her sharp, imperious young
+voice. “What was it that struck me with that blood-stained dagger
+yesterday? What was it I heard shrieking like a lost soul to-day?
+Tell me!”</p>
+
+<p>“It was a ghost,” he answered, turning his head away.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not believe you,” cried Aline. “It was not a ghost. It
+was something warmed by the breath of life. It clutched me with
+warm, living fingers. It was strong and swift. Oh, Heaven, how
+terrible it was!” she shuddered. “Was it really a human being?”</p>
+
+<p>“It was a ghost—a mystery! I can tell you no more,” repeated
+Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>And then, with that strong will, which Aline already began to
+subtly recognize, he changed the subject of the conversation.</p>
+
+<p>“Have you forgiven me for my rudeness of last night?” he inquired,
+with a touch of gentleness in his voice.</p>
+
+<p>“No,” Aline answered, tartly.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[Pg 23]</span></p>
+
+<p>“I have brought you these beautiful flowers as a peace offering,”
+he continued, unruffled by her childish resentment. “You cannot
+refuse them, for I know that you love flowers very dearly.”</p>
+
+<p>“I shall never love them again,” she replied, obstinately. “I
+shall always remember that my fondness for flowers brought down
+all this trouble upon my head.”</p>
+
+<p>“I beg your pardon; it was your fondness for peaches,” he retorted,
+with a slight gleam of mirth. “If you had not come into
+my house to take luncheon with me, nothing would have happened.”</p>
+
+<p>“I should never have come into your garden even but for the
+flowers,” she replied, offended that he should remind her of her appetite
+for peaches.</p>
+
+<p>He smiled, and then a subtle sigh drove the evanescent gleam
+away.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, we will not quarrel over the cause,” he said. “The result
+is the same. I am sorry you will not have my poor flowers. I
+hoped they would beguile some of the tedium of your illness.”</p>
+
+<p>He put the basket on a stand near her and sat down.</p>
+
+<p>“Mrs. Griffin has sent me to take care of you during her absence,”
+he said. “But if my presence is disagreeable, Miss Rodney,
+you can send me away at any moment.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline inwardly wished that she was brave enough to do so, but
+she was too nervous and frightened to take him at his word. There
+was a sense of protection in his presence that she could not forego
+even to gratify her spite at him.</p>
+
+<p>So she lay silently gazing at his dark, stern profile under her long
+lashes until he turned suddenly and caught the curious gaze of the
+large liquid blue eyes. He smiled slightly as they fell before his.</p>
+
+<p>“You have not said whether I am to stay or go,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>Aline hesitated a moment, then answered in a low, half-angry
+voice:</p>
+
+<p>“Stay.”</p>
+
+<p>“Thanks. I was afraid you would send me away,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“I would, but—but I am afraid to stay here alone,” she replied
+with spirit.</p>
+
+<p>Something like anger flashed into his dark face a moment, but
+was quickly dispelled by the thought, “Why be angry with a willful
+child whom I have unavoidably offended?”</p>
+
+<p>“You are very frank. I quite understand that I am retained in
+your presence merely in the character of a watch-dog,” he replied,
+with some <i>hauteur</i>. “But while I <i>am</i> here, pray make me of service
+if possible. Can I do anything for you—talk to you—read to you?”</p>
+
+<p>She caught eagerly at the last suggestion.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, you may read to me. I do not like to talk to you. You
+make me angry when I talk to you,” she said.</p>
+
+<p>“You are very flattering, Miss Rodney. However, I do not forget
+that you are sick. We pardon the discourtesies of invalids,”
+he said, calmly, going over to a little stand littered with volumes
+bound prettily in blue and gold.</p>
+
+<p>“What is your preference—prose or poetry?” he inquired, carelessly
+turning them over.</p>
+
+<p>“Poetry,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[Pg 24]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Naturally—being young,” he muttered, half to himself.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you mean to say that I shall not love poetry when I grow
+old—like you?” she asked, purposely adding the sting of the last
+words.</p>
+
+<p>But he faced around toward her with an expression of the most
+palpable amusement.</p>
+
+<p>“Do I appear very old in your eyes, Miss Rodney?” he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>“‘As old as the hills’—you are, aren’t you, sir?” she replied,
+with malice prepense.</p>
+
+<p>“I was three-and-thirty yesterday, my frank lady,” he answered,
+coolly. “As for you, judging from your words and manner, I
+should guess that you are about ten years old.”</p>
+
+<p>The delicate shaft of sarcasm went home. Aline knew that she deserved
+it, and that she had been behaving rudely to the courteous
+gentleman under whose roof she was. But she was by no means
+prepared to acknowledge her fault. She was bitterly angry with
+him, because he had refused to communicate with her friends.</p>
+
+<p>“Please go on with the poetry,” she said, assuming an air of dignity,
+and taking no notice of his last words.</p>
+
+<p>He opened the book he was holding, and commenced to read a
+poem quite at random:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“How many years will it be, I wonder.</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And how will their slow length pass,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Till I shall find rest in silence, under</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">The trees and the waving grass?</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Many there be in the world who love it,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Who cling to its trifles and toys;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">But I could never find aught to covet</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Among its vanishing joys.</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“But once, indeed, was my heart elated,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And pleased with a dream of its own—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">A beautiful dream it was, but fated</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Soon to be overthrown.</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Death, like a shadow, fell and darkened</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">The light that had shone so clear—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">How oft since then have I vainly hearkened,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And prayed for his coming near.</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“But he cometh not, and I vainly wonder,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">How will the long years pass,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Till I shall find rest in silence, under</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">The trees and waving grass.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>He paused and Aline, impressed against her will, but determined
+not to show it, cried out, almost peevishly:</p>
+
+<p>“Why did you read such a doleful thing? I do not like sad
+poetry.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is the fault of your youth again,” he quietly answered.
+“Now I, on the contrary, rather admire the pathetic style. The
+time may come, perhaps, when that very poem will please your
+fancy. Nay, you may even subscribe to the sad sentiment it embodies.”</p>
+
+<p>“I should never do that if I lived to be as old as Methuselah!”
+cried Aline, with the rash confidence of youth, and Oran Delaney
+smiled—that slow, pensive smile whose latent sarcasm she already
+began to understand with the swift intuition of woman.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[Pg 25]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Why do you despise youth, Mr. Delaney?” she cried out, hotly.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not despise it, I only pity it,” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>“I can fancy age deserving pity, but not youth,” she answered,
+resentfully. “Why do you pity it?”</p>
+
+<p>“For its illusions,” he answered, and this time the sarcasm had
+faded from his voice and face. Both were genuinely sad.</p>
+
+<p>“Its illusions—what are they?” queried the girl, and again he
+smiled, sadly.</p>
+
+<p>“Do not ask me. They will come home to you soon enough, as
+they have done to me. Youth is the happiest period of life. I pity
+it because it comes to an end. I do not despise it, and I fully subscribe
+to the poet’s plaint:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“‘The loss of youth is sadness</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">To all who think or feel—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">A wound no after-gladness</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Can ever wholly heal.’”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>Aline lay very still for a moment, gazing silently at him with a
+feeling of vexation that she had permitted herself to listen to him
+with interest and even with an unconscious latent sympathy. She
+was about to make some careless answer to show her utter indifference,
+and to provoke him again, when she suddenly observed that
+he had turned deathly pale, and that a stream of blood was pouring
+from inside his coat sleeve down upon his hand.</p>
+
+<p>“You are wounded, too!” she cried out in dismay, and feeling a
+deathly faintness stealing over her at sight of the trickling blood.</p>
+
+<p>“It is nothing—a mere flesh wound—a scratch,” he muttered,
+tearing off his coat, hastily, and then Aline saw that his shirt-sleeve
+had been torn open and his arm bandaged above the elbow, but the
+linen had become loosened in some way, and the gaping wound was
+bleeding profusely.</p>
+
+<p>He tried clumsily to draw the crimson bandage tighter about the
+wound, but he was very awkward with his left hand, and he did
+not succeed. Aline could not help being sorry for him.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">
+ CHAPTER IX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>She had a very tender heart, this little willful heroine of ours,
+and although she thought that she hated Oran Delaney she would
+not willingly have seen him suffer. She saw that he was growing
+pale and faint from loss of blood, and she could not keep from pitying
+him.</p>
+
+<p>She cried out, hastily:</p>
+
+<p>“Come here, Mr. Delaney. I will fasten the bandage for you.”</p>
+
+<p>He looked surprised, but he came to the bed and held down his
+arm within the reach of her little white hands. She drew the band
+tighter and bound her handkerchief tightly around it. The blood
+ceased to flow, but her own hands were stained with blood when
+she had finished.</p>
+
+<p>“Does it frighten you much?” he asked. “You look very pale.”</p>
+
+<p>“No, I am not frightened,” bravely. “Tell me—how did you
+come by your wounds?”</p>
+
+<p>“In much the same manner as you came by yours,” he replied,
+reservedly.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[Pg 26]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Through that horrible—<i>something</i>?” she inquired, with a shudder.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes.”</p>
+
+<p>A gleam of intelligence flashed from Aline’s eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, now I begin to understand,” she said. “You met it first. It
+was your blood I saw upon the knife and the hands and the dress?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes.”</p>
+
+<p>“And you did not run away from me to—to save yourself? I
+thought—thought—” She paused and looked at him, half inquiringly.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, what was it you thought?” he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>“When you left me in the hall, you know,” she said, with some
+embarrassment, “I believed that you had deserted me and fled like
+a coward, leaving me to the mercies of that terrible creature. I was
+mistaken, perhaps.”</p>
+
+<p>He looked at her with a slow flush rising through the pallor of
+his face.</p>
+
+<p>“Every moment I am with you, Miss Rodney, I learn more and
+more how contemptible I am in your eyes,” he said, with irrepressible
+chagrin.</p>
+
+<p>“But I told you I was mistaken,” said the girl, with unconscious
+repentance in her voice. “Was I right?”</p>
+
+<p>“I met the danger first,” he answered, simply.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I understand, and I am sorry I thought you a coward. I
+beg your pardon,” she said, gently.</p>
+
+<p>“You are freely forgiven,” Mr. Delaney replied, quietly, as he
+brought a damp sponge and carefully removed the blood-stains
+from her delicate, dimpled white hands.</p>
+
+<p>She submitted quietly to the operation, though he had half expected
+that she would snatch her hands away in petulant anger.</p>
+
+<p>“I am a great deal better to-day, am I not, Mr. Delaney?” she
+inquired, as he resumed his seat.</p>
+
+<p>“I think so,” he replied. “Your wound was not serious. It
+was struck too hastily. I hope you will soon recover now. You are
+bearing it very bravely.”</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you! And when are you going to let me go home?”</p>
+
+<p>The wistful tone of the young voice struck him like a reproach.
+He turned away his head as he answered:</p>
+
+<p>“As soon as your wound is healed. That will be in a few weeks,
+I hope.”</p>
+
+<p>“Can I say or do nothing that will induce you to let me go now?”
+she entreated.</p>
+
+<p>“That would be impossible. You are not able to be moved yet.
+The result of such an imprudence might be most serious.”</p>
+
+<p>“And you will not communicate with my friends?” she went on.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sorry to be compelled to deny you that gratification,” he
+replied, with decision.</p>
+
+<p>“And in the meantime they must suffer all the pangs of doubt
+and suspense. Oh, Mr. Delaney, is that right, is it just?” cried the
+wounded captive.</p>
+
+<p>“There are many things in this world, Miss Rodney, that are
+neither right nor just,” he replied. “This may be one of them;
+but circumstances will not admit of my acting otherwise. I am
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[Pg 27]</span>compelled to keep you hidden here, unknown to any one, until you
+are well enough to be returned to your home.”</p>
+
+<p>“You have no pity for them, nor for me!” she cried, almost
+wildly.</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot follow the bent of my feelings. I am compelled to pursue
+this course,” replied the mysterious recluse.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you not know,” she said, “that my friends will be very angry
+with you for keeping me hidden away from them? What if I should
+die here in this dreadful house?”</p>
+
+<p>“They would never know what fate had overtaken their darling,”
+he answered, gloomily.</p>
+
+<p>Aline stared at him with wide, terrified blue eyes. Indignation
+was rising within her again—indignation added to something like
+fear.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">
+ CHAPTER X.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“Mr. Delaney, I cannot understand you,” she said. “You
+talk strangely. I am tempted to believe that you cannot be sane,
+that you are not in your right mind.”</p>
+
+<p>He looked at her steadily with his grave, dark eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Do I look like a lunatic, Miss Rodney?” he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>“No, but you talk like one,” she cried out, petulantly. “Do
+you really imagine that you can keep my presence here a secret from
+my own people? Do you not know that they will search for me
+until they find me?”</p>
+
+<p>“They are already searching for you, but I am quite sure they
+will never find you,” he replied. “The last place where Mr. Rodney
+would think of looking for you would be here in his neighbor’s
+house.”</p>
+
+<p>She knew that it was true. Her heart sunk heavily, but she cried
+out, spiritedly:</p>
+
+<p>“But when I go home and tell him—what then? Are you not
+afraid of his anger when he knows the truth?”</p>
+
+<p>“He will never know,” Oran Delaney replied, strangely.</p>
+
+<p>The pale face on the snowy, lace-fringed pillow grew paler still,
+the blue eyes darkened with agitation.</p>
+
+<p>“Not know?” she cried out, passionately. “Why, what can
+you mean?”</p>
+
+<p>“You will not tell him,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Now I am quite, quite sure that you are mad,” said Aline.
+“Do you think I shall not tell them all when I go home?”</p>
+
+<p>“I am quite sure you will not!”</p>
+
+<p>Aline could not speak for a moment. She was mystified by Mr.
+Delaney’s words and manner. She almost began to believe him
+mad indeed. To what did his strange talk tend?</p>
+
+<p>While she puzzled within herself he drew his chair nearer to the
+bedside—near enough indeed to touch her pulse with his cool
+fingers.</p>
+
+<p>“Pray do not excite yourself unduly,” he said. “There is really
+no necessity for it. Cannot we discuss this matter coolly and dispassionately,
+and come to an understanding?”</p>
+
+<p>She drew her hand away with a heavy sigh.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[Pg 28]</span></p>
+
+<p>“I do not believe I can discuss it coolly,” she said. “I am
+frightened at the mysteries of this house, and the mysteries with
+which you choose to surround me. I am here within a stone’s throw
+of my own home, wounded, helpless, a prey to grief and anxiety,
+while my friends are seeking me everywhere in sorrow and distress.
+I cannot be calm and cool. I am perfectly wretched. How can
+you explain away these things?”</p>
+
+<p>“Will you listen to me while I try to do so?” asked Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” she answered, impatiently.</p>
+
+<p>“It will not take long,” he said. “In the first place, Miss Rodney,
+I take some blame upon myself for this. I should not have
+brought you into my house—I should not even have admitted you
+into my garden. But I thought you a lonely child, and was carelessly
+willing to gratify your penchant for my beautiful flowers.”</p>
+
+<p>“Those dearly bought flowers!” sighed Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“Through your own thoughtlessness and mine,” he continued,
+“you have stumbled upon the mystery of Delaney House—a mystery
+too terrible to be given to the world—a secret I will guard with
+my very life, if need be. Therefore—” He paused, after his odd
+fashion, and gazed gravely into her face.</p>
+
+<p>“Therefore,” she repeated, wonderingly.</p>
+
+<p>“The Delaneys have been a proud race from the beginning—I
+am the proudest one yet,” he said. “That which you know of
+Delaney House, Miss Rodney, you shall never be permitted to carry
+across its portals to blazon to a curious, mocking world!”</p>
+
+<p>“Do you mean to kill me?” shuddered the girl, shrinking in
+terror from the dark, stern, agitated face.</p>
+
+<p>He started and looked at her.</p>
+
+<p>“Poor child! Have I indeed frightened you so much?” he
+asked. “I must indeed be an ogre in your eyes! No, Aline—you
+are such a child, let me call you so—no; I do not mean to kill
+you. I am not a murderer. I shall simply bind you by an oath of
+silence when you leave this place.”</p>
+
+<p>“An oath of silence?” she repeated, vaguely.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” he answered, steadily. “I shall swear you to silence
+regarding your whereabouts during the time you have been away—silence
+regarding the wound you have received—silence regarding
+me—silence, in short, as to everything that can throw the least light
+on your strange disappearance from your home.”</p>
+
+<p>“And if I refuse to swear?” Aline exclaimed, gazing at him almost
+defiantly.</p>
+
+<p>“If you refuse, you will never be permitted to leave Delaney
+House,” he answered, firmly.</p>
+
+<p>“Never?” she echoed.</p>
+
+<p>“Never!” he reiterated.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">
+ CHAPTER XI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The strange and perfectly unaccountable manner of Aline Rodney’s
+disappearance from her home had excited a great sensation in
+the town of Chester. Such a harrowing mystery had never before
+agitated the pretty little country town. Mr. Rodney, Aline’s father,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[Pg 29]</span>was the only lawyer the town could boast, and although not wealthy,
+was a prominent member of society in Chester. His two pretty
+daughters had been educated as carefully as his means would allow,
+and were the boast of the town for their beauty.</p>
+
+<p>Effie Rodney was a hazel-eyed beauty, with soft waving tresses of
+chestnut brown and a complexion of the loveliest red and white,
+combined with features of the purest Grecian type. She was twenty-three
+years old, and so stately, quiet, and dignified, that her more
+volatile sister, Aline, audaciously dubbed her an old maid.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney was a pretty woman of the same type of beauty as
+Effie. Mother and daughter were remarkably alike, both being tall,
+extremely graceful in appearance, and very dignified in manner.
+To both of them the wild and willful ways of blue eyed Aline were
+a perpetual wonder and annoyance. They loved her, but she was a
+sore trial to their patience, and their understanding. She was so
+gay, so willful, so thoughtless, that, as Mrs. Rodney expressed it,
+she kept her family “in hot water all the while.” They could
+never tell what mischievous prank their pretty Aline would be into
+next. Never were two sisters more unlike than Aline and Effie,
+both in mind and looks, although they were really fond of each
+other. Both were beautiful, but one was like a stately, bright-plumaged
+bird-of-paradise, the other like a brilliant humming-bird,
+always on the wing, never at rest in its aerial flight.</p>
+
+<p>Neither Mrs. Rodney nor Effie could understand Aline’s complex
+character. She was wild and willful, but she was also warm-hearted
+and loving. She was always getting herself into some kind
+of mischief, always being blamed by mamma, and lectured by
+Effie. If papa had not petted her and Max adored her she could
+not have stood it. But the forces for and against being very equally
+divided she was enabled to hold her own with tolerable equanimity.
+Sometimes, mamma, acting upon a mistaken sense of duty, allotted
+to Aline some quite severe punishments, as in the case of the imprisonment
+the day of the picnic; but there was always papa to pet
+and soothe his injured little girl, Max to load her with sugar-plums,
+and even stately Effie to lament that her darling little sister had to
+be punished. So Aline, with all the faults of her head and heart,
+was dearly beloved and bitterly missed and mourned in the home
+from which she had so strangely dropped out like a link from a
+golden chain.</p>
+
+<p>The incredulous horror on returning from Walnut Grove and
+finding her gone was something better imagined than described.
+They examined the empty room, they peered beneath the bed, behind
+the curtains, within the wardrobe, while little Max, in a fit of
+absent-mindedness, pulled out the bureau drawers, and even lifted
+the tray of her Saratoga trunk in a vain search for the lost one.</p>
+
+<p>Beautiful Aline had flown from the dreary room like a swift-winged
+bird from the prison bars of its cage. They called her name,
+but she answered not. They sought her in her dearest haunts, but
+they found her not. They were face to face with a mystery.</p>
+
+<p>Cook had not anticipated such alarm on the part of the family.
+She had missed the young lady several hours ago when she had
+taken up luncheon to her, but being used to the mischievous pranks
+of her young mistress, had believed that she was hiding herself
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[Pg 30]</span>somewhere within the room. She had set down the tray on a stand
+and gone away, locking the door behind her.</p>
+
+<p>It was locked still when they came home from the picnic rather
+earlier than they would have done, but that they were anxious over
+Aline—poor Aline who had missed all the delights of the picnic
+because she had been a naughty girl yesterday and left undone
+those things which she ought to have done, and done those things
+which she ought not to have done.</p>
+
+<p>Aline had deserted the sewing-machine and the ruffles mamma
+had set her to hem yesterday and gone a-fishing with ten-year-old
+Max and his comrade Harry Jones. She had coaxed away from
+cook the sponge cake that was destined to accompany the cream
+at dinner, and she had triumphantly packed it into her lunch
+basket and shared it with the two boys that day on the river bank
+where they cast their lines into the waves. And she had come
+home with the end of her nose and the back of her neck blistered
+red, her dress-skirt soiled and “brier-torn,” like Maud Muller’s,
+and her pretty bare hands turned brown, while Max came trailing
+behind her with his pantaloons rolled up to his knees, his feet and
+limbs all yellowed with river mud, and a string of ridiculous little
+shining minnows in his hands. It was bad for Max—it was utterly
+disgraceful for that great girl, Aline, decided mamma and Effie. It
+was a case that called for punishment, more especially as Aline
+could not even be induced to repentance for her fault. She insisted
+that she had not meant any harm and that she had done nothing
+wrong. She could not be brought to see her error in the light that
+her mamma wished her to see it in. So Mrs. Rodney, deeming this
+an extreme case, resorted to extreme measures. She knew that
+Aline had set her heart on the picnic in Walnut Grove—therefore she
+kept her away to meditate on her misdeeds, and, if possible, to win
+her to repentance. She even dared hope that under the stress of such
+punishment Aline might be brought to promise “never to do so
+any more.”</p>
+
+<p>But, after all, she had been sorry to punish her bright Aline so
+hardly. She thought about it at the picnic. It rather damped her
+pleasure in the gay and festive scene. She told herself that if Aline
+was brought to a proper state of submission she would make it up
+to her. She had kept the girl back somewhat, deeming her childish
+and unformed. She would lengthen her dresses now, put up her
+careless, girlish ringlets, and let her take her place in Chester society
+as a grown-up young lady. Perhaps the importance of the change
+might thrust dignity, as it were, upon the willful girl.</p>
+
+<p>She confided her plans to Effie when she could get her away for a
+moment from the knot of admirers who always surrounded the
+pretty Miss Rodney. Effie coincided with her mother. She was
+too secure in the consciousness of her own beauty to be jealous of
+her younger sister’s charms, and she thought that it was quite time
+for Aline to give over childish ways.</p>
+
+<p>So they went home sorry for Aline’s long day of confinement, and
+full of kindly intentions toward her, eager to hear of her repentance,
+and to give her the kiss of pardon; and they found her place vacant,
+her chair empty. They were full of incredulous dismay at first.
+They thought it must be one of her practical jokes, and that she
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[Pg 31]</span>would return to them presently full of glee over the fright she had
+given them, and eager to hear how they had passed the day from
+whose pleasures she had been ruthlessly debarred.</p>
+
+<p>In the meantime, they were full of wonder over the way in which
+the runaway had escaped from her room. The little chamber
+formed a small wing of itself on the left side of the cottage. It had
+three windows, one of which looked down upon the front of the
+street, another into the small, brick-paved back yard, and the third
+into the beautiful, neglected garden of Delaney House. It was quite
+impossible, they thought, that Aline could have escaped through
+either of these second-story windows unless she had made a rope
+from the sheets of her bed. But the downy little nest where Aline
+rested her fair form nightly was undisturbed in its snowy order.
+She had certainly not escaped that way, but had gone through the
+door, and the Rodneys were fain at first to accuse the woman whom
+they had left in charge of connivance at her freedom.</p>
+
+<p>Cook denied the accusation sturdily, and, having a good reputation
+for veracity, no one presumed to doubt her vehement asseverations.</p>
+
+<p>The mystery thickened. They discussed the possibility of Aline
+having a skeleton-key to the door, and inclined to that belief. In
+no other way could they account for her absence.</p>
+
+<p>Night fell; and now, indeed, they began to grow alarmed. Aline
+was known to be an arrant little coward in the dark. Her little feet
+would have carried her flying homeward long before night overtook
+her.</p>
+
+<p>“She has gone to some of the neighbors,” Mrs. Rodney suggested,
+and her husband and little Max set out to see.</p>
+
+<p>She was not found at any of the neighbors. She did not come
+home that night, nor for many another succeeding night. It grew
+into a most absorbing mystery, the strange disappearance of a young
+girl from her home. It was not a matter of local interest merely,
+but of general. From the local papers the item was copied into the
+papers all the country over. It excited a great interest and sympathy.
+It became one of the sensations of the day. Search was made
+far and near. Personals appeared in the newspapers; the largest
+rewards Mr. Rodney could afford were offered for his daughter’s return.
+He was half mad with cruel anxiety; he hurried hither and
+thither in search of the lost one. But, in all his grief and anxiety,
+in all his suspicions, no warning instinct ever prompted him to look
+into his neighbor’s house.</p>
+
+<p>It was the strangest thing that had ever happened in Chester. In
+the pretty quiet town no such sensation had ever been heard of before.
+A young girl locked into her room in the safe sanctuary of
+home had disappeared in the strangest manner, and not the slightest
+clew could be found to the mystery. Add to this that the missing
+girl had been a general favorite, loved for her winning ways, and
+admired for her beauty, and you may form some idea of how Aline
+Rodney was missed and mourned.</p>
+
+<p>The panic only became greater as days went by, and there came
+no tidings of her fate. People were frightened. Young girls shivered
+in their rooms by day and by night. What if a like fate should
+befall them?</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[Pg 32]</span></p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney’s grief and remorse were extreme. The thin crust
+of pride and dignity melted around her heart, and she realized that
+she had been hard and stern to the lost one. She blamed herself as
+the cause of Aline’s flitting, and her self-reproach was most bitter.
+When proud, hard natures melt, no one can calculate the effect.
+Mrs. Rodney’s sorrow and remorse completely prostrated her. She
+became seriously ill, and her physician declared that there was no
+telling how her low, nervous fever would end, unless her terrible
+suspense could be broken by news of her lost daughter.</p>
+
+<p>Those were weary days for the Rodneys. Effie was wretched, her
+mother ill, Mr. Rodney worn to a shadow, and little Max’s grief unceasing.
+They began to realize what a sunbeam in the house had
+been the bright-eyed girl whom they had blamed so often. Now,
+when she was worse than dead to them, mamma and Effie began to
+realize her worth. Papa and Max had known it all the while.</p>
+
+<p>Two weeks had elapsed, and Effie was sitting by the bedside of
+her sick mother one evening, when a stranger’s card was brought to
+her. She looked at it in some surprise. “Dr. Anthony,” she read,
+slowly. “Why, mamma, have you called a new physician?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, I have not,” said Mrs. Rodney. “It is a stranger, dear.
+Go to him quickly, please. Perhaps he brings us news.”</p>
+
+<p>Her eyes grew bright with hope and excitement, and Effie’s heart
+beat a trifle quicker, too. What if her mother’s surmise were true,
+and they were about to hear news of Aline? She did not even stop
+for the customary womanly peep into the mirror, but hastened down
+to the parlor to meet the stranger.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">
+ CHAPTER XII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>A tall, decidedly handsome man rose to meet Effie as she glided
+into the pretty little parlor with that stately grace that her admirers
+called so queenly. He waited with a courteously bowed head for
+her to address him.</p>
+
+<p>She did so in a silvery-sweet voice, and with a slight blush.</p>
+
+<p>“I am Miss Rodney, Dr. Anthony,” she said, glancing at the
+card which she still held in her hand. “Papa is away from home,
+and mamma is quite sick. Can I serve you in any way?”</p>
+
+<p>His dark eyes rested on the beautiful, gentle face in uncontrollable
+admiration a moment, then he said, in a clear manly voice:</p>
+
+<p>“I have called in the vague hope of serving this afflicted family,
+Miss Rodney.”</p>
+
+<p>“In what way, sir?” inquired Effie, as she waved him back to
+his seat, and sunk into one herself.</p>
+
+<p>“In that calamity which has excited the sympathy and sorrow
+of the whole country,” he answered, respectfully.</p>
+
+<p>Effie’s heart gave a muffled throb of joy at the suggestive words.</p>
+
+<p>“God bless you, sir, if you bring us any tidings of our dear
+Aline!” she exclaimed. He saw that he had excited extravagant
+hope within her, and said, hastily:</p>
+
+<p>“Do not build too much upon my words, Miss Rodney. I do not
+wish to deceive you. It may be but a vain quest upon which I am
+come, but some facts in my possession I have thought best to lay before
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[Pg 33]</span>your father in the vague hope that they might somehow lead to
+news of your lost one.”</p>
+
+<p>Seeing how much he had damped the springing hopes in her
+breast, he said, anxiously:</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney, is there in your possession a photograph of your
+missing sister?”</p>
+
+<p>She could not understand why such a deep shadow fell over his
+frank, manly face, as she answered:</p>
+
+<p>“No, Dr. Anthony, my sister’s picture was never taken in her
+life.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is most unfortunate,” he said. “I had counted so much
+upon her picture.”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not believe papa would like to have Aline’s picture published
+in the papers. He shrinks from publicity,” said Effie, reservedly.</p>
+
+<p>“You misunderstand me. I have no such intention,” said the
+young physician. “Nothing is further from my thoughts, Miss
+Rodney. I quite agree with your father that any unnecessary publicity
+is most distressing. In the absence of Mr. Rodney, may I
+state my reasons to you?”</p>
+
+<p>“You may,” Effie answered.</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you. I will try to do so,” he said. “In the first place,
+I will say that I have lately seen a girl, under very distressing circumstances,
+who answers to the published descriptions of your missing
+sister.”</p>
+
+<p>“When? Where?” exclaimed Effie, agitatedly. The young
+physician’s face grew grave and perplexed.</p>
+
+<p>“I can readily tell you when,” he answered; “but the strangest
+part of the mystery is that I cannot tell you <i>where</i>.”</p>
+
+<p>Miss Rodney’s fair face reflected the perplexity on his.</p>
+
+<p>“Dr. Anthony, I do not understand you,” she said. “How can
+such a thing be? You have seen her; but you cannot tell where.
+Pray, explain yourself.”</p>
+
+<p>“I am about to do so,” he answered. “Then you will readily
+understand the seeming discrepancy in my statements.”</p>
+
+<p>Effie bowed silently, and settled herself to listen. His frank,
+handsome face, and quiet, earnest manner inspired her with confidence
+in him, although he was a stranger whom, ten minutes ago,
+she had never beheld. She was most anxious to hear what he could
+tell her of that girl whose description answered to that of Aline.</p>
+
+<p>She fixed her bright hazel-brown eyes upon his face with an earnestness
+that Dr. Anthony found very fascinating.</p>
+
+<p>“In order to be quite sure of dates,” he said, “I will ask you to
+tell me that of Miss Aline’s disappearance.”</p>
+
+<p>She named it quickly, and he exclaimed, with a sudden brightening
+of his dark eyes:</p>
+
+<p>“The dates correspond! Oh, how much I would give at this moment
+for the counterfeit presentment of Miss Aline Rodney!”</p>
+
+<p>In a moment he continued:</p>
+
+<p>“I live at the little town of Maywood, some five miles distant
+from this, Miss Rodney. I have practiced medicine there for several
+years, and may say, without vanity, that I have built up quite
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[Pg 34]</span>a creditable practice there and in the surrounding country—at least.
+I am always busy.”</p>
+
+<p>Effie bowed silently, and he went on:</p>
+
+<p>“Some strange things happen to a physician in the course of his
+practice, Miss Rodney. A mysterious thing happened to me on the
+night of the date you mentioned just now.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">
+ CHAPTER XIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Miss Rodney’s face was pale with emotion and anxiety. She
+hung eagerly upon Dr. Anthony’s words.</p>
+
+<p>“A mysterious thing,” he repeated. “I was closing my office at
+eleven o’clock that night, preparatory to going home, when, in the
+darkness, a stranger touched me upon the shoulder and said, in a
+muffled voice:</p>
+
+<p>“‘Come with me at once, doctor. A lady needs your professional
+services.’</p>
+
+<p>“I am so used to being called out at night, Miss Rodney, that at
+first I thought nothing of the request. I have ridden miles and
+miles on the darkest nights through the peaceful country neighborhood
+hereabouts without fear or molestation. So I said, carelessly
+to the man, whose face I did not see clearly by reason of the extreme
+darkness: ‘Is it a long distance? If not, I will walk, as my horse
+has been put away for the night.’</p>
+
+<p>“‘A matter of two miles or more,’ he answered, in the same low,
+muffled voice in which he had first addressed me. ‘But my buggy
+is here at the corner. Come with me and I will send you back.
+We have no time to lose.’</p>
+
+<p>“So careless and fearless had I become in my career as a physician,
+that I felt no alarm at his proposition. I carelessly assented, and
+accompanied him to the corner, where I found a fine horse and
+buggy waiting for us as he had said. He sprung in and he drove
+rapidly to the outskirts of the town, when I, being weary of the
+silence maintained by my companion, inquired the name of the person
+I was called to attend.</p>
+
+<p>“To my surprise, the man replied in a cool, quiet voice, as if there
+were nothing strange in what he was saying:</p>
+
+<p>“‘That is a secret, Dr. Anthony, and must remain so.’</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing like this had ever occurred to me in my professional
+experience. I was indignant at this answer. I did not choose to
+bestow my medical skill upon a patient who thus withheld confidence
+from me. I told him so rather hotly.</p>
+
+<p>“My companion, who was evidently a gentleman, laughed easily.</p>
+
+<p>“‘Tut, tut,’ he said, ‘all physicians can relate instances of mysterious
+cases.’ This was one of them. My services were needed,
+and no harm would befall me, while at the same time I should be
+most liberally rewarded, but the lady’s name must remain unknown
+to me, as also the place of her residence. ‘For which reason, doctor,’
+he continued, in the same cool, quiet, gentlemanly voice, and
+producing a large handkerchief, ‘I shall be compelled to blindfold
+you for the balance of the distance.’</p>
+
+<p>“His cool masterful tone irritated me exceedingly. I answered
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[Pg 35]</span>quickly that I would not submit to such terms—that he must employ
+other advice for the case; I would not attend.</p>
+
+<p>“‘I will have nothing to do with a mystery,’ I said. ‘All must
+be fair and open, or I will not attend.’</p>
+
+<p>“He laughed at first, and tried to persuade me; but, finding that
+I was resolute, and insisted on being let out of the buggy, he became
+angry.</p>
+
+<p>“‘Your unreasonable mood forces me to a rash alternative,’ he
+said. ‘I am obliged to compel your obedience.’</p>
+
+<p>“I felt the cold muzzle of a pistol pressed against my cheek. I
+was myself unarmed and powerless.</p>
+
+<p>“‘Attempt to get out, and you are a dead man!’ he said. ‘You
+have no resource but to obey me. If you are a wise man, you will
+permit me to tie this bandage over your eyes, and to go on without
+further parley.’</p>
+
+<p>“I am not a coward, Miss Rodney—I hope you will not form that
+opinion of me,” continued the handsome young physician, “but I
+flatter myself that I possess a modicum of common-sense. I found
+myself in the power of a desperate man, and I considered that my
+best plan would be to yield to his will; besides, there was a spice of
+romance in the affair that appealed to the imaginative part of me.
+I made a virtue of necessity, and accompanied my stern companion,
+though I must confess that my anger rose when he bound the handkerchief
+about my unwilling eyes. The darkness of the night was
+so dense that he might have spared me that inconvenience.”</p>
+
+<p>Effie listened, with her heart upon her lips, for him to come to the
+story of the mysterious patient. It was Aline, of course—Aline, ill
+or dying! How terrible it seemed! It cast a strange, new light
+upon the mystery of her disappearance.</p>
+
+<p>“I went with him; but I am quite sure that he deceived me regarding
+the distance,” said Dr. Anthony. “Instead of being two
+miles, I am certain that we drove five, at least, before his fleet-footed
+horse came to a stop. Then I was helped from the buggy, and led
+up a flight of what seemed, from the sound of my feet upon them,
+to be wide, marble steps.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">
+ CHAPTER XIV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The speaker paused to take breath a minute, and then resumed:</p>
+
+<p>“A heavy door opened to admit us into the wide, dimly lighted
+hallway of what must have been a large, aristocratic mansion. Here
+the eccentric stranger removed the handkerchief from my eyes and
+coolly clapped a mask upon my face instead, with the odd remark:</p>
+
+<p>“‘You will have need for your eyes here, but none for your
+features, Dr. Anthony, as I do not wish my patient ever to recognize
+you abroad. Therefore, I request that you wear this mask.’</p>
+
+<p>“I acceded to this polite request of course, you know, Miss Rodney,
+not being in a condition to refuse,” said the young man, with
+a sly sense of the humorous, “and then I saw beside us a neat-looking
+elderly woman with a lamp in her hand, evidently a nurse. She
+led up a wide, beautiful stairway of polished walnut, along another
+hall, and so into a lady’s room—the most beautiful room I ever
+saw!” said Dr. Anthony, with enthusiasm.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[Pg 36]</span></p>
+
+<p>“It was large and airy, and hung with rich blue silk and white
+lace. The furniture was rosewood, upholstered in blue silk, and on
+the marble mantel and the ivory brackets against the wall were vases
+of flowers, statuettes, and expensive <i>bric-à-brac</i>. You see, I made
+good use of my eyes when I was given leave, Miss Rodney,” said
+the physician, with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, doctor, but now about your mysterious patient?” breathed
+Effie, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, now I am coming to that, for I am afraid the preliminaries
+have sadly wearied your patience,” he said. “There was a rosewood
+bed in the center of the room, Miss Rodney, draped in rich
+blue silk and canopied with snowy lace in the richest pattern, and
+among the lace-trimmed pillows lay a girl—a corpse, I thought at
+first, for she was deathly white and still, her eyes were closed, and
+the white garments about her breast were all dabbled with blood.”</p>
+
+<p>Miss Rodney shuddered and grew very pale.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, poor little Aline!” she sighed. “Tell me how she looked,
+Dr. Anthony.”</p>
+
+<p>“She was very young. She looked almost child-like,” said Dr.
+Anthony. “She had a fair round face with a dimpled chin and
+beautiful features. Her hair was dark and curling, her brows and
+lashes were jetty black and of wonderful beauty. Her eyes, much
+to my surprise when she recovered from her swoon, were dark, rich
+blue, like wet violets. I had thought they would be black, before
+she opened them.”</p>
+
+<p>“It was my sister!” cried Effie, in tones of conviction. “You
+have described her very accurately.”</p>
+
+<p>“I went up to her side, and looked down at the beautiful, silent
+face,” he went on; “and the stranger, who, I have forgotten to say
+before, wore a thick, heavy mask upon his face, followed me. In a
+moment he turned to the nurse, angrily:</p>
+
+<p>“‘How is this?’ he said. ‘I told you to put a mask upon her
+face!’</p>
+
+<p>“‘And so I did, sir, but her protracted swoon so frightened me,
+that I removed it to give her air, and forgot to replace it. I hope
+there is no harm done, sir.’</p>
+
+<p>“He muttered something angrily, then stepped quickly back, for
+at that moment the wounded girl opened her eyes and flashed them
+around the room. They fell on the face of the nurse, and she cried
+out, in a startled tone:</p>
+
+<p>“‘Who are you, and where am I?’</p>
+
+<p>“She spoke no more, for my strange guide bent over her and
+whispered something in her ear, and she relapsed into silence. He
+then directed me to examine her wound, and I obeyed him.”</p>
+
+<p>“Was—was it fatal?” asked poor Effie.</p>
+
+<p>“No, although it had been meant for that,” he replied. “It
+was a knife-wound, and had been meant for the heart, but glanced
+aside and inflicted a flesh wound instead. I bathed and dressed the
+wound, but before I finished, she had again relapsed into unconsciousness.”</p>
+
+<p>“And you learned nothing?” sighed Effie.</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing,” he answered. “Before I came away, the unknown
+stranger drew off his coat and showed me a deep, jagged cut on his
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[Pg 37]</span>own arm. I bathed and dressed his wound also, was rewarded for
+my services by a twenty-dollar gold piece, and after submitting to
+the blindfold again, was driven to my home by my mysterious employer.
+That is the end of my story, Miss Rodney. Does it throw
+any light on the mystery of your sister’s disappearance?”</p>
+
+<p>“None, Dr. Anthony. It only deepens the mystery,” she answered,
+mournfully.</p>
+
+<p>“And yet it is in some sort a clew,” he said, thoughtfully. “If
+the young girl I saw is your sister it proves that she is confined
+somewhere within a radius of five miles from Maywood. Have you
+thought of that, Miss Rodney?”</p>
+
+<p>“If the girl you saw is really my sister, it proves also that she is
+a prisoner somewhere,” Effie said, musingly. “It places the mystery
+in a new aspect altogether. We had thought that Aline,
+offended by her punishment that day, had run away merely to annoy
+us, and that, when a sufficient time had elapsed, she would return to
+us again. Can it be that she was abducted and imprisoned?”</p>
+
+<p>“It looks that way,” said Dr. Anthony. “At any rate, I have
+thought it best to come here and tell my story. You understand
+now why I wished to see a picture of the missing girl. I could
+then have told most certainly whether the girl whose strange wound
+I dressed was your sister.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is most unfortunate that we have never had a picture of Aline;
+but your description corresponds exactly with her appearance,” declared
+Effie.</p>
+
+<p>“She was very beautiful. Even if I never see her again, I shall
+never forget her charming face,” said Dr. Anthony.</p>
+
+<p>He rose to go as he spoke, and the look of respectful admiration
+he bent on Effie’s sweet, sad face seemed to mutely declare that he
+would never forget her, either. Her long lashes drooped, and a delicate
+blush rose to her cheek, reminding him that his thoughts were
+too plainly expressed in his eyes. She thanked him in sweet,
+courteous phrases for his information, and half timidly requested
+him to call again, and recount his strange story to her father.</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony very willingly promised to do so. He was very
+sorry for the afflicted family, and very much interested in the hazel-eyed
+Effie. She, on her part, was vaguely interested in him.</p>
+
+<p>“The most interesting young man I ever met,” she mentally decided,
+recalling the handsome face and clear, frank voice, after he
+had gone away.</p>
+
+<p>She went back to her mother’s bedside, and related Dr. Anthony’s
+story. Mrs. Rodney was greatly excited. Aline’s mysterious absence
+assumed a new phase. She was full of wonder and dismay
+and grief.</p>
+
+<p>“My dear little Aline! She may be dead ere this!” was the burden
+of her grief, and it became so hysterical and violent during the
+long hours of the night that Effie regretted she had told her the
+strange story. She was relieved when her father came home next
+morning from another fruitless quest. She felt that the charge of her
+grief-stricken mother was becoming too heavy for her. No one could
+soothe Mrs. Rodney’s bitter grief but her patient, though almost
+distracted husband.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[Pg 38]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">
+ CHAPTER XV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney did not wait for Dr. Anthony to return to Chester.
+His anxiety was too great. He drove over to Maywood in the early
+morning to see the young physician.</p>
+
+<p>He heard the whole story over again. It impressed him strangely.
+He believed with the doctor that the mysterious wounded girl was
+Aline herself.</p>
+
+<p>“I have been haunted by that belief ever since I heard the story
+of your daughter’s disappearance,” he said. “I feared you might
+think me foolish or presuming, but I could not rest until I had gone
+over to Chester and told you my story.”</p>
+
+<p>“For which kindness I am most grateful to you,” said Mr. Rodney,
+grasping his hand cordially. “Who knows but that this information
+will lead to my daughter’s recovery?”</p>
+
+<p>He found the young doctor most intelligent and agreeable. He
+consulted with him as to the best method of following up this
+strange discovery. Both agreed that it would be well to confide the
+matter to a skillful detective. Mr. Rodney sent to New York at
+once for the most noted one in the service.</p>
+
+<p>They agreed that they would keep the strange story of the doctor’s
+experience a profound secret from the public. If once it became
+publicly known, it might put the villain on his guard. He
+might hustle Aline off to another place.</p>
+
+<p>When Mr. Rodney went home, he gave Dr. Anthony a most cordial
+invitation to come over to Chester and visit him. The doctor
+was not slow to avail himself of the courtesy. It was the beginning
+of a most pleasant friendship.</p>
+
+<p>Perhaps hazel-eyed Effie had something to do with it. It is certain
+that she enjoyed the non-professional visits of the Maywood
+physician as much as was consistent with the trouble and anxiety
+she was enduring. And Dr. Anthony certainly found the fair, dignified
+young lady very fascinating. He came often to the dainty
+little cottage home that nestled in the shadow of the tall trees and
+pretentious towers of Delaney House. He was so gay and cheerful,
+so determinately hopeful, that he sometimes wiled Effie to a momentary
+forgetfulness of their loss and sorrow. He made little Max
+fond of him. He pleased the nervous, fretful, invalid mother still
+prostrated by her grief and remorse. His even, sunny temper and
+handsome face always brightened the cottage parlor when they shone
+in it. All claimed him as a friend and comforter.</p>
+
+<p>The New York detective came down promptly to Chester. He
+was quite willing to undertake the case. He flattered himself that
+he should unravel the mystery.</p>
+
+<p>They showed him the little end room from whence Aline had
+been so strangely spirited away. He examined it with a great interest.
+He stood at each of the three windows in turn, and gazed curiously
+out. The front one gave him a perspective of a quiet little
+village street. The back one looked out on a brick-paved yard, and
+a tiny kitchen. The end one presented a more inviting prospect. It
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[Pg 39]</span>showed him the green and flowery garden of Delaney House. The
+quiet, rustic seats, the cool spray of the fountains, the deep shade
+of the trees, the delicate fragrance of the flowers, all inspired one
+with a sense of peace and rest; and the master of all this wealth of
+summer sweetness, as he walked among the quiet graveled paths,
+did not inspire one with any suspicion. One envied him, rather, he
+looked so calm and peaceful, as though the cares and sorrows of
+the weary world touched him not, hidden as it were, behind his
+high stone walls and grim, forbidding towers, with their close-shut
+windows.</p>
+
+<p>Yes, here he still walked daily, as on that day when willful
+Aline had gone to her fate along a path as rosy and flower-strewn
+as ever delighted the eyes of heedless youth. His dark, grave face
+gave no hint of the secret he held, and expressed no sympathy nor
+sorrow for the shadow that had fallen on his neighbor’s house. He
+appeared calm, grave, indifferent to all things but himself.</p>
+
+<p>The New York detective studied the house and the man with a
+good deal of interest. He asked questions about them, but he stood
+well back from the window, and did not permit Mr. Delaney, by
+any chance, to observe his curious glances. He was very cautious.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney was a man of quite acute perceptions. He quickly
+saw where Mr. Lane’s suspicions were insensibly drifting.</p>
+
+<p>“Your suspicions are tending in quite the wrong direction,” he
+said: “Dr. Anthony is quite sure that the house where he saw the
+wounded girl is quite five miles distant from here.”</p>
+
+<p>It was a curious yet so natural mistake that all had drifted insensibly
+into it. Dr. Anthony had said that he was carried at least five
+miles from Maywood to the mysterious mansion. No one had reflected
+that Maywood was five miles distant from Chester, or if they
+had it did not connect itself at all with the mystery of Aline’s disappearance.
+No one except the keen-witted detective dreamed for
+an instant of connecting Delaney House with the mystery, and his
+suspicions were at once diverted by his employer’s confident remark.
+He turned his attention at once to another subject, and gave up the
+vague idea. Delaney House was destined to hold its secret yet.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“With one black shadow at its feet,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">The house thro’ all the level shines,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Close-latticed to the brooding heat,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And silent in its dusty vines;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">And ‘Ave, Mary,’ was her moan,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">‘Madonna, sad is night and morn;’</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">And ‘Ah,’ she sung, ‘to be all alone,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">To live forgotten and love forlorn.’”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane gave his closest attention and best talents to the solution
+of the mystery, and he felt perfectly confident of success. When
+had he, the most able detective in the great city of New York, failed
+in any undertaking? It was not likely he should be foiled here in
+this little country town.</p>
+
+<p>He settled himself at the pretentious hotel as an invalid gentleman
+in search of health. He had his own private buggy sent down
+from the city, and he made solitary excursions into the surrounding
+country in quest of the Goddess of Health, as he pretended. Sometimes
+he varied the monotony of these trips by going afoot. No one
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[Pg 40]</span>suspected his real reasons for being in the town. He passed everywhere
+for that which he represented himself to be.</p>
+
+<p>Weeks came and went, and he was no nearer the solution of the
+mystery, no nearer the finding of Aline than when he first came to
+Chester. A baffled feeling began to grow upon him, but still he
+would not own himself defeated, would not give up the quest.</p>
+
+<p>It was quite impossible that he should fail, he told himself, inspired
+by the natural self confidence of one who has always succeeded.
+Some day he would be sure to find the aristocratic mansion
+with the beautiful blue room where the wounded girl was hidden
+away from the yearning hearts of those who loved and mourned her.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">
+ CHAPTER XVI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline Rodney possessed a very quick and passionate temper.
+She had been very injudiciously spoiled by her father, and very injudiciously
+punished by her mother. The result showed itself in a
+willful capricious temper that could not bear contradiction and restraint.</p>
+
+<p>When Mr. Delaney firmly reiterated his assertion, that she should
+never be permitted to leave Delaney House unless she solemnly
+pledged herself to silence regarding her sojourn there, Aline’s
+young heart was filled with the bitterest anger and rebellion. She
+was unaccustomed to absolute control. Her mother’s efforts in that
+direction were weak and fitful, her father’s love made him blind to
+the inherent obstinacy of her nature. When Oran Delaney, strong
+and masterful as he was by nature, undertook to dictate to this
+spoiled, petted child, he found that he incurred a serious risk.</p>
+
+<p>I am ashamed to record this of my heroine—such characters are
+expected to realize our ideal of perfection—but she flew into a passion.
+She scolded Mr. Delaney in the bitterest terms her sharp little
+tongue could devise. She reproached him angrily, laying all the
+blame of her presence in the house upon his broad shoulders, and
+utterly ignoring her share in it. She was half-maddened by her
+sense of wrong and injury, and when she found that all her remonstrances
+broke against his strong, firm will, like water against a
+rock, she relapsed into violent hysterics.</p>
+
+<p>She was not your ideal of a heroine, reader, nor mine, nor Oran
+Delaney’s! His proud lip curled, half in pity, half in scorn, at her
+passionate ravings. He was not at all frightened by her anger. He
+said to himself that it was the impotent, unreasonable anger of a
+child, and that she had a decidedly shrewish temper; but at the
+same time he could not help seeing how beautiful she was in her
+anger and spite. Her blue eyes sparkled through the tears that filled
+them, a crimson color glowed upon her cheeks. Her voice, even at
+its sharpest, trembled with her sense of injury, and had a certain
+pathos that made it sound musical. Her whole proud spirit was
+aroused. She defied him to carry out his assertion, and then, in unreasoning
+contradiction of herself, she declared that she would remain
+at Delaney House until her bright eyes were dim, and her dark
+hair gray, before she would take the oath of silence he demanded
+of her. She would never submit to such tyranny and injustice.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[Pg 41]</span></p>
+
+<p>If Aline had been well and strong, Mr. Delaney would have
+laughed at her anger; but he grew apprehensive now. It was not
+well for her to excite herself. He regretted his precipitancy in acquainting
+her with his intentions. He wished that he had temporized
+with her.</p>
+
+<p>“But how was I to know that she would take it so hardly?” he
+muttered to himself.</p>
+
+<p>He was greatly relieved when Mrs. Griffin suddenly put in an
+appearance. She was honestly aghast at the state of the patient, and,
+while hurriedly mixing a composing draught, she gave loud utterance
+to her anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>“This will be the death of her! A fever will be sure to set in. I
+cannot imagine what you have said to excite her so much, Mr. Delaney.
+It was very imprudent.”</p>
+
+<p>“I did not know she would take it so hard,” he muttered, glancing
+uneasily at Aline, whose angry reproaches had subsided into
+low, smothered sobs and heart-broken wails.</p>
+
+<p>“You had better leave her to me, now,” she said. “I can coax
+her to take this medicine, perhaps, when you are gone.”</p>
+
+<p>He went up to Aline, and held out his hand.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sorry you think so hardly of me,” he said. “Try to forgive
+me, won’t you, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>“I will never forgive you,” Aline, cried out, resentfully, as she
+pushed the offered hand away. And Mr. Delaney went away, then,
+without another word or look.</p>
+
+<p>But Mrs. Griffin gave her a glance of lively reproach.</p>
+
+<p>“For shame, Miss Rodney!” she cried. “You might treat Mr.
+Delaney civilly, at least, considering that he saved your life.”</p>
+
+<p>“When?” demanded Aline, desisting from her sobs in sheer surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“There, now! I always said I had a long tongue. Mr. Delaney
+told me not to tell,” muttered the nurse.</p>
+
+<p>“When did he save my life?” demanded the girl, in her pretty,
+peremptory way.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t worry, Miss Rodney, that was a mere slip of the tongue,
+just now,” said Mrs. Griffin, as she approached with the wine-glass
+of medicine.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall not take the medicine unless you tell me what you meant
+by saying that Mr. Delaney saved my life,” declared Aline, coolly.</p>
+
+<p>“Won’t you? Then I shall have to call him back to pour it down
+your throat, as he did last night,” threatened the nurse, vexed at
+the willfulness of her patient.</p>
+
+<p>“You will do no such thing, for I shall immediately tell him what
+you said, and ask him if it is true,” declared the perverse girl; “but,
+if you tell me the truth, I shall not tell him that you betrayed his
+confidence.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin looked thoroughly vexed, but seeing what a headstrong
+nature she had to deal with, she meekly capitulated.</p>
+
+<p>“If excitement weren’t so hurtful to you, I’d let you do your
+worst, my spoiled young lady,” she said; “but, for your own sake,
+and to save you from another fit of temper, I’ll tell you the truth.
+Mr. Delaney saved you from that <i>creature</i> that assaulted you yesterday.
+She had already wounded him upstairs, but he pursued her,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[Pg 42]</span>and reached the parlor just in time to prevent her from giving you
+a second stab with her dagger; and if she had succeeded in that second
+attempt, you would have bidden good-by to this world, my pretty
+one!”</p>
+
+<p>Aline shuddered at the emphatic tone. Mrs. Griffin held out the
+medicine to her, and she swallowed it meekly, without a word of
+remonstrance. Her pretty face, still flushed from her anger and
+tears, looked very grave.</p>
+
+<p>“I am very glad he saved my life,” she said, after a minute,
+thoughtfully. “I should not like to die yet. I am too young, and
+the world is too lovely.”</p>
+
+<p>“As well die young as old,” growled the grim nurse. “One is
+saved a deal of pain by it.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are an old croaker, like Mr. Delaney,” Aline exclaimed,
+impatiently. “I dare say I shall be as hopeful and happy and as
+much in love with life when I am old as I am now!”</p>
+
+<p>“Let us hope so,” said the old woman, dryly; then she added,
+with some spirit, “As for Mr. Delaney being an old croaker, Miss
+Rodney, he is not old, let me tell you. He is only a little past thirty.
+I nursed him when he was a baby.”</p>
+
+<p>“Did you, really, Mrs. Griffin? How strange!” cried Aline, trying
+to realize the fact that Mr. Delaney had ever been a baby. She
+looked at Mrs. Griffin meditatively a moment, and, as a vision of the
+tall, handsome man in bibs and long skirts came before her mind’s
+eye, she burst out laughing.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, I never saw such a child—crying one moment, laughing
+the next!” cried Mrs. Griffin, offended at her levity.</p>
+
+<p>“Don’t be angry, nurse. I was only laughing at the idea of that
+stern, dark man ever being a baby. Tell me, did you really nurse
+him? And was he a pretty baby? And was his mamma very fond
+of him?” cried volatile Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“His mamma died when he was born, Miss Rodney. She was as
+young as you are, I believe, but she had a vast deal more dignity
+than you have,” Mrs. Griffin said, reprovingly.</p>
+
+<p>“I have no dignity at all. I have heard that every day of my
+life, and I am eighteen years old,” said Aline, rather soberly; “and
+this poor young mother who died so sadly, Mrs. Griffin, was she a
+pretty girl?”</p>
+
+<p>“How you do fly from one subject to another, miss!” cried Mrs.
+Griffin. “Yes, she was very beautiful. But, my dear, I don’t
+think that Mr. Delaney would like for me to discuss his family
+affairs with a stranger. Suppose you shut your eyes and go to sleep.
+You have had too much excitement already.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline could be a very sweet, obedient child when it pleased her to
+be so. She relapsed into one of those gracious moods now. She
+nestled her dark head down upon the pillow and obediently closed
+her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>But she was not asleep, although the grim nurse “laid that flattering
+unction to her soul.” She was busily thinking. “So Mr.
+Delaney saved my life,” she was saying to herself. “Why did he
+not tell me? I might not have been quite so abominable to him
+then. What a little wretch he must think me! I am sorry his
+mother died when he was a baby! I don’t think I should have had
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[Pg 43]</span>a very pleasant life if my mamma had died like that, even though
+she scolds me and punishes me sometimes.”</p>
+
+<p>She was unconsciously penitent for all her rudeness and anger toward
+Mr. Delaney. He had saved her life. That was a great boon
+in Aline’s eyes. She was young and fair, and life was very sweet.</p>
+
+<p>“I should not have been quite so bad if only I had known,” she
+repeated to herself. “I will be kinder to him after this. I do not
+want him to think me a little heathen. But he should not keep me
+here against my will. He must know that I want to go home!”</p>
+
+<p>While she lay thus apparently sleeping, but in reality busily thinking,
+the nurse watched her anxiously. She believed that the girl was
+asleep, but she did not like to see the bright, warm color that began
+to burn fitfully on the fair cheek beneath the long, dark fringe of
+the lashes.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not like the look of it,” she muttered, shaking her gray
+head, ominously. “’Twill be a mercy if fever doesn’t set in after
+all that passion she was in. And if it does, he daren’t bring the
+physician again. The risk will be too great.”</p>
+
+<p>She started when the blue eyes unclosed presently and looked up
+into her face. They were unnaturally dark and bright.</p>
+
+<p>“Send Mr. Delaney to me,” she said, “I am not going to tell
+him what you said, nurse, oh, no! Only send him here.” He
+came, and when he saw the hot flush on her cheeks, and the brilliant
+light in her eyes he was frightened. They were unnatural.</p>
+
+<p>Aline put out her dainty, dimpled hand to him.</p>
+
+<p>“I was very rude to you,” she said, simply. “Will you pardon
+me, Mr. Delaney?”</p>
+
+<p>He clasped the small hand gently and assured her that he was not
+offended in the least. He knew that he had given her great cause
+to be angry with him.</p>
+
+<p>“Still I need not have been such a little wretch,” she said, “and—and—I
+punished myself when I would not take the flowers. I
+wanted them very much! Will you give them to me now?”</p>
+
+<p>He brought the little basket to her, and she buried her hot face
+among the cool, dewy leaves of the roses. She began to talk to
+them in a childish whisper, that suddenly grew into a loud, meaningless,
+vacant babble. Oran Delaney looked anxiously at Mrs.
+Griffin.</p>
+
+<p>“Great Heaven!” he said, “what ails her? What does it mean?”</p>
+
+<p>She shook her gray head gloomily.</p>
+
+<p>“It is fever! I feared as much,” she said. “The excitement was
+too great in her weak, wounded condition. Heaven only knows
+how it will end.”</p>
+
+<p>It was fever indeed. Aline’s reckless indulgence of her wrath had
+wrought the worst possible results. Fever and delirium had set in.
+The wound which they had thought so lightly of at first now threatened
+to terminate fatally.</p>
+
+<p>“If she dies, it will be I who have killed her. I was a fool; I was
+mad surely when I told her all I did,” said Oran Delaney to himself.</p>
+
+<p>The fever set in high, and strong, and violent. It was pitiful to
+hear the sweet, high-pitched voice raving of the dear ones from
+whom she was cruelly separated. As she fought the hard battle between
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[Pg 44]</span>the opposing forces of life and death she called upon them all
+to help her—mamma, papa, Max and Effie, all those dearly beloved
+ones who were so near and yet so cruelly far.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">
+ CHAPTER XVII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The long, sweet summer days glided past into September. Already
+the parti-colored leaves of autumn began to be whirled through
+the air by the cool sweet breeze. There were hints of autumn coolness
+in the breeze as it sighed among the trees in the little country
+town of Chester.</p>
+
+<p>Those summer days from July until September had been full of
+suspense and sorrow to the Rodneys. Each day had been full of
+disappointment and harrowing suspense. Each day had only added
+to the impenetrable mystery that hung around the fate of the lost
+daughter. The New York detective, baffled for once in his life,
+had given up the case and returned to New York. In all his expeditions,
+in all his search, he had failed to find the house with the
+marble steps, the house that held the mysterious blue-and-white
+room where the beautiful wounded girl was hidden away. Mr. Lane
+was moody and irritable over his failure. He had conscientiously
+tried to succeed in finding Aline, and he could not understand why
+he had failed. After the fashion of many other unsuccessful people
+he sought some one else to lay the blame upon, and Dr. Anthony’s
+broad shoulders were selected for that purpose. Mr. Lane
+sarcastically denied the existence of the blue room, the masked villain,
+and the wounded girl. He did not hesitate to declare that Dr.
+Anthony had dreamed the whole thing.</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony was not shaken in his convictions by the great detective’s
+incredulity. But he was very good-natured. He admitted
+that he had told a startling tale. He gave any one who chose full
+liberty to disbelieve it. For himself he was puzzled, vexed, chagrined
+at his own self, for he had made some private excursions on
+his own account and he had failed as ignominiously as Mr. Lane in
+finding the mysterious house and the mysterious maiden. It
+chagrined him to think that he had been so cleverly blinded, but he
+never once subscribed to the detective’s theory that he had been
+fooled by an hallucination of the brain.</p>
+
+<p>“My imagination is not so brilliant as you would give me credit
+for,” he said, laughing. “A poet’s brain might produce such a
+vision of peerless beauty off-hand, but not that of a prosaic physician.
+It was not a dream, it was not an hallucination, it was a
+strange reality. I shall assert that always, the whole world to the
+contrary notwithstanding.”</p>
+
+<p>But although the great detective had grown incredulous over the
+story, the Rodneys had not. They placed the most implicit faith in
+the doctor. He remained their valued friend, and Chester saw more
+of him in those days than Maywood. All his spare time, which did
+not really amount to much, since he had a large and steadily increasing
+practice, was spent at the little cottage home that nestled under
+the towers of Delaney House—the great house of the town. Through
+those troublesome days and nights he and Effie were learning the
+first tenses of that old, old lesson ever new—to love.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[Pg 45]</span></p>
+
+<p>Greatly to the surprise and joy of all, Mrs. Rodney had rallied from
+her illness and was slowly convalescing. She was strong enough
+now to be brought down into the pretty parlor every evening and
+rest upon a reclining-chair while the ebb of talk flowed on around
+her, to which she listened with languid interest. The town folks
+were very sympathetic and social, deeming it a sort of duty to visit
+and comfort the afflicted family. Some one or other dropped in
+every evening, so that the Rodneys, whatever other sorrow they labored
+under, could not complain of loneliness. But with the cool,
+short autumn evenings, and as the loss of Aline Rodney grew an
+old, old story, other interests began to usurp the place of the great
+sensation. Visitors grew less frequent at the cottage. They preferred
+to linger at their own firesides. It was only Dr. Anthony
+now who came every evening, if he only had time to look in for ten
+minutes. Every face brightened at his coming, every heart felt lighter
+for his words of cheer.</p>
+
+<p>But once he had quite a whole evening at his disposal. He had
+been visiting a patient near Chester, and as soon as he could he went
+to the cottage, and putting his horse into the stable announced that
+he had several hours to spend with his friends. All were pleased
+at the prospect, for a dull drizzling rain had set in, and the evening
+had promised to be lonely. More than once, as the wind sighed in
+the trees and the rain pattered down upon the roof, had been recalled
+Bryant’s appropriate lines:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“The melancholy days are come,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">The saddest of the year.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony’s coming put quite a new face upon the evening.
+They indulged in some little cheerfulness. They did not forget
+Aline, but they tried to take some little comfort in their lives. It is
+impossible to grieve always.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“We bear the blows that sever,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">We cannot weep forever.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>Papa sat by the shaded reading lamp with a new book. Mamma
+was resting in her low, reclining-chair, looking pale but pretty in
+her soft garnet cashmere and the little lace cap on her wavy brown
+hair that began to show some lines of gray since Aline had gone.
+Her idle white hands were folded in her lap. They were mostly idle
+now. She had no heart to work, but a gentle, pensive smile illumined
+her fair face this evening.</p>
+
+<p>Effie had opened the long-disused piano and was singing softly,
+while Dr. Anthony turned the leaves of her music. She wore a blue
+dress and a late September rose in her soft braids of hair. Max had
+fallen asleep on the sofa. The quiet repose of each figure, the pretty,
+simple parlor, the autumn flowers in the vases, the low fire that
+burned upon the hearth to dispel the chill of the rain, all made up a
+pretty picture of home-comfort that had a very alluring appearance
+to the passers-by, who chanced to glance through the unshuttered
+windows at the scene. Effie’s song, too, as floated out upon the
+night air, was very sweet and sad:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Mother, now sing me to rest,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">For the long, long day is done;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Fold me to sleep on thy breast</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">As the night folds up the sun.</div>
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[Pg 46]</span> </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“For my heart is heavy with fears.</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And my feet are aweary with play;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Hide me from life’s lengthened years—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Fold me from weeping away.</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“These flowers, so blessed and sweet,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">I’ve gathered from far and from near;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">I lay them all down at thy feet—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">They are wet with many a tear.</div>
+ </div>
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“But, mother, now sing me to rest,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Take back the lone child, tired with playing;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Fold me to sleep on thy breast—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">All the day long vainly straying.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>The soft hush of silence that fell as Effie’s voice died away was
+broken by a shrill and piercing scream. Mrs. Rodney had sprung
+to her feet with a strength no one had believed her possessed of. She
+stood erect in the center of the floor, her slim forefinger pointed at
+the window, her eyes wildly dilating, her face pale and agitated,
+while shriek after shriek burst from her writhing lips:</p>
+
+<p>“Aline! Aline! Aline!”</p>
+
+<p>Every one turned to the spot indicated by that quivering forefinger.
+Every eye beheld a wild white face with dark dilated eyes
+and streaming hair, pressed for a moment against the window-pane.
+Then, while they yet gazed, it was swiftly withdrawn and vanished
+in the darkness and the falling rain like a phantom of the night.</p>
+
+<p>Effie’s voice rang out wild and horror-stricken above her mother’s
+piercing wails:</p>
+
+<p>“A ghost! A ghost! Ah, now I know that our poor Aline is
+dead!”</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony stood for a moment like one rooted to the spot. He
+had recognized on the instant the beautiful pale face of the mysteriously
+wounded girl in the blue room. It was true, then, as he had
+believed. She was no other than Aline Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>He stood still a moment like one stupefied, then, turning suddenly,
+rushed to the door, flung it open, and disappeared in the rain and
+darkness of the wild autumn night.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney, after one moment of dazed indecision, flung down
+his book and rushed after him.</p>
+
+<p>Effie flew to her mother’s arms.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, mamma, she is dead, Aline is dead—our dear, dear little
+Aline!” she sobbed, in a passion of despair.</p>
+
+<p>Little Max, awakened by the sound of their anguished voices, ran
+to them and added his frightened voice to the tumult of the scene.
+Mrs. Rodney continued to wail heart-brokenly.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline! Aline! Aline! Oh, I am justly punished for my harshness
+to you! It was your ghost looking in at the window just as
+you looked down at me that day from the window of the room
+where I had locked you! Oh, my child, my poor dead darling,
+forgive, forgive, forgive! Come back to me, Aline, and tell me you
+will forgive me!” As if in answer to her passionate appeals, the
+door was flung suddenly open again, and Mr. Rodney and Dr. Anthony
+re-entered the room. They walked slowly, for they carried a
+wet and dripping burden between them, which they laid upon the
+floor at Mrs. Rodney’s feet.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[Pg 47]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">
+ CHAPTER XVIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It was the figure of a girl wrapped in a long black water-proof
+cloak, whose concealing hood, fallen back from her features, showed
+them pale as death, with a pallor more remarkable by contrast with
+her night-black brows and lashes, and wet and dripping dark hair.
+It was Aline Rodney’s face, but the eyes were closed, and the trance
+of deep unconsciousness was upon her.</p>
+
+<p>They knelt down beside her and loosened the dripping wet cloak
+from her lissom, slender form. It was their own Aline, indeed.
+The slight pretty figure was clothed in the simple blue gingham
+dress she had worn the day they last beheld her. The same neat
+buttoned boots were on the small pretty feet. They did not seem to
+have been worn or damaged in all the time she had been away from
+home.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney lifted her helpless figure in his arms and carried her
+to the fire. He wrung the water from her dripping tresses and
+bathed her face with restoratives that Effie hurriedly brought. In a
+very few moments she revived. The dark-blue eyes fluttered open,
+she looked up into her father’s face, she saw them all kneeling
+around her—mamma, Effie, Max, all her dearly beloved ones, and a
+smile beamed on her face and a cry of thankfulness broke from her
+lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, papa, oh, mamma, am I really home again? I am so glad,
+so glad! I can scarcely realize it!”</p>
+
+<p>They half smothered her with kisses and caresses. They quite
+forgot Dr. Anthony standing apart, a happy, sympathizing, though
+silent spectator. Mrs. Rodney took her restored daughter in her
+arms, her tears rained on the beautiful white face.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Aline, Aline,” she cried, “you must forgive me for punishing
+you so! I thought it was for the best. I did not dream that
+anything would go wrong. You are not angry now, are you, my
+dear? I have suffered so much, my love. I have been ill. I have
+almost died of grief since you went away; you must never leave me
+again.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline returned the kisses and caresses with interest. She was
+quite ready to forgive and forget.</p>
+
+<p>“I will try to be a good girl hereafter, mamma dear, so that you
+need never punish me again,” she said, wistfully and earnestly, and
+so differently from the former willful, perverse girl, that Mrs.
+Rodney was moved to sudden tears.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, my darling, where have you been?” she cried. “We have
+been looking for you everywhere. We have even had a great detective
+down here from New York trying to find you.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline gazed silently into her mother’s face as she propounded these
+eager questions. Her lips moved, but no sound came from them.</p>
+
+<p>“We heard all about the mysterious blue room, and—and your
+dreadful wound, and the man in the mask—and everything!” continued
+Mrs. Rodney, frantically, “but look where we would, we
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[Pg 48]</span>could not find you, and we were afraid you had been cruelly murdered.
+Oh, my darling, tell me where you have been?”</p>
+
+<p>“Where have you been, Aline?” echoed her father, with unconscious
+sternness.</p>
+
+<p>“Where?” cried Effie, with painful anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>“Where?” asked Max, with boyish curiosity.</p>
+
+<p>But to all of these anxious questions, and the more anxious look
+that accompanied them, Aline Rodney answered not a word.</p>
+
+<p>Her dark head still rested against her father’s breast, and one arm
+was drawn lovingly around his neck. There was a smile of ineffable
+joy and peace on her face, but at Mrs. Rodney’s reference to the
+little room and her wound a look of wonder came into the dark-blue
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Mamma, who has told you all that?” she exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“We have heard it all from Dr. Anthony, who dressed your
+wound that night,” cried Mrs. Rodney. “Oh, Aline, who was it
+that wounded you so cruelly, my dear? and where were you, and
+why did you not send for me?”</p>
+
+<p>A look of sorrow and regret flashed over the sweet white face.</p>
+
+<p>“Mamma, I cannot tell you,” answered Aline.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">
+ CHAPTER XIX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>They gazed at her in amazement. What was this? Aline not to
+tell where she had been these three months! What could she possibly
+mean?</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, darling, you do not perhaps understand your mother.
+She is asking you where you have been. You must tell her, my
+child,” said Mr. Rodney, gently.</p>
+
+<p>Aline answered him in the same words:</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I cannot tell her.”</p>
+
+<p>Something very like anger came momently into Mr. Rodney’s
+kind eyes as he looked down into the sweet young face that lay
+nestled lovingly against his arm.</p>
+
+<p>“No more willfulness, Aline,” he said, almost sternly. “You
+have run away from us and caused us a great deal of anxiety and
+sorrow. You have almost broken my heart, and your mother has
+been near to death’s door. You do not deserve that we should receive
+you back with so much love and forgiveness. But now that
+we have done so, you must be frank and explicit with us. You
+must tell us where you have hidden yourself so securely from us
+while we have been seeking you everywhere at so great an expense
+and trouble, to say nothing of our sorrow and anxiety.”</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, it does not matter where I have been so that you have me
+back again safe and secure,” cried simple Aline.</p>
+
+<p>She could not understand the dark frown that clouded his brow.</p>
+
+<p>“It matters everything,” he declared. “What new whim possesses
+you, Aline, that you should deny us thus? Do you not suppose
+that we should be anxious over your whereabouts after hearing
+all that we have done?”</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot understand who has told you so much, papa,” said the
+girl in wonder.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[Pg 49]</span></p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney made a sign to Dr. Anthony. He came forward into
+the range of Aline’s vision.</p>
+
+<p>“Doctor,” said Mr. Rodney, “do you recognize my daughter as
+the wounded girl whom you attended in the mysterious blue room?”</p>
+
+<p>Aline gazed in wonder at the strange face as it looked down upon
+her. She rather liked its expression, it was so cheery and handsome,
+with its brown eyes, brown mustache, regular features, and expression
+of good nature.</p>
+
+<p>He looked steadily and admiringly at the beautiful young face.</p>
+
+<p>“I could swear to her identity,” he said, firmly. “It is the face
+of the wounded girl in the mysterious blue room.”</p>
+
+<p>“I have never seen you before,” cried Aline. “How do you
+know these things which you assert?”</p>
+
+<p>He smiled. Aline could find no fault with that smile. It was so
+kind and reassuring. He answered, pleasantly:</p>
+
+<p>“You have never seen me, Miss Aline, because I wore a mask
+when I dressed your wound that night. But I remember your face
+distinctly.” He turned to Mr. Rodney. “May I tell her the story
+of that night?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney answered, “Yes.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline lay listening silently, with dilated eyes, to his strange story.</p>
+
+<p>“I was full of sympathy for you,” he said. “I felt quite sure
+that there was something wrong. I did not like the strangeness of
+it all. I have tried again and again to find your strange prison, that
+I might rescue you from your bondage. I have been your friend
+ever since that night. If any one has maltreated you, Miss Aline—if
+you have been detained in that strange house against your will,
+tell me where to find the wretch, and I will punish him for you.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are very kind, but I have nothing to say,” Aline answered,
+in a low voice of unconscious regret.</p>
+
+<p>He looked at her in surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you mean to make a secret of it?” he asked her, in his clear,
+frank way.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” she answered, calmly, and looking straight into his face
+with her blue, resolute eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“But, my dear young lady, why should you do that?” he said,
+perplexed.</p>
+
+<p>“That is my own affair,” she answered, with something of her old
+imperious temper ringing in her voice. “My business cannot concern
+you—a stranger. I consider that you are talking to me in a very
+impertinent fashion.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney put his hand hastily over the willful red lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Your temper is not improved by your sojourn away from us,”
+he said, in a tone of marked displeasure. “Listen, Aline; this gentleman
+is not to be treated as a stranger by you. He is a valued
+friend, and, moreover, he is engaged to your sister Effie. He will
+be your brother, but I hope you will never cause him as much anxiety
+as you have done the rest of us.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline put out her white hand frankly to the doctor.</p>
+
+<p>“I congratulate you,” she said. “Effie is the dearest girl in the
+world!”</p>
+
+<p>“So I think,” said Dr. Anthony, frankly; adding, gayly, “I think
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[Pg 50]</span>a great deal of you, too, Miss Aline, since but for you I might never
+have seen your sister!”</p>
+
+<p>They all laughed. Aline made up her mind that he would be a
+charming brother-in-law.</p>
+
+<p>“I should say that my running away has proved quite advantageous
+to the family,” said she archly, as she kissed the blushing Effie.</p>
+
+<p>She thought that every one would agree with her. She could not
+understand why they all looked so grave. She had been brought up
+so simply and innocently in this quiet country town she had no
+knowledge of evil.</p>
+
+<p>“Why do you all look so grave?” said she, pettishly. “If you
+aren’t glad to see me, perhaps I had better go back where I came
+from.”</p>
+
+<p>“Where <i>did</i> you come from, Aline?” exclaimed her father.</p>
+
+<p>“You dear, curious old papa, I shan’t tell you!” replied Aline,
+with her merry laugh that sounded like music.</p>
+
+<p>“You are jesting, Aline, but it is not an appropriate subject for a
+joke,” said her father. “Come, dear, I do not like to be kept in
+suspense. I am waiting to hear why you ran away from us, and
+where you went.”</p>
+
+<p>She lifted her head from his arm, and looked up into his face with
+her bright, wide-open eyes. She saw that he was not jesting, that
+he was in intense earnest. She was inclined to resent his curiosity,
+as she termed it to herself.</p>
+
+<p>“Really, papa, I cannot imagine why you make such a fuss over
+it,” she cried, with all the freedom of a spoiled child. “I should
+think you already knew why I went away. It was because I didn’t
+wish to stay in that hot, stuffy little chamber all day while you
+were enjoying yourselves at the picnic. So I went out for a little
+while, I meant to return directly, but—” she stopped short, and a
+sudden flush mounted up to her white forehead.</p>
+
+<p>“And why did you not return, Aline?” her mother cried out,
+quickly. “What reasons did you have for staying?”</p>
+
+<p>“I had the very strongest of reasons, mamma,” said the girl, and
+now they saw that she was half laughing, half crying. “The very
+strongest reasons, for I could not return.”</p>
+
+<p>“But why, dear?” asked Effie, leaning on her lover’s arm, and
+looking deeply interested.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, ‘why, why’!—how you all do ring the changes on that one
+word,” cried Aline, in pretty petulance. “When I say that I do
+not mean to tell you, why cannot you leave me alone?”</p>
+
+<p>She was in the most palpable earnest. They all saw that. They
+did not know what to say to her. She was so childlike, so innocent,
+she could not understand why it was really so necessary that she
+should explain her absence to them.</p>
+
+<p>“Tell me one thing, Aline, my darling,” said her father, coaxingly.
+“How did you get out of your locked room?”</p>
+
+<p>She locked her white hands around his arm and looked up into
+his face. There was a deep, warm color on her face, and her eyes
+were misty as if with tears that she bravely held back.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, darling,” she said, with a sudden quiver in her fresh
+young voice, “do not be angry with me, dear. Indeed, indeed, I
+do not want to be naughty or willful or unkind to you. But I cannot
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[Pg 51]</span>tell you how I left my room that day any more than I can tell
+you how I came back to you to-night.”</p>
+
+<p>There was a dead silence. Aline did not know how strangely her
+words sounded to them all. She did not know that there was anything
+so strange and reprehensible in her silence. She did not realize
+that she was no longer a child, but a woman, every day of
+whose life should lie fair and open like a spotless page to every eye.</p>
+
+<p>Her father put her suddenly out of his arms into a chair by his
+side.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, you are tired to-night. Perhaps you will tell us your
+story to-morrow?” he said, half inquiringly.</p>
+
+<p>“Neither to-night nor to-morrow, papa,” she replied, in a vaguely
+troubled tone, for she began to feel alarmed at their persistency.
+“No, nor ever!”</p>
+
+<p>“Do you realize what you are saying, Aline?” Mr. Rodney inquired,
+in a strange, measured tone, and gazing deliberately into her
+grave, sweet, perfectly frank blue eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa, I realize it,” she replied, innocently.</p>
+
+<p>“You will stain the whiteness of your life, of your young
+womanhood, with a secret at whose nature no one can guess—you
+will deliberately place yourself under a ban. You will not reveal
+this strange secret even to your parents—do you mean all this,
+Aline?” he asked, agitatedly.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa dear,” answered Aline.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">
+ CHAPTER XX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney gazed at his daughter for a few moments in blank
+silence. It had suddenly dawned upon him that, with all her childish
+ways and innocent young beauty, Aline was a woman in years.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Standing with reluctant feet,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Where the brook and river meet,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Womanhood and childhood fleet.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>She was eighteen years old, but until to-night she had seemed like
+a child. She had the frank heart of a child, and her mother had
+never put her forward in society as a woman. The bloom had
+never been brushed from her heart by a lover. She had never had
+a secret from her parents in her life. She had been open, frank,
+and guileless, and singularly confiding.</p>
+
+<p>Her course now was utterly unlike Aline’s former ways—it was
+strange, unfilial, and incomprehensible.</p>
+
+<p>As he gazed at her silently now, the subtle change in her struck
+him most forcibly. It existed not only in her mind, but her face.</p>
+
+<p>Now that he looked at her more closely, he saw that Aline’s
+pretty oval face had grown thin and pale; her eyes, always large
+and bright, were more so than ever now. They were not the happy,
+careless eyes of the child Aline. They had a brooding shadow in
+them—a new expression, almost of pain. The red, smiling lips had
+acquired a certain gravity. There was a soul looking out of the
+beautiful pale face now, illumining its ethereal loveliness like the
+light behind a crystal vase.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[Pg 52]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Some new experience of life has come to the child since she left
+us. Her mind is expanded and developed into that of a woman,”
+he said to himself.</p>
+
+<p>With that thought came trouble, sorrow, and vague regret, mixed
+with a certain horror of the mystery she persisted in throwing around
+the months of her absence. Tremblingly he asked himself what
+did that strange reserve mean? Was it the impenetrable veil
+thrown around a disgraceful secret?</p>
+
+<p>Disgraceful! He started and chided himself. Was he linking
+the thought of disgrace with her, the child of his heart, his bright,
+beautiful darling, who had always been his favorite child? No,
+no, sin could never touch her, she was too pure, too true, too innocent.
+He gazed anxiously into her sweet, blue eyes, and in spite of
+the vague shadow he saw there, they were still frank, and open,
+and honest; she was still as innocent as a child, although as lovely
+as a woman. Whatever had come to her in those months of absence,
+deepening her experience of life, it had not brought her any
+worldly knowledge. The thought that any one could think hardly
+of her for that secret she was keeping had never dawned upon her
+inner consciousness.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney knew the world with all its evil ways, and he was a
+man of strong intellect and strong impulses. He vaguely scented
+trouble if Aline persisted in her strange course of conduct.</p>
+
+<p>Her simple air as she answered his last question almost dismayed
+him. What a child she was still in spite of her years!</p>
+
+<p>“Look at me, Aline,” he said, gravely.</p>
+
+<p>She turned her sweet, flower-like face obediently to his, and met
+his stern inquiring look with the full gaze of her lovely violet eyes.
+The full white lids and long, curling black lashes raised fully from
+them, gave them an air of innocent candor and tender appealing.
+It was not possible that sin or shame could stain the pure white soul
+looking out at him from those splendid portals of light.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline,” he said, abruptly, “I can scarcely credit the sincerity
+of your refusal to speak. Perhaps you have not counted the cost.”</p>
+
+<p>“The cost, papa?”</p>
+
+<p>Honest amazement looked out at him from the dark-blue orbs.</p>
+
+<p>“The cost,” he repeated, with stern brevity.</p>
+
+<p>“But, papa, I do not understand you. I went away because
+mamma had punished me, and I was vexed and did not mean to
+stay in all day. And—and—I could not come back when I wished
+to do so. There were reasons why I could not do so—all my own
+fault, remember, papa; and so when I come at last—when I come
+back loving you all more dearly than ever, and quite determined
+not to be naughty ever again, you look at me so strangely, you talk
+to me so sternly. You ask me, have I counted the cost? I do not
+understand you in the least, papa. What do you mean by the cost?”</p>
+
+<p>“The cost of your silence,” he said. “Do you not know that it
+is strange, unnatural? Do you not know that I have a right to know
+where you have been, my child?”</p>
+
+<p>“Of course I know that, papa. And I have always told you
+everything, haven’t I, papa?—haven’t I, mamma? I have never
+kept a secret from you in all my life; but I thought that if I chose
+to keep this one, you would not care—that it would not matter
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[Pg 53]</span>greatly. I do not see how it could matter to any one! But you are
+angry, papa. Was that what you meant by the <i>cost</i>? Shall you
+lock me in my room again if I refuse to tell?”</p>
+
+<p>He stared at her, stupefied. What could he say in the face of
+such innocence and ignorance?</p>
+
+<p>She rose from her seat impulsively, and threw herself down on
+her knees before him, folding her white arms across his lap, gazing
+up into his face earnestly and lovingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa”—there was a wistful trouble in her voice, a sound as of
+unshed tears, a patient humility—“papa, you shall punish me as
+much as you please! I quite deserve it; I am willing to bear it. I
+will do anything you say without a murmur. I cannot tell you
+where I have been; I cannot tell you how I went away; but no one
+is to blame but myself. You know how wild and willful I have
+been. I brought all this upon myself, and I will bear the consequences.
+Punish me as you will, papa, only forgive me and love
+me again!”</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, this is the most sheer obstinacy,” he said, looking down
+at the lovely tear-stained face, for two great sparkling tears had
+flashed from under her dark lashes and rolled down upon her
+cheeks. “I do not wish to punish you—I only wish to forgive you,
+but you make it too hard for me by your willfulness. Tell me the
+truth, my darling.” He bent down suddenly and clasped her in
+his arms with inexpressible love and earnestness. “Tell me, Aline,
+where you have been; and if you have suffered wrong at the hands
+of any one, I will find means to punish that wrong in the most terrible
+fashion!”</p>
+
+<p>She slipped from his arms to the floor, and crouched there, with a
+strange trouble written all over her face.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I can tell you nothing—nothing!” she murmured, in
+hoarse, strained accents.</p>
+
+<p>All the tenderness in his face was displaced by sudden anger.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I no longer plead to you for your obedience,” he exclaimed,
+sharply—“I <i>command</i> you to tell me the truth!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXI">
+ CHAPTER XXI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline sprung to her feet and regarded her father in consternation.</p>
+
+<p>His tenderness and love had given place to fierce anger and authority.
+His face was pale and stern, his lips set in a rigid line, his
+dark-blue eyes, so like her own, blazed ominously.</p>
+
+<p>“I <i>command you</i>,” he repeated, hoarsely. “Do not continue to
+trifle with me any longer, Aline. Tell me where you have been.”</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I would tell you it I could, but I cannot do so,” she answered,
+gently, almost humbly, and retreating a pace from him
+toward her sister.</p>
+
+<p>But he waved her away from Effie’s side with sharp authority.</p>
+
+<p>“Stand back,” he said, “you have no right by your sister’s side
+until this mystery is explained away. Now, will you tell me the
+truth?”</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot,” she still repeated, and her lips began to quiver. She
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[Pg 54]</span>turned a piteous, pleading gaze upon her mother’s face. It touched
+a responsive chord in Mrs. Rodney’s heart. She who had always
+been harshest to Aline was tenderest now.</p>
+
+<p>She came forward and laid a soft, pleading hand on her husband’s
+arm.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Rodney, do not tease the child,” she said. “See how
+white and ill she looks! leave her alone now. She will tell us some
+time when she is better—will you not, my darling?”</p>
+
+<p>Aline flew to her mother’s arms and hid her face on her breast,
+but she did not answer her pleading question, she only broke into
+low, hysterical sobs. She was frightened at her father’s anger, her
+heart and brain were in a whirl. How different was this homecoming
+from what she had expected! The dear father who had
+always loved her best, who had always defended her girlish escapades,
+had turned against her now.</p>
+
+<p>She did not understand that in the very fact of the idolizing love
+he had borne her lay the secret of her father’s anger. Because he
+had loved her the best of all he felt her defection the worst of all.
+To him she had always been loving and obedient. He could not
+understand her strange disobedience now. It filled him with mingled
+fear and anger. He was wounded in his love and his pride.</p>
+
+<p>He looked coldly at his wife as she stood with her daughter
+clasped in her maternal arms mingling her tears with those that
+flowed from the girl’s blue eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Mrs. Rodney, I hope you will not interfere in this matter,” he
+said, with distinct coldness. “I alone must deal with Aline now;
+I alone dictate her punishment.”</p>
+
+<p>“Punishment! I thought there was to be no more talk of that.
+We have punished the child too much already!” cried the remorseful
+mother.</p>
+
+<p>“God bless you, mamma!” whispered the girl, gratefully.</p>
+
+<p>“Be silent. I will have no interference in my management of
+Aline,” he repeated, angrily.</p>
+
+<p>They all looked at him in wonder. No one had ever seen Mr.
+Rodney really angry before. His favorite daughter quailed before
+the white heat of wrath that distorted his proud, handsome face.
+He advanced and drew her deliberately from Mrs. Rodney’s arms
+and placed her in a chair. At his authoritative manner Aline’s fair
+face flushed, and something of his own high spirit flashed into her
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, you have no right to treat me thus!” she cried. “Why
+do you humiliate me before this stranger?” and she glanced at Dr.
+Anthony, who was regarding her with gravely sympathetic eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“I have already told you that Dr. Anthony is not to be regarded
+as a stranger—” began Mr. Rodney. But the doctor himself interrupted
+him by stepping forward and addressing him.</p>
+
+<p>“She is right,” he said. “Although Miss Aline has not a better
+friend on earth than myself, we are actually strangers to each other.
+I should have remembered the fact before, but that my deep sympathy
+and interest in her caused me to forget. I crave her pardon
+for my seeming rudeness, and I will now take my leave.”</p>
+
+<p>He bowed himself out, and left the beautiful culprit alone with
+her family. They stood around her silently—the weeping mother,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[Pg 55]</span>the compassionate sister and brother, the father, who had made himself
+her judge, who was repressing every instinct of tenderness in
+his anger at what he deemed a girl’s waywardness.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, you think me harsh and cold,” he said. “God knows
+no man ever had a harder task than mine. I do not think you
+understand what will follow upon this rash act of folly and this
+culpable silence of yours. Shall I tell you?”</p>
+
+<p>“If you please, papa,” answered Aline.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXII">
+ CHAPTER XXII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>She was regarding him with some little curiosity. It was quite
+plain to be seen that she had not the faintest idea of the nature of
+that cost at which he vaguely hinted. There was nothing but a perfectly
+blank wonder on the beautiful, girlish face.</p>
+
+<p>In the face of her utter innocence and ignorance it was all the
+harder to tell her the truth. He looked at her almost despairingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I almost wish now that we had not brought you up in
+such simplicity and innocence,” he said. “Perhaps, if you had
+known the world better, you might not have erred like this.”</p>
+
+<p>She looked at him attentively.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I cannot see that the world has anything to do with me,
+simple Aline Rodney,” she said. “It seems to me that nobody
+was harmed by my absence except mamma and the rest of you, to
+whom I belong!”</p>
+
+<p>He fairly groaned.</p>
+
+<p>“There is some one else who was harmed more than all the rest
+of us,” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>“Who was that, papa?” innocently.</p>
+
+<p>“Was ever such ignorance?” he asked himself, even while he
+answered, aloud: “You, Aline!”</p>
+
+<p>Her face brightened, comprehensively.</p>
+
+<p>“That is quite true,” she said, “I was harmed the most of all,
+for I not only had to bear the pain of my absence from you, but
+was tortured with remorse and anxiety. I was never away from
+home in all my life before, you know, papa, and when I was so ill,
+oh, how I longed for mamma and the rest of you. And then, I was
+so angry and so sorry because I could not send for you, and—and—”
+she paused, with a shocked exclamation, and put her hand
+over her lips.</p>
+
+<p>“So you really were ill—poor darling!” cried Effie.</p>
+
+<p>“I did not mean to say that,” cried Aline. “Oh, I am so
+thoughtless, I shall tell everything yet,” she sighed in dismay, and
+again the expression of anger clouded her father’s face.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, you have quite misunderstood me,” he said. “I did not
+at all refer to your own sensations in your absence, but to a more
+serious matter. I will be plain with you, Aline. I meant solely
+what other people would think and say of your absence, and your
+refusal to explain it.”</p>
+
+<p>“<i>Other</i> people, papa?”</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, why will you repeat my words in such a parrot-like and
+exasperating fashion?” he cried, sharply.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[Pg 56]</span></p>
+
+<p>Her lips quivered sensitively.</p>
+
+<p>“I beg your pardon,” she said, simply. “I cannot think what
+makes me so stupid.” She put her hand wearily to her brow for
+an instant. “My head aches. Perhaps that is the reason. Please
+bear with me, papa. I am sure I shall understand you presently.”</p>
+
+<p>He was touched inexpressibly by her childish humility. Something
+like softness and regret quivered in his voice, as he answered:</p>
+
+<p>“I do not wish to be hard upon you, child. It is my fatherly
+regard for your welfare that urges me to sternness. It seems as if
+you have not the faintest idea of my meaning.”</p>
+
+<p>“I am ashamed to confess that I have not, papa. It is all owing
+to my own stupidity that I fail to understand you,” she said, with
+wondrous gentleness.</p>
+
+<p>He made a despairing gesture.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sure I do not know how to make you understand,” he
+said, “I am sure I wish I did not need to try. Unfortunately, it
+becomes my duty. Remember that, Aline.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa.”</p>
+
+<p>He stroked his rippling brown beard nervously with his long,
+white fingers. How hard it was to show the evil nature of the world
+to this simple-hearted child! He said to himself, passionately, that
+he would almost rather cut off his right hand than be obliged to
+do it.</p>
+
+<p>“When I said other people, Aline, I meant the world in general,
+and the people of Chester—the people among whom you live in particular,”
+he began.</p>
+
+<p>She bowed her dark head gravely. She did not in the least know
+what to say. His remarks appeared quite irrelevant in her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“You have some friends among them. You like them, they like
+you,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, yes,” she answered with a smile, and he continued, desperately:</p>
+
+<p>“When they hear that you have come home, Aline, and that you
+refuse to reveal where and with whom you have been, they will suspect
+that your strange silence hides some disgraceful mystery. They
+will refuse to associate with you; they will point the finger of scorn
+at you.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">
+ CHAPTER XXIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney paused when he had uttered those words and looked
+gravely at his daughter. She had not quite taken in his meaning
+yet. She was looking at him with an air of blended surprise and
+incredulity.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, you must please excuse me for repeating your words over
+this time,” she said, anxiously. “You see I want to be sure that I
+understand you. Do you say that people will suspect <i>me</i> of something
+disgraceful?—that they will have nothing to do with <i>me</i>?—that
+they will point the finger of scorn at <i>me</i>?”</p>
+
+<p>“That was what I said, Aline,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>The blue eyes turned inquiringly to her mother’s face.</p>
+
+<p>“Is it really true, mamma, or is papa only teasing me?” she
+asked, slowly.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[Pg 57]</span></p>
+
+<p>“I am afraid it is only too true, my dear,” Mrs. Rodney answered,
+with a great, strangling sob.</p>
+
+<p>A look of horror came into the great blue eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“But, mamma”—she unconsciously turned from her father’s
+pale, stern face to her mother’s gentler one—“I have done nothing
+wrong. Why should my friends treat me so?”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney could not answer her. She looked at her husband.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline,” he said, “do you remember when you were a little girl
+at school, the first line you used to write in your copy-book?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa,” she replied, with a half-smile on her red lips. “It
+was this, ‘Avoid the appearance of evil.’”</p>
+
+<p>“Exactly. Well, it is a maxim that goes with us through life.
+We should not only avoid evil, but even the appearance of it. Do
+you understand me, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>She bowed in silence.</p>
+
+<p>“The world, society, people in general, my child, judge almost
+wholly by appearances. When there is a mystery, where there is
+secrecy, where every day of a young girl’s life does not lie fair and
+open to the public view, they suspect guilt, and they visit their suspicions
+on the offender in unstinted measure.”</p>
+
+<p>A great change had come over Aline’s face. It was white and
+startled, the lips were drawn in a line of pain. He had made her
+understand at last. There was no need to ask as he did, half sorrowfully:</p>
+
+<p>“Can you make the application, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>A long, deep, heavy sigh quivered over the girl’s lips. She raised
+her eyes to his as if deprecating his words. Her voice was full of
+sorrowful anxiety.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, is the world really so hard?”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not call it hard, Aline—only just,” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>She sighed and remained silent.</p>
+
+<p>“Only just,” he repeated. “It asks that a woman’s life be kept
+fair and pure and spotless, open to the eyes of all beholders. It does
+not tolerate secrets or mysteries. But it is not hard, it is only just.
+All pure men and women concur in its decision.”</p>
+
+<p>She did not speak, only gazed into his face with her large, clear
+eyes, as if waiting to hear more.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, you are young, you are beautiful, you love life, you are
+of a most social disposition,” he said. “Can you afford to shroud
+your absence during those three months in a veil of mystery? Can
+you afford to have your whole life blighted and ruined as it will be
+if you persist in your silence? Can you do without hope and pleasure,
+without love and lovers, without friends and without respect?”</p>
+
+<p>Every word fell clearly and coldly. When he ceased there was a
+deep silence in the little parlor. They could hear the wild autumn
+winds sighing outside, hear the steady downpour of the rain, ceaseless
+as though “the heart of heaven were breaking in tears o’er the
+fallen earth.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline was sitting motionless, her dark lashes drooped against her
+cheeks, one small hand pressed unconsciously against her beating
+heart.</p>
+
+<p>“Of what are you thinking, Aline?” he asked, impatient of her
+strange silence.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[Pg 58]</span></p>
+
+<p>She raised her eyes slowly, and looked at him with a mute misery
+that pierced his heart.</p>
+
+<p>“Only of what you said, papa,” she answered. “Need it really
+be so bad as that?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, it <i>need not be</i> if you choose to save yourself,” he answered,
+almost savagely. “You have only to speak, Aline, only to clear
+yourself from the appearance of evil. You will surely do so now
+when I have so patiently explained to you the terrible cost of your
+silence. You will not persist in your suicidal willfulness.”</p>
+
+<p>She sprung from her chair and stood leaning against the back of
+it, gazing at him with burning cheeks and heaving breast.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, you are only trying to frighten me,” she cried out,
+hoarsely. “It cannot be so bad as you say! You exaggerate it all!
+I have done nothing wrong, I am guilty of nothing but the willfulness
+and disobedience you have pardoned in me a thousand times!
+Why should any one be angry, why should any one blame me when
+I have done nothing wrong?”</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing wrong? Do you call it then nothing to have stayed
+away these three months?” he asked her.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, surely you know I would have come home before if I
+could, papa!” she cried, clasping her white hands together in her
+earnestness.</p>
+
+<p>“Who or what has hindered your return to us, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I must not tell you,” she wailed.</p>
+
+<p>“You mean you will not,” he said, with bitter chagrin, for he
+had not believed her resolve would be proof against the penalties it
+entailed.</p>
+
+<p>“I will not, then, since you will have it so,” she broke out, with
+a sort of desperate despair, while her blue eyes drowned themselves
+in sudden raining tears.</p>
+
+<p>Then suddenly, before any one could prevent her, she flung herself
+face downward on the floor, and broke into stormy, tempestuous
+sobs and tears.</p>
+
+<p>They gazed at her in consternation—no one attempted to soothe
+her. What could they say to the willful child who was rashly determined
+to blight her own young life?</p>
+
+<p>At length, just as suddenly as she had thrown herself down, she
+sprung up again. She went to her father and stood meekly before
+him, hushing her sobs by a great effort of will.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, if all be as you say, then is my life indeed ruined,” she
+said, despairingly; “I must bear my fate, for I cannot change it.
+Oh, how gladly I would speak if I could! Listen to me, papa,
+dearest. I am not willful, I am not wayward, I would give one
+half of my life to have the liberty to tell you all you ask! But,
+papa, mamma, Effie, Max—my dear ones all, I am the most unhappy,
+most unfortunate girl in the world, for I have sworn an oath
+never to speak, never to reveal the secret of those three months. You
+may do with me as you will; the world may wreak its vengeance
+on me as it will, but I cannot help myself. I must bear it as best
+I can. My lips are sealed. I am solemnly sworn to silence!”</p>
+
+<p>While they yet gazed upon her in speechless horror, she gasped,
+staggered, threw out her hands for some support, and missing it,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[Pg 59]</span>fell heavily upon the floor. When they lifted her up she appeared
+like one dead.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">
+ CHAPTER XXIV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>They were startled and frightened. This was twice that her
+senses had yielded to unconsciousness that night. The strong,
+bright, pretty Aline who had left them three months ago had never
+fainted in her life.</p>
+
+<p>“What dreadful experience she must have passed through since
+she left us! How pale and thin she looks!” Mrs. Rodney cried, in
+anguish.</p>
+
+<p>Effie wept silently. She had never known how dear was her
+volatile younger sister until now. She knelt beside her, chafing
+the cold, white hands between her own, warm, rosy palms, while
+she silently prayed for Aline’s recovery.</p>
+
+<p>They wished now that Aline’s hasty words had not driven Dr.
+Anthony away, for her swoon was a long and deep one. All their
+efforts failed to rouse her. She remained cold and white, with
+scarcely any discernible pulse, and the most slow and muffled heart-beats.
+Her limbs seemed to grow more rigid and deathly every
+minute.</p>
+
+<p>They removed her to her own little chamber, and laid her on her
+little white bed. No one guessed that, from the tower window of
+Delaney House, a pair of eyes had been watching anxiously for
+hours to see the light flashing from the little end window so long
+darkened by its owner’s absence.</p>
+
+<p>When it appeared, shedding a glow of light upon the dying foliage
+of the garden, and Oran Delaney saw the moving figures behind the
+white curtain, he experienced a sensation of relief. The child was
+at home again, surrounded by those dear ones for whom she had
+pined. She would soon forget the brief shadow he had thrown over
+her life for a little while. They had taken her home and forgiven
+her, and all would go on as before in his neighbor’s house. The
+thought lifted a burden from his heart. He gave a sigh of relief,
+and threw himself down upon his couch to seek refuge from his
+haunting thoughts in uneasy slumbers.</p>
+
+<p>Meanwhile, Aline lay locked in that deep trance of unconsciousness.</p>
+
+<p>They tried every method of rousing her, but their efforts did not
+meet with the least success.</p>
+
+<p>She lay mute and pale before them like one dead. The dark
+lashes lay all stirless upon the marble-white cheeks; her lips did not
+unclose to repeat those sorrowful words whose bitterness seemed to
+have broken her heart. She seemed to have passed away without a
+regret from that world in which henceforth she had no part save
+sorrow: and her father, as he gazed upon the pale and rigid face almost
+wished that it were so.</p>
+
+<p>She was so sweet and beautiful and he had had such great hopes
+for her. How could he bear to see her live with this great shadow
+of silence and mystery upon her life? How could he bear that the
+cold, carping eyes of her little world should rest upon her in suspicion
+and distrust? And for himself; he was very proud; how
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[Pg 60]</span>could he endure to be pointed at as the father of a girl whose willful
+silence most probably concealed terrible disgrace.</p>
+
+<p>“I wish that she had never been born!” he cried out, in the bitterness
+of his heart, and then when his own heart reproached him, he
+made excuses to it. “She can have no happiness in life, no respect,
+no confiding love, no domestic bliss, no peace. There will always
+be a shadow on her life. She had better be dead, or never have been
+born.”</p>
+
+<p>He remembered those wild words of the Spanish student:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent14">“Yet I fain would die!</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">To go through life unloving and unloved;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">To feel that thirst and hunger of the soul</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">We cannot still; that longing, that wild impulse,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">And struggle after something we have not,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">And cannot have; the effort to be strong;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">And, like the Spartan boy, to smile and smile,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">While secret wounds do bleed beneath our cloaks:</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">All this the dead feel not—the dead alone!</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">Would I were with them!”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>“The girl is like me. She is proud, although she is so loving.
+I believe she would sooner be dead than live the life that lies before
+her,” he said to himself.</p>
+
+<p>And he was right. The cold, gray, rainy dawn peeped in at the
+windows and saw Aline struggling slowly back to life and consciousness.
+She put out her hands and pushed them away from her
+with their restoratives. She would have none of them. She flung
+out her hands in despair.</p>
+
+<p>“You should have let me die!” she cried out, wildly. “How
+could any one wish for me to live?”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, my darling, do not talk so!” cried her mother, forgetting
+everything save the passionate mother-love that filled her heart.
+“You must live to be my comfort when Effie is taken from me.
+You know she will be married soon to Dr. Anthony, and I should
+be so lonely, when she went were it not for you, my love!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, mamma, how can I be any comfort to you?” cried poor
+Aline, in despair. “You will be ashamed of me—you will never—never
+forget all that my willfulness has brought on me—perhaps
+you will hate me after awhile. If you did, mamma, I could not
+blame you. I quite deserve it, I know!”</p>
+
+<p>“Hush, my darling! How could a mother hate her child?” cried
+poor Mrs. Rodney, tearfully, and forgetting all her dignity in genuine
+mother-love. “I do not believe you are guilty, Aline! How
+could my little white-souled girl be a sinner? Live for me, Aline,
+and we will not care for the world. We will let it go by. We will
+not heed its smiles or its frowns.”</p>
+
+<p>But Aline sighed in heaviness of heart. Her trouble was too
+fresh, her wound was too deep for her to find comfort anywhere.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, mamma, you are so good to me,” she cried. “I never
+knew how good before. I do not wish to live. I am proud, though
+you might not have thought so in the old, willful days. I cannot
+live such a life as my father has painted for me. I shall die like a
+flower that has no rain and no sunshine. And that will be best. I
+do not care to live!”</p>
+
+<p>And this was the girl who had dreamed of finding life all fair and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[Pg 61]</span>desirable at fourscore—who had laughed at Oran Delaney’s croakings
+such a little, little while ago.</p>
+
+<p>She lay there among the snowy pillows, in the little room for
+which she had sighed so often, and vainly thinking that she would
+be so glad and happy when she returned to it once again, and she
+wished in her heart that she might die.</p>
+
+<p>She was quite a different girl at dawn from the one on whom
+yesterday’s sun had set. Then her life lay before her, all bright
+and fair, like a landscape in the morning sun. Now it was like the
+same scene at twilight, with the sad rain falling and dimming all in
+its somber veil.</p>
+
+<p>“I am done with my life, if all is like they tell me,” she said,
+soberly, to herself. “What shall I do with all the years that lie
+before me yet till I die?”</p>
+
+<p>Like a flash, her thoughts went back to Delaney House and the
+beautiful blue room that had held her a captive those three months.
+Before her mind’s eye came a dark, grave, handsome face; in her
+ears rang a deep and musical voice, with a tone of subtle melancholy.
+He was reading the poem she had not cared to hear, but
+which seemed at this moment to have burned itself in on her
+memory:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“How many years will it be, I wonder</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And how will their slow length pass,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Till I shall find rest in silence under</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">The trees and the waving grass?”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>“Perhaps you may even subscribe to its sad sentiments some day,”
+Oran Delaney had said to her, and how scornfully she had derided
+the idea.</p>
+
+<p>Was she the same girl? Scarcely. She had a vague fancy that
+she would wake up presently and find that she had been sleeping
+and dreaming some horrid dream.</p>
+
+<p>She furtively pinched herself, and found that she was not dreaming
+at all. She was broad awake, and the new day was shining in
+at her windows, chill and murky and sunless, like the life that lay
+before her.</p>
+
+<p>“And all for such a little, little act of folly,” she said to herself,
+with a terrible sinking at the heart.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney suddenly came over to her. He took Aline’s cold
+white hands and smoothed them gently between his strong warm
+ones.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline,” he said, “do you think it quite right to hold yourself
+bound by the oath you spoke of? Do not the dreadful consequences
+it entails on you justify you in breaking it?”</p>
+
+<p>She shook her head slowly.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not care,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“It must be a very solemn oath that can bind you under such
+circumstances,” he said, slowly. “Is your decision quite unalterable,
+my dear?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa,” she replied, with a deep sigh.</p>
+
+<p>He was silent for a moment, and an echo of her own sad sigh
+drifted over his lips. When he looked back at her again there was
+a new light in his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I have been thinking of a new plan,” he said.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[Pg 62]</span></p>
+
+<p>“A new plan?” she echoed.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes; I cannot bear to see your life blighted, all your chances
+of happiness destroyed. We will go away from here and make our
+home in some distant spot, where this strange story can never follow
+you. You may yet be happy.”</p>
+
+<p>Her young heart thrilled with sudden joy. She looked at him
+with grateful affection.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, would you, indeed, do so much for me?” she inquired.</p>
+
+<p>He bowed silently, and gently pressed her hand. Aline forgot
+his harshness and anger of a little while ago, and remembered only
+the patient, unalterable love that was ready to make such a sacrifice
+for her sake.</p>
+
+<p>“And you, mamma?” she inquired, turning her wistful eyes
+upon Mrs. Rodney’s pale and altered face.</p>
+
+<p>“I am quite willing, dear,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“You are too good and kind to me, papa and mamma; I do not
+deserve it. I must not let you make such a sacrifice for my sake!”
+she cried.</p>
+
+<p>“There is too much at stake to call it a sacrifice,” Mr. Rodney
+answered.</p>
+
+<p>“At least we need not make it yet,” Aline cried, musingly.
+“Oh, papa, I can hardly believe yet that my friends will be unkind
+to me, that they will believe evil of me because I am fettered by a
+mysterious vow. Let us make the trial. Let us give them the
+chance to trust me if they will. Do not let us go away just yet.
+Let us stay and be convinced. Perhaps the world is not so hard as
+you think. How could it be so unjust and cruel?”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXV">
+ CHAPTER XXV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney gazed sadly at his daughter. He saw that she could
+scarcely bring herself to believe that which he had told her.</p>
+
+<p>“I see how it is, Aline,” he said to her, gravely. “You are inclined
+to doubt my assertions. You do not altogether believe what
+I have told you.”</p>
+
+<p>She was shocked when he put the truth before her in so plain a
+fashion. She did not know herself how strong a vein of incredulity
+ran through her painful thoughts.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, papa, forgive me,” she said, penitently. “I did not mean
+to doubt you. It was only my unfortunate manner of expressing
+myself. I was hoping against hope. Will you forgive me for my
+implied doubt? It is so hard to give up hope.”</p>
+
+<p>He only pressed her hand in silence, and she continued:</p>
+
+<p>“Even if they thought hardly of me, might they not in time relent?
+Might I not live down the scandal even if they were cruel
+enough to make a scandal out of nothing?”</p>
+
+<p>“You might in time,” he answered, “but it would be a long
+while first, so long that your youth and beauty would be faded, and
+they would forgive you because they could no longer envy you.”</p>
+
+<p>“So long as that?” she asked, with a heavy sigh.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, dear, nothing but time will heal that wound,” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>She lay silently musing.</p>
+
+<p>She could not bear to give up the beautiful, bright world which
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[Pg 63]</span>she loved so well, and in which she had such unbounded faith and
+hope.</p>
+
+<p>It was a great temptation to her to accept the sacrifice her father
+proposed making. She had the innate selfishness of youth which
+thinks that the world was made for itself. She did not understand
+how great a sacrifice it was that her family would make. In her
+ignorance of the world, she could not know.</p>
+
+<p>But while she dallied with the temptation to accept it, she found
+herself restrained from leaving Chester by a vague, yet subtle, feeling
+she could not understand. It was stronger than her will, it was
+some influence outside of herself that she could not analyze, but it
+was most powerful. It drew her one way, while her reason and her
+will seemed both to point in a contrary direction. She yielded to it
+blindly, not knowing that it was fate, that “Divinity that shapes
+our ends, rough-hew them as we will.”</p>
+
+<p>She looked gravely at her father, who had been watching her
+face, anxiously noting the changing emotions of its expressive
+features.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, my mind is made up,” she said, with almost womanly
+calmness. “I shall not go away. I will remain in Chester.”</p>
+
+<p>“Remain!” he echoed, surprised at her decision.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I will remain. I will not act a cowardly part, and run
+away from my trouble. I will stay here and live it down if my hair
+grows gray and my eyes dim in the effort.”</p>
+
+<p>“You will have to be very brave if you do so, Aline,” he answered,
+not without a certain admiration of her high spirit.</p>
+
+<p>“I intend to be,” she answered, with a sigh.</p>
+
+<p>He could not help feeling relieved at her decision. He was not a
+rich man. All his income was derived from his legal practice. To
+begin life anew in another place meant a hard struggle, although
+he would not have shirked it in the interest of the child he loved so
+fondly. But now that her own decision made it unnecessary, a
+burden was lifted from his mind.</p>
+
+<p>He bent down and pressed his lips to her fair, white brow.</p>
+
+<p>“God bless you, and help you, my daughter,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>Her lips quivered, the quick tears rushed into her eyes. She let
+the lids drop over them hastily, and the bright drops rolled like
+crushed pearls down her cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, you are exhausted. I have been too thoughtless,” he
+said, remorsefully.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I am tired,” she answered, wearily. “I should like to go
+to sleep.”</p>
+
+<p>They kissed her, and went away softly, but Aline did not go to
+sleep. She lay, broad awake, in the chilly, rainy dawn of the new
+day, looking drearily into the future.</p>
+
+<p>“I have lost my life,” she said, mournfully, to herself. “For, if
+I live it down, I shall be old by then, and nothing but the grave will
+lie before me.”</p>
+
+<p>She recalled some verses she had read in a book at Delaney House.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Rudderless, we drift athwart a tempest,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And when once the storm of youth is past,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Without lyre, without lute, or chorus,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Death, a silent pilot, comes at last.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[Pg 64]</span></p>
+
+<p>Death! She gave a shudder in spite of herself. She had always
+had the keenest love of life, the greatest enjoyment of its pleasures.
+She was sanguine, ardent, impetuous. Even now, when she looked
+at Death across a bridge of sorrow, she felt a little afraid of it. She
+bewailed her blighted life, her irrevocable folly. She would have to
+pay the cost of her girlish willfulness by the sacrifice of all that was
+best in life. Bitterly she bewailed her fault and Oran Delaney’s
+hard heart, that had brought this doom upon her.</p>
+
+<p>“If I had known the cruel price I must pay for my silence, I
+would have died before I would have pledged myself to it. But
+Mr. Delaney must have known. He is older than I am—he knows
+the world. How cruel, how wicked he must be to doom me to such
+a fate!” she said to herself, indignantly.</p>
+
+<p>Moved by a sudden impulse, she slipped from the bed, threw a
+light shawl about her shoulders, and went over to the window. She
+peered down through a crevice in the curtain at the wonderful garden
+whose blooming beauties had lured her so innocently to her fate.</p>
+
+<p>Oh, how changed was the scene as she gazed upon it now!</p>
+
+<p>The roses all were dead, the leaves were blown from the trees, and
+lay in sodden drifts across the path. Some late autumn flowers,
+chrysanthemums, asters, and others of their kind, were breaking
+into lavish bloom in their neglected beds, but the rain and storm had
+beaten them prostrate to the ground, with broken stalks, and faces
+prostrate on the earth. All was dreariness and desolation, and the
+gray stone towers of grim Delaney House seemed to frown more
+darkly than ever now that she knew what influence potent for evil
+pervaded its gloomy interior.</p>
+
+<p>She gazed wistfully at it through the fine impalpable mist of rain
+that obscured all things. She saw a figure emerge from the
+gloomy portals into the deeper gloom of the rainy dawn. It was
+Mr. Delaney. He walked slowly with downcast head and his
+hands behind him, smoking a cigar as was his usual morning habit.
+Its fiery spark gleamed fitfully in the dull light, and the fine blue
+smoke curled upward and lost itself in the mist.</p>
+
+<p>Drawing the curtain closer Aline watched him, herself unseen.
+She found a singular fascination in doing so, and when she saw his
+glance turn musingly once or twice up to her window her heart beat
+strangely—with anger she thought.</p>
+
+<p>“He has spoiled all my life, but does he realize that he has done
+so?” she asked herself, musingly. “Could he be so deliberately
+cruel?”</p>
+
+<p>It almost seemed to her that he would not have done so could he
+have known.</p>
+
+<p>“Could any one be so hard, so cruel, as to willfully blight a
+young girl’s life?” she asked herself, with a sort of wonder, as her
+eyes followed Oran Delaney in his dreary saunter along the wet,
+graveled paths. “He saved my life once. Why should he make it
+valueless to me?”</p>
+
+<p>As she gazed at the dark, grave face under the brim of the wide
+slouch hat, it seemed to her that it was not hard nor cruel, only
+profoundly grave and sad. A longing came over her that he should
+know all that had transpired that night since she came home.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[Pg 65]</span></p>
+
+<p>“If he knew, he might perhaps relent and release me from my
+vow of silence,” she thought, eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>She remained at the window watching him thoughtfully until he
+disappeared from view in a turn of the path, then she turned aside
+to her writing-desk and drew out pens and ink and paper. She
+wrote hastily, and almost incoherently:</p>
+
+<blockquote>
+<p>“<span class="smcap">Mr. Delaney</span>,—They are all very angry and surprised because
+I would not tell them where I have been. Papa says that people
+will think strangely of me if I do not tell. He says they will
+think I am guilty of something—I do not know what—and that they
+will not associate with me, and that I shall never have any more
+peace or pleasure in my life. You did not know these things when
+you bound me to silence and secrecy. Did you, Mr. Delaney? I
+feel quite sure you did not. You could not have been so heartless
+as to ruin all my life like that! But now that I have told you, will
+you not have pity on me? Release me from my promise and let me
+speak, I pray you.</p>
+
+<p class="sig">
+ “<span class="smcap">Aline Rodney.</span>”
+</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p>She put the poor little appeal into an envelope, and when night
+came she tied a little weight to it and threw it far out into the garden,
+hoping that Mr. Delaney would find it there the next morning.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">
+ CHAPTER XXVI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline’s return to her home created quite a little stir of pleasant
+excitement in the town of Chester.</p>
+
+<p>The friends of the Rodneys vied with one another in the speediness
+of their calls upon the young lady.</p>
+
+<p>They found her pale, calm, and more beautiful than ever, for she
+had gained a certain quietness and repose of manner that became
+her to a charm. There was a softer tone in her voice, a gentler light
+in her eyes. She seemed eager to please and divert all who came.</p>
+
+<p>The good townspeople came all agog with curiosity. They expected
+to hear all manner of romantic stories from the returned girl.
+They plied her with all sorts of curious, not to say impertinent,
+questions.</p>
+
+<p>They were astonished and indignant when they heard that they
+were not to learn anything. To each and all Aline returned the
+same reply:</p>
+
+<p>“I prefer not to discuss the subject with any one.”</p>
+
+<p>This refusal, spoken so gently yet firmly, and not without a certain
+wistfulness, silenced further curiosity with her. Indeed, it
+would have been the height of rudeness to have persisted.</p>
+
+<p>But, baffled with Aline, they turned to Aline’s family. Every
+one felt that her strange story belonged most naturally to the public.
+They were astounded when they found the Rodneys uncommunicative
+on the subject. No one could understand such strange reserve.
+Every question, every hint was met by a quiet evasion that effectually
+silenced curiosity. The social world of Chester woke up gradually
+to the fact that the Rodneys meant to keep the cause of Aline’s
+absence a dead secret.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[Pg 66]</span></p>
+
+<p>Popular indignation was roused to fury. Mr. Rodney’s prophecy
+did not prove itself a dead letter by any means, for the loud tongue
+of scandal was not lacking to add its quota to the tumult. The worst
+things possible were hinted and then spoken outright in the circles
+of Mme. Rumor.</p>
+
+<p>The whole family were socially ostracized in less than a month.
+Each member came in for a share of the obloquy that had fallen on
+Aline’s head. The silence each was compelled to maintain was held
+in the light of crime. From being prominent members of the most
+select circles in Chester they were coolly dropped by all. No one
+left cards, no one sent invitations.</p>
+
+<p>Every one turned the cold shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>There was only one friend who remained faithful to the Rodneys
+in their troublous time.</p>
+
+<p>This was Effie’s noble and handsome lover, Dr. Anthony.</p>
+
+<p>While the town gossiped and sneered, his neat buggy was seen before
+the Rodneys’ door more frequently than ever. Effie, Aline, or
+Mrs. Rodney were often seen driving with him through the wide,
+pretty streets, and people were fain to acknowledge that “that girl,”
+as they contemptuously called her, was prettier than ever in spite of
+the cloud of mysterious disgrace that clung about her. She and Dr.
+Anthony had become great friends. He could not help admiring
+his betrothed’s young sister even while he deprecated the silence she
+maintained at so bitter a cost to herself and her friends.</p>
+
+<p>And while the weary days waned and faded, Aline was waiting
+with a breaking heart for some sign or token from Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>It was many days now since the little white-winged prayer for
+mercy had fluttered from her hands down into the garden of Delaney
+House.</p>
+
+<p>She had watched and waited, she had hoped and prayed, but no answer
+had come to her frantic appeal. Yet she knew that he had
+found it and read it.</p>
+
+<p>She had been watching through a tiny rent in her curtain which
+she had made expressly for that purpose. She saw him tear it open
+and read it, then slowly walk away without even glancing up at her
+window.</p>
+
+<p>Days went and came. There was no day in which Aline did not
+watch that tall form pacing up and down, though sensitively
+shrinking from observation herself. She spent many hours alone in
+her room, and it became insensibly a fascinating occupation to watch
+for his appearance as he came out for his daily walk, which he did
+whether it was gloomy or bright.</p>
+
+<p>There was one thing which inspired her with a feeling of pique.
+It was that he never turned his eyes up to her window, never by any
+chance gave a sign or token that he was conscious of the wistful
+blue eyes watching him behind the white lace-bordered curtain.</p>
+
+<p>Of what was he thinking? Why did he so persistently ignore her
+prayer? Had he really forgotten her? She asked herself these questions
+over and over, but no answer came from the silent lips of Oran
+Delaney as he walked up and down his lonely garden.</p>
+
+<p>Aline grew half frantic sometimes watching him thus. A bitter
+rebellion grew up within her heart. Why did he not speak—why
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[Pg 67]</span>did he treat her with such silent contempt, for she interpreted his
+silence to mean nothing less!</p>
+
+<p>One day her father came home to dinner with a rather excited
+look upon his face.</p>
+
+<p>He glanced across at the beloved daughter whose willfulness had
+brought such sorrow upon them all. She sat in her place as usual,
+but she scarcely tasted her food, only toyed with it while her
+thoughts seemed far away, and her long lashes drooped against her
+pale cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline!” he said, abruptly.</p>
+
+<p>She started like one in a dream, and dropped her fork. The blue
+eyes looked quickly at him with a startled expression.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa,” she answered, in the low, sad voice that had
+grown habitual with her since her return.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Linton called upon me to-day,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Linton?” she repeated, blankly.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Linton was a banker, and quite an important personage in
+the social element of Chester.</p>
+
+<p>“He brought me something for you,” continued Mr. Rodney,
+and he reached across the table and laid a small folded package by
+Aline’s plate.</p>
+
+<p>She looked at it in wonder, without touching it.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it, my dear?” inquired Mrs. Rodney, with womanly
+curiosity.</p>
+
+<p>“Open it, Aline!” said her father.</p>
+
+<p>“Is it a letter, papa?” she asked, and the note of keen eagerness
+in her voice did not escape his alert hearing.</p>
+
+<p>“Were you expecting a letter from any one, my dear?” he asked,
+pointedly.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes—no,” she answered, dejectedly, and a scarlet flame leaped
+up into her cheeks, then faded out into deathly white.</p>
+
+<p>“Why don’t you open your package, Aline?” said her sister.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, why don’t you?” echoed Max, in a voice of lively curiosity.</p>
+
+<p>She did not touch it still—only looked at her father.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you say it is not a letter, papa?” she asked.</p>
+
+<p>“It is not a letter,” he replied.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">
+ CHAPTER XXVII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline could not keep the expression of bitter disappointment out
+of her face. Her lips quivered sensitively, and a mist of tears
+dimmed her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>A wild hope had sprung into her mind that Mr. Delaney had
+sent her an answer at last, although she could not understand why
+he had done so through the medium of Mr. Linton.</p>
+
+<p>But her father’s negative reply at once dispelled the springing
+hope. She was bitterly disappointed, and she could not keep her
+emotion from showing in her face. Every one could see it plainly.</p>
+
+<p>“She did expect a letter, and she is disappointed at not receiving
+it,” said her keen-witted father to himself. “It is something better
+than a letter, Aline,” he said, aloud. “Shall I tell you what it is,
+since you show no disposition to look at it?”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[Pg 68]</span></p>
+
+<p>“If you please, sir,” she replied, indifferently.</p>
+
+<p>“It is a check-book and a certificate of deposit in the Chester
+Bank of the sum of ten thousand dollars,” he replied, with sparkling
+eyes, and watching her closely to see how she received the news.</p>
+
+<p>She showed nothing but a blank surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“Ten thousand dollars? But what has that to do with me, papa?”</p>
+
+<p>“Everything, Aline, for it is all yours,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Mine!” she exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, yours!” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“But, papa, I do not understand it at all,” she said, when some
+of the expressions of amazement had ceased around the table. “I
+have no money at all, you know, and I do not think you have ten
+thousand dollars of your own. So how can it be mine?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is yours by the free gift of some person unknown, Aline,
+who has placed it at your disposal in the bank.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, dear, who could it have been?” cried Mrs. Rodney, while
+Effie and Max looked the image of silent amazement.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sure I do not know,” Mr. Rodney replied. “Can you
+guess who it was, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, papa,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>He was watching her closely, as he had fallen into a habit of
+doing since she had come home. There had been a look of wonder
+on her face at first, but she had scarcely spoken before it was replaced
+by a sudden look of comprehension. A deep, betraying blush
+overspread her face, and showed him that she <i>knew</i>.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, are you quite, quite sure?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Of what, papa?”</p>
+
+<p>“That you have no knowledge of the person who placed the
+money in bank to your account?” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>The hot blush burned deeper in her face. She put up her fair,
+cool hands to hide it. She was silent a moment, and then she lifted
+her dewy, violet eyes frankly to his grave face.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I will not speak falsely to you,” she said. “I think—I
+could guess who the person—might be?”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, dear?” he said, interrogatively.</p>
+
+<p>She understood the stifled pleading in his voice. The blue eyes
+fell sensitively.</p>
+
+<p>“You see, papa, I am only guessing—I am not sure,” she explained,
+tremulously.</p>
+
+<p>“Am I to have the benefit of your surmise, my child?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, forgive me,” she pleaded; “I cannot tell you.”</p>
+
+<p>“Tell me this,” he said: “Was it the person who bound you to
+silence?”</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps so—I cannot tell,” she answered, reluctantly.</p>
+
+<p>She was very guarded. He saw that it was useless to press her.</p>
+
+<p>“Shall you accept this munificent gift, Aline?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>A sudden flash of scorn and anger leaped into the blue eyes, her
+lip curled. She took up the unopened package, reached across the
+table, and laid it beside him.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall not accept it!” she replied, with bitter brevity.</p>
+
+<p>He was disappointed. Ten thousand dollars would have been so
+much to her and to them all. They might have taken it and gone
+away from this place, where the finger of scorn was pointed at
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[Pg 69]</span>them for her fault. They might have made themselves a new home
+far away from the tongues of scandal that were busily wagging
+against them here. But he did not press her.</p>
+
+<p>“You know best, my dear,” he said, simply.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I know best,” she answered, with a sort of passionate
+anger in her clear, young voice, “I know best, and I tell you I despise
+that money, so given! I despise the donor! I will never touch
+one cent of it! I trample upon it! Base money, were it piled as
+high as the stars, could never recompense me for my blighted life
+and lost hopes! Tell Mr. Linton he may tell his generous patron
+to take back his sordid wealth! Tell him that honor is dearer than
+gold!”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney replaced the package carefully in his breast-pocket.</p>
+
+<p>“Very well, dear, I will return these to Mr. Linton, if you are
+quite sure you are acting for the best?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“You may be quite sure, papa, that your daughter could not act
+otherwise than I have done in this matter,” she replied, with decision.</p>
+
+<p>And she arose and left the room hurriedly, leaving her untasted
+dinner upon the plate. Then they discussed the affair in all its
+phases. They concluded that Aline was enveloped in a most baffling
+mystery.</p>
+
+<p>“Could Mr. Linton tell you nothing?” inquired Mrs. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing at all. He said the transaction was a <i>bona fide</i> one.
+All legal matters were carefully observed. He received the money
+in genuine bank bills of a large denomination, but of the mysterious
+investor he could tell me nothing. He shrouded himself in a thick
+veil of mystery. Linton was himself most curious over the matter.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is very strange,” said Mrs. Rodney, and they all echoed her
+thought. It was very strange, all of it. This new development only
+added interest to Aline’s secret. An air of romance was thrown
+around it by the offer of that large sum of money. What terrible
+wrong had Aline sustained, and why was she offered this as a
+recompense?</p>
+
+<p>Of one thing the Rodneys had become convinced. Dr. Anthony’s
+story of the wounded girl in the blue room was not a fiction. Mrs.
+Rodney had furtively examined her daughter’s breast while she
+slept, and she had found the scar of a wound upon it. Her heart
+had swelled with bitter anger toward the merciless wretch who had
+hurt Aline. She longed for vengeance, but she was powerless to do
+anything in the face of this tormenting mystery.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">
+ CHAPTER XXVIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline ran away to hide herself in her room in a flurry of mingled
+emotions.</p>
+
+<p>This was the way in which Oran Delaney had answered her
+pleading letter.</p>
+
+<p>Not a line, not a word, only a shower of gold flung at her feet, as
+if this could make up to her for all she had lost, for the pleasures
+that belonged to her youth, for the love that ought to bless her
+womanhood, for the worldly respect and applause that she had
+forfeited so innocently and rashly.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[Pg 70]</span></p>
+
+<p>She threw herself down into a chair and buried her face in her
+hands. Stifled sobs shook her frame, and bright crystal drops fell
+through her fingers.</p>
+
+<p>She felt as if she hated Oran Delaney. He was cruel and heartless,
+she said to herself, indignantly. What did she care for money?
+She had her youth and beauty, her tender heart, her desire for the
+pleasures of life. With all this heritage of youth she could have had
+happiness enough if only—if only she had not lost that fair fame,
+that open record of life without which all else availed her nothing.</p>
+
+<p>She wept bitterly for this terrible misfortune that had fallen upon
+her. She was young and beautiful and pure, but a great, horrible,
+inky blot had fallen on the whiteness of her life, and she could
+never wipe it out by the words of explanation that would have
+cleared away the hideous stain. People believed ill of her. Women,
+especially young and fair ones like herself, passed by her with
+sneers and averted faces. She was as innocent and as spotless as
+they were, but no one would believe it. Because she would not
+satisfy their curiosity they believed she was a sinner. There was one
+text that every one took and preached from. It was this: “Where
+there is secrecy there is guilt.”</p>
+
+<p>By this standard Aline was judged and condemned. The fierce rebellion
+of her heart against this unjust sentence availed her nothing.
+The world’s code was many hundreds of years older than she was.
+It said in so many words: “A woman’s life must be like an open
+book, that every eye may read. If there is even one leaf folded
+down, one page the world may not scan, then there is a shameful
+secret written on it.”</p>
+
+<p>There was one leaf folded down in the book of her life. It was as
+pure a record as any other; it only recorded the punishment that
+had come to her for her girlish willfulness and folly. But no one
+would believe it. She cried out against the hardness and wickedness
+of the world that could so misjudge her!</p>
+
+<p>“The world must be full of wickedness, or people would not be
+so ready to believe evil,” she said.</p>
+
+<p>The hardest part of her trouble was that her family were compelled
+to be sharers in her disgrace. Because they had taken her home
+again, because they would tell nothing of her absence, people were
+angry with them, too. They were all under ban alike.</p>
+
+<p>“My beautiful Effie, it is too bad that this shadow should rest
+upon her life—she who was always so much admired and beloved!”
+she sighed over and over. “Ah, me, if only I could speak!”</p>
+
+<p>But the iron fetters of her vow chafed and hurt her. There was
+no going back on that solemn pledge of silence. She might beat her
+wings as she would against the bars that held her, but there was
+no escape for her, no release from her sorrow. She could have exclaimed
+with the poet:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Oh, Life, is all thy song</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Endure and die?”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>It seemed to her little less than an insult to offer her money to
+console her for the cureless wound that had laid desolate her life.
+She said to herself that she would have to be reduced to beggary—ay,
+that she would starve on a crust in the street before she would
+touch a cent of Oran Delaney’s money. He had refused her even
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[Pg 71]</span>a word—he had thrown her his gold like a bone to a dog. Well,
+she would let him see that she would never touch it. She would
+die first, she said to herself, in her passionate pride and resentment.</p>
+
+<p>So the days passed by. It was little more than a week before the
+news of the money in the bank for Aline became disseminated far
+and wide, thanks to the gossiping tongue of the genial Banker Linton.
+The busy tongue of scandal wagged afresh over this delicious
+tid-bit.</p>
+
+<p>Opinions were divided over Aline’s course. There were some who
+said that she should have accepted the money, that was doubtless
+offered to her in reparation for wrong that had been done her. This
+class thought that she was very quixotic in refusing, and even very
+foolish. The money would have done her a vast deal of good. She
+might have gone away somewhere with it, and made herself a new
+home where the story of her mysterious absence was not known.
+Decidedly, she had acted foolishly in refusing, said these wiseacres.</p>
+
+<p>There was another class who found Aline’s action rather admirable.
+They argued that if the girl had suffered wrong at the hands
+of any one, mere money could not repair the injury done. They
+applauded her spirit in declining such atonement. This new element
+of romance added fresh fuel to the flame of scandal. It was
+considered that the case against Aline was quite proven now, for
+who would give her ten thousand dollars unless to condone an irreparable
+wrong?</p>
+
+<p>Aline was none the wiser for their praise or blame. Neither
+penetrated to her quiet cottage home. Day after day dragged itself
+wearily along, and a dreary, apathetic calm began to settle down
+on the girl. She had lost heart and hope and given herself up to
+despair.</p>
+
+<p>She rose from her sleepless bed one morning, and went to the
+window and drew back the curtain, and looked at the dreary morning
+sky stretching chill and cold over all the land. It was gray and
+sunless like her life, she thought, wearily, and dropped her eyes
+and sighed heavily.</p>
+
+<p>The down-dropped eyes suddenly fell on a bit of paper lying outside
+the window on the narrow sill and held down by a piece of
+gravel. It was addressed to herself in a strong masculine hand, and
+Aline’s heart beat quickly as she lifted the sash and drew it in.</p>
+
+<p>“At last,” she said, as she hurriedly tore it open and ran her
+eager eyes over the clear, bold chirography.</p>
+
+<p>Only a few lines, hurried and incoherent as her own had been,
+but strong and earnest like the writer:</p>
+
+<blockquote>
+<p>“Aline, you refused the money because you guessed that I had
+sent it,” ran the brief note. “Oh, for God’s sake, take it, child,
+and believe that it is your own as the gift of a heart that bleeds because
+it has wronged you, and because it can make no other atonement
+than what lies in sordid gold. Let your father take the money
+and make a new home for you all in some distant city where this
+unmerited persecution may not follow you, and where you may
+have all the social pleasures due to your youth and beauty and innocence.
+Take the money and use it. It is only due, and I shall
+never forgive you if you continue to willfully refuse it.</p>
+<p class="sig">D.”</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[Pg 72]</span></p>
+
+<p>She ran her eyes slowly over the brief note twice. It only excited
+her anger and contempt. She said to herself that he was a coward,
+strong man as he was, to make a weak girl suffer for the sake of
+that hidden secret he guarded so jealously. Oh, that she had never
+taken that oath of silence upon her girlish lips!</p>
+
+<p>How grim and gray and frowning the towers of Delaney House
+appeared in the dull, cold light. All the years of her girlhood it had
+been a pleasure to her to watch the mysterious mansion, with the
+picturesque ivy creeping about and covering the grim, hard angles
+and small-paned windows with beauty. She had watched the sunset
+lighting its windows with splendor every evening; she had gazed
+upon the beautiful garden with rapturous delight; she had speculated
+often, with girlish curiosity, over the motives that made Oran Delaney
+an alien from his kind, shut up in that gloomy house, and but
+seldom seen in the streets of the town. It had not always been
+thus. Ten years ago, before Oran Delaney went abroad, and before
+the Rodneys came to live in Chester, he had been friendly, genial,
+social, mixing freely with the best society of the town on his annual
+visits from college, and was liked and admired by all. After his
+father’s death he had shut up the old family mansion and gone
+abroad. He had remained away several years, and returned to his
+home a strange and altered man. He no longer sought society, he
+did not visit nor receive visits, he gave no invitations, and accepted
+none. He seemed to have become an inveterate recluse, and remained
+isolated in the lonely mansion, haunted by the ghosts of his dead-and-gone
+ancestors, perhaps, for there were rumors of strange sounds
+and blood-curdling shrieks heard by day and by night by those who
+passed his home. Aline had heard all these tales from the townsfolk,
+and her girlish interest had been strongly roused. Yet how
+little she had dreamed of the subtle influence Delaney House and its
+strange master would exert upon her life!</p>
+
+<p>She held the note in her fingers, and gazed dreamily at Delaney
+House, thinking, with a shudder, of the strange, horrible, unearthly
+creature hidden within its walls, and of the long days of illness and
+sorrow she had suffered from the creature’s rude assault.</p>
+
+<p>“<i>He</i> thinks that gold can pay me for all that I have suffered—for
+all I suffer now!” she breathed, with bitter sarcasm.</p>
+
+<p>As she stood there in her long white dressing-gown, with her loose
+dark hair falling heavily over her shoulders, Mr. Delaney came out
+with his cigar.</p>
+
+<p>It was the first time that Aline had been visible at the window
+since she had returned. Usually she sprung back from sight at the
+moment of his appearance.</p>
+
+<p>A new mood came to her now. She stood there calmly, holding
+the paper in her hand, and fixing her gaze steadily upon the darkly
+handsome, brooding face visible under the wide-brimmed hat. He
+did not see her at first, but at length the angry intensity of her gaze
+seemed to draw his eyes upward by some subtle fascination. In a
+moment he saw her standing there, pale, proud, angry, holding his
+letter in her clinched white hand.</p>
+
+<p>Even at the distance at which he stood, he could see the angry
+flash of the deep violet eyes as they steadily regarded him. Her gaze
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[Pg 73]</span>held his a moment as if trying to pour all the wrath that filled her
+being into his inner consciousness, then—</p>
+
+<p>Even while he still regarded her with his dark, soulful eyes in
+mute inquiry, she lifted her hands and tore the pleading letter into
+fragments, that fluttered swiftly from her hands and fell down into
+the garden among the winding paths. It was her only answer to
+his prayer. When the last white strip had fluttered from her disdainful
+fingers, she removed her magnetic gaze from his, stepped
+backward, without word or sign, and dropped the white curtain between
+them.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIX">
+ CHAPTER XXIX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Lane, the New York detective, who had so ignobly failed in
+the search for Aline Rodney, did not easily recover from that unprecedented
+defeat.</p>
+
+<p>He was acute, wary, and intelligent, with a boundless stock of
+patience and persistence, and these qualities had always insured him
+success in all his undertakings. Failure was a new experience with
+him. He chafed under it. He could not understand it.</p>
+
+<p>If pressing business matters had not recalled him to New York, he
+would have persevered indefatigably for months in the effort to find
+the missing girl. It was not in his nature to give up a quest easily.
+Only the stress of circumstances had induced him to give up this
+one. When he had thrown it over and returned to New York, it
+weighed on his mind. He hated to own himself conquered. Amid
+the stress of other pursuits, he often recalled the case in which he had
+been defeated. He would shut his eyes amid the din and noise of
+the city, and recall the quiet country town that had been the scene of
+such an unfathomable mystery. He did not like to think that he,
+who had worked up the most difficult cases in the great cities, had
+been completely baffled by a simple slip of a girl in a country town
+that, with all its pretentiousness and its exclusive society, was scarcely
+better than a village.</p>
+
+<p>Although he had ridiculed Dr. Anthony’s story of his beautiful,
+mysterious patient, it had made an impression on him that was not
+easily shaken off. He often asked himself in the easy, slangy
+language of the day, whether there could be anything in it.</p>
+
+<p>He thought sometimes that he had been too hasty and incredulous
+in condemning the story because all his efforts to find the mysterious,
+hidden maiden had failed. Dr. Anthony was certainly a man to be
+trusted, being frank, reliable, and most intelligent. And he had
+not taken umbrage at Mr. Lane’s credulity. He had been frankly
+amused at it. When Mr. Lane had quoted, for his benefit,</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Keep probability in view,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Lest folks believe your tale untrue.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>He frankly admitted that his story had an air of romance.</p>
+
+<p>“Notwithstanding which,” he gravely added, “it’s an o’er true
+tale.”</p>
+
+<p>Spite of this little chaffing, the two men having been frequently
+thrown together grew to like each other. There were attractive
+qualities in each one that pleased the other. They became quite
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[Pg 74]</span>social and friendly. When the detective returned to his city home
+he found it a pleasure sometimes to pause in the whirl of this strange
+life and drop a few genial lines to the Maywood physician. Dr.
+Anthony, in his turn, found it pleasant to reply.</p>
+
+<p>So that even before the gossipy newspapers chronicled the fact of
+Aline Rodney’s return to her home, Mr. Lane was made cognizant
+of it through the medium of the young physician’s letters.</p>
+
+<p>He was amazed and rather indignant. It was bad enough that she
+had so cleverly covered up her traces and stayed away as long at
+it pleased her, but that she should come home and keep her secret
+still was far worse. He had no vulgar curiosity over the girl, but
+he had a strong professional interest. She had baffled him and damaged
+his reputation as an invariably successful man. He was distinctly
+conscious of an inward pique.</p>
+
+<p>“I should like to shake the naughty little runaway! What business
+has she to outwit me?” he said to himself.</p>
+
+<p>Sometimes he almost made up his mind to run down to Chester
+and have a look at this girl who could keep a secret so well. She
+would be well worth looking at, he fancied, from Dr. Anthony’s
+enthusiastic description of her beauty. Then, too, she must have
+brains and will besides her beauty, or she could not have kept her
+secret against the odds that had been brought to bear against her.
+Decidedly he meant to see her.</p>
+
+<p>But steady business kept him rather against his will in New York.
+He put off his trip from time to time waiting for a convenient season.
+So the autumn months waned and winter was upon him before
+he had given himself the promised visit. At Christmas he received
+one of Dr. Anthony’s pleasant, friendly letters. It contained among
+its closing messages an invitation to Mr. Lane to be present at his
+friend’s marriage on the 1st of January in the pretty little Gothic
+church the Rodneys attended in Chester.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXX">
+ CHAPTER XXX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Marriages were not much in Mr. Lane’s line. He was forty and
+a confirmed old bachelor—at least that was what his friends said and
+what he said himself. He had never put his neck under the galling yoke
+of matrimony. He rather pitied Dr. Anthony’s weak-mindedness
+in that respect, but he considered that if there was any excuse for
+him it was Effie Rodney’s grace and beauty. These were certainly
+tempting enough to an ordinary, susceptible man.</p>
+
+<p>But Mr. Lane did not feel sufficient romantic interest in the union
+of the lovers to make a point of witnessing the marriage. He was
+about to decline, on the plea of urgent business, when a sudden
+thought arrested him with the ink yet wet on the pen. Why not
+make an opportunity for seeing Aline Rodney by accepting Dr.
+Anthony’s cordial invitation?</p>
+
+<p>He changed the contemplated No to Yes, adding a single proviso:
+he would come if Dr. Anthony would guarantee that Aline should
+not know that he was a detective, and that he had vainly tried to
+trace her in her mysterious absence. He fancied that the young lady
+might conceive an antipathy to him, and vaguely suspect ulterior designs
+from his presence at Chester.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[Pg 75]</span></p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony replied on the part of himself and the Rodneys, that
+Aline should be kept in entire ignorance of Mr. Lane’s profession,
+and look on him merely as the friend of the physician.</p>
+
+<p>Receiving this assurance, the detective decided to attend the nuptials
+of his friend, arriving in Chester on the day previous to the
+happy event.</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony took him that evening to call on the Rodneys.</p>
+
+<p>“I have told Aline that I expect a friend from New York,” he
+said. “She is prepared to meet you and suspects nothing.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane thanked his friend for respecting his scruples.</p>
+
+<p>“I have a fancy to study the young lady, with the advantage on
+my side. Perhaps I may get at the bottom of the mystery yet. It
+has become more incomprehensible than ever since the story of the
+little fortune offered and refused.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is most romantic,” answered Dr. Anthony, “and the strangest
+part of it all is that I believe Aline would be glad to confess the
+whole truth were she not restrained by her vow of silence.”</p>
+
+<p>“How does she bear the suspicion and scorn of those who were
+once her friends?”</p>
+
+<p>“She is crushed by it. One can see that she is almost heart-broken.
+She is pale and sad. She shrinks sensitively from observation.
+She can scarcely be persuaded to go outside the door.”</p>
+
+<p>“Will she be present at the marriage ceremony in the church?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, by Effie’s earnest wish and prayer. My darling has very
+solemn ideas connected with marriage. She believes that the sacred
+rite should always be celebrated in church wherever possible. Aline,
+by Effie’s earnest wish, will accompany her to the altar.”</p>
+
+<p>“I am most curious to meet the young lady,” said the detective.</p>
+
+<p>“You will be quite sure to admire her,” said Aline’s prospective
+brother-in-law. “She is very beautiful.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane had heard this so often that he only smiled. It occurred
+to him, however, that if she were prettier than Effie she would have
+to be very pretty indeed.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall take you to call at the cottage this evening,” said Dr.
+Anthony. “You will then have an opportunity of meeting Aline.
+The rest of the family you have met already.”</p>
+
+<p>They went, and although Mr. Lane had expected to meet a very
+pretty girl indeed, he was surprised and amazed when he saw Aline
+Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>He saw a tall, graceful figure, exquisitely molded in the delicate,
+symmetrical curves of early womanhood. She wore a simple dark-blue
+cashmere dress, and the round, white throat rose from it with
+a certain stately grace and pride that was very excusable, seeing
+what a beautiful face shone above it like a peerless flower upon its
+stem. She was pale, but her skin was like the cream-white petals
+of a tea-rose. Her hair was darkest brown and loosely curling; her
+features were exquisite; her eyes were large and of the rare violet
+tinge so much admired, so seldom met; her brows were slender and
+black, and the long, fringed lashes were black, too, and made her
+eyes appear black in their shadow.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane was as much struck by Aline’s bearing and manner as
+he was by her beauty. She had no ungraceful self-consciousness or
+awkwardness. Her bearing was easy, graceful, and even distinguished.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[Pg 76]</span>It was natural, not acquired, for she had never mingled in
+society, and had had but few advantages of travel and culture.
+He wondered at that even more than at her beauty. It did not occur
+to him that the heavy cross that had fallen on her life had had
+the effect to intensify her natural grace into a grave, proud dignity,
+that in its silent way seemed like a mute protest against the wrongs
+she had sustained. The girl had budded into the woman, forced into
+untimely maturity and gravity by the refining power of sorrow.</p>
+
+<p>She was very quiet. She did not speak to Mr. Lane unless he
+pointedly addressed her. She rarely met any strangers, and when
+she did, she supposed that they knew her strange story, and despised
+her. She remembered always that</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent9">“One venomed word,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">That struck its coward, poisoned blow,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">In craven whispers, hushed and low—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">And yet the wide world heard.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane could talk very well when he would. It pleased him to
+converse with Aline Rodney. He was very gracious and affable
+with her, giving her no smallest hint or sign that he knew her
+strange story. While Effie touched the piano-keys with soft, lingering
+chords of music, and her lover hung enraptured over her, the
+detective sat apart and bent himself to the task of amusing Aline.</p>
+
+<p>He did not find it very easy at first. She was shy and cold; she
+seemed to take no interest in his words. She kept thinking, morbidly,
+to herself:</p>
+
+<p>“He knows my story, and he accordingly despises me.”</p>
+
+<p>But, as he continued to talk to her pleasantly, unmindful of her
+quiet reserve, a new thought came to her.</p>
+
+<p>“This good-looking, agreeable friend of Dr. Anthony is from
+New York. It is not possible that the story of my trouble has
+reached the great city. Perhaps he does not <i>know</i>.”</p>
+
+<p>There was inexpressible comfort and relief in the thought. Unconsciously
+the tense bands about her heart began to loosen. It was
+pleasant to meet any one, even a stranger, who did not distrust and
+suspect her. She ventured to lift her frank, blue eyes to his face,
+and when she saw how kindly he was regarding her with his attentive
+gray eyes, she took heart of grace to talk to him, because she believed
+that he did not know. Some of her old impulsiveness returned
+to her. She began to take an interest in his conversation.</p>
+
+<p>He on his part began to see what a charming girl she might have
+been if this shadow of some unknown sin had not fallen on the
+whiteness of her life. Once or twice she even laughed aloud, and he
+said to himself, even though he was intensely practical and not in
+the least romantic, that her laughter was as sweet as a chime of
+music.</p>
+
+<p>He talked to her of the world, of the gay cities, of the people he
+had met, of the places he had visited, and she listened with delight.
+She had never met any one like Mr. Lane before—any one who had
+seen the world and knew it thoroughly in both its good and bad
+phases. She became so interested that she forgot momently the
+brooding shadow of trouble that hung always over her. Her old
+love of life and the world returned to her. A soft color glowed on
+her cheeks, her eyes beamed as she cried out, vivaciously:</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[Pg 77]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Oh, how I envy you, Mr. Lane! You have traveled, you have
+seen the world, you have enjoyed life! There is nothing I should
+like better!”</p>
+
+<p>He looked at her with a smile. Her beautiful face was momently
+radiant. She was full of eager anticipation and desire.</p>
+
+<p>“You would like to travel?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, so much!” she cried, clasping her shapely white hands
+together in the earnestness of her feelings, and carried out of herself
+by excitement.</p>
+
+<p>“Have you ever been in New York, Miss Rodney?” he inquired,
+with apparent carelessness.</p>
+
+<p>A little laugh that was half pity and half self-scorn rippled sweetly
+over her lips. She was evidently amused at his entire ignorance
+of her traveling record.</p>
+
+<p>“New York!” she exclaimed. “Why, Mr. Lane, would you believe
+that I have never been away from Chester in my life?”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXI">
+ CHAPTER XXXI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The sweet, high pitched voice reached every ear in the room distinctly.
+Every one was surprised at the assertion; but they saw that
+Aline had forgotten herself, and all were wise enough not to take
+any apparent notice of the admission. She continued, confidentially.</p>
+
+<p>“You see, Mr. Lane, we lived on a farm in the country, about
+two miles from Chester, while I was a child. Before I was grown
+up papa sold the farm, and came to live at the cottage here, and
+here we have been ever since, and I have never been five miles from
+Chester in my life.”</p>
+
+<p>She saw some sort of a wonder on his face, and added, gayly:</p>
+
+<p>“I see that you are wondering at me, Mr. Lane. Perhaps I
+should not have confessed to such lamentable ignorance of the
+world around me?”</p>
+
+<p>“On the contrary, I am charmed to have you confess it.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“‘Where ignorance is bliss,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">’Tis folly to be wise.’”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>She looked at him in some little wonder. The tone of his voice
+was peculiar; but when she looked at his face, it appeared perfectly
+calm and frank. After a moment’s silence, he continued:</p>
+
+<p>“To one versed in the lore of the world as I am, it is refreshing
+to meet with one so guileless and so innocent of the evil of the
+world. I am not so enviable as you think me, Miss Rodney. A
+knowledge of the world is not conducive to love of life.”</p>
+
+<p>She had been slowly gathering her thoughts together while he
+talked. Quite suddenly the memory of her own knowledge of the
+world rushed over her—the knowledge that had come too late to
+save her from the evil.</p>
+
+<p>Her face grew suddenly pale. She recalled the admission she had
+made just now, “I have never been away from Chester in my life.”</p>
+
+<p>She grew frightened at the thought that she had almost betrayed
+the secret she was sworn to keep. Fortunately, this man to whom
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[Pg 78]</span>she was talking knew nothing and could make nothing of what she
+had said. But Dr. Anthony and the others—had they heard?</p>
+
+<p>She glanced furtively around her. No one was observing her.
+Effie’s fingers were still straying over the piano, waking low, soft
+chords, and the doctor’s head was close to hers, as he whispered
+love’s delicious nothings in her willing ears. Mr. and Mrs. Rodney
+were looking over the pictures in the new magazine. Max had
+fallen asleep, as usual, on the convenient sofa. She thought, with
+a sigh of relief, that no one except Mr. Lane had been paying any
+attention to her.</p>
+
+<p>“But I must be more careful next time. I shall betray everything
+some time if I suffer myself to relapse into my old thoughtless
+self,” she thought, and she became so suddenly quiet and
+<i>distrait</i> that Mr. Lane began to wonder in his mind if he had
+unwittingly offended her.</p>
+
+<p>She did not give him a chance to find out, for just as he was on
+the point of asking her whether he had been so unfortunate, she
+made some slight excuse for leaving the room and did not return
+that night.</p>
+
+<p>But Mr. Lane’s brief interview with her had given him material
+for grave reflection.</p>
+
+<p>He had quite decided in his own mind that she was pure, true,
+and innocent, as she was beautiful.</p>
+
+<p>He said to himself that her trouble, whatever it was, might have
+come to her through folly or waywardness, but never through deliberate
+sin.</p>
+
+<p>He was a close reader of human nature, as his profession necessitated
+he should be. He knew that he had made Aline temporarily
+forget her trouble, and he believed that every word that she had
+spoken to him had been the pure, unadulterated truth. Those frank
+blue eyes were the very well of truth and purity. They had looked
+at him frankly and guilelessly, and they had no falsehood in them.</p>
+
+<p>Her frank and thoughtless admission had let in such a flood of
+light upon his mind as would have frightened Aline indeed could
+she only have known it.</p>
+
+<p>“I have never been away from Chester in my life,” she had said,
+and the words rung in his hearing long after her fair, bewildering
+face had vanished from his sight.</p>
+
+<p>If this were true, and Mr. Lane did not in the least doubt the assertion,
+what became of Dr. Anthony’s romantic story?</p>
+
+<p>The place where Dr. Anthony had been called to attend the mysteriously
+wounded girl must have been about five miles from Maywood,
+declared the physician.</p>
+
+<p>“Chester is five miles distant from Maywood.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane repeated these words to himself, and his face began to
+burn and his heart to thump against his vest pocket.</p>
+
+<p>He seized his hat and went out into the night air to cool his glowing
+face. Out under the cold, wintery sky, with its host of gleaming
+stars, he mentally shook himself.</p>
+
+<p>“I have been a stupid dolt, a stark, staring idiot,” he cried,
+vehemently. “I shall never pride myself on my skill and acumen
+again. Only to think that I never reflected on that plain fact that
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[Pg 79]</span>Chester is five miles from Maywood. The girl has never been out
+of Chester, and oh, what a consummate stupid I have been.”</p>
+
+<p>He was angry with himself, indeed. He accused himself of the
+most inexcusable stupidity. Only to think how he had scoured the
+country for miles around Maywood and never thought of Chester.
+It was the most natural mistake in the world, but he was bitterly
+angry with himself for having made it.</p>
+
+<p>He walked along the pavement in front of the cottage, so absorbed
+in thought that he scarcely heeded the cold winter wind that sighed
+among the leafless trees and around the gables of the cottage. With
+the sight of Aline’s beautiful, innocent face had come an even deeper
+desire to fathom the secret of that strange absence.</p>
+
+<p>“I will find it out this time; but will she thank me for it? Will
+any one thank me?” he asked himself, soberly, and he decided that
+it could not hurt Aline Rodney to have the truth revealed. He did
+not believe that any willful guilt could hide behind that smooth,
+white brow and those clear, true eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“She would undoubtedly reveal it herself but for the vow of
+silence that binds her,” he said to himself. “I may even be doing
+her a favor by tracing out the secret and revealing it to her parents.
+Anyhow, I shall make it convenient to remain down here a week
+or two, and ‘we shall see what we shall see.’”</p>
+
+<p>Absorbed in his thoughts he walked on past the strip of fence in
+front of the cottage a few paces down the street, without observing
+that he was directly before the tall, imposing gray stone mansion
+known as Delaney House. It stood well back among its leafless
+trees and ghost-like evergreen shrubberies and cedars that showed
+like sober-suited sentinels in the cold, white light of the moon. The
+house looked gloomy enough with its closed doors and heavily shuttered
+windows from whence no friendly light streamed forth to
+cheer the weary passer-by, but Mr. Lane did not notice it as he
+walked slowly past absorbed in his own vexing thoughts.</p>
+
+<p>Absorbing as they were they were doomed to have a sudden and
+startling interruption.</p>
+
+<p>The night had been intensely still save for the low whisperings of
+the winter wind as it swept past in restless sighs, but suddenly its
+calm was broken by a long, low wail that broke shudderingly upon
+the silence and repose of the hour, and swelled high and still higher
+until it became a fearful shriek of mad rage and impotent anger
+most terrible to hear:</p>
+
+<p>“Ah—h—h! Ah—h—h!”</p>
+
+<p>That loud, terrible, prolonged shriek fell suddenly and startlingly
+upon the ears of the detective. He sprung backward with a smothered
+cry and stared upward to where the sound seemed to issue forth.</p>
+
+<p>His eyes fell upon the dark, silent façade of Delaney House.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah!” he breathed, and like a horrible echo came that fearful
+shriek again.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah—h—h! Ah—h—h! Ah—h—h!”</p>
+
+<p>It seemed to float over his head and die away in the wandering
+breeze. Again he glanced up at the dark lowering front of Delaney
+House. This time its darkness was illumined by a line of light that
+glanced momentarily through the shutters, then abruptly disappeared.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[Pg 80]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXII">
+ CHAPTER XXXII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>He stood silently gazing at the windows where the light had so
+strangely flickered and disappeared with almost the swiftness of a
+flash of lightning. He was full of wonder over what he had heard
+and seen.</p>
+
+<p>“What a horrible voice!” he said to himself. “It was neither
+that of a man nor woman, and yet it sounded distinctly human.
+What was it? I have heard such shrieks within the walls of madhouses,
+nowhere else. Can it be that some unfortunate lunatic is
+confined in Delaney House?”</p>
+
+<p>He stood still, listening and watching some time, but he neither
+saw nor heard anything more. The mansion had returned to its
+usual gloom and silence. It almost seemed to him as if those fearful
+shrieks and that swift flash of light had been the figment of his
+own disordered imagination.</p>
+
+<p>He went up to the front gate, which, like the fence, was of tall
+ornate ironwork, surmounted by bristling spear-heads, and softly
+tried the latch. It was unlocked and yielded readily to his touch.
+He entered the lovely neglected grounds and strolled through the
+quiet paths, careful to keep in the shadow and well out of the patches
+of wintery moonlight that gleamed on some of the white, graveled
+walks. He did not himself understand the strange caprice that had
+driven him to enter the private grounds of one who was wholly a
+stranger to him, but it led him blindly on.</p>
+
+<p>“If the owner should catch me trespassing on his grounds I
+might find myself rather <i>de trop</i>,” he thought, grimly, but he did
+not turn back. He did not think it likely that the master of Delaney
+House would wander in that dreary, deserted garden on such a night.</p>
+
+<p>Leaving the vicinity of the house, he strolled slowly on and came
+out at that end of the garden which was simply walled by the gable
+end of Mr. Rodney’s cottage. Still in the shadow himself he saw a
+sudden light thrown on the ground by the reflection of the light
+from a window. He glanced up quickly and saw that it shone from
+the casement of Aline Rodney’s room.</p>
+
+<p>He drew back further into the convenient shadow cast by a tall,
+dark evergreen-tree, and looked up. He saw that the curtain at the
+window had been drawn aside by a small white hand. The next
+moment he saw a fair young face gazing out wistfully through the
+pane into the moonlit night whose mystic shadows lay long and
+dark around Delaney House.</p>
+
+<p>It was Aline Rodney’s face. He gazed upon it, eagerly, as it
+stared out with parted lips and wide, despairing eyes at the dark,
+gloomy house.</p>
+
+<p>“What is she doing there? What interest can she have in Delaney
+House?” Mr. Lane asked himself, soberly.</p>
+
+<p>The beautiful grave young face gave no answer to his question.
+There was upon it an expression of wistful sadness and pathetic
+sorrow that went to his heart, strong man though he was. She remained
+for some time gazing sadly out into the wintery darkness,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[Pg 81]</span>then slowly retired and dropped the heavy curtain between herself
+and the dreary scene.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane retraced his steps back through the shrubbery toward
+the house again. He went around to the front entrance and looked
+curiously at the great carved oaken door.</p>
+
+<p>He was struck by a coincidence with Dr. Anthony’s story.</p>
+
+<p>The front door was reached by a flight of wide, marble steps.</p>
+
+<p>“Strange!” he muttered to himself. “What if this should prove
+to be the house!”</p>
+
+<p>He gazed longingly at the dark stone walls. He would have
+given anything could his gaze have pierced through them in quest
+of the hidden blue room of Dr. Anthony’s story. A dozen vague
+suspicions were floating formlessly through his mind, but each
+thought hovered like a dark-winged bird of omen around Delaney
+House.</p>
+
+<p>“Can it be that the secret is hidden here?” he asked himself.
+“Have we all been searching far and wide for Aline Rodney while
+she lay wounded and hidden at her father’s very door?”</p>
+
+<p>The suspicion took hold upon his mind with startling pertinacity.
+It grew into a settled belief even while he stood there gazing fixedly
+at the close shut, forbidding looking door.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, if it be so or not, I shall find it out before I leave Chester
+again,” he said to himself, with a certain resolution in his tone, as
+he let himself out of the gate into the street again.</p>
+
+<p>He went back to the cottage and met Dr. Anthony coming out to
+look for him.</p>
+
+<p>“I thought you had run away, Lane. Where have you been?”
+asked the doctor.</p>
+
+<p>“I came out to smoke a cigar. You know my old bachelor habits,”
+Mr. Lane answered indifferently.</p>
+
+<p>“You must be half frozen. It is a very cold night. Come in
+and warm your fingers before we go,” said his friend.</p>
+
+<p>They went in, and though they rallied Mr. Lane on his long absence
+in the cold night air, he did not say one word on what he had
+seen and heard. The time had not come yet.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIII">
+ CHAPTER XXXIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The next night was the wedding-night. It was the first day of
+January. Dr. Anthony and Effie had chosen to begin their new life
+with the new year.</p>
+
+<p>No invitations had been issued for the marriage, but the church
+doors had been thrown open for the accommodation of those who
+cared to attend. When the bridal party entered the church, they
+were surprised to find that it was closely packed by the population
+of Chester. Curiosity had drawn thither all those among whom
+Effie had formerly moved, and who had scornfully dropped her
+because of the mysterious secret that had darkened her sister’s life.</p>
+
+<p>Effie had always been considered very beautiful and graceful.
+She had never looked more so than when she glided up the aisle on
+the arm of her handsome, noble-looking lover. She was so proud
+to have been chosen by him that she carried her fair head undauntedly,
+in quiet indifference to the whispers and glances on every side.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[Pg 82]</span></p>
+
+<p>They could not withhold the meed of praise that her beauty
+claimed. After all, she had done nothing herself to merit blame.
+It was only the shadow of Aline’s dishonor that was reflected upon
+her. Every one knew how wild and willful Aline had always been,
+and how her mother and sister had tried to curb her in her mischievous
+pranks and thoughtless way. Seeing the constancy and
+devotion of the handsome young physician, some were moved to
+repentance for the slights they had put upon the beautiful bride who
+looked queenly in her simply made robe of white satin and the
+long flowing veil fastened to her dark-brown hair with snowy orange
+blossoms. The bridegroom’s gift, a lovely pearl locket containing
+the fac-simile of his own handsome face, rested against her heart,
+suspended by a slender golden chain. It was an amulet of happiness
+to Effie. In spite of the world’s scorn, an ineffable joy had come
+to her through her sister’s adventure, since but for it she might never
+have become acquainted with the doctor.</p>
+
+<p>But curiously as the crowd gazed upon Effie, they regarded Aline
+with even more interest.</p>
+
+<p>She entered the church in advance of the bride, and leaning
+lightly on the arm of Mr. Lane, having been preceded by her parents,
+who entered first of all.</p>
+
+<p>Every eye turned on the tall, slight young figure in its graceful
+drapery of white silk and cashmere. The long, childish curls had
+been put up in womanly fashion on the small head in loose waves
+and puffs, and as if in mute protest or defiance of their censure,
+Aline had fastened a pure white lily in their silken darkness. She
+carried her head high as if in conscious rectitude, and her air was
+that of one whose thoughts were turned wholly inward upon herself
+with no jarring consciousness of the hostile eyes that followed
+her with scorn and suspicion in their cold and curious gaze.</p>
+
+<p>Pausing before the chancel rail, Aline and her companion silently
+separated and permitted the bridal pair to pass between them to
+where the white-robed rector waited, book in hand, to pronounce
+the solemn words of an irrevocable union.</p>
+
+<p>The loud triumphant peal of the wedding-march died away into
+silent echoes. The rustle and murmur of the perfumed throng grew
+still. All waited in thrilling silence while the beautiful words of
+the marriage-service fell slowly on the air.</p>
+
+<p>Aline had never been present at a marriage before. She was
+deeply impressed by the solemn, beautiful service. She listened
+with down-dropped eyes and a grave, sweet look on her fair face.</p>
+
+<p>“What solemn words, and yet how sweet!” she said to herself.
+“Doctor Anthony and my sister will have to love each other very
+dearly to live up to those heavenly words!”</p>
+
+<p>She had never given one serious thought to the subject of marriage
+before; but now, as she gazed at the happy faces of the two,
+and listened to the beautiful, thrilling vows that bound them, some
+idea of the bliss of a true marriage came into her mind.</p>
+
+<p>“It must be like a heaven upon earth,” she said to herself, and
+then quite suddenly she recalled some words her mother had said to
+her one day:</p>
+
+<p>“No one will ever wish to marry you, my poor Aline. No man
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[Pg 83]</span>would take you with such a stain upon your life as that hideous
+mystery you guard so jealously.”</p>
+
+<p>Was it true? Would no one ever love her as Dr. Anthony loved
+her sister Effie? Would nothing so beautiful as love ever come into
+her life? She sighed unconsciously, and with the sigh she lifted
+her eyes—she never could have told you why—lifted them, and at a
+little distance met a pair of eyes gazing straight into her own with
+a strange, magnetic fire—Oran Delaney’s!</p>
+
+<p>She did not know what had caused her to look up at that moment,
+and she knew just as little why she blushed when she met that intent
+gaze—a blush that burned her pure face like fire.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIV">
+ CHAPTER XXXIV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Lane felt rather proud than otherwise as he walked up the
+aisle of the church with Aline Rodney by his side. Her exquisite
+beauty filled him with admiration, and he had already decided in
+his mind that she was as pure and innocent as she was fair.</p>
+
+<p>He did not care in the least for the opinion of censorious Chester.
+If Aline had been a princess, he could not have shown her more deferential
+respect than that which he now accorded her. He had the
+greatest admiration for her, mingled with pity and sympathy. He
+said to himself that he would help her out of her trouble if he could,
+and he honestly believed, that the surest way to do that would be
+to find out the secret she held and make it public. He had been
+vexed with her before he saw her—vexed because she had so baffled
+investigation and curiosity. He had determined then, out of pure
+vexation, to track her down. Since they had met, his feeling had
+changed. He was none the less determined to ferret out her secret,
+but now he was actuated by pity and sympathy combined with a
+belief in her innocence. He decided that he would say nothing to
+Dr. Anthony or the Rodneys. He would pursue his investigations
+alone. They should hear and know nothing until success had
+crowned his efforts.</p>
+
+<p>He studied the fair face keenly whenever he had an opportunity
+of doing so. Its varying expression, the lights and shadows that
+shone in the dark-blue eyes, had an actual fascination for him. He
+watched her as closely as if he expected to find on her lovely, mobile
+face the key to the mystery that shadowed her life.</p>
+
+<p>Standing a little apart from her while the marriage ceremony progressed
+between her sister and Dr. Anthony, he kept his eyes fixed
+on her face and saw the new softness that came upon it as she listened
+to the beautiful words of the service. He saw the dark, curling
+lashes flutter upward a moment and remain fixed, he saw the
+blush stealing over her face, dyeing even the whiteness of her low
+brow in its radiant glow. He followed the direction of her eyes, and
+saw the apparent cause.</p>
+
+<p>At a little distance from the bridal party stood a tall distinguished
+looking man leaning lightly against the chancel rail. He was a man
+to be looked at twice, for his dress and hearing betokened both
+wealth and refinement. It was a handsome face, too, dark and
+proud and reserved, with a latent fire in the eyes that had a dark,
+southern splendor, all their own.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[Pg 84]</span></p>
+
+<p>It was this man at whom Aline Rodney was looking with startled
+pathetic blue eyes while the beautiful color rose in burning waves
+over her fair young face. Mr. Lane saw the dark eyes and the blue
+ones hold each other one moment with a glance he could in nowise
+fathom, and then, without a sign of recognition, the gentleman
+turned his head away. Aline’s dark lashes fell and the color slowly
+faded from her face.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane was puzzled.</p>
+
+<p>“Does she know the man? It is not likely that she would blush
+so at the glance of a stranger. And yet they gave no sign of recognition,”
+he said to himself.</p>
+
+<p>He watched Aline more closely than ever, but he made no discovery.
+She did not look at the handsome stranger again; neither
+did he look at her; and when the brief service was over he hurriedly
+left the church and disappeared in the moving throng.</p>
+
+<p>The Rodneys with Mr. Lane and the newly married pair went
+back to the cottage. They were to have tea together, simply and
+sociably, and then the doctor and his bride were going off on a little
+tour before they settled down to housekeeping in the pretty little village
+of Maywood.</p>
+
+<p>Aline was very silent and <i>distraite</i>. She was overwhelmed by the
+parting from her sister. Heavy tears hung on her thick, dark lashes
+as she looked at Effie and realized that their pleasant and loving
+home-life together was forever ended. Henceforth another home
+would claim her sweet sister as its priestess, and she would be the
+central sun around which the lesser planets of another household
+revolved.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Sitting by the fireside of the hearth,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Feeding its flame.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXV">
+ CHAPTER XXXV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Lane was anxious to find out if Aline was acquainted with
+the stranger who had made her blush in the church. He watched
+his chance, and when the family were discussing the crowd that had
+filled the church, he said, carelessly:</p>
+
+<p>“I saw one person who was so handsome and distinguished looking
+that my curiosity was awakened. One but seldom sees such a
+fine-looking man. He stood on the left of the chancel rail. Perhaps
+you noticed him, Mr. Rodney?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I did; and the more particularly because I was surprised to
+see him there,” Mr. Rodney answered. “It was our unsocial neighbor,
+Mr. Delaney.”</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Delaney!” The detective started and glanced furtively at
+Aline. He saw that she had turned her head away abruptly, but the
+side of her cheek that was visible was crimson, like a rose. She was
+holding her satin fan against her breast, and its plumed edge fluttered
+with the quick beat of her heart.</p>
+
+<p>“I have not seen Mr. Delaney at any public gathering or church
+for several years before,” continued Mr. Rodney. “He is one of
+the most inveterate recluses I ever heard of. His presence in the
+church must have been intended as a special mark of respect and
+compliment to Effie.”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[Pg 85]</span></p>
+
+<p>“But, papa, we have none of us the least acquaintance with him,”
+said the bride.</p>
+
+<p>“No matter. He is our next door neighbor. I have no doubt but
+he attended the wedding out of respect to us,” insisted Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“For my part, I cannot imagine how he ever found out about
+the marriage,” said Mrs. Rodney. “He never goes out, and no one
+is ever seen going in. It is quite too bad that Mr. Delaney does not
+marry, and give his grand old house a mistress. She would lead
+society in Chester—that is, if she would condescend so far, which is
+not likely, the Delaneys being proverbially proud.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane having adroitly turned the conversation into the channel
+he wished, listened eagerly, just throwing in a word here and there
+until he had elicited all that there was to tell, or, at least, all that
+was known of the taciturn master of Delaney House. To that part
+which related to the alleged ghosts that haunted Delaney House, he
+listened with a great deal of interest.</p>
+
+<p>“Since you have named it, I will relate my own experience,” he
+said. “Last night I supposed you would laugh at it. Now I see
+that you will not even be surprised.”</p>
+
+<p>“What is it?” they asked him in surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“It is only that I heard the ghost of Delaney House last night,”
+he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“You heard it!” they echoed, and Dr. Anthony asked, gravely:</p>
+
+<p>“When?”</p>
+
+<p>“It was last night when I went out on the pavement to smoke
+my cigar. I strolled down the street a little way, and was suddenly
+brought to a dead stop by the sound of a loud ringing shriek fearful
+enough to have proceeded from one of the denizens of Hades. I
+paused and looked up, for the sound had seemed to float in the air
+above me, and I found myself in front of Delaney House.”</p>
+
+<p>Every one was deeply interested—every one uttered some exclamation
+or another except Aline. She alone took no part in the conversation.
+She had not even looked around. She sat by the reading-lamp
+and was looking into a book, but Mr. Lane saw that she
+was turning its leaves quite at random and with strangely nervous
+hands.</p>
+
+<p>“Is her indifference real or feigned?” he asked himself. “The
+most of people would be interested in my story—why not Miss Rodney?
+Her sex are not usually deficient in curiosity.”</p>
+
+<p>“And you really heard the ghost, Mr. Lane?” cried Effie, with
+awe struck eyes. “Well, you have been more highly favored than
+we have! In all the years since we came to Chester we have never
+heard the reputed ghost.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is because you are so widely separated from the house by
+the beautiful grounds,” said Mr. Lane. “Now, I heard it twice,
+for when I looked up at the first sound it was repeated in a louder
+and even more blood-curdling voice than before, and a flash of light
+gleamed through the shutters for an instant, then faded into Cimmerian
+darkness and gloom again.”</p>
+
+<p>“Do you hear that, Aline?” cried little Max. “Oh, don’t you
+wish that you had heard it? Do you remember how we used to talk
+about the Delaney ghost before you went away?”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[Pg 86]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Yes, dear,” she answered in a constrained voice, without turning
+toward the little social group gathered around the fire.</p>
+
+<p>“I was puzzled and alarmed when I heard that sound last night.
+I thought perhaps Delaney had a crazy wife or sister. I had not
+heard about the ghost then,” said Mr. Lane.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Delaney is not married,” said Mrs. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“No? And are there no females resident in his house?” inquired
+the detective.</p>
+
+<p>“I have heard that there is a solitary housekeeper, but I have
+never seen her,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“It was, then, really a ghost that I heard,” said Mr. Lane. “I
+am surprised. I did not really believe in the existence of spirits in
+this practical nineteenth century.”</p>
+
+<p>No one made him any direct answer. It is true that a vein of
+superstition runs through most people even in this enlightened age.
+The Rodneys had heard so much about the Delaney ghost that they
+hardly questioned the veracity of the story. And yet they did not
+care about confessing it to Mr. Lane. It was just possible that he
+might turn the story into ridicule. He appeared to be very hard and
+practical, without any romantic weaknesses.</p>
+
+<p>So the conversation drifted into other channels, and Mr. Lane
+made no effort to prevent it, having learned all that there was to be
+told on the subject. He quietly stored away all that he had heard
+in his mind, and no one had any idea that he was specially interested
+in Delaney House and its strange master.</p>
+
+<p>In a little while the time for the parting came. Dr. Anthony and
+his bride were to have a little bridal tour South. They went away,
+followed by tears and regrets and a score of good wishes, symbolized
+by lavish shower of old slippers that Max threw after the departing
+bride.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVI">
+ CHAPTER XXXVI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“Aline, will you come down to the river and skate this morning?
+The ice is ten inches thick, and as smooth as glass,” said Max
+Rodney to his sister the morning after Effie’s marriage.</p>
+
+<p>She shook her head with a slight, wintery smile.</p>
+
+<p>“Do not tempt me, Max,” she said, “you have got me into too
+many scrapes in the past, and now I have promised mamma that I
+will never do so any more.”</p>
+
+<p>The handsome, rosy-cheeked boy, with the skates slung carelessly
+over his shoulder, regarded her with palpable disappointment.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Allie, do come,” he said. “Do you remember last winter
+what glorious fun we had on the river? And now it is smoother and
+better than it was then. I know you would like it, and I’m sure
+mamma would not care.”</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot go, Max,” Aline answered, sadly. “Please do not
+tease me, there’s a good boy.”</p>
+
+<p>The light-hearted boy went up to her and pulled away the white
+hands that half shielded the pale, pretty face. He was too young
+and thoughtless to know much of the sorrow that had come to
+Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, what has come over you?” he said. “It used to be that
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[Pg 87]</span>I would rather you came out with me for a lark than any fellow I
+know. But ever since you were lost and came back, you have been
+changed. Why is it?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is nothing, Max, only that mamma thinks I am getting too
+old to be your childish playmate any longer,” Aline answered with
+a forced smile.</p>
+
+<p>“Bosh! Is that all? Why, there’s lots and lots of grown people
+on the river this morning. You need not be a childish playmate
+this time. There are lots of older people to keep you company.
+Say, will you come?”</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot. I would not go among those people for anything,”
+she answered.</p>
+
+<p>“I don’t see why. You can skate better than any of them—you
+are just like a bird,” he said. “I say, sister, I shall ask mamma.
+Will you go if she says yes?”</p>
+
+<p>“Not even then!” she answered, half hesitatingly, for the proposal
+was not without its charms.</p>
+
+<p>Her old passion for out-of-door sports returned to her. She longed
+to be skimming the glittering ice with her light swift feet, and feeling
+the rush of the cold sweet breeze against the cheeks that had
+grown pale and thin in the months while she had been hiding herself
+sensitively within doors from the sneers and frowns of those
+who had traduced her so bitterly.</p>
+
+<p>“You will come if mamma will come too, won’t you?” persisted
+Max, unwilling to yield the point.</p>
+
+<p>“Mamma will not go,” replied Aline.</p>
+
+<p>The door opened, and Mrs. Rodney came suddenly into the room.
+She had a lugubrious look on her face and her eyelids were pink
+from weeping. She had been having a private crying spell over the
+loss of her elder daughter.</p>
+
+<p>She had caught Aline’s words, and now looked inquiringly into
+her pale face. But eager Max forestalled the question that trembled
+on her lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Mamma, I want you and Aline to come down to the river with
+me for the skating. Will you come?”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney looked at Aline’s pale cheeks and heavy eyes, and
+her first resolve to negative the proposal died on her lips. She saw
+the girl was fading and drooping in her enforced seclusion.</p>
+
+<p>“Should you like to go, my dear?” she asked.</p>
+
+<p>“With you, mamma,” Aline answered, wistfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Very well. We will go for a little while. Wrap yourself up
+warmly, dear, and Max shall get your skates ready.”</p>
+
+<p>Aline ran up to her room, full of pleasurable anticipation, for she
+was an expert skater, and always enjoyed being on the ice. A girlish
+impulse prompted her to make herself as pretty as possible. She let
+down her dark, curling hair loosely over her shoulders, and donned
+a dark-red cashmere trimmed with silvery fur, a warm, wadded
+jacket of red, and a jaunty fur cap having a little bird perched on
+one side. Then she sallied forth with Max and Mrs. Rodney, who
+was so warmly wrapped up in cloth and fur and thick veils that
+barely the tip of her aristocratic-looking nose was visible to the beholder.</p>
+
+<p>They had a bracing walk of half a mile in the cool, fresh air of
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[Pg 88]</span>the clear, wintery morning, and then the river burst upon their view
+like a sheet of silver, dotted about with merry youths and maidens
+who were sliding merrily about over the crystal expanse, without a
+thought of danger.</p>
+
+<p>Many of them were Aline’s old friends and companions with
+whom she had been a prime favorite until that mysterious trouble
+fell upon her. Her heart warmed to them as she saw the smiling,
+familiar faces and heard their merry voices. A longing came over
+her to be friends with them again, to touch their hands, to hear their
+voices talking to her in the old friendly, familiar way. Everything
+was so gay, so merry, so unceremonious, she half hoped they would
+relent and welcome her to her old place among them.</p>
+
+<p>Poor Aline! The light came into her violet eyes, the rich color
+flushed her cheeks at the thought. She looked wistfully at the
+groups that dotted the shore and the river as she came up. Her
+heart beat with anxiety and expectation. Would any one speak to
+her? Would any one of all these, her old friends, give her one
+friendly clasp of the hand?</p>
+
+<p>Vain thought, vain hope! As they saw her coming among them
+with her eager, expectant face and her winning beauty, every one
+turned aside with cold, averted looks, and scarcely restrained sneers.
+In a moment she stood solitary, with her mother and Max, in a spot
+where only a moment ago more than a score of people had been.
+They had tacitly deserted and ignored her. That strange sense of
+loneliness in crowds so often felt by the sensitive heart came over
+her now. Something like a strangling gasp came from her lips,
+and then she shut them tightly together, and held her small head
+high, with a proud, stag-like movement that was almost defiance. In
+her heart she was saying, bitterly: “They may scorn me as they
+will, but they shall not crush me! I have done no wrong, and in
+time I shall live down their cruel slanders!”</p>
+
+<p>“Do not mind them, Aline,” her mother whispered tenderly; but
+Aline heard the quiver in her mother’s voice, and it sent a fresh
+pang to her own heart.</p>
+
+<p>“Never mind, Max,” she said to the boy, who was kneeling down
+to fasten her skates. “Do not put them on, please. I shall not
+skate. I had rather go home.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, no, not yet—” he began; but just at that moment a shabbily
+dressed old woman pushed him aside and came up in front of Aline.
+She had a basket of cheap laces on her arm, which she paraded
+ostentatiously.</p>
+
+<p>“Will the leddies buy some of my pretty things—collerettes,
+<i>jabots</i>, cuffs, scarfs—de finest things in lace,” whimpered she.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney shook her head with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>“We want nothing at all, my good woman,” said she.</p>
+
+<p>“Let me tell the young lady’s fortune, then. I am a fortune-teller,
+and I tell de truest fortunes you ever heard. I have told a
+many for the young gents and leddies this morning. They say
+every word is true. This is the sweetest face I have seen yet. Let
+me tell her what is past and what will be,” cried the old crone,
+loquaciously.</p>
+
+<p>“No, no, go away! We do not wish to hear anything!” said Mrs.
+Rodney, impatiently.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[Pg 89]</span></p>
+
+<p>But Aline turned her blue eyes wistfully upon her mother’s face.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, mamma, I should like it so much,” she said, pleadingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Like <i>what</i>, my dear?” inquired Mrs. Rodney, uncomprehendingly.</p>
+
+<p>“To have this good woman read my past and future,” Aline answered,
+with a blush.</p>
+
+<p>“But, my dear, she cannot possibly know anything of the kind.
+Fortune-tellers are all frauds. They only guess at things,” said Mrs.
+Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“I should like to hear what she has to say,” insisted Aline, willfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, very well, my dear, just as you please, but you will only
+hear a pack of stories,” Mrs. Rodney replied; but she crossed the
+old fortune-teller’s coarse palm with the traditional silver piece, and
+Aline drew the warm glove from her delicate hand expectantly.</p>
+
+<p>The old lace-vender set her basket down on the ground and took
+the little hand into her own large and brown one.</p>
+
+<p>“What is this I see?” she said, squinting her gray eyes at the
+rosy palm. “The line of life is crossed with sorrows. You have
+had a great trouble in your life. You are very unhappy, and you
+are doomed to be even more unhappy—”</p>
+
+<p>“Do not tell her such jargon,” broke in Mrs. Rodney, impatiently.</p>
+
+<p>“I but read what I see, madam,” said the seer. “And I see
+nothing but blight and sorrow. I cannot understand it, for I see no
+love in her past—none of that love that makes or mars a woman’s
+life. The shadows come from other things, from other influences.
+And yet—” she paused and looked searchingly into Aline’s marble-white
+face.</p>
+
+<p>“And yet—” repeated the girl in a tone of eager inquiry.</p>
+
+<p>The fortune-teller went on without removing her keen gaze from
+Aline’s wistful face:</p>
+
+<p>“And yet, although you have never loved, there is a man mixed
+up in your past and future strangely. He is dark and grand and
+handsome, but he has cast a shadow on your life, a thick, dark
+shadow so dense you cannot see beyond it. You blush, yet the
+man is nothing to you. I cannot understand it.”</p>
+
+<p>It was true that Aline was blushing hotly, and she was gazing in
+wonder at the strange old woman.</p>
+
+<p>“Go on,” she said, in a low, almost pleading voice “Tell me—will
+those dark clouds ever be lifted from my life?”</p>
+
+<p>“It is hard to tell. I said I could read your future, but the
+clouds that overhang it are too dark and heavy. I cannot pierce
+their gloom. Perhaps the sun may shine for you again, perhaps,
+never! Let me see!”</p>
+
+<p>She held the little palm close up before her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, there is a <i>secret</i>! You are young to hold so much hidden
+in your heart. I may tell you this much. You will never be happy
+until that secret is openly revealed! It will cost you too much to
+keep it hid! If there are any who love you they will never rest, they
+will never cease striving to fathom the secret that has shadowed
+your life so darkly.”</p>
+
+<p>She dropped the little hand abruptly, caught up her basket, and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[Pg 90]</span>strode quickly away, leaving Aline and her mother stupefied with
+surprise.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVII">
+ CHAPTER XXXVII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“What an old hag! Her hands were coarse like a man’s and
+her voice too!” cried vivacious Max. “It was no kind of a fortune,
+either. She did not say anything about your marrying. But
+I hope you never will; it was bad enough to lose Effie. I hope no
+one will ever persuade you away, Allie. No one is good enough for
+you!”</p>
+
+<p>“I am flattered by your extravagant opinion of my perfections.
+I think you need give yourself no uneasiness as to losing me,”
+Aline replied, making him a demure little courtesy.</p>
+
+<p>He laughed, and nodded.</p>
+
+<p>“I am glad of that. But come now, let me fasten your skates.
+You must come on the ice with me. You promised, you know, and
+I shall not let you go back on your word.”</p>
+
+<p>“I would rather go home, Max,” Aline answered.</p>
+
+<p>“No, dear, you need not be put down so easily. You may go on
+the ice with your brother a little while, then we will go home,”
+said Mrs. Rodney. Her pride and resentment had both been roused
+by the cavalier treatment Aline had received. She knew that her
+daughter was the most beautiful girl on the spot. No one there
+could at all compare with her. She was an accomplished skater too.
+Something like defiance rose in her mind. She would not let them
+drive Aline away with their scorn. She had as much right here as
+her severe judges. “Go on the ice with your brother a little while,”
+she repeated; “then we will go home.”</p>
+
+<p>She stood silently on the shore watching them as hand in hand
+they skimmed blithely across the icy surface of the beautiful river.
+Her thoughts were busy while her eyes followed the form of her
+beautiful girl in the bright costume that accorded so well with the
+gay scene.</p>
+
+<p>The strange words of the old lace-vender filled her with wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“How did she chance upon the truth so cleverly?” she asked
+herself. “What did she know of Aline’s troubles and her fatal secret?
+What did she mean by the dark man who influenced Aline’s
+life? Was it true—or why did Aline blush at her words? I have a
+mind to follow the woman and find out what she knows.”</p>
+
+<p>She looked around her, but the old woman had already disappeared
+from sight.</p>
+
+<p>“As well, perhaps,” Mrs. Rodney, muttered to herself: “she
+could tell me nothing. I dare say it was all guess-work. It is so
+easy to prate of dark clouds and secrets and dark men—it is the
+stock in trade of fortune-tellers.”</p>
+
+<p>But she was very uneasy in her mind. There was a great pain in
+her heart as she watched Aline.</p>
+
+<p>The girl had forgotten her trouble for a little while in the exhilarating
+excitement and exercise. Her eyes sparkled, her cheeks
+glowed with pleasure. She and Max were the best skaters on the
+river, and the girl thoroughly enjoyed her triumph. She looked like
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[Pg 91]</span>some bright winged bird in her scarlet costume, and many eyes followed
+her course in unwilling admiration.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I will tell you something,” said Max, as they skated sociably
+along, side by side. “I believe that old woman was a man
+dressed in woman’s clothes!”</p>
+
+<p>Aline’s heart gave a quick throb.</p>
+
+<p>“Why do you think so, Max?” she said.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, because she had boots on, and her feet were large, and
+her hands, too, and her voice was coarse and squeaky, as if she
+tried to alter it to a woman’s. Didn’t you notice it yourself, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>“She was rather masculine-looking, certainly; but, then, many
+women are so. I have no doubt she was what she appeared to be,”
+said Aline, after giving the matter a moment’s grave consideration.</p>
+
+<p>Max was silenced but not convinced, and presently he looked
+round at her again.</p>
+
+<p>“I will tell you something else,” he said. “There is a man watching
+you. Perhaps it is the dark man the fortune-teller talked about.”</p>
+
+<p>“Where?” asked Aline, with a start.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you see that great tree down the bank at some distance
+from the crowd? There is a man round one side of it. He is looking
+at you. He is tall and dark, and has on a great fur overcoat. I
+believe—that is, he looks like him—that it is Mr. De—Ah! ah!
+help! help!”</p>
+
+<p>The revelation of what Max believed was never finished, for, all
+unknowingly, and in her interest in his words, Aline had gone upon
+a dangerous place, where the ice was cracked and thin. A little in
+advance of her brother, although clinging to his hand, she felt the
+treacherous ice giving way beneath her, and, like a flash, tore her
+hand from his and threw it far from her. All in an instant there was
+a loud crash, the treacherous element gave way, and Aline sunk
+down into the cold waves. Max was left alone upon the ragged edge,
+screaming aloud for help in the frenzy of his despair.</p>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<p>All in a moment there arose a great hubbub of excitement. All
+eyes turned upon the spot where Aline had broken through the thin
+crust of ice and gone down into the cold, dark waves. With the
+thoughtlessness born of excitement, the crowd made a rush for the
+spot. Some slipped and fell, and were heedlessly trampled, and deserted
+in the terrible rush. A panic was imminent. It seemed as if
+all were bent upon satiating a wild curiosity, and the solid ice, beginning
+to tremble beneath the burden upon it, might have broken
+through, and precipitated the crowd, pell-mell, into the same dark
+waves that had ingulfed Aline; but, at that moment, a loud, stern,
+authoritative voice rang out clearly and sharply:</p>
+
+<p>“Stand back, all of you! Do you not see that you are liable to
+cause her death as well as your own? Go back before the ice breaks
+through with your weight!”</p>
+
+<p>The stern voice seemed to put reason into their bewildered minds.
+There was a moment of flurry and indecision, and then the excited
+crowd began to veer toward the shore. No one was left in the vicinity
+of the dangerous ice except little Max, screaming piteously on the
+brink of the abyss into which his sister had disappeared.</p>
+
+<p>But, an instant more, and the form of a tall, handsome man was
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[Pg 92]</span>seen crossing the ice, carefully yet fearlessly. As he neared the thin
+ice, he threw himself carefully down upon it, and crept slowly
+along to the edge of the precipice. He had thrown off his coat, and
+was in his shirt sleeves, so that every one knew what was in his
+mind, and no one was surprised to see him drop cautiously over the
+ragged edge of the ice, and so down into the deep, running water.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVIII">
+ CHAPTER XXXVIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It was an act of heroic daring that appealed to all, even to hearts
+less brave. A cry rose up from the shore, a shout of admiration for
+the hero’s bravery, a cheer to give him courage in his daring deed.</p>
+
+<p>Some one drew little Max away from his perilous position, and
+carried him screaming to the shore, where Mrs. Rodney had fallen
+down fainting with the shock of Aline’s fall. Some men went for
+a rope, knowing instinctively that it would be needed if Aline Rodney
+and the adventurous hero were ever rescued from the river.</p>
+
+<p>When they had found one, fortunately near at hand, they returned,
+and went over the ice cautiously, by lying down flat upon it
+and creeping slowly along. Then they peered over the icy edge of
+the opening into the dark, swirling river.</p>
+
+<p>Joy! joy! The icy current had not swept the hero away. He was
+there, with his head above the waves, and supporting on his arm
+the drenched form of a girl whose dark head drooped heavily, and
+whose chill, white face and closed eyelids showed that death or
+deadly unconsciousness had stolen upon her.</p>
+
+<p>He looked up and saw them peering down at him, and shouted,
+hoarsely:</p>
+
+<p>“A rope, quick, with a slip knot! I cannot sustain her much
+longer. I am freezing to death!”</p>
+
+<p>They knotted the rope hurriedly and threw it down. In a moment
+he threw the rope over the girl’s limp body, tightened it, and they
+drew her up safely. In the same manner they rescued him, and
+again the loud shouts of joy rose up from the shore.</p>
+
+<p>They carried the girl’s limp, wet body to the shore, and her preserver
+followed after. It was the tall man Max had seen behind the
+tree—it was Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>People looked at him in wonder. It was so seldom that he appeared
+in public that it always caused surprise to see him. His
+sudden appearance in this romantic <i>rôle</i> was a nine days’ wonder.</p>
+
+<p>But he did not stay to hear their wondering congratulations. Mrs.
+Rodney had recovered from her faint, and he hurriedly placed her
+with the frightened Max and the still unconscious girl in a passing
+conveyance, then wrapped himself in his furred overcoat and
+hastened home.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin was astonished and frightened when her master
+walked in so wet and cold. She exclaimed loudly upon his plight.</p>
+
+<p>“It is nothing. I have only had a fall into the river,” he replied,
+carelessly.</p>
+
+<p>“But I thought that the river was all frozen over?” she said,
+perplexed.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, but I broke through the ice,” said Mr. Delaney.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[Pg 93]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Oh, dear, dear, then you have got your death of cold!” cried
+Mrs. Griffin in alarm.</p>
+
+<p>“Pray do not make me out a girl or a baby,” he said, impatiently.
+“When I get some warm, dry clothes, I shall do very well.”</p>
+
+<p>She busied herself in laying them out for him, and when she had
+done this she made some warm drinks for him.</p>
+
+<p>“To drive the cold out of your system,” she said, fussily, but
+kindly.</p>
+
+<p>He drank something just to please her, and then he hurried away
+from her, disregarding her pathetic entreaty that he would go to
+bed and wrap up warmly in blankets, that his wetting and freezing
+might not do him any harm.</p>
+
+<p>“As if there were danger, when my heart and brain are on fire,”
+he said to himself.</p>
+
+<p>He went up to a quiet little chamber in the tower, and peered, with
+burning eyes, down at a little white-curtained window of his neighbor’s
+house. He could dimly see figures moving about the little
+room as if they were busy over something.</p>
+
+<p>“Has she revived?” he asked himself, anxiously. “Poor child!
+she went under the black water twice before I reached her. It was
+only the strength of my despair that enabled me to bring her up to
+the surface again. Oh, how fearful it was! the cold, black water,
+the jagged ice, the terrible danger! And yet I would risk life and
+limb again a hundred times to save her life!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIX">
+ CHAPTER XXXIX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“Ah, dearie me, but it’s a lonesome life, after all,” sighed Mrs.
+Griffin.</p>
+
+<p>The good soul was sitting by the comfortable stove in the commodious
+kitchen of Delaney House, intent upon the concoction of
+some savory broth that was simmering on the stove. It was on the
+evening of the day that Mr. Delaney had saved Aline Rodney from
+drowning.</p>
+
+<p>The bright, sunny morning had ended in a dreary, overcast evening,
+with hints of snow in the air. The warm, spacious kitchen
+was very comfortable, but it was intensely quiet and still, even to
+dreariness. The audible ticking of the clock, and the soft purr of
+the little gray kitten at Mrs. Griffin’s feet, seemed to make the stillness
+and quiet even more marked and oppressive to her peculiar
+mood.</p>
+
+<p>“It’s a lonesome life,” she repeated. “It is hard even for me,
+and I do not see how Mr. Delaney bears it at all, used as he has been
+to society and amusement. Sometimes I fairly long for the sight
+of a friendly face and the sound of a kind voice besides my master’s.
+I never felt the dreariness of my life as much as I have done since
+Miss Rodney came and went away. Spoiled child as she was, she
+brought a bit of life into the house!”</p>
+
+<p>She sighed and mechanically lifted the lid of the stew-pan and
+stirred the savory broth with a long-handled spoon.</p>
+
+<p>“Tap! Tap! Tap!”</p>
+
+<p>That ghostly sound broke so suddenly upon the silence of the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[Pg 94]</span>room, that Mrs. Griffin gave a violent start and dropped her long
+spoon upon the floor with a hideous clatter, disturbing kitty’s peaceful
+slumbers by a thump upon her little pink nose, accompanied by
+a few drops of hot broth that sent her pattering into the corner with
+a spiteful meow. The good woman mechanically reached for the
+spoon and looked toward the door.</p>
+
+<p>“Tap! Tap!” came the low knocking again, with as ghostly a
+sound as ever Poe’s fabled raven produced.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin stared at the closed door with an air of stupid amazement,
+and made no move to open it.</p>
+
+<p>“Whoever can it be?” she asked aloud, and a squeaky, peculiar
+voice from outside, answered immediately:</p>
+
+<p>“Open the door, my good woman, and see!”</p>
+
+<p>“What impudence! There, then, I won’t do it!” replied Mrs.
+Griffin, who, although dying of curiosity to see her visitor, knew
+better than to admit any one within the walls of Delaney House.</p>
+
+<p>“You’re the first woman, then, that I ever knew to turn a poor
+peddler from the door, and it’ll be to your sorrow as you did so,”
+replied a bantering voice outside. “I have a basketful of notions,
+and I’m just from New York with the biggest bargains of the
+season. Come, don’t be churlish, mistress. Open the door, and
+let me come in and warm my frozen fingers, even if you won’t buy
+one of my nice lace collars.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin’s eyes had brightened at the mention of the peddler.
+The majority of women have an unexplainable propensity for
+buying from peddlers, and Mrs. Griffin was no exception to the
+rule. Besides, she was dying of loneliness and <i>ennui</i>. She intensely
+desired to speak to some one, and to have better companionship,
+if only for an hour, than the purring gray kitten.</p>
+
+<p>She hesitated. And we have always heard—have we not, reader?—that
+the woman who hesitates is lost. She remembered that her
+stock of pins and needles and tapes and buttons needed replenishing.
+Why not embrace this excellent opportunity for the purpose?
+She might easily do so, and Mr. Delaney be none the wiser, and no
+harm done. She would take care that the harmless peddler did not
+penetrate beyond the kitchen.</p>
+
+<p>The cheery, seductive voice of the person outside sounded pleasantly
+in her hearing. She felt that she would be all the better for a
+little human contact with that world from which she was so closely
+secluded.</p>
+
+<p>She softly turned the key and opened the door, meaning to have
+some little colloquy with the peddler before she admitted her; but
+that worthy frustrated her intention by immediately stepping across
+the threshold, with the proverbial impudence of the class.</p>
+
+<p>“So you thought better of your first intentions, did you?” she
+said, genially, to the astonished mistress of the kitchen. “Second
+thoughts are best, aren’t they? Well, you were wise to let me in.
+I shall sell you the biggest bargain of the season.”</p>
+
+<p>And then she laughed, and set her basket down upon the floor,
+and warmed her brown fingers by the stove.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin was dumfounded by the ease, not to say impudence,
+of the female peddler, who already had taken a seat and was gazing
+about the large apartment with careless curiosity.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[Pg 95]</span></p>
+
+<p>“You must please not to laugh so loud,” she said. “If my
+master hears you he will come down and turn you out. I should
+not have let you in anyhow, only that I needed some things in your
+line. Strangers are not allowed in here. You shouldn’t have entered
+the grounds.”</p>
+
+<p>“I did not know there were any orders against it. You see, I’m
+a stranger about here, and seeing such a fine large house I naturally
+thought to myself, ‘Here’s the place to sell my nice goods to the
+ladies.’ But if there’s any offense, ma’am, I’ll humbly take my
+leave,” said this artful old woman, beginning to replace the tempting
+things she had drawn from her heavy basket.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, well, let me have my buttons and things first,” said Mrs.
+Griffin, who had not expected to be so soon taken at her word.
+“You may show me your things, only be quiet about it. I shouldn’t
+care to have my master disturbed.”</p>
+
+<p>“And your mistress, hey? Wouldn’t she like to buy some of my
+pretty laces?”</p>
+
+<p>“There isn’t any mistress. There’s only my master and me. I’m
+cook and housekeeper both,” Mrs. Griffin replied, as she poised a
+black lace cap on her fingers, and mentally wondered if it wouldn’t
+be becoming to her.</p>
+
+<p>They had the usual haggling, the old woman good-humoredly
+putting down her goods to Mrs. Griffin’s own prices, remarking as
+each new purchase was laid on the pile at the housekeeper’s elbow:
+“I told you I would sell you the biggest bargain of the season.
+They don’t call me Cheap Jane for nothing!”</p>
+
+<p>“Is that your name? How funny!” said the housekeeper, laughing.</p>
+
+<p>“That’s what they call me,” said the female peddler. “Mrs.
+Broadcloth is my real name, though.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin had to laugh again. She thought that the name of
+Broadcloth was even more amusing than that of Cheap Jane. There
+was a dry humor about the peddler that she rather enjoyed after her
+forced seclusion from companionship with her kind.</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps you’d like a cup of hot tea before you start out again,
+Mrs. Broadcloth,” said she, with reckless hospitality.</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you kindly,” was the reply, and the old woman drew
+out a short, black pipe from, some recess under her coarse cloak.
+“While you draw the tea, I suppose you will let me smoke my pipe
+by your fire,” she said.</p>
+
+<p>“Certainly,” assented Mrs. Griffin, and then her heart suddenly
+misgave her.</p>
+
+<p>It occurred to her that, under the peculiar circumstances of the
+case, she was making almost too lavish a show of hospitality.</p>
+
+<p>“Only suppose that Mr. Delaney should happen in! It isn’t likely
+he will, but then I’ve heard say that the most unlikely things are
+always happening,” she thought, apprehensively to herself.</p>
+
+<p>“I will step up to his room and see if he wants anything,” was
+her next thought, with a view to forestalling his possible intrusion
+on the prohibited guest.</p>
+
+<p>Fortune favored her artful design. At that moment a bell rung
+from the upper room that Mr. Delaney occupied as a bed-chamber.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[Pg 96]</span></p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin turned to Cheap Jane, who was contentedly puffing
+away at her stubby pipe.</p>
+
+<p>“There is my master’s bell now,” she said. “Will you just set
+here all quiet while I step up and see what he wants?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, go. Don’t mind me,” replied Mrs. Broadcloth, affably.</p>
+
+<p>The housekeeper opened the door into the hall, closed it carefully
+behind her, and went up to Mr. Delaney’s room.</p>
+
+<p>To her surprise, although it was barely six o’clock, he had retired
+to bed. There was a feverish flush on his face, and his dark eyes
+gleamed restlessly.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Delaney, you are ill,” she exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Hardly that,” he replied, with a forced smile; “but I am certainly
+somewhat the worse for the wetting I received this morning.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, sir, you should see a physician!” she exclaimed, alarmed at
+his feverish looks.</p>
+
+<p>“No; the last one did me harm enough by his long tongue,” Mr.
+Delaney answered, angrily. “I will have nothing of the kind. I
+need no one—I shall be all right in the morning.”</p>
+
+<p>She saw that persistence would only irritate him, and dropped the
+subject.</p>
+
+<p>“Can I do nothing for you?” she inquired, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>“No; I have myself taken some drops that will soon cool my
+fever. I shall not take any supper; but, after a while, you may bring
+me a cup of tea—nothing else.”</p>
+
+<p>She beat a hasty retreat, sorry for his sickness, but reflecting that
+it stood her in good stead at this particular time, when her loneliness
+had led her into such imprudence as admitting a human being
+under the tabooed portals of Delaney House.</p>
+
+<p>“I will go and make the tea, and get her away as soon as I can,”
+she thought, hurrying down the wide stairway, along the hall, and
+so into the kitchen again, where she had left Cheap Jane contentedly,
+puffing at her pipe.</p>
+
+<p>“Well, now, Mistress Broadcloth, I will put the tea to draw,” she
+began, then stopped and stared, and rubbed her hand across her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>The great kitchen was empty, save for the gray kitten under the
+stove, purring away in lazy contentment. The old woman and the
+big basket were vanished from the scene as if they had never been.
+The door by which she had entered a little while ago, stood wide
+open, letting in the cold and the gathering darkness.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin ran down the steps and into the grounds in search of
+the missing peddler; but the darkness and a haze of snow were beginning
+to fall together, and they soon drove her into the house
+again.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, well-a-day! the strange old creature has taken herself off
+without her tea, and just as well, perhaps, for I was on needles and
+pins for fear of being caught in her company,” commented the housekeeper.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XL">
+ CHAPTER XL.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline Rodney’s feelings on plunging through the broken ice into
+the cold, black waves of the river may be better imagined than described.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[Pg 97]</span></p>
+
+<p>A shiver of mortal cold and terror rushed over her as the icy current
+came in contact with her warm, tender young body. She went
+down, down, down, with a swift rush and a terrible sensation as of
+suffocation, into the infinite depths of death, it seemed to her, and
+then arose to the surface and felt the cold, sweet air in her face
+again with a sensation of exquisite relief.</p>
+
+<p>Aline had some little knowledge of swimming. She tried to hold
+herself up in the water until relief should come. And a great horror
+came over her at the thought of being whirled away under the ice
+and beyond all hope of rescue. How terrible it would be to perish
+miserably under that sheet of solid crystal, where but a little while
+ago she had sported gayly and fearlessly, but which now rose between
+her and the world like a glittering wall of destruction.</p>
+
+<p>She made an effort to keep from drifting away from the wide,
+ragged opening in the ice made by the falling through of her body.
+She knew that if once swept beneath that terrible crust her death
+would be certain. The sounds from above came to her faintly, deadened
+by the ringing in her ears, and by the wild shrieks of her brother
+nearer at hand. She was conscious of a vague anxiety over her
+mother, faint wonder if any of those people who hated her would
+try to save her life, and then a numbness induced by the fearful cold
+overcame her wholly, her arms ceased to beat the waves in frenzied
+endeavor, and she felt herself sinking again to rise no more.</p>
+
+<p>It was at that awful moment that Oran Delaney sprung boldly into
+the terrible death-trap, fearless of danger, and only intent on saving
+that frail, weak girl from imminent danger.</p>
+
+<p>When he first sprung into the river the little dark head was going
+down beneath the waves. He was compelled to dive twice before
+he succeeded in retaining a hold upon her. When, after a desperate
+struggle, he succeeded in holding her above the water, he was almost
+exhausted himself. He feared that he would succumb to the
+dreadful cold himself before assistance could arrive.</p>
+
+<p>The forethought of the man who had so fortunately brought
+ropes stood him in good stead now. A little longer in the cold waves
+must have exhausted his remaining strength.</p>
+
+<p>He was frightened when they were drawn out of the water, and he
+saw Aline’s face clearly. It was pinched and blue, and the parted
+lips and closed eyelids looked like death. Had he been too late? he
+asked himself, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>He saw the unconscious form placed in the vehicle, and driven
+away toward home with a silent, speechless trouble in his heart.
+His thoughts followed her, in fancy, to that little white chamber
+where her parents and the old family doctor hung anxiously over
+her, trying to infuse life into the chill and rigid form, that seemed
+as if it would never breathe the warm breath of life again.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, that I had never taken her to that fatal river! She would
+not have gone if I had not urged it!” cried poor Mrs. Rodney,
+wringing her white hands in despair.</p>
+
+<p>She remembered the old fortune teller’s strange words: “The
+clouds that overhang your future are so dark and heavy I cannot
+pierce their gloom. Perhaps the sun may shine for you again, perhaps
+never!”</p>
+
+<p>“It was a true prognostication! That old crone did, indeed, read
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[Pg 98]</span>the cards of fate truly! It was the shadow of death that hung over
+my poor darling!” cried the anguished mother in mingled grief and
+wonder.</p>
+
+<p>But she was wrong. The tangled thread of poor Aline’s life was
+not broken yet. Her little feet were not done wandering yet through
+the weary mazes of the world.</p>
+
+<p>Insensibly a little warmth began to creep about the poor chilled
+body, under the stress of their patient endeavors, a faint pulse fluttered
+about her heart, and at length the black fringe of the lashes
+trembled feebly against her cheeks. The old physician, standing
+anxiously over her, with his hand upon the blue-veined wrist, looked
+up, and said, kindly, to the distracted mother:</p>
+
+<p>“Thank God, she revives! She will live!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLI">
+ CHAPTER XLI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“Aline, you have not asked me who saved your life, yet?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, mamma.”</p>
+
+<p>It was the morning after Aline’s almost fatal accident, and she was
+sitting up in an easy-chair before the fire, in a pretty, bright blue
+wrapper. She was very pale and quiet. She had been listening to
+her mother, who had been telling her the details of her rescue, and
+who now remarked in wonder:</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, you have not asked me who saved your life, yet.”</p>
+
+<p>“No, mamma,” the girl answered, in a tone of visible embarrassment,
+while a faint color rose to her cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>“I should think you would be curious over it,” said Mrs. Rodney,
+in a tone of slight disappointment.</p>
+
+<p>“I have not thought about it,” the young girl replied, evasively.</p>
+
+<p>“Then you will be astonished when you learn who the person
+was—the very last one you or any one else would have thought
+of,” declared Mrs. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“You make me feel quite curious, mamma,” said Aline, with a
+faint smile, and a tone so listless it belied her assertion of interest.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not suppose, if you guessed all day, that you would come
+at all near the truth,” pursued Mrs. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“I suppose not,” answered Aline, laughingly.</p>
+
+<p>She leaned back wearily, and watched the leaping flames of the
+fire with a smothered sigh. Oh, if only her mother would but drop
+the subject.</p>
+
+<p>But Mrs. Rodney had no intention of doing so.</p>
+
+<p>“Indeed you would not,” she went on. “You would sooner
+think of any one else that you ever knew, though indeed you never
+knew this gentleman!”</p>
+
+<p>“Then it was a stranger,” said Aline, seeing that an answer of
+some sort was expected, and feeling a guilty consciousness of deceit,
+for she had an intuitive knowledge that Mr. Delaney had saved her
+life. She had caught a glimpse of his darkly handsome face behind
+the tree Max had pointed out to her just as she crashed through the
+thin ice into the river.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, it was a stranger, although you have seen him a thousand
+times, and although you know his name. Prepare to be surprised,
+my dear. Only think, it was our unsociable neighbor, Mr. Delaney!”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[Pg 99]</span></p>
+
+<p>Aline knew that she was expected to appear greatly surprised,
+but to have saved her life she could not have enacted such a fraud.
+She was too frank and honest. She could only falter out, embarrassedly:</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Delaney!”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes! I knew you would be surprised. Every one was,” said
+Mrs. Rodney. “I was surprised, and, to tell the truth, Aline, I
+was proud, too. Just to think, after the mean way the Chester
+people had treated us, that the richest and grandest man in the
+place should risk his life to save yours! Oh, how grateful I feel
+to him for his kindness!”</p>
+
+<p>“Grateful!” murmured Aline, in an indescribable tone.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, indeed!” cried Mrs. Rodney. “Why, my dear, you might
+have perished for any help those other men would have given you—that
+is, they did bring a rope, but that would not have been any
+good if Mr. Delaney had not gone into the water and brought you
+up from the bottom.”</p>
+
+<p>“It might have been better had he left me there,” the girl murmured,
+half to herself.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney shuddered at the bare thought.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, how glad I am that he did not,” she exclaimed. “I feel
+like going down on my knees to thank him for his bravery!”</p>
+
+<p>“Thank <i>him</i>! Thank Oran Delaney? Oh, mamma!” cried
+Aline, with irrepressible agitation.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, yes, my dear; of course we should thank him,” cried Mrs.
+Rodney, “and yet, strange as it seems, your papa and I are at a loss
+to know how to do so. You see, he is so strange. Although he
+saved your life, he has never called or sent to inquire how you are.
+And yet, one would suppose he would take that much interest in
+you, seeing that he risked his life for you.”</p>
+
+<p>“I dare say he would prefer not being thanked,” murmured
+Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you think so? And yet, it would look very ungracious in
+us to neglect doing so. It would appear as if we thought the saving
+of our daughter’s life not even worthy a word of thanks. I should
+not like to have him think that we undervalued either your life
+or his services,” said Mrs. Rodney, with natural pride.</p>
+
+<p>“What can it matter what he thinks? I should not say one word
+to him,” cried Aline, with sudden peevishness.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney gazed at her in surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I never did understand your strange nature,” she said,
+rather coldly. “Do you mean for me to think that you are not
+grateful to Mr. Delaney for his inestimable service in saving you
+from such a horrible death?”</p>
+
+<p>Aline flushed under the rebuking glance her mother bent upon
+her.</p>
+
+<p>“Not exactly that, mamma,” she said. “But Mr. Delaney is
+so unsocial and retiring, I thought he might not care to be intruded
+upon, even to receive our thanks for what he has done. Of course
+I am grateful. I was dreadfully frightened down there in the water.
+I did not want to die, although I had as well be dead as living,
+since my life is ruined and blighted. But I dare say Mr. Delaney
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[Pg 100]</span>has almost forgotten the occurrence by now, and I do not think we
+have any right to intrude upon his privacy even to air our gratitude.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney did not take this view of the case at all.</p>
+
+<p>“I should not think it an intrusion if any one came to thank me
+for saving life,” she said. “In any case, I shall thank him; but,
+since he is so reticent and unsocial, perhaps the best way would be
+to send him a letter—don’t you think so?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I think so,” answered Aline, closing her eyes with a weary
+sigh.</p>
+
+<p>She thought of the letter she had thrown into the garden to him,
+begging him to save her good name by allowing her to break the
+vow of silence he had imposed upon her. He had refused her
+prayer; he had allowed her hopes to be ruthlessly blasted, without
+lifting a finger to prevent it; and yet he had risked his life to save
+hers. She could not understand it.</p>
+
+<p>“Why was he there? People say he never goes out; yet he was
+at the church, and he was at the river. Was he watching me?” she
+asked herself, and the thought only made her wonder the more.
+What did his interest mean? “Twice I have owed my life to him,”
+she thought. “And yet he has suffered me to lose that which was
+dearer than life—my good name! I do not know what to think of
+him—while I hate him for the one thing, I must needs be grateful
+to him for the other.”</p>
+
+<p>She closed her eyes and lay musing on those perplexing questions.
+Her thoughts went back to the days she had spent at Delaney House,
+and to the horrible mysterious Thing that had so terribly assaulted
+and wounded her. She wondered, as she had often done before,
+what that creature was to Oran Delaney. Why did he shut himself
+up alone in that great gloomy house with such a terrible companion
+for his solitude? She shuddered at the thought of it—the ghost of
+Delaney House as he had called it. The remembrance of those
+awful, maniacal shrieks rung in her hearing often, and often, chilling
+the bounding life-blood in her young veins.</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps it will kill Mr. Delaney some day,” she said, to herself,
+and she shuddered at the thought. Death seemed a terrible thing to
+this fair young girl in whose veins the tide of life flowed so strong
+and free. She dreaded the cruel grave, its darkness, its nothingness,
+its gloom.</p>
+
+<p>The sudden opening of the door roused her from the gloomy musings
+that began to steal over her.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney entered abruptly.</p>
+
+<p>Aline turned her head with a smile toward her father, but the
+gentle beam faded from her lips, and a cry of terror broke from her
+at sight of his face.</p>
+
+<p>He was pale to ghastliness, his blue eyes seemed to almost emit
+sparks of fire, so angrily did they blaze upon her. His face was
+almost contorted with the strong agitation that possessed him.</p>
+
+<p>Aline half started up, filled with a blind terror.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa!” she gasped.</p>
+
+<p>He caught her roughly by the shoulder and shook her so fiercely
+that she fell back in her chair, hiding her white face fearfully in her
+hands. He looked as if he were about to kill her as she crouched in
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[Pg 101]</span>her chair, with her face hidden from his wrathful gaze, while she
+trembled like a leaf in a storm.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney sprung up and ran hurriedly to him. She caught
+his arm in both her delicate white hands.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Rodney, pray do not be so rough with Aline! You
+will kill her!” she cried.</p>
+
+<p>He shook her off rudely almost as he had shaken his daughter.
+Indeed, he was so strongly agitated, that he did not seem to know
+the extent of his violence.</p>
+
+<p>“Better for her if she were dead!” he broke out, bitterly. “Better
+for us if she never had been born!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, papa, what have I done?” Aline wailed out, frightened
+by his fierce denunciations.</p>
+
+<p>“Done! What have you not done?” he stormed at her, fiercely.
+“Oh, wretched, shameless girl, whom I have nurtured at my fireside
+and in my heart! How sharper than a serpent’s tooth it is to
+have such a child! Would to God you had perished yesterday rather
+than live for me to tell you your shame to-day!”</p>
+
+<p>“Shame!” the girl broke out with sudden passion and violence,
+while the deep color flooded her exquisite face with crimson. “Do
+not apply that word to me, papa! I have done nothing, nothing!”</p>
+
+<p>“What can you mean?” gasped Mrs. Rodney, growing as pale as
+her daughter.</p>
+
+<p>He glared at them fiercely, his handsome face disfigured by passion.</p>
+
+<p>“I mean,” he said, dropping his voice to a low, tense sound of intense
+bitterness—“I mean that I have discovered Aline’s shameful
+secret.”</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, papa, you have discovered it! You know it, and yet I
+have not had to break my vow! Oh! how glad I am!” cried Aline,
+and a light of joy broke over the fair face, almost transfiguring its
+beauty. Such happy roses glowed on her countenance, such a radiant
+light shone in the deep blue eyes as struck her father with wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I cannot understand what you mean,” he said, sharply.
+“I have discovered nothing that could make you happy. This, that
+I have to tell your mother, is enough to strike you dead with shame
+at her feet, because you have so dishonored her!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLII">
+ CHAPTER XLII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>A moment of utter silence ensued upon Mr. Rodney’s excited
+declaration.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney had fallen into a chair like one stunned at her husband’s
+dreadful words. She stared alternately from his face to
+Aline’s in hopeless bewilderment.</p>
+
+<p>But although she was in a maze of wonder, her bewilderment did
+not by any means equal that of her daughter.</p>
+
+<p>Aline had attempted to rise from her seat, but her extreme weakness
+forced her to grasp the back of her chair with both hands. She
+clung to it tightly, leaning against it while she regarded her father
+with startled, wide-open eyes, and slightly parted, tremulous lips.
+As he gazed at the fair, wondering, innocent face, he was suddenly
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[Pg 102]</span>reminded of her childish days. Just so the beautiful face had looked
+many a time when, as a willful child, she had been reprimanded and
+blamed innocently for many pranks that she had not done; just so
+the dew of unshed tears had seemed to glitter on the dark, curling
+fringe of her lashes. The appealing innocence of that look cut him
+to the heart for a moment, and then he was angry with himself for
+his weakness. How dare she look so pure and true when she was
+such a sinner?</p>
+
+<p>In a moment she spoke—gently, almost appealingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, there must be some mistake. You said you knew my
+secret?”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, to my sorrow,” he replied, bitterly.</p>
+
+<p>“But, papa,” she spoke in a slow, grieved tone, “if you know it,
+as you say, why, then, do you talk of shame to me? It you know
+that secret you say you know, you must be aware that I have done
+nothing to blush for. Why should I fall down dead at my mother’s
+feet when I have done no wrong?”</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, why do you try to keep up that wretched farce?” he exclaimed,
+hoarsely, while his eyes flashed luridly. “My God, you,
+the child we loved so dearly, the child we thought so innocent and
+true, you have been the falsest-hearted girl that ever a mother bore!
+Even while we were searching for you in anguish of soul, deeming you
+lost or dead, you were heartlessly hiding yourself away in the house
+of the rich man yonder. You were living with him in terrible shame.
+Say, is this not true?”</p>
+
+<p>“As God is my judge, papa, you accuse me falsely!” she answered,
+lifting her white hand solemnly to heaven, while her beautiful
+face flushed a vivid burning scarlet.</p>
+
+<p>“You deny that you were at Delaney House?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot answer that question, papa; but I <i>can</i> deny, and I do
+deny, your other accusation.”</p>
+
+<p>“Your word does not signify much in this case,” he said. “I
+already have the proofs that you stayed, during the three months of
+your absence, at Delaney House.”</p>
+
+<p>The beautiful blush seemed to burn deeper on the fair young face.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, who is my accuser?” she inquired, in wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“You shall know by and by,” he answered. “I am going to ask
+you some questions now. Mind that you answer them truly. There
+is no longer any need to keep back the answer to anything I may
+ask you. All is known.”</p>
+
+<p>“All?” she echoed, faintly, and with palpable wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, all,” he replied. “And first you were at Delaney House,
+during the whole three months of your absence. It is too late to
+deny it. You must confess all.”</p>
+
+<p>“But my oath,” she said, looking at him with wide, questioning
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Is of no avail, since I have found out the truth without your
+agency,” he replied. “The secret is a secret no longer. You may
+answer freely all that I ask you.”</p>
+
+<p>She looked at him dubiously with those beautiful eyes that seemed
+to mirror her soul’s purity.</p>
+
+<p>“I should be glad to answer you, papa, if I thought it were quite
+right,” she said.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[Pg 103]</span></p>
+
+<p>“You can take your papa’s word for that,” interposed Mrs. Rodney,
+rather peevishly. “He has never deceived you in anything,
+has he, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, mamma,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Then tell him what he asks you,” said her mother.</p>
+
+<p>Aline turned her eyes back to the pale, stern face of her father.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I admit that I was at Delaney House those three months,”
+she said, simply.</p>
+
+<p>“And you were dangerously wounded in the beginning of your
+stay there,” he said. “Don’t deny that either, Aline. You bear
+the scar on your bosom in witness of the fact.”</p>
+
+<p>“I admit the wound,” she replied, in the same gentle, obedient
+way as before.</p>
+
+<p>“I must now require you to tell me how you received it,” said
+Mr. Rodney, watching her closely.</p>
+
+<p>She started, and looked earnestly at him.</p>
+
+<p>“You said that you knew all, papa,” she replied, with a touch of
+vague reproach in her tone.</p>
+
+<p>He could not conceal the embarrassment her words caused him.
+His eyelids fell and he stood silent a moment gazing down at the
+floor.</p>
+
+<p>“You said that you knew all, papa,” Aline repeated, reproachfully.</p>
+
+<p>“I know the most and worst,” he replied, looking up at her.
+“There are some trifling details with which I am unacquainted. I
+depend on you to make me acquainted with them.”</p>
+
+<p>“But, papa—” she said, and paused, tremblingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Well?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“You know, papa, it would be wrong for me to tell you anything
+about that fatal absence of mine. It would be breaking my oath of
+silence,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>He stifled an impatient exclamation between his mustached lips.</p>
+
+<p>“But, my child,” he said, in a softer tone than he had yet used,
+“did you not promise just now to answer all of my questions?”</p>
+
+<p>The blue eyes dilated in innocent surprise.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, no, papa,” she replied. “I thought it could do no harm to
+admit anything that you already knew; so I did not hesitate to own
+that I had been at Delaney House, and that I received my wound
+there. But of the manner in which I received my hurt I cannot tell
+you since you do not know. I am bound to silence. I cannot break
+my word of honor.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIII">
+ CHAPTER XLIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney regarded his daughter with a disappointed and baffled
+air. He had set a trap to surprise all the details of her secret from
+her, deeming it no harm to do so. But she had been too quick-witted
+for him. He saw that he was to learn nothing from her that he
+did not already know.</p>
+
+<p>He was bitterly angry with her. His outraged pride prompted
+him to denounce her in the bitterest terms, and to drive her forth
+from his roof as one unworthy to dwell in the home she had dishonored.
+Something stronger than his own will held him back.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[Pg 104]</span></p>
+
+<p>As he gazed at her clinging feebly to the back of the chair, weak
+and white from the effects of her accident yesterday, and with that
+look of helpless innocence on the fair young face, his conviction of
+her guiltiness was staggered. In the face of all the evidence, in the
+face of her terrible silence, he could scarcely believe that his beautiful,
+petted daughter was a deliberate sinner. Yet what was the
+meaning of the mystery in which she shrouded her absence from her
+home? Why had she gone to Delaney House, and what had she
+been doing there? If Oran Delaney had wronged his little darling,
+he said to himself, fiercely, his life should pay the forfeit.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline,” he said to her with startling abruptness; “tell me, what
+is Oran Delaney to you?”</p>
+
+<p>She shivered and started as if an icy wind had swept across her.</p>
+
+<p>“Tell me,” he repeated sharply, “what is Oran Delaney to you?”</p>
+
+<p>The sweet, frank blue eyes lifted earnestly to his face.</p>
+
+<p>“He is nothing, papa,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing <i>now</i>, you mean,” he said. “Well, I will put my
+query in another shape. What <i>has</i> he been to you?”</p>
+
+<p>Her heart thrilled bitterly at the pointed question.</p>
+
+<p>An impulse came over her to tell him the truth—to say, bitterly
+and truly, “He has been the evil genius of my life; he has spoiled
+my life for me; he has blighted all the budding hopes of my youth,
+and made earth a wide Sahara, where I must walk with blistered
+feet and a fainting heart.”</p>
+
+<p>This would have been the truest answer she could have made, she
+said, bitterly, to herself; but she shut her lips over the unspoken
+words—they were not for her to say.</p>
+
+<p>“You do not answer me, Aline,” said her father, and then she
+answered, gravely:</p>
+
+<p>“I can only repeat what I said to you before. He is nothing to
+me.”</p>
+
+<p>He walked away from her, and went over to the window that
+overlooked Delaney House and its beautiful spacious grounds.
+Drawing aside the curtain, he looked out upon the scene. The winter
+snow was falling in soft, thick flakes, and had been falling thus
+all day. The ground was covered with a soft, white carpet, pure
+and unspotted, for no footfall had smirched its virgin purity.
+Through the veil of softly falling flakes the gloomy gray outline of
+Delaney House glimmered indistinctly like a picture. To his
+wretched, distracted mind, filled with harrowing suspicions of his
+child, recurred a line or two from a familiar poem:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Once I was pure as the snow, but I fell—</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Fell, like the snow-flakes, from heaven to hell!”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>A groan forced itself through his pale, drawn lips.</p>
+
+<p>“My God!” he said, hoarsely. “Only to think, Aline, that
+while we were distracted over your unknown fate, while we sought
+you everywhere, while sleep was a stranger to our eyes and food
+tasted bitter on our lips, through the terrible strain of our anxiety
+for you, that you were hidden away in my neighbor’s house, within
+a stone’s throw of your own home! It was wicked, cruel, heartless!”</p>
+
+<p>“Heartless!” she echoed, with weary bitterness, and a look of
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[Pg 105]</span>agony came over the white face. She recalled that time so well when
+she had sorrowed to feel what they would think of her at home; how
+they would miss her and grieve for her, blaming her for the terrible
+silence she was forced to keep.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, will you tell me one thing?” he asked. “I suppose it
+cannot greatly matter in the keeping of your secret. I am most
+curious to know how you left your room that day.”</p>
+
+<p>“I went through that window, papa,” she answered, thinking
+that she might tell him the truth thus far, at least.</p>
+
+<p>“But how?” he inquired, in palpable astonishment.</p>
+
+<p>“Down a ladder,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Placed there by Oran Delaney?” he inquired, smothering a terrible
+imprecation on his writhing lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa,” she answered, wearily, for she was weak and tired,
+and in his excitement he had not thought of sparing her feeble
+strength.</p>
+
+<p>“So then there was really an intrigue carried on between you?”
+he burst out, wrathfully.</p>
+
+<p>“No, papa, there was not. I had never spoken to Mr. Delaney
+in my life until that day,” she replied, with such candor that he
+could not but believe her.</p>
+
+<p>“How then did it happen that you allowed him to place a ladder
+for you to descend upon?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>The pale face grew suddenly scarlet again.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, it was the fault of my own willfulness,” she sighed.</p>
+
+<p>“I told you so, Aline. I always knew that your willful ways
+would bring you into trouble,” cried poor, half-dazed Mrs. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, mamma, dearest, and your words came true—as true as
+any words ever spoken in this world,” cried Aline, meekly; and she
+added, with a long, heavy sigh, “I do not believe any one ever paid
+a greater price for an innocent folly than I have done.”</p>
+
+<p>Her mother broke into low, heart-broken sobbing, and buried her
+face in her handkerchief.</p>
+
+<p>“Tell us how it came about, Aline,” said her father, impatiently.</p>
+
+<p>“It was just in this way, papa. I was angry because I was left
+at home that day, and I threw the book mamma had given me to
+read out of my window into Mr. Delaney’s garden.”</p>
+
+<p>“Well, go on,” he said, as she paused a moment.</p>
+
+<p>Aline continued:</p>
+
+<p>“You see, papa and mamma, I had no idea Mr. Delaney was
+walking in his garden that morning. But he was, and when I threw
+the book it struck him sharply on his head. He looked up and saw
+me, and then I was frightened at what I had done. I spoke to him.
+I apologized to him and explained that it was an accident.”</p>
+
+<p>“And then?” asked Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“He excused me after amusing himself with me a little while.
+He evidently thought me nothing but a child,” said Aline. “I am
+sure I acted like a child. I told him how much I wanted some of
+the beautiful roses in his garden. So he brought an old step-ladder,
+placed it under the window, and told me to come down and take all
+the flowers I wanted.”</p>
+
+<p>“My God!” groaned her father, gazing at her in despair.</p>
+
+<p>“I did not mean to do anything wrong. It was only one of my
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[Pg 106]</span>willful escapades, and I never thought that it could end more seriously
+than my other girlish freaks. I went down the ladder, papa,
+but, indeed, indeed, I did not mean to stay ten minutes. I just
+meant to have one breath of the sweet air under those shady trees,
+and a bunch of the roses, and then to come back before cook should
+find out my absence.”</p>
+
+<p>“Why, then, did you stay?” he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>“That, too, was the result of my thoughtlessness and folly. When
+I found myself in the garden, among the beautiful flowers, I wandered
+away by myself, absorbed in the pleasant task of gathering a
+huge bouquet to brighten my lonely room. I was so charmed that
+I forgot everything else in my fascinating task. The poet has given
+us a pretty and appropriate quotation, papa,” she said, looking at
+him with a faint, quivering smile on her marble-white face.</p>
+
+<p>She repeated it softly:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“Too late I stayed—forgive the crime!</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Unheeded flew the hours.</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">How noiseless falls the foot of Time</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">That only treads on flowers!”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>Then she resumed, in a low, sad voice:</p>
+
+<p>“It was just like that with me, papa. I did not remember anything
+but my pleasure in the sweet, fragrant flowers. I kissed their
+fragrant velvety faces a hundred times. I patted them softly with
+loving hands. I knelt down and whispered to them as if they had
+been sentient, human beings. I was filled with pleasure at their
+lovely forms and exquisite colors. I gathered one here, another
+there, until my hands were full. Never did Time fly so fast. It
+trod on flowers, indeed, but, ah me! ah me!” she sighed, clasping
+her small hands together in agony, “since then its flight has been
+slow and dreary, over thorny paths with bleeding feet.”</p>
+
+<p>They gazed upon her in troubled silence, knowing not what to
+say.</p>
+
+<p>“Even then, papa, mamma, if I had come home when I found
+out that it had grown so late all might have been well,” she said.
+“But the fatal curiosity our common Mother Eve bequeathed us led
+me on to my fate.”</p>
+
+<p>Again they had nothing to say to her. They hung eagerly on her
+next words.</p>
+
+<p>“A bell rang from the house, then, for luncheon, and Mr. Delaney
+came to ask me to go to share it,” she went on. “It was then
+that my inexcusable folly began. If I had come back home all
+would have been well. My foolish curiosity led me to enter the
+great house of which I had heard so much.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney groaned aloud in bitterness of spirit.</p>
+
+<p>“I went into the grand dining-room and had my lunch—a delicate,
+luxurious lunch that appeared to have been spread by invisible
+hands, for no one appeared except Mr. Delaney and myself. I feasted
+luxuriously, then came out into the hall to return home, full of
+sudden dread that the cook had discovered my protracted absence.”</p>
+
+<p>“And then?” inquired Mr. Rodney, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>A look of fear and dread and bitter regret came over the white
+face of the tortured young girl. She answered, slowly:</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[Pg 107]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Then something happened that was the cause of my remaining
+hidden away wretched and maddened for three long months, that
+seemed longer to me than all the years of my life that had gone before.”</p>
+
+<p>“And that something? You must tell us what it was, Aline,”
+said her father, sternly.</p>
+
+<p>“No, papa, I cannot tell you. I have sworn never to reveal it,”
+Aline replied, despairingly.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIV">
+ CHAPTER XLIV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Again a disappointed and baffled expression crossed Mr. Rodney’s
+fine face. He was cruelly tortured by this dreadful secret that lay,
+like a great, inky blot, on the fair fame of his beautiful, beloved
+daughter.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, did you know that it was wrong for you to take such an
+oath?” he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>A piteous look came over the sweet, pale face.</p>
+
+<p>“It was hard for me to do so, but I did not know that it was
+wrong,” she replied. “I was perfectly ignorant, papa, of the
+dreadful consequences that would follow upon my silence.”</p>
+
+<p>“I wish to Heaven that you had never suffered any one to bind
+you to such a promise,” he cried.</p>
+
+<p>“But, papa, he—I mean, I could never have come home unless I
+had taken the solemn vow asked of me. At first I refused. I was
+determined to reveal all when I reached home. I was stubborn in
+my refusal to submit. But—when I found that I would never be
+permitted to come back unless I gave way, I yielded. I was so
+homesick and wretched, papa, that I could not hold out.”</p>
+
+<p>He crossed the room to her and took one of the cold, nerveless
+hands in his.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, forgive me for asking you so hard a question,” he said,
+“for sometimes I am tempted to believe in your innocence still, in
+spite of all the circumstantial evidences to the contrary. My
+daughter, will you swear that you are as innocent and pure as when
+you left your home that dreadful day?”</p>
+
+<p>She lifted her white hand to Heaven and looked at him fearlessly
+with her bright, clear gaze.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, papa, I swear before Heaven that I am as pure as when I
+went away,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>Then there was silence for a moment. Mrs. Rodney had fallen
+down upon the bed, weeping bitter, but quiet tears. Mr. Rodney
+walked over to the window, and stood looking out again at the
+gloomy outlines of his neighbor’s house. It had acquired a strange
+fascination for him since he had learned that his daughter had been
+hidden there so long</p>
+
+<p>“I wonder,” he broke out, abruptly, “what I have ever done to
+Oran Delaney that he should have done this thing to me?”</p>
+
+<p>Aline had sunk wearily into her chair again. She looked around
+at him now, earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I am sure you have done nothing,” she said. “There are
+reasons relating to himself that compel him to wish the story of my
+presence in his house unknown.”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[Pg 108]</span></p>
+
+<p>“One thing I must know, Aline. This man who has so cruelly
+blighted all your prospects in life, does he love you?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, papa,” she replied, with something like wonder at his question.</p>
+
+<p>“Yet yesterday he risked his life to save yours.”</p>
+
+<p>“I think he meant that in some sort as a reparation,” she said,
+timidly.</p>
+
+<p>“Then it was he that sent you the ten thousand dollars?” interrogated
+her father, quickly.</p>
+
+<p>“It was he,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Then you were right not to accept it,” he exclaimed. “Oran
+Delaney must make you a greater reparation than that for the ill
+you have sustained at his hands.”</p>
+
+<p>“He will not reveal the secret—we need not hope for it,” Aline
+said, despondently.</p>
+
+<p>“A thousand revealed secrets could not clear the stain from your
+name, my poor child,” he answered “You are irretrievably compromised
+by your stay in his house. There is but one atonement he
+can make you, and I, as the guardian of your honor, shall force him
+to that if it be at the point of the sword.”</p>
+
+<p>“Would you murder Mr. Delaney?” she exclaimed, in horror.</p>
+
+<p>“I will meet him on the field of honor and fight him until one or
+both of us be dead,” Mr. Rodney answered, so resolutely that Aline
+shuddered. A vision of the scene he threatened rushed over her
+mind. Oh, what a terrible price she was paying for the willful folly
+of that summer day long past!</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, you said there was one atonement he could make,” she
+said, timidly. “Will you tell me what you meant?”</p>
+
+<p>“He must make you his wife, Aline. He must give you the
+shelter of his proud, honorable name to wash away the stain he has
+cast upon your own. In no other way can he make atonement for
+his fault,” Mr. Rodney exclaimed.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLV">
+ CHAPTER XLV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney’s firm and decisive declaration had the effect of
+frightening his fair young daughter. She looked at him, piteously.</p>
+
+<p>“But, papa, I do not want to be married,” she exclaimed, with
+such a childish air of dismay and surprise that he could have laughed
+if he had not been so miserable. “I do not want to be married, I
+should not like to be married,” Aline repeated, forlornly.</p>
+
+<p>“But, my dear, all women marry,” said her father.</p>
+
+<p>“Not all,” replied she; “I know several who did not. There
+are Miss Palmer, Miss Brown, Miss Robinson.”</p>
+
+<p>“Cross old maids, all of them,” Mr. Rodney replied. “I hope
+you will never be an old maid, Aline. Indeed, you must not think
+of such a thing. You will have to marry, and the man you marry
+must be Oran Delaney.”</p>
+
+<p>“I dare say he will not want to be married any more than I do,”
+said Aline, with unconscious hopefulness.</p>
+
+<p>A certain hard and grim expression came over Mr. Rodney’s
+handsome face.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[Pg 109]</span></p>
+
+<p>“He will not have much choice in the matter,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, papa!” the young girl cried, and a deep color rose up all
+over her face.</p>
+
+<p>“Well?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“Would you give me to one who took me unwillingly?” she
+asked, in a tone of blended shame and reproach.</p>
+
+<p>He was silent a moment, and his brows knitted themselves together
+in a straight, hard line. Aline, gazing wistfully at him, saw that
+gray hairs had come into his brown locks that were not there a few
+months ago. Her heart thrilled with pain and remorse.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, I do not know how to answer you,” he said. “God
+knows that I do not wish to force you upon any man. But your
+good name is irretrievably compromised, and nothing can clear it
+except a marriage with Oran Delaney. As you are, you can never
+hope to hold up your head in society again. As his wife, you would
+soon live down the scandal that now assails you. You would have
+some chance of happiness. He owes you this reparation, and I, as
+the true guardian of your happiness and honor, shall compel him to
+make it. It he refuses—” he paused, and an ominous light came
+into his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“If he refuses,” she echoed, faintly.</p>
+
+<p>“Then I will kill him, or he shall kill me!” he replied, bitterly.</p>
+
+<p>Aline sat gazing at him like one stunned. All the horror of her
+position rushed over her.</p>
+
+<p>Was there indeed no other way out of the labyrinth of error in
+which she was involved than by this dreadful forced marriage?</p>
+
+<p>All the native pride within her rose up in arms against it. Could
+she give herself up to be an unwilling bride forced upon an unwilling
+bridegroom?</p>
+
+<p>She shrunk sensitively from the thought. Better be dead, she
+thought.</p>
+
+<p>She looked at her father and said, with a babyish quiver of the
+sweet, red lips:</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, I wish that Mr. Delaney had not saved me yesterday. I
+should then have been spared all this trouble and distress. My poor
+life is only a sorrow and disgrace to you all.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney did not answer. Perhaps his troubled thoughts ran
+in the same channel.</p>
+
+<p>Aline waited a moment for him to speak, but as he remained
+silent and abstracted, she asked, timidly:</p>
+
+<p>“Papa, will you not tell me how you became possessed of my
+secret?”</p>
+
+<p>“What good can it do you to know?” he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>“None that I can think of,” she replied, wearily. “It was only
+my natural curiosity that prompted me to ask the question.”</p>
+
+<p>“At some other time, Aline, I will tell you,” said her father. “I
+would prefer not to do so at present.”</p>
+
+<p>And after a moment’s hesitation, he abruptly left the room. Aline
+remained sitting wearily in her chair, gazing into the leaping flames
+of the bright coal fire with sad blue eyes that could scarcely see for
+the thick mist of tears that filled them. Her heart ached drearily in
+her breast. Something like despair thrilled through her as she sat
+there with her small hands folded on her lap.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[Pg 110]</span></p>
+
+<p>“It were better if I had died yesterday—ay, it were better if I
+never had been born,” she murmured to herself, with a sudden
+passionate bitterness.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLVI">
+ CHAPTER XLVI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>While Aline sat gazing drearily into the fire that winter eve, the
+grave, taciturn master of Delaney House lay languidly on a silken
+couch in his quiet library.</p>
+
+<p>The dark, handsome face had a worn and weary expression. It
+was pale, too, and the dark eyes were dim and heavy. His head
+rested wearily on a crimson satin cushion, and one hand was pressed
+against his brow, as if in pain.</p>
+
+<p>There was a light tap at the door, and then Mrs. Griffin entered
+and replenished the fire, that had commenced to burn low behind
+the steel bars of the grate. Then she stood looking at him anxiously
+a moment.</p>
+
+<p>“Your head aches?” she asked, questioningly.</p>
+
+<p>“Slightly,” he replied, indifferently.</p>
+
+<p>“Can I do nothing for you?” the old woman questioned, kindly.</p>
+
+<p>“No; it does not matter. The pain will wear itself out by and
+by.”</p>
+
+<p>She looked at him wistfully a moment, then went out quietly,
+leaving him to silence and repose again.</p>
+
+<p>The fire crackled merrily in the grate, the clock ticked softly on
+the marble mantel. Outside, the noiseless flakes of snow fell lightly
+against the window-pane. Gradually the twilight began to fall, and
+shadows gathered in the room.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Delaney lay very still and quiet, with half-closed eyes shaded
+by his hand, his fine features grave even to sadness. In the gathering
+obscurity a heavy sigh drifted over his lips.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin came back, lighted the library lamp, then paused and
+regarded him with a strange expression.</p>
+
+<p>He removed his hand and looked at her with his heavy eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Delaney, there’s some one to see you!” she exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>He started up, all his gravity and calmness stirred by angry displeasure.</p>
+
+<p>“Some one to see me? Have you forgotten my orders to admit
+no one?” he exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“No, sir, I have not forgotten,” she answered. “But she did
+not knock. She came slipping in so softly, like a ghost, that I was
+frightened.”</p>
+
+<p>“She? Whom?” he exclaimed, hoarsely.</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney, sir.”</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney—Aline—here in this house? My God!” he cried,
+abruptly.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, sir, down in the kitchen, waiting to see you,” said Mrs.
+Griffin. “You see, I forgot to lock the door, and just at dark the
+knob turned soft like, and she came gliding in, still as a ghost and
+pale as one, too, sir. And she says to me, weak and nervous-like,
+‘I <i>must</i> see Mr. Delaney, quick. Go and ask him to give me an interview.’”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[Pg 111]</span></p>
+
+<p>He could only stare at her in blank astonishment.</p>
+
+<p>“I was so surprised and frightened, sir, that I did not speak one
+word to her, but just left her standing there shivering in the middle
+of the room, and came away to do her bidding. Now, what answer
+shall I take back? Will you see her, Mr. Delaney?”</p>
+
+<p>He hesitated a moment, and Mrs. Griffin added, respectfully:</p>
+
+<p>“I think she’s in a hurry, sir, and perhaps she’s afraid to stay
+down there alone.”</p>
+
+<p>He drew a long breath and answered:</p>
+
+<p>“Very well. You may show her up here.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin turned the dim lamp up to a brighter flame and hastened
+away to do his bidding.</p>
+
+<p>Oran Delaney remained standing in the center of the beautiful,
+lofty room, gazing expectantly at the door.</p>
+
+<p>In a minute he heard Mrs. Griffin’s heavy footsteps in the hall,
+with light, quick ones pattering beside them. The door opened
+quickly, and Aline entered alone.</p>
+
+<p>She was wrapped from head to foot in a long, dark cloak, from
+which her pale face gleamed like some beautiful white flower. Her
+dark blue eyes were black with excitement, her parted, panting lips,
+from which the breath came in quick little gasps, showed the haste
+with which she had sought his presence. She stood just inside the
+door, a dark, chilly little figure from which the melting snow-drops
+ran down in little rills upon the velvet carpet.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Delaney shook off the trance of wonder that held him and
+went forward to meet her.</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney, what has brought you back to this ill fated
+house?” he exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“I knew you would be surprised,” she answered quickly. “Mr.
+Delaney, I came here to ask you to marry me!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLVII">
+ CHAPTER XLVII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>If the solid earth had parted beneath Oran Delaney’s feet, he
+could not have been more surprised than he was at those words from
+Aline Rodney’s lips. He did not answer, only stared at her in hopeless
+bewilderment.</p>
+
+<p>“I came here to ask you to marry me,” she repeated, clearly,
+thinking he had not heard her, and no blush stained the pale cheek,
+the white lids did not droop over the blue eyes that gazed at him
+frankly and gravely. What did she mean? Had she gone mad
+under the stress of her great trial?</p>
+
+<p>He went over to her and lifted one of the white hands that hung
+by her side. It was cold as ice as he held it in the warm clasp of
+his own.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, child, I do not understand you. What was it you said
+to me?”</p>
+
+<p>He saw a little shiver creep over the slender form, but she looked
+up at him bravely, and repeated her words:</p>
+
+<p>“I want you to marry me, Mr. Delaney.”</p>
+
+<p>“To marry you, Aline? Do you then love me, my poor child?”
+he asked, gazing into the clear eyes with sudden compassion.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[Pg 112]</span></p>
+
+<p>She shook her small head gravely.</p>
+
+<p>“No, but I want to be your wife,” she said, and the words filled
+him with the most utter bewilderment.</p>
+
+<p>There she stood, a young, beautiful, intelligent girl, usurping his
+sex’s prerogative with a calm, unblushing face and clear, frank eyes
+that regarded him with the innocent light of a child’s—the calmness
+of an unawakened heart.</p>
+
+<p>“You do not love me, yet you wish to be my wife! Aline, are
+you dreaming, or am I?” he asked, drawing her forward into the
+warmth of the bright fire, for little shivers of deadly cold were shaking
+the girlish form from head to foot.</p>
+
+<p>He saw a sudden, passionate pain flame into the pale face. She
+threw out her hand with a gesture of despair.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I am not dreaming, nor are you,” she said. “I would to
+God that we were! This reality is more horrible than any dream!”</p>
+
+<p>“But, why—why should you wish—wish to—to—” he began,
+and paused, unable to continue, and feeling a shamed consciousness
+of a fiery, uncontrollable color overspreading his face. To be wooed
+in this calm, business-like fashion by this ridiculous child was too
+strange, too absurd for anything, and yet there were little thrills of
+rapturous emotion tingling along his nerves, his heart was beating
+quickly with emotion.</p>
+
+<p>The girl’s eyes had wandered to the leaping flames of the firelight.
+She turned them back gravely to his face.</p>
+
+<p>“Why do I wish you to marry me?” she said. “I will tell you,
+Mr. Delaney. The secret of my stay in this house has been discovered!”</p>
+
+<p>“You have broken your oath!” he exclaimed in sudden anger.</p>
+
+<p>She stood before him in proud silence, neither denying nor assenting
+to his affirmation.</p>
+
+<p>Gazing at the fair face a moment he felt that he had wronged her
+by the brief suspicion.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, forgive me. I see that I am suspecting you unjustly,”
+he said. “But tell me, who has revealed the secret?”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not know,” she answered. “But only a little while ago
+papa came in and charged me with it. He was very, very angry.”</p>
+
+<p>“Angry with you?” he questioned.</p>
+
+<p>“Angry with you,” she answered, a faint color creeping into the
+pallid face. “He told me that you had forever compromised my
+good name, and that I could never take my place in the world, in
+society, unless you married me.”</p>
+
+<p>She was speaking to him with the simple directness of a child.
+He was staggered by her simplicity—assurance he would have called
+it in any other woman.</p>
+
+<p>“And so he sent you here to ask me?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>A look of terror came over the fair face. She glanced around
+her, fearfully.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I have stolen away, and if he misses me he will come here
+to seek for me,” she said. “I must hurry back, but first I must
+have an answer to my question. Tell me, Mr. Delaney, will you do
+as I have asked you?”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[Pg 113]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLVIII">
+ CHAPTER XLVIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It was the strangest question Oran Delaney had ever heard from
+a girl’s lips. He said to himself that Aline Rodney’s simplicity was
+simply matchless. If she had been reared within the walls of a
+convent she could not have seemed more ignorant of the offense she
+was committing against society, against the creed of the whole world,
+in asking a man to marry her, and thus usurping his masculine prerogative.</p>
+
+<p>Breaking in upon his stupid silence, she continued:</p>
+
+<p>“Only a marriage in name, you know, Mr. Delaney. I should
+not live with you, of course. Neither of us would care for that. If
+you gave me the shelter of your name at the altar I would go back
+then to my father’s house, and never trouble you again!”</p>
+
+<p>“You do not know what you are saying!” he cried out, passionately.
+“Never trouble me again! Oh, my God!”</p>
+
+<p>“Indeed I should not, Mr. Delaney!” she cried out, hastily, and
+quite mistaking the cause of his agitation. “I should never come
+here again. All that I wish is to satisfy papa and the world. The
+simple marriage ceremony would do that.”</p>
+
+<p>“And you would be content with that, Aline?” he asked, gazing
+down into her splendid violet eyes with a look she could not understand.</p>
+
+<p>“Quite content,” she answered, letting the long fringe of her
+lashes droop low before that anxious gaze.</p>
+
+<p>“But I am a wealthy man, you know, Aline,” he said. “Should
+you not wish to have some of my income settled upon yourself?”</p>
+
+<p>She raised her blue eyes fearlessly to his face.</p>
+
+<p>“I think I have told you before that the wealth of the world could
+not make up to me for the trouble you have caused me,” she said,
+proudly.</p>
+
+<p>“And you would refuse it even as my wife?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” Aline answered, steadily, and then there was a brief
+silence. The man turned his back upon her and walked to the furthest
+corner of the room. In that moment he was paltering with
+the most terrible temptation of his life. The angels of good and
+evil were fighting fiercely for his soul.</p>
+
+<p>She waited in nervous impatience for him to return to her, and
+when he did after a few minutes, she spoke eagerly, without waiting
+for him to speak:</p>
+
+<p>“Well, your answer, Mr. Delaney—is it yes or no?”</p>
+
+<p>He parried the question by one that was cruel and cut deep:</p>
+
+<p>“Miss Rodney, do you know that it is a bold and unmaidenly act
+for you to ask a man to marry you?”</p>
+
+<p>The barbed shaft went home. The slight form quivered as if
+transfixed by an arrow, the blue eyes dilated and looked at him with
+an agony of reproach in their lustrous depths.</p>
+
+<p>“Did you not know it?” he repeated, harshly, almost sternly,
+while he averted his eyes in cold disdain.</p>
+
+<p>“I should have known it if—if only I had stopped to think,” she
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[Pg 114]</span>cried, and the great waves of crimson began to roll over her face on
+which he would not look. “I was so frightened for you that I put
+self aside. I thought only of saving you, and now”—she broke
+down suddenly, and finished the sentence through hard, dry sobs,
+“now you scorn and despise me!”</p>
+
+<p>“Why were you frightened for me?” he asked, curiously.</p>
+
+<p>“No matter—and yet God knows I would have saved you if I
+could—do not forget that, Mr. Delaney, since you will not marry
+me!” she cried, desperately.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I will <i>not</i> marry you!” he cried, with a furious bitterness
+that was quite inexplainable. “Oh, go, girl, go! Why do you stay
+here to torture me thus?”</p>
+
+<p>“I am going,” she answered, with a proud bitterness, as she tore
+the door open and rushed from the room. She ran along the hall,
+down the stairway, flew through the hall and the kitchen, pausing
+not until she found herself again out in the dark, starless night,
+with the soft, swift flakes of snow still falling steadily, and wrapping
+old Mother Earth in a pure white winding sheet.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall never go home again—never!” said the girl, lifting a
+white, desperate face in the wintery darkness. “May God pity and
+guide me in my wretched exile!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIX">
+ CHAPTER XLIX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Oran Delaney drew a long breath of relief as the door closed
+behind the slender form of Aline.</p>
+
+<p>He had been face to face with a great temptation, and he had mastered
+it by the strength of an indomitable will. But the great drops
+of sweat beaded his white brow as he sunk into a chair and gazed
+blankly at the carved oaken door that had shut Aline out from his
+sight.</p>
+
+<p>“She thinks me cold, cruel, heartless,” he muttered. “But, oh,
+my God, what if I had taken her at her word? Ah, no, no, better
+let her go pure and innocent, though miserable, than such a fate as
+that, poor child.”</p>
+
+<p>He remained silent a few moments, then rose from his chair and
+began to pace restlessly up and down the floor.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, Heaven, if only I knew what to do!” he cried. “It is a
+shame that her pure, sweet life should be sacrificed to the keeping
+of my bitter secret. Ah, if only I could beat down my wretched
+pride and confess the truth! Aline, Aline, I would give uncounted
+gold if only I had never seen your face.”</p>
+
+<p>His distracted thoughts received a sudden and startling interruption.</p>
+
+<p>A sound he had not heard for years echoed loudly through the
+house.</p>
+
+<p>It was the peal of the long-unused door-bell. Once, twice, thrice,
+it echoed through the house, loudly and harshly, as if grasped by a
+hasty and authoritative hand.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin came flying into the room and met her master coming
+out.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, sir, the door-bell,” she gasped, breathlessly.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[Pg 115]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Go back and guard her,” he answered. “I will answer the
+bell myself.”</p>
+
+<p>He went with slow steps along the hall. Something told him
+what was coming. He was not surprised when he opened the door
+and saw his neighbor on the threshold.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Rodney!” he exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Delaney!” replied the other as he stepped deliberately into
+the wide, dimly-lighted hall.</p>
+
+<p>And then they stood gazing at each other in silence a moment.
+Mr. Rodney spoke first in low, deep voice of concentrated bitterness
+and repressed fury.</p>
+
+<p>“I have come for my daughter,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“She is not here,” Mr. Delaney answered, steadily.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney’s hand clinched itself as it hung by his side, until the
+sharp nails were buried in the tender flesh.</p>
+
+<p>“Do not answer me with falsehoods,” he said, fiercely. “She
+has fled from her home, and I am quite sure that she is here.”</p>
+
+<p>“I repeat that she is not here,” answered the master of Delaney
+House, with a forced calmness. “She was here but a little while
+ago, but she went away again.”</p>
+
+<p>“Went away again,” repeated Mr. Rodney, with white lips.
+“Where did she go?”</p>
+
+<p>“Where should she go but to her home?” queried Oran Delaney,
+in amaze.</p>
+
+<p>“Where, indeed?” echoed the distracted father. “You might
+better ask yourself that question, Oran Delaney! You who have
+ruined her young life, might know better how to answer it!”</p>
+
+<p>“Come with me, Mr. Rodney. We have much to say to each
+other,” said Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>He led his uninvited guest up to the quiet library where but a little
+while ago Aline had stood, asking him to save her ruined life by
+making her his wife. It was the father now instead of the daughter—quite
+a difference, Oran Delaney said to himself, with grim
+pleasantry.</p>
+
+<p>He placed a chair for Mr. Rodney, but the latter declined it and
+stood up stiffly, with his arms folded over his breast. Their glances
+met, and Mr. Delaney saw bitter hatred in the dark-blue eyes whose
+likeness to Aline’s struck him with a strange pain.</p>
+
+<p>“You have come to curse me, Mr. Rodney,” he said, drawing
+a long, deep breath.</p>
+
+<p>“I have come to do more than that,” the man answered, passionately.
+“I have come to demand reparation for my daughter’s
+wrongs!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_L">
+ CHAPTER L.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It was exactly what Oran Delaney was prepared to hear. Nay,
+he would have been disappointed if the proud, noble looking man
+before him had not made that passionate, determined assertion. He
+said to himself that, if he had been the father of Aline Rodney, he
+would have killed any man who had thus shadowed her life. He
+knew that he had a true man and a devoted father to deal with, and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[Pg 116]</span>the groan that struggled up from his breast was not one of fear, but
+rather of grief that he could not make the reparation demanded.</p>
+
+<p>“Let me ask you one question, Mr. Rodney,” he said. “Who
+has betrayed Aline’s secret to you?”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney looked at him steadily, as he answered:</p>
+
+<p>“I have no objection to telling you, sir. It was a New York detective,
+who has been upon Aline’s track ever since her first disappearance
+from her home.”</p>
+
+<p>“How has he discovered it?” Mr. Delaney exclaimed, while a
+terrible pallor overspread his face. He knew what those keen New
+York detectives were. Was all his humiliating secret, indeed, revealed
+to the carping world?</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot tell you that,” Mr. Rodney answered. “It is the man’s
+own secret. Suffice it to say that I am now fully aware that Aline
+spent the three months of her strange absence under this roof. You
+will not deny that fact?”</p>
+
+<p>“Would to God that I could!” groaned Oran Delaney, involuntarily.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah! you are frightened at the consequences of what you have
+done!” sneered the outraged father.</p>
+
+<p>It he had expected to arouse a tempest of wrath in the other by his
+contemptuous sneer, he was mistaken. Mr. Delaney looked at him
+gravely, even sadly, but he made no answer to the angry words, His
+heart and mind were in a tumult. He could not think clearly.
+Aline’s beautiful, anguished face kept rising between him and her
+father. It haunted him, he could not banish it from his thoughts.</p>
+
+<p>“Because I have grieved her so, I will speak no angry words to
+her father,” he said to himself.</p>
+
+<p>He turned to the angry man and said, with grave dignity:</p>
+
+<p>“I am quite willing to offer you all the reparation in my power,
+Mr. Rodney, for the injury I have done you and your daughter.”</p>
+
+<p>“I think you know that there are but two ways of settling our
+difficulty,” Mr. Rodney said, gazing sternly into the troubled eyes of
+his neighbor.</p>
+
+<p>“You mean—”</p>
+
+<p>“The first way would be to marry my daughter and give her the
+shelter of your name,” said Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“And the second?” queried his neighbor.</p>
+
+<p>“Satisfaction at the sword’s point” the other answered, sharply.</p>
+
+<p>“A duel?” Mr. Delaney exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes.”</p>
+
+<p>Then for a brief space they were silent, and gazed gravely at each
+other. The visitor was the first to break the deep, strange silence
+that reigned in the room.</p>
+
+<p>“You have your choice, sir. Which shall it be—a death or a
+bridal?”</p>
+
+<p>“Most unfortunately, I can have no choice in the matter,” Oran
+Delaney answered, in calm, repressed tones that showed no trace of
+fear or dread. “It must be the duel.”</p>
+
+<p>“You refuse to marry Aline—you prefer death rather than be the
+husband of my beautiful child!” Mr. Rodney exclaimed, in mingled
+anger and wonder.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[Pg 117]</span></p>
+
+<p>“I have already told you that I have no choice,” the other answered.</p>
+
+<p>“Of course you will allow me to doubt that assertion?” sneeringly.</p>
+
+<p>“I will allow <i>you</i> to do so for your daughter’s sake: but it would
+not be safe for any other man to say so much before my face.”</p>
+
+<p>They gazed fixedly at each other. Mr. Rodney’s lips were just
+starting to speak, when the contemplated words were frozen on his
+lips by a terrible interruption. That terrible voice, which any one
+who had ever heard it never forgot, rang suddenly and startlingly
+through the house, waking all the sleeping echoes into awful life.
+Mr. Rodney’s blood tingled in his veins, every individual hair on
+his head seemed to stand erect with horror. He sprung forward and
+caught Mr. Delaney by the arm.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it?” he cried, hoarsely.</p>
+
+<p>His host did not answer for a moment. He stood still, listening
+to those ringing cries with a look like despair on his face.</p>
+
+<p>“What is it?” Mr. Rodney repeated.</p>
+
+<p>Then Mr. Delaney turned his tortured eyes on the other’s face.</p>
+
+<p>“It is the ghost of Delaney House,” he said, in a changed and
+hollow voice.</p>
+
+<p>“The ghost!” Mr. Rodney cried.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” Mr. Delaney answered, and then both were silent, while
+those shrill cries filled their ears with a horrible din.</p>
+
+<p>A pause, and then Mr. Delaney said, abruptly:</p>
+
+<p>“Do not think me inhospitable, but you had better go. Delaney
+House is no place for you or any one. It is haunted. It is the
+abode of unhappy spirits. Go now, and send some one to me in the
+morning on the business you propose.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney obeyed mechanically. He was so surprised and confused
+by the sudden, dreadful sounds that still assailed his ears that
+he seemed to have no volition of his own. He moved toward the
+door that Mr. Delaney held open, and passed quickly through it,
+followed by his host.</p>
+
+<p>“Are you sure that Aline is not here?” he asked, as they passed
+through the hall, his mind suddenly recurring to the fact of her absence
+an hour ago which had been discovered by her mother and reported
+to him in a frenzy of alarm.</p>
+
+<p>“I give you my word of honor that she left me only a minute
+before you entered. You must have met her only for the darkness
+of the night. I am quite sure you will find her at home when you
+return,” Oran Delaney answered, confidently.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall send a friend to you in the morning to make arrangements,”
+Mr. Rodney said, presently.</p>
+
+<p>“Very well. I shall make my will to-night,” Mr. Delaney answered,
+with grim pleasantry.</p>
+
+<p>Then he opened the heavy door and ushered his visitor out into
+the snowy night, in whose gloom and darkness Aline had disappeared
+a little while ago.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[Pg 118]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LI">
+ CHAPTER LI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>When the retreating footsteps of his neighbor had died in the
+stillness of the night, Oran Delaney closed and locked the door
+against the outer darkness and returned to the library. He walked
+to the hearth and stood there gazing thoughtfully down into the
+glowing fire.</p>
+
+<p>“The last night of my life, perhaps,” he said, half aloud. “Ah,
+me! how terribly I have been tempted to-night! How easy it would
+have been to have flung honor to the winds and yielded to the impulse
+that prompted me to seek happiness at whatever cost. Happiness—‘ay,
+there’s the rub’—should I have been happy? Would not
+conscience have pursued me with the bloodhounds of remorse?”</p>
+
+<p>The weird shrieks of the fabled ghost of Delaney Hall had died
+away into silence now. In the stillness of the room a heavy sigh
+was distinctly audible as it drifted across the dark mustached lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Poor child! Now I understand why she came to me on that
+strange mission to-night. She would have sacrificed herself to appease
+her father’s wrath and to save me! And I had to be cruel and
+unkind to her because I was not free!”</p>
+
+<p>The wind sighed in the trees outside, and the bare branches rustled
+eerily. He thought to himself, with a shudder, that the snow
+must be deep by now. It had been falling almost steadily since yesterday.
+He remembered how the melting flakes had trickled down
+from Aline’s dark cloak.</p>
+
+<p>“It must be cold and deep by now,” he thought. “I wish to
+Heaven that I were lying beneath it! Perhaps I shall be soon.”</p>
+
+<p>He went to his desk, drew out writing materials, and began to
+write steadily. Half an hour passed in this occupation, when he
+was suddenly startled again by the loud alarum of the door-bell.
+The harsh clang pealed through the house discordantly. He pushed
+back his chair and hurried out into the hall.</p>
+
+<p>“It grows late. Who can be coming now?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>He opened the heavy door, and in the dim light of the hall lamp
+again saw Mr. Rodney’s face. It was pale with deadly wrath, the
+blue eyes were lurid with rage.</p>
+
+<p>“You have deceived me, Oran Delaney,” he blazed forth, in accents
+of concentrated rage and hate. “Aline has never returned to
+her home. She is still here!”</p>
+
+<p>“Here!” echoed the astonished master of Delaney House.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, here!” Mr. Rodney answered, stormily. “You need not
+deny it! Oran Delaney, if you do not give me back my child, I will
+kill you where you stand!”</p>
+
+<p>The other reached out and drew the half-frantic man into the
+hall, closing the heavy door.</p>
+
+<p>“My God, what do you mean?” he cried. “Aline not returned
+to her home?”</p>
+
+<p>Astonishment and dismay were depicted on his countenance, but
+the infuriated man would not believe the signs of alarm and dread
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[Pg 119]</span>written on the face of the man whom he believed to be the destroyer
+of his fair young daughter’s happiness.</p>
+
+<p>“Do not act a part with me,” he cried. “I warn you I will not
+bear it. Aline has left her home and fled to your protection. If
+you do not immediately restore her to me, I will not answer for the
+consequences!”</p>
+
+<p>“She is not here, Mr. Rodney. I swear to you that she left this
+house five minutes before you entered it, this evening.”</p>
+
+<p>“I will not listen to your prevarications. I <i>know</i> that Aline is
+here. I will not leave Delaney House to-night without her!” cried
+Mr. Rodney, in a low tone of deadly menace, as he fixed his lurid,
+blazing eyes on the face of the man whom he hated with a terrible
+hate.</p>
+
+<p>He was cruelly tortured. The thought of Aline’s dishonor was
+like a thorn in his heart. He was filled with a deadly rage against
+her. She was so young and beautiful to be so wicked. He felt as
+if he could easily kill her—her and the man who had so cruelly
+wrecked her young life.</p>
+
+<p>The grim, hard smile that played around his writhing lips in the
+dim light of the stately old hall was terrible to see.</p>
+
+<p>“I am a desperate man,” Mr. Rodney continued, hoarsely. “You
+have taken from me my ewe-lamb. You must look to yourself. I
+shall not leave this house to-night until I find her. If you do not
+give her up, I shall search the house for her—ay, even if I have to
+pass over your dead body to do so!”</p>
+
+<p>They stood looking at each other steadily. Oran Delaney had
+whitened to a deadly pallor.</p>
+
+<p>“Mr. Rodney, you know not what you ask,” he said. “Can you
+not take my word of honor that your daughter is not here? If you
+searched my house thrice over you would find nothing but dust and
+gloom and ghosts of the dead past.”</p>
+
+<p>“What about the hidden blue room?” sneered Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Delaney changed color at those words.</p>
+
+<p>“The blue room?” he stammered.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, the blue room where you kept my child hidden so long.
+Let me look there,” said Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“It is empty. There is no one there,” said Mr. Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“It is a falsehood! I do not believe you!” Mr. Rodney cried out,
+beside himself with fury, and for a moment there reigned an ominous
+silence. The hot blood leaped to Oran Delaney’s dark face,
+his black eyes blazed.</p>
+
+<p>“I come of a race that does not brook such words as those, Mr.
+Rodney,” he said, coldly and sharply.</p>
+
+<p>“Clear yourself of the imputation, then, by proving your innocence,”
+the other retorted.</p>
+
+<p>“My word is my proof,” Mr. Delaney replied, proudly, and again
+there was a short silence.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney, goaded to madness by his wrongs, raised his head
+and regarded his foe fixedly.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not take your words as proof,” he said, angrily. “I demand
+the right to search this house. Do you allow it?”</p>
+
+<p>“No!” thundered Mr. Delaney, fiercely.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[Pg 120]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Then I shall do so without your consent!” exclaimed Mr. Rodney,
+advancing and attempting to thrust him aside.</p>
+
+<p>Oran Delaney firmly barred his further progress by placing himself
+between him and the stairway.</p>
+
+<p>“You dare thwart a wronged and maddened father!” cried Mr.
+Rodney, in almost maniacal wrath. “You thus bring down doom
+upon your own head! Thus do I avenge poor Aline’s wrongs!”</p>
+
+<p>A pistol gleamed in his upraised hand; there was a sharp report,
+a flash of fire, a cloud of thick smoke. Oran Delaney fell forward
+on his face, and lay there motionless.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LII">
+ CHAPTER LII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney did not pause to see the result of his maddened
+deed. He threw the smoking pistol far from him, sprung over the
+body of his prostrate victim, and rushed up the stairs, two at a time,
+in his eagerness to find his runaway daughter.</p>
+
+<p>At the head of the stairway he found himself in another long,
+wide hall, richly carpeted and dimly lighted by a large swinging
+lamp. On either side stretched a row of closed doors, and as he
+gazed at them irresolutely one on the left opened hurriedly, and a
+woman rushed out and came running down the hall toward him.
+His heart leaped into his mouth. Could that be Aline?</p>
+
+<p>But as she came quickly up to him, he saw that he was mistaken.
+It was not Aline. It was an old woman in a cap and glasses.</p>
+
+<p>She ran up to him and caught him quickly by the arm, and then
+he saw that there had been a mutual mistake, for when she saw his
+face she recoiled from him in terror.</p>
+
+<p>“My God!” she said, “I thought that it was Mr. Delaney.
+What are you doing here, sir?”</p>
+
+<p>“I am seeking my daughter. Bring her to me, woman,” he
+cried, wildly, catching her by the sleeve as she was about to rush
+away from him.</p>
+
+<p>“You are Mr. Rodney,” she said, looking curiously into the
+strange face with its wild, excited eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I am Mr. Rodney,” he answered, in hoarse, strained accents.
+“I am the father of the wickedest girl that ever cursed a
+father’s life. Woman, woman, where is my Aline? Bring her here
+to me, that I may curse her for her sins!”</p>
+
+<p>“O, Mr. Rodney, she is not here,” cried Mrs. Griffin, regarding
+his wild strange visage tearfully.</p>
+
+<p>“It is false. I <i>know</i> that she is here,” he thundered at her.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, sir, you are mistaken. Miss Rodney is not here,” she answered.
+“But I heard the sound of a shot. What was it? My
+master—”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I have murdered your master. He stole my pure darling
+from me, and now he has paid for the sin with his life. He lies
+down there in his own hall, shot to the heart by an avenging father,”
+cried Mr. Rodney, with a harsh laugh, of satiated hate and revenge.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin did not wait to hear another word. She pushed him
+from her, with a piercing cry of grief and terror, and ran headlong
+down the stairway. Mr. Rodney, released from her detaining presence,
+set about his search for his missing daughter.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[Pg 121]</span></p>
+
+<p>Outside, the soft, cruel snow still fell with slow regularity, and
+the rising wind tossed it into deep, treacherous drifts. He dreamed
+not that while he sought her amid the gloomy splendor of Delaney
+House, his fair and tender Aline was wandering in all the perils of
+that winter night. He did not believe the combined assertions of
+Oran Delaney and his housekeeper that Aline was not in the house.</p>
+
+<p>Where could she be but here? he thought, and in his heart he
+vowed that if he found her he would kill her, too—the wicked girl
+who had broken her father’s heart and made him a wretched murderer.</p>
+
+<p>In his horror at her sin, he was fast becoming a monomaniac. The
+blood upon his hands only whetted his thirst for more. In his madness,
+it seemed to him that the horror of her sin could only be wiped
+out in her blood, shed as an expiation.</p>
+
+<p>He had vaguely noticed that the door from whence Mrs. Griffin
+had issued had been left slightly ajar. Perhaps she was in there,
+he thought. He would go and see.</p>
+
+<p>He crept softly along the hall toward the door of that room. He
+vaguely wondered if this was the hidden blue room of Dr. Anthony’s
+story. Would his sight be blasted by the sight of her, his
+little Aline, who had been the pet and darling of his life, sitting
+there contentedly in splendid sin, mistress of the vile wretch whom
+he had slain in his anger?</p>
+
+<p>He crept softly to the door and peered in through the narrow
+crevice made by the slight opening of the unlatched door. He
+peered into the room, and it was with difficulty that he repressed a
+cry of horror. Heavens! Was this a fiend that his straining gaze
+encountered?</p>
+
+<p>It was a large, splendidly furnished room into which he gazed, all
+purple and gold, with soft, luxurious couches and chairs, large, fine
+pictures on the walls, and everything that could please the eye save
+and except the many little objects of delicate <i>bric-à-brac</i> in which
+feminine eyes and tastes delight. The room was utterly void of
+such trifles. It was splendidly, even garishly furnished, but everything
+was strong and substantial. There was nothing light and airy
+in the large, lofty apartment, with its large, white lamp swung
+from the ceiling out of reach, and the glowing fire before which a
+wire guard had been carefully placed.</p>
+
+<p>But the wire guard had been ruthlessly torn away from the fire
+now, and the sole inmate of that luxurious room was a creature that
+might have struck terror to a heart even more desperate than was
+the lawyer’s as he gazed into the room.</p>
+
+<p>“My God, what is it? Can it be a human creature, or is it a
+fiend from the nether world?” he asked himself.</p>
+
+<p>He might well ask himself the question. The creature on which
+he gazed was a small, misshapen thing, with such horribly distorted
+features, as caused a shudder of loathing to run through Mr. Rodney.
+The crooked form was clothed with an almost barbaric splendor
+of apparel—in crimson satin, embroidered in golden thread, while
+the fire of priceless diamonds flashed from the yellow arms and
+neck, and upon the tangled braids of coarse, black hair that fell down
+her back.</p>
+
+<p>She—for he had concluded that it was a woman from the long, black
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[Pg 122]</span>hair, and the womanly apparel—had snatched a fire-brand from the
+glowing grate, and was now running about the room, uttering discordant
+shrieks of fiendish glee, while with a ruthless, vandal hand
+she held the flaming brand now here, now there, against the satin
+hangings and the filmy lace curtains, the lambrequins, the silken
+fringe of the chair-covers, until all became a smoldering mass,
+through which small jets of lurid flame began to creep weirdly.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney gazed for a moment like one fascinated upon this
+horrible scene, and then he made a bold and desperate dash into the
+room.</p>
+
+<p>He ran up behind the horrible fire-fiend, threw his arm over her
+shoulder, and wrenched the flaming brand from her clasp, threw it
+down upon the floor, and trampled it into a black, charred mass.
+Then he was obliged to turn round and defend himself.</p>
+
+<p>For the dreadful woman had thrown herself fiercely upon him,
+and was choking his life out with her long, talon-like fingers and
+sharp nails, that held his throat in a vise-like pressure. Half
+strangled, he made a supreme effort against the furious maniac, and
+succeeded in tearing her hands away from their murderous hold.
+She was wonderfully strong and agile, but he held her firmly, and
+wild screams of rage issued from her distorted lips. He recognized
+the sounds as those that had so frightened him in the earlier part of
+the evening.</p>
+
+<p>“This, then, was the ghost of Delaney House!” he thought grimly.
+“My God what can this terrible creature be to Oran Delaney,
+and does Aline know of her existence?”</p>
+
+<p>He held her firmly by both hands while she bit and tore and raved
+in a frenzy of maniacal fury. He was perplexed what to do with
+her. He knew that she was a dangerous creature, but he would not
+have harmed her for the world. She was already too terribly blasted
+in body and mind. But he longed to make some disposal of her that
+he might make some effort to quench the smoldering flames that already
+filled the room with a thick and suffocating black vapor.</p>
+
+<p>She solved the question for him herself by suddenly wrenching
+her hands from his and making a rapid exit through the open door.
+It did not occur to him to follow her. Instead he threw all his
+energies into the task of subduing the flames.</p>
+
+<p>He tore down the heavy satin hangings and trampled them beneath
+his feet, he found an ewer of water and deluged the smoking cushions
+of the chairs and lounges fighting bravely amid the smoke and
+fire, reckless that his strong hands were torn and burned with the
+superhuman efforts that he made.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LIII">
+ CHAPTER LIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>But when all was done that a brave and energetic man could do
+Mr. Rodney found that his efforts had been spent in vain.</p>
+
+<p>The maniac fire-fiend had fired the filmy lace curtains and the
+blaze ran along the inflammable material, licking it up with a fiery
+tongue of flame and mounting to the ceiling where it ignited the
+curtain-rods and then the ceiling. The lawyer gazed at it an instant,
+and seeing the leaping tongues of flame spurting out he realized that
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[Pg 123]</span>he could do no more toward stopping the fire. He ran out of the
+smoking-room to give the alarm in the street, forgetting for a moment
+the terrible deed he had done and that his own safety demanded
+instant flight.</p>
+
+<p>Rushing wildly down the stairs he encountered Mrs. Griffin coming
+up at a pace as headlong as his own.</p>
+
+<p>She caught him entreatingly by the arm.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, sir,” she cried “you have not quite killed him! He breathes
+yet—he can talk a little. Oh for pity’s sake bring some one to him.
+I cannot leave him alone to go myself.”</p>
+
+<p>Her words recalled him to himself. In the excitement of the past
+few moments he had momently forgotten that down-stairs in the
+wide hall lay a man whom he had ruthlessly slain. It rushed over
+him now with a keen pang of remorse.</p>
+
+<p>“He lives!” he exclaimed and there was a keen note of relief in
+his voice. Already the thought of murder had begun to lie heavily
+on his hitherto unspotted soul.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, and you must bring a doctor quick,” Mrs. Griffin said imploringly.</p>
+
+<p>He glanced back up the wide stairway into the hall. It was already
+filled with a volume of thick smoke that was pouring out
+from the doorway of the room he had just quitted.</p>
+
+<p>“Look!” he said.</p>
+
+<p>Her glance followed his.</p>
+
+<p>“My God! have you fired the house?” she cried, in a terrified
+tone.</p>
+
+<p>“No; but it was fired by the hand of a deformed maniac in that
+room you quitted,” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>“And she?” cried Mrs. Griffin.</p>
+
+<p>“Has escaped!” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, I always thought it would come to this!” cried the housekeeper,
+wringing her plump hands. “I thought she would murder
+us all in our beds, or set fire to the house; and she has done it, just
+as I thought she would. And where is she, Mr. Rodney—not in
+that room, surely?”</p>
+
+<p>“No; she ran away after she had half strangled me!” he replied,
+with a shudder at the remembrance of the uncanny creature.</p>
+
+<p>“My God, then she has escaped! Oh, what will Mr. Delaney
+say? I must go and find her! She must not leave the house!” cried
+Mrs. Griffin, breaking from him and continuing her flight up the
+stairs.</p>
+
+<p>He followed and overtook her.</p>
+
+<p>“Woman, are you mad?” he cried to her. “Of course she must
+leave the house. Every one must leave it. It will be burned to the
+ground presently! And hark you, if my erring child is here—if she
+perishes in this holocaust of flame—her blood will be upon your
+head!”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Rodney, she is not here!” Mrs. Griffin answered, so
+earnestly that he could not but believe her. “She was here a little
+while ago, but she went away. I let her out of the kitchen door myself.
+I saw her go away.”</p>
+
+<p>“Then, where can she have gone?” he cried distractedly.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not know; but I must find that poor crazy soul!” she cried,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[Pg 124]</span>again breaking from him and fearlessly rushing into the smoke filled
+hall.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney ran down the steps, flung wide the front door, and
+sent his voice ringing out into the snowy night:</p>
+
+<p>“Fire! fire! fire!”</p>
+
+<p>A distant shout answered him from some belated wayfarer whose
+ear had been caught by the ominous words. He waited for no more,
+but, leaving the door ajar, ran back into the hall, and knelt down
+by the side of the man whom, in his murderous wrath, he had tried
+to murder just now.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Delaney lay quite still and motionless in the spot where he
+had fallen, save that Mrs. Griffin had turned him over upon his
+back, giving him better facilities for breathing. The long fringe of
+the lashes lay dark and stirless, against his cheeks, but his chest
+heaved faintly, showing that life was not quite extinct. Strange to
+say, Mr. Rodney was overjoyed to find that he lived.</p>
+
+<p>“I am glad I did not kill him,” he muttered. “For deeply as I
+have been wronged, it was terrible to feel myself a murderer.”</p>
+
+<p>He examined the wound, and found that his bullet had entered
+Mr. Delaney’s shoulder near the breast, but not necessarily in a vital
+part. With care he might, perhaps, recover.</p>
+
+<p>“But what shall I do with him now?” he thought, in perplexity,
+hearing a babel of voices outside. “He cannot remain here, and it
+would be too dangerous to remove him far.”</p>
+
+<p>He decided rapidly that he could not do less than to remove him
+to the cottage.</p>
+
+<p>By some strange revulsion of feeling, he was now most anxious
+to save the life of the man whom but a little while ago he had been
+tempted to kill.</p>
+
+<p>A score of men came hurrying over the threshold of the open door
+just then. By the help of some of these the wounded man was
+carefully removed to Mr. Rodney’s house, a physician was hastily
+summoned, and the men returned to the scene of the fire. The only
+fire-engine the small town afforded was quickly upon the spot, and
+every effort was made to save the burning house.</p>
+
+<p>But all in vain. The devouring element had obtained too deadly
+a headway. It was impossible to beat back the swiftly encroaching
+flames. They leaped into the air like hydra-headed serpents, coiling
+and twisting in mad delight over their doomed prey; they lighted
+the darkness of the snowy night into fierce and lurid grandeur; they
+licked up at a breath the beautiful articles of <i>virtu</i> that generations
+of dead and gone Delaneys had gathered in their ancestral home at
+the cost of many thousands of dollars. They spared naught that
+came in their way, and when the gray dawn looked with dim eyes
+at the scene of desolation, nothing remained of the Delaney House
+but a huge black pile of smoking ruins.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LIV">
+ CHAPTER LIV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It was a strange mockery of fate that had thrown Oran Delaney,
+wounded and helpless, beneath the roof of the man whom he had
+injured, and who had wounded him near unto death.</p>
+
+<p>Yet so it was; and he was likely to remain there several weeks,
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[Pg 125]</span>for the physician, who was summoned to attend him, declared that
+the wound was a serious, if not fatal, one, and that it would be
+some time before he could be moved with safety.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney, who had been temporarily maddened by excitement
+last night, had come to his senses now. He made no attempt to fly
+from the consequences of his assault upon Oran Delaney. He went
+and delivered himself up to the authorities, accusing himself of the
+crime.</p>
+
+<p>They laughed at him at first—it was so strange for a man to accuse
+himself of crime without even a witness to testify against him—but
+he insisted that his statement was true; so they put him under
+bonds to appear when Mr. Delaney was well enough to come into
+court, and released him.</p>
+
+<p>In a day or two, when he was well enough to be seen, he told Oran
+Delaney what he had done.</p>
+
+<p>“So that, whether you live or die, your wrong will be avenged,”
+he said, grimly.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not wish it so,” said Oran Delaney, gravely. “In any
+case, I shall not appear against you. You only did what I, in your
+place, would have done. No one can blame you.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney said to himself that if the man’s sense of honor was
+so lively, he should not have acted as he did with regard to Aline.
+He said nothing, however—only turned upon his heel and left the
+room. His heart was on fire with anxiety, for he had heard no word
+of Aline since that snowy eve when, finding that her secret was discovered,
+she had fled from her home.</p>
+
+<p>Neither had any trace been found of the escaped lunatic who had
+fired Delaney House. Mrs. Griffin had been so suffocated by the
+smoke and flame of the hall that she had been unable to prosecute
+her search far. She had been forced to retreat before she had penetrated
+all the rooms. It was the same way with the men who had
+gone to the rescue. The smoke and flame had beaten them quickly
+back. So it was not certainly known yet whether the dreadful creature
+had fallen a victim to the fury of the fire her own hand had
+kindled, or if she had wandered out into the stormy night and perished
+in some of the huge drifts of snow that the wild wind had
+blown together in out-of-the-way places.</p>
+
+<p>But the storm was over now, and the deep snow was melting
+away. It was three days since Delaney House had been burned.</p>
+
+<p>The hidden secret for whose keeping poor Aline Rodney had paid
+so dire a penalty, belonged to the world now. Oran Delaney, in
+the troubles that had crowded thickly upon him, had thrown pride
+to the winds and revealed all.</p>
+
+<p>Let us listen to him as he tells his own story to Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“I will tell you my story briefly now,” he said, “and then you
+will understand why I have led such a strange, retired life. And,”
+he added, with a dark-red flush creeping over his handsome face,
+“you will know, too, that I have never harmed your beautiful
+young daughter as you think. She is as innocent and pure as she
+is fair.”</p>
+
+<p>Somehow the words carried conviction to Mr. Rodney’s heart.
+He waited eagerly for the story Mr. Delaney had promised to tell
+him.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[Pg 126]</span></p>
+
+<p>His first words filled him with horror and amazement.</p>
+
+<p>“That poor, deformed maniac whom you saw in that upper room,
+who set fire to Delaney House, was my wedded wife,” he said, with
+a shudder he could not repress.</p>
+
+<p>“Great Heavens, your wife! How could you wed that creature?”
+Mr. Rodney cried out, startled.</p>
+
+<p>“How, indeed!” echoed Mr. Delaney, with a groan. “But that
+is what I am about to tell you. I was made the innocent victim of
+a terrible fraud.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney began to feel strangely interested in this man whom
+his avenging bullet had laid low upon a bed of pain. He waited
+eagerly for further disclosures.</p>
+
+<p>“Who could have perpetrated such a monstrous fraud?” he exclaimed.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LV">
+ CHAPTER LV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>A look of bitter pain came over Mr. Delaney’s handsome face at
+those words from Mr. Rodney’s lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Who could have been so cruel, so wicked?” repeated the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>And then Mr. Delaney answered:</p>
+
+<p>“One to whom I owed a debt of gratitude, and who caused me to
+pay the heaviest price man ever paid for a like debt.”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not understand you,” said Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“I did not suppose you would. My reference was too obscure.
+I will make my meaning more clear,” said Mr. Delaney. “When
+I first went on my travels abroad, I met in France a native of that
+agreeable country, by name Monsieur Sanson. Our first meeting
+was on an occasion, when he saved my life, in what manner I will
+not now relate, as my strength would not hold out for the recital.
+But we became friends from that hour, and in course of time fellow-travelers.
+I found my new friend one of the best-read and most
+agreeable men I had ever met. He was clever, cultivated, full of
+<i>bon camaraderie</i>—in short, a man of the world, full of wit and <i>bel
+esprit</i>. He was middle-aged and good-looking and appeared to have
+the means of living well, and even extravagantly, at his command.
+He told me that he had no family ties with the exception of one
+daughter, a young and lovely creature then being educated in the
+retirement of a convent school. Of this daughter, his ‘<i>chère</i> Julie,’
+as he lovingly called her, he never wearied of talking and expatiating
+on her manifold perfections. Once he showed me a small portrait
+of her. It represented the loveliest brunette I ever beheld. I
+fell in love with her and begged to be presented, but he laughingly
+refused, telling me that he did not intend to have his plans for <i>chère</i>
+Julie spoiled in that way. After awhile he told me more seriously
+that in France the parents seldom permitted daughters to have any
+male acquaintances, fearing unfortunate love-affairs for them, as
+they were usually affianced by their parents to men of wealth and
+position.”</p>
+
+<p>“I have heard that that is the way they manage affairs of marriage
+in France,” said Mr. Rodney at this point.</p>
+
+<p>“I found it so to my cost,” groaned Oran Delaney, and then there
+was a short silence. He lay still with closed eyes, breathing heavily.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[Pg 127]</span></p>
+
+<p>“You have unduly wearied yourself in talking so much. Defer
+the remainder of your story until you are better,” said Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I will go on. I am anxious now that the secret I have kept
+so long in my morbid pride should be revealed. I am anxious to
+clear the name of Aline from the stain I suffered to rest upon it to
+save my own,” he answered.</p>
+
+<p>“My poor Aline. Shall I ever find her?” sighed the wretched
+father.</p>
+
+<p>“God grant you may. Oh, if I only were not chained down to
+this bed by my weakness, I would search the world over, but I
+would find her!” cried Oran Delaney with feverish impatience.</p>
+
+<p>A vision came over his mind of the fair young face and the sweet
+supplicating eyes, he seemed to hear her voice again as she spoke
+the strange words that made the warm blood run tingling through
+his veins with rapture.</p>
+
+<p>“I want to be your wife,” she had said, in her clear, frank voice,
+with her large eyes lifted childishly to his face, while in her exceeding
+innocence she had never dreamed of the passion of pain and
+despair in the man’s heart as he refused her request.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, Heaven, if only I might have taken her at her word,” he
+sighed to himself, “I would have taught that young heart to love,
+and that soft cheek to blush at my glance. I would have won her
+heart as well as her hand. Aline, my poor darling, where are you
+to-night?”</p>
+
+<p>He put away the thought of her with a great effort of will and
+returned with a shudder to the subject of his story.</p>
+
+<p>“I was young and impressible, Mr. Rodney. My heart was
+touched by the beauty of the picture I had seen, and Monsieur Sanson’s
+refusals to present me to the original only fanned my boyish
+passion into hotter flame. I importuned him often, but he only
+laughed at me, artfully leading me on by his apparent reluctance to
+yield to my desires. Ah, what a simple, gullible young fool I was
+in those days.”</p>
+
+<p>He paused and drew his breath with a heavy tortured sigh.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney held a reviving cordial to his lips. His heart was
+pierced with remorse as he looked at the pale face and heard the
+weak voice, and realized what a wreck he had made of the strong
+man.</p>
+
+<p>“It would be much better if you waited until you are stronger
+before you finish,” he said, compassionately, though his anxiety to
+hear the rest was very strong.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I cannot wait. Let me tell my story and clear Aline’s
+name, then if I die, what matter? I have long been weary of life,”
+sighed Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>There came to him across the mist of the long intervening months
+a memory of the words he had read to Aline when she lay wounded
+and impatient in the beautiful blue room—the words she had rejected
+in the blindness of her ignorant youth:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“How many days will it be, I wonder,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">And how will their slow length pass</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">Till I shall find rest in silence under</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">The trees and the waving grass?”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[Pg 128]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Not long now, perhaps,” he thought, wearily, for he felt
+strangely weak and faint, and his sufferings were most severe from
+his wound.</p>
+
+<p>He cleared his throat and slowly proceeded:</p>
+
+<p>“When I look back at that past time, Mr. Rodney, I am lost in
+wonder at the consummate young fool I was in those days. Would
+you believe me, sir, that in my infatuation for a girl I had never
+seen, but of whose perfections I had been told day by day for
+months, I proposed to marry Monsieur Sanson’s pretty little school-girl
+daughter?”</p>
+
+<p>“Impossible!”</p>
+
+<p>“I did, Mr. Rodney, and I was in the most serious earnest.
+Monsieur Sanson pretended to be shocked when I laid the matter
+before him, but promised that he would consider it, and assured me
+that he would have no objection to an American son-in-law, declaring
+that he admired Americans individually, and as a nation, to a
+most excessive degree. I was delighted at his blarney, which slipped
+from his tongue as easily as from a son of the Emerald Isle.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LVI">
+ CHAPTER LVI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“Monsieur Sanson must have been a villain,” exclaimed Mr.
+Rodney, vehemently.</p>
+
+<p>“He saved my life once, and now he is dead. I scarcely feel at
+liberty to express my real opinion of the man,” said Mr. Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“All obligations were canceled by the wrong he did you,” said
+Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps so. He saved my life, but then he certainly made it
+valueless to me,” said the wounded man, musingly.</p>
+
+<p>After a moment, he continued:</p>
+
+<p>“After a short time and without any further solicitation on my
+part, he consented to allow me to consider the beautiful Julie my
+<i>fiancée</i>, but only on condition that we never met until the bridal
+day. Although I was most eager to meet my fair intended bride, I
+was forced to acquiesce in his decision. Indeed, I did not greatly
+care to change it. I was carried away by the romantic idea of never
+meeting my bride until the hour that gave her to my eager arms.
+Its very difference to the customs of my own country had its peculiar
+charm for me. Monsieur Sanson wrote to his daughter, and she
+consented to the marriage in a <i>naive</i> pretty letter that transported
+me with rapture. It was arranged that the fair one would leave her
+convent school to become my bride in about six months. Do I
+weary you with all this preliminary explanation, Mr. Rodney?” inquired
+the invalid, pausing suddenly.</p>
+
+<p>“On the contrary, I am deeply interested in your story,” replied
+the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“I will hasten to the end, then,” said Oran Delaney. “We continued
+our travels for awhile, when about two months before the
+time set for my marriage, Monsieur left me, to return to his villa
+at Nice, ostensibly to make preparations for the marriage. He was
+to write to me when to come, but in little more than a week I was
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[Pg 129]</span>telegraphed to go to his death-bed. He had accidentally shot himself.”</p>
+
+<p>He was growing excited now. The feeble breath came from his
+lips in great palpitating gasps.</p>
+
+<p>“You are over-tasking yourself,” Mr. Rodney reminded him
+again.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I shall soon have done now,” Mr. Delaney answered.
+“Well, I went with all haste to Nice, and I arrived there late one
+night, and found Monsieur Sanson dying, indeed. They told me
+that he had been handling a revolver when it exploded in his hand,
+fatally wounding him. He lay at the point of death, and his one
+anxiety was his fair young daughter whom he was leaving alone in
+the world. Would I have any objection to fulfilling my marriage
+contract now, he asked me, that he might die satisfied?</p>
+
+<p>“I told him I would marry Julie at once, and his mind was at
+once relieved of its load of care. Preparations were made for a
+midnight marriage. A priest was summoned. Everything was
+arranged with perfect legality.”</p>
+
+<p>He paused and swept his aristocratic white hand wearily across
+his brow.</p>
+
+<p>“How it all comes back to me,” he said. “It was a beautiful
+summer night. A wind from the sea came into the room through
+the open windows, mingled with the breath of tropic flowers. A
+dim light burned in the room where the dying man lay breathing
+heavily. They brought my bride in to me. I could not make out
+either her face or her form for the great billows of snowy lace in
+which she was enveloped from head to foot, but I fancied that all
+womanly loveliness was centered in her form. Well, they made her
+my bride, and then led her quickly from the room, for Monsieur
+Sanson’s death-hour was near at hand. He thanked me feebly for
+what I had done, and then he bound me by a solemn oath to protect
+and cherish his Julie as long as she lived, never leaving nor forsaking
+her.</p>
+
+<p>“‘I have already promised the priest all that,’ I said, in wonder.
+That was no matter, he said, and persisted in his request that I would
+solemnly swear to do what he asked. An oath made to a dying man
+would be more sacred, he said.</p>
+
+<p>“Though I thought him unreasonable, I could refuse nothing to
+a dying man; so I took the oath he asked of me. I thought it
+could not greatly matter anyhow. I had no idea of ever forsaking
+my fair young foreign bride. I was too much infatuated with the
+charming young creature the fertile imagination of the Frenchman
+had painted for me.</p>
+
+<p>“He died in a little while after the ceremony and left me to comfort
+his bereaved daughter. It was not until after the funeral that
+she allowed me to see her. She was prostrated by the shock of her
+father’s death, they told me.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Rodney, can you guess what a terrible shock it was to
+me when I beheld her at last?</p>
+
+<p>“I had in my mind the vision of an angel. I imagined my bride
+lovely in mind as in person, and thought myself most fortunate in
+the possession of such a perfect creature.</p>
+
+<p>“When they showed me the creature to whom I had bound myself—the
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[Pg 130]</span>misshapen, deformed, blighted creature, with a mind as
+blasted and out of shape as her body—do you wonder that I almost
+went mad?”</p>
+
+<p>“Surely the laws of any land would have freed you from such a
+creature!” exclaimed Mr. Rodney, indignantly.</p>
+
+<p>“I made no attempt to free myself,” said Oran Delaney. “I
+was so shocked at finding myself placed in such a terrible position,
+so ashamed of the foolish ease with which I had fallen into the trap
+set for me, that I was like one dazed or stunned. It was some little
+while before I realized it, and then the weight of my oath to the
+dying held me back from taking any steps toward freeing myself
+from my horrible incubus.</p>
+
+<p>“Monsieur Sanson had left a letter for me, too. It was a confession.”</p>
+
+<p>“A confession!” repeated Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. It appeared that the story of the accidental shooting was
+all a hoax. The man had given himself the death-blow with a
+suicidal intent.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney uttered an exclamation of horror and dismay.</p>
+
+<p>“He had committed suicide, but why?”</p>
+
+<p>“Because he had run through his property and was reduced to
+beggary. He had led a fast and gay life and had nothing left to live
+upon. The villa and all its furniture were mortgaged beyond their
+value, and were to be seized. There would be nothing left for him
+and the deformed maniac, his daughter, whom, despite her afflictions,
+he seemed to cherish with a strange morbid affection.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney could not repress a shudder of disgust. He thought
+of his three brilliant, beautiful children with a feeling of pride, and
+he wondered that even a father’s heart could have cherished tenderness
+for the dreadful, misshapen maniac of Delaney House.</p>
+
+<p>“So he formed that dreadful plan for providing his deformed and
+maniac daughter with a husband to take care of her, and then he
+consummated it in the way I have told you. When it became impossible
+to enjoy the wealth and pleasures of this world any longer, he
+sent himself out of it, with a shocking deliberateness, and shifted
+his burden upon my shoulders.”</p>
+
+<p>“He was a villain! But you were not compelled to accept the
+loathsome legacy he bequeathed to you. The marriage, being with
+a person of unsound mind, was really null and void in the eyes of
+the law,” said the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“I did not resort to the law to help me out of my trouble,” said
+Oran Delaney. “I was too proud, for one thing, to let the public
+know how shamefully I had been duped. I was bitterly ashamed
+of my own credulity; besides, I was weighted down by the solemnity
+of my oath to the dying. I could not forsake poor Julie Sanson,
+even though I had been so horribly duped and deceived. I had
+sworn to devote my life to her; and, in his letter of confession to me,
+Monsieur Sanson again committed his daughter solemnly to my care,
+urging that, as he had once saved my life, it was but right that I
+should devote it to the daughter left so helpless and forlorn by his
+sinful death.”</p>
+
+<p>“He had much better have let you die, than saved your life to
+such a horrible end!” exclaimed Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[Pg 131]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Much better,” sighed Oran Delaney. “But, as it was, I accepted
+his dying charge. I brought Julie Sanson to America, and
+confided her to the care of my old nurse, Mrs. Griffin. I have lived
+at Delaney House in seclusion for years, shunning my kind, because
+in my morbid pride, I had sworn that the carping, censorious
+world should never know my dreadful secret. Mrs. Griffin has been
+most faithful in her trust.</p>
+
+<p>“We lived on quietly there, and poor Julie’s mania developed
+itself in two forms. She had a fierce thirst for human blood, and a
+most inordinate love for finery, delighting to array her dreadful form
+in the richest robes and most brilliant jewels. In the hope of subduing
+her bloodthirsty mania, I humored the harmless taste for
+dress to a great extent. I constantly made additions to her wardrobe,
+of the most gorgeous and dazzling apparel, and I provided her
+with a jewel-box of splendid paste imitations of diamonds. She
+never wearied of decking herself in these things, and would be quiet
+and docile for weeks together in placid enjoyment of them. Again
+her mania for shedding blood would seize upon her, and she would
+fly at me and at Mrs. Griffin in a fury of rage, with murder flashing
+from her eyes. On one occasion she accidentally got out of her room,
+possessed herself of a tiny jeweled dagger, and flew through the
+house like a raging lioness seeking her prey. On that occasion she
+wounded me first, and then your beautiful Aline!”</p>
+
+<p>As if overcome with horror, he groaned aloud and buried his face
+in the pillow.</p>
+
+<p>“Much as I would like to hear the remainder of your story, I
+must refuse to listen to you longer now, for I can see that you are
+completely exhausted,” said the lawyer. “I shall leave you now
+to repose. To-morrow, if you are better, you may continue your
+story.”</p>
+
+<p>“But I am so anxious to clear Aline in your eyes that I am too
+impatient to postpone my story,” said Oran Delaney feebly, for it
+was quite true that he was exhausted by the efforts he had made.</p>
+
+<p>“Nevertheless, I shall refuse to hear any more to-day,” answered
+the lawyer, with a smile. “I am going out now, and I shall send
+Mrs. Griffin in to take charge of you.”</p>
+
+<p>He left the room, and the old nurse came in and installed herself
+by his pillow. The next morning, after the refreshment of a sound
+night’s sleep, he continued his story to Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LVII">
+ CHAPTER LVII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“I would sooner have died than have wronged your willful, innocent
+child, Mr. Rodney,” he said. “When she came into the garden
+that day I had no thought but her pleasure. She seemed but a
+child to me, and I saw no harm in her going into Delaney House
+with me to share my lunch. I had been so long secluded from the
+world that I did not remember its hard rules. I was pleased with
+the beautiful, happy girl, and I thought that her people had treated
+her unfairly, in leaving her at home, while they went away to enjoy
+themselves. In a languid, careless way I allowed her to enjoy herself.
+It seemed very easy to her to do so.”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[Pg 132]</span></p>
+
+<p>“She had a sunny, happy temper when all went well with her,”
+said Mr. Rodney, with a heavy sigh to the memory of his self-exiled
+daughter.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I thought so,” said Oran Delaney, echoing the sigh. “I
+saw that she was willful and a trifle wild, but I thought nothing of
+it. She was too young and fair to be worldly-wise. Poor child,
+would that she had been! She had never then entered the fatal
+portals of Delaney House.”</p>
+
+<p>“Fatal indeed!” groaned the afflicted father.</p>
+
+<p>“I blame myself that I let her enter there,” said Oran Delaney.
+“The child must have charmed me, for I forgot my usual prudence
+and allowed myself to be pleased in her happiness. She ate her
+lunch with me, then, frightened at the flight of time, left me and
+ran out into the hall to go home. It was then that the accident happened
+to her.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney listened with painful interest.</p>
+
+<p>“While she was going though the hall,” continued Mr. Delaney,
+“a series of horrible shrieks saluted our ears from the upper hall.
+Horrified at my carelessness I bade Aline fly home, and I rushed up
+the stairs to confront the dangerous maniac. I met her in the upper
+hall, arrayed in all the splendor of her wedding-robes, with a flashing
+dagger in her hand and fury flashing from her eyes. She rushed
+at me with a murderous shriek, and before I could disarm her she
+had thrust the keen point of her dagger into the fleshy part of my
+arm. The keen pain threw me off my guard a moment, and in that
+moment the would-be murderess escaped me and flew down the
+stairs. Heedless of my wounded arm, I followed her, but was just
+one minute too late. Just as I reached her, she had pursued Aline
+through the deserted parlor, and the poor girl fell across the threshold
+wounded in the breast by the maniac’s dagger. I came up to them
+just in time to arrest the second descent of the blade. Mrs. Griffin
+came to my assistance, and together we disarmed Julie, and locked
+her into her room again.”</p>
+
+<p>He paused, drew a heavy sigh, and then continued:</p>
+
+<p>“Then my folly and selfishness began. I knew that I ought at
+once to apprise Aline’s parents of her accident, and yet I also knew
+that to do so must be to disclose the hidden secret of my deformed
+and maniac bride to the world. My morbid self-consciousness
+shrunk from it. I felt that I could not endure the ordeal. Hastily,
+and without counting the cost to the victim of Julie’s dreadful
+mania, I decided upon my course. I removed Aline to a comfortable
+chamber, and Mrs. Griffin attended upon her faithfully. I went
+to Maywood and brought Doctor Anthony to see her. He did not
+consider the wound dangerous, so I did not have him renew the
+visit. I considered it too hazardous to my secret. You may well
+look at me reproachfully, Mr. Rodney. I can understand now how
+culpably I acted, but then my conscience was deadened within me
+by my sensitive horror of the world’s finding out my bitter secret.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney had no words to answer him. He sat listening in
+painful silence.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline was very angry, when she recovered consciousness and
+found that I was determined not to apprise her parents of her situation.
+I told her that she should never leave Delaney House until
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[Pg 133]</span>she swore solemnly never to divulge the secret of her whereabouts
+and the manner in which she came by her wound. She refused in
+the bitterest terms at first, declaring that she would never keep the
+secret from her parents. I told her that she should never even see
+them again until she obeyed my dictation.”</p>
+
+<p>“My poor girl!” sighed Aline’s father.</p>
+
+<p>“I was hard and cruel; I recognize it now, although I did not
+then comprehend the enormity of what I was doing,” said Oran
+Delaney. “Aline was bitterly angry. She declared that she would
+never submit to such injustice; and she worked herself up into such
+a state that she became dangerously ill. There were six weeks when
+we nursed her night and day, scarcely believing that she would live
+from one day to another.”</p>
+
+<p>“And yet you would not let us know! I do not believe that I
+can ever forgive you,” cried Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“I can never forgive myself,” Mr. Delaney answered, sadly.
+“But I was willfully blind; I never once realized the full enormity
+of my offense against you and your daughter—my selfish misery
+made me desperate. I was agonized by her sufferings, but I never
+once relented. When she at length convalesced and renewed her
+entreaties to go home, I steadily refused to allow her to do so until
+she had bound herself to solemn silence. She was as obdurate as I
+was, at first. She affirmed that she would never do so. But, at
+the end of three months, her girlish patience gave way, and, in her
+anxiety to see her dear ones again, she weakened and solemnly bound
+herself to all that I asked her. Then, after telling me, in a gush of
+girlish passion, that she hated me, she went home.”</p>
+
+<p>He paused, and there was a deep silence in the room. He was
+thinking of the night when the graceful young figure had flitted out
+from the doors of Delaney House, leaving it darker and more
+gloomy than ever. He recalled the last moment of her stay, when,
+with her small hand clinched in bitter, impotent wrath, she had
+said, scathingly:</p>
+
+<p>“I hate you, Oran Delaney, for all that you have made me suffer!”</p>
+
+<p>The words had pierced his heart like a sword point. They had
+remained with him ever since, growing harder to bear day by day.
+He could not bear that those frank blue eyes should rest on him
+with hate and scorn. It was like a wound in his heart.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LVIII">
+ CHAPTER LVIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney was thinking too. He remembered the night that
+Aline had come home. All that was strange in her manner then was
+explained away now. He remembered how hard and stern he had
+been with her; how he had been goaded to desperation by the fear
+that she was a miserable sinner. A weight of care was lifted from
+his mind by Oran Delaney’s revelation.</p>
+
+<p>“God, I thank Thee!” he cried, lifting his hands involuntarily to
+heaven, “that my beloved daughter is proved innocent of all the evil
+laid to her charge.”</p>
+
+<p>“She is innocent as an angel,” said Oran Delaney. “I do not
+ask you to believe my unsupported testimony. Mrs. Griffin will
+confirm all that I have told you.”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[Pg 134]</span></p>
+
+<p>He was silent for a moment, then added, gravely:</p>
+
+<p>“I wish you to make public to the world all that I have told you,
+Mr. Rodney. It is my dearest wish, whether I live or die, to have
+Aline’s memory cleared from all stain. Let all my folly and shame
+be known, all my pride and weakness, so that she be proven innocent
+and deserving.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is hard upon you, but it is only just to Aline and her family,”
+said Aline’s father.</p>
+
+<p>“It is just, and I deserve it,” said Oran Delaney. “The world
+will censure me; but let it do so, I am ready to bear it. Indeed, it
+will be a relief to my mind to have the truth known. I am weary
+of evasion and concealment, even if concealment were possible any
+longer.”</p>
+
+<p>A look of grave anxiety was on his pale, drawn face.</p>
+
+<p>“There is a weight upon my heart that nothing can shake off,”
+he said. “Poor Julie Sanson—she whom I swore to the dying
+never to leave nor forsake—oh, what has been her terrible fate? Is
+she dead in the ruins of Delaney House, or in the drifts of snow?”</p>
+
+<p>“Whichever has been her fate, it is a most happy release for her
+imprisoned soul,” said Mr. Rodney. “You cannot regret her!”</p>
+
+<p>“No; only the horrible manner of her death, if, indeed she be
+dead,” Mr. Delaney answered.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not believe that there can be any doubt as to that,” said
+Mr. Rodney. “If she had lived, we must have heard of it. My
+own opinion is that she never escaped from the burning house.”</p>
+
+<p>“It is most unlikely,” said Mr. Delaney, and then he lay silent,
+musing deeply: “Was Julie Sanson, the poor, deformed lunatic
+dead, indeed? Was he free, indeed? Free—his heart gave a great
+throb of almost painful rapture at the thought—to marry Aline
+Rodney if she would give herself to him?”</p>
+
+<p>“Tell me one thing,” said Mr. Rodney, breaking in, abruptly,
+on his musing mood. “Why did Aline come to you that night
+when I found out her secret?”</p>
+
+<p>They looked at each other, steadfastly. A hot, red flush mounted
+to Oran Delaney’s face.</p>
+
+<p>“She wished me to save the honor of her name by linking it with
+mine,” he said, in a low, pained voice.</p>
+
+<p>“And you?” said Mr. Rodney, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>“I was not free, you know. I was bound to Julie Sanson by
+that wretched farce,” answered the other.</p>
+
+<p>“You refused her request?”</p>
+
+<p>“I could do no less,” Oran Delaney answered, in a low, tortured
+voice.</p>
+
+<p>“My God, then, the child has been driven desperate! Who would
+have dreamed that my fury that night would have driven her to such
+a step! I shall never see her again. She has gone away and died
+of shame for her thoughtlessness,” cried Mr. Rodney, wringing his
+hands in impotent despair.</p>
+
+<p>“No, no, it was not thoughtlessness, it was the act of an angel,”
+cried Oran Delaney. “It was to save me from the threatened duel.
+She had no thought of self at all! And I, oh, my God, if she had
+not been an angel, I should have taken her at her word, for the
+temptation was almost too great for human endurance. For I love
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[Pg 135]</span>her, Mr. Rodney, with all the madness of a first, great love. Guess
+how cruelly hard it was to me to hear her sweet voice pleading for
+that which would have been Heaven itself to me, and to be forced to
+put her away from me!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LIX">
+ CHAPTER LIX
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>There was a moment’s silence and Mr. Rodney gazed steadily at
+the flushed face and sparkling eyes of the man who thus avowed his
+love for beautiful Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“I love her,” he repeated. “She won my heart in the three
+months while she stayed in Delaney House. At first I thought her a
+spoiled willful child, whose sharp tongue and determined obstinacy
+excited my anger, but as I grew to know her better, when I found
+out what a warm and tender little heart beat under all her brusqueries
+and waywardness, she stole into my heart, unconsciously to
+myself. I would have given all the world for the power to make her
+my wife. But, alas! even as I love her, she hates me, and justly,
+too, I own, for she has been most deeply wronged by my cowardly
+silence: I cannot blame her if she never forgives me for my fault.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin came in with some tea and toast. While she was arranging
+it Mr. Delaney asked, suddenly:</p>
+
+<p>“Will you tell me now, Mr. Rodney, how you became possessed
+of the secret of Aline’s whereabouts?”</p>
+
+<p>The lawyer glanced with a smile at Mrs. Griffin.</p>
+
+<p>“If I should tell you that your good nurse there is the traitor,
+would you believe me?” he said.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin looked at him, red with indignation.</p>
+
+<p>“Indeed, sir, you need not charge it on me,” she said, quickly.
+“Mr. Delaney knows that no one is more faithful to his interests
+than I am. Why, sir, I carried him in these arms when he was a
+baby, and do you think any one could make him believe I could betray
+anything he wanted kept secret?”</p>
+
+<p>The humorous twinkle in Mr. Rodney’s blue eyes deepened. He
+waited until the old woman had arranged the invalid’s repast to his
+satisfaction, and then said slyly:</p>
+
+<p>“Your new lace cap is very becoming, Mrs. Griffin. I should
+like to know where you bought it?”</p>
+
+<p>It was very fortunate that the nurse had put down the tea-tray,
+for otherwise she must certainly have dropped it, such a start she
+gave at those words. She stared at Mr. Rodney, her complexion
+turning to a brilliant crimson.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, what do you mean, Mr. Rodney?” she gasped amazedly.</p>
+
+<p>“Have you forgotten Cheap Jane?” he asked, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>Instantly Mrs. Griffin’s mind went back to that snowy eve when,
+in her loneliness, she had been overpowered by the temptation to
+admit the female peddler within the tabooed precincts of Delaney
+House. The guilty red of her cheeks grew brighter. She glanced
+apprehensively at her master. He was gazing at her in wonder.</p>
+
+<p>“What does he mean?” Oran Delaney asked her.</p>
+
+<p>She shook her head, and glanced inquiringly at Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I remember Cheap Jane,” she said. “But what has that
+to do with Miss Rodney and my master?”</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[Pg 136]</span></p>
+
+<p>“If you will tell Mr. Delaney all that you know about Cheap
+Jane, I will show you the connection,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin was heartily ashamed at the thought of her adventure
+with Cheap Jane being exposed; but she saw that it was too late
+to attempt concealment. She made a virtue of necessity, and related
+the story to Mr. Delaney, frankly apologizing for her fault.</p>
+
+<p>“I know I did wrong,” she said, turning to Mr. Rodney; “but
+still I cannot see what harm was done by my imprudence. The old
+creature only stayed a little while.”</p>
+
+<p>“That is where you are mistaken,” said Mr. Rodney. “Cheap
+Jane spent the night in Delaney House.”</p>
+
+<p>“Spent the night?” she echoed, staring at him stupidly:</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“But how could that be?” exclaimed Oran Delaney, looking up
+from his untasted toast. He was too much excited to eat.</p>
+
+<p>“It happened in this way,” said the lawyer. “When Mrs. Griffin
+went to answer your bell, the peddler slipped into a deserted room,
+and hid herself and her basket of potions in an unused closet. She
+thus remained in Delaney House all night.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin wrung her plump hands, and cried out, dejectedly,
+“The wretch!”</p>
+
+<p>But Oran Delaney did not utter one word; he only gazed inquiringly
+into the face of the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“She remained at Delaney House all night,” repeated Mr. Rodney.
+“After the inmates were locked in unsuspecting slumber, the
+hidden peddler came forth and prowled through the house. You
+were sick that night, Mr. Delaney. In your fever and unrest you
+talked to the walls in your room—you revealed the secret of Aline’s
+stay in your house.”</p>
+
+<p>“Great Heaven!” he cried.</p>
+
+<p>“It is strange, but true,” said the lawyer. “And your uninvited
+guest, the peddler, who had stolen into your house like a thief by
+night, heard all. It was from him I learned all I knew—namely,
+that Aline had been a wounded prisoner in Delaney House.”</p>
+
+<p>“You said ‘from him’—yet I understood that the peddler was a
+woman,” exclaimed Oran Delaney, quickly.</p>
+
+<p>“A man in disguise,” explained the lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“Then it was no common person—the plan was a deep-laid one,”
+said Oran Delaney, with an inquiring look into the other’s face.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>“No, it was not I,” he said. “It was a detective whom I employed
+last summer to trace Aline. He failed at first, but when she
+came back to us and refused to reveal the secret of her absence, he
+set himself to work to ferret out the truth.”</p>
+
+<p>“And succeeded,” said Oran Delaney, with bitter sadness.
+“And where is your clever detective now?”</p>
+
+<p>“He is again on the track of my missing daughter. I have for
+the second time employed him to find her.”</p>
+
+<p>“He shall be richly rewarded if he succeeds,” exclaimed Oran
+Delaney, earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>He lay silent for a moment, and then added gravely and thoughtfully:</p>
+
+<p>“I can bear no resentment against your clever detective, Mr. Rodney.
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[Pg 137]</span>I am glad now that the truth has been found out. A burden
+is lifted from my heart.”</p>
+
+<p>“You are not angry with Mr. Lane for his bold invasion of your
+house, and his betrayal of your secret?” exclaimed Mr. Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I am not angry. I am glad that the truth has been revealed.
+I feel quite curious to see your Mr. Lane.”</p>
+
+<p>“Perhaps you will permit me to bring him to see you?” said the
+lawyer.</p>
+
+<p>“Willingly,” answered Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>He did so the next day, after he had told Mr. Delaney’s story to
+him, and the good-looking detective spent an hour with the wounded
+man. Mr. Delaney was most anxious that Aline should be found.</p>
+
+<p>“Only find her,” he said, earnestly, to Mr. Lane, “and you shall
+name your own reward.”</p>
+
+<p>A strange expression gleamed in the eyes of the detective.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall make every effort to find her,” he said. “But I tell
+you frankly, Mr. Delaney, I am not working up this case for money.”</p>
+
+<p>“Of course you have a professional interest and reputation at
+stake,” said Mr. Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“It is not that, either,” said the detective.</p>
+
+<p>They gazed steadily into each other’s eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“I will tell you the truth, Mr. Delaney,” said Mr. Lane. “I find
+that my early professional interest in this case has merged into a
+romantic one. People call me a woman-hater where I am best
+known, and I confess that female society has hitherto had no charms
+for me. But the beauty and sweetness of Miss Rodney have won
+my heart. If I find her I shall ask no reward from her father except
+her hand, if she will give it to me.”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane paused and waited for a reply. He did not dream
+what an agonizing pang tore through Oran Delaney’s heart in that
+moment.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you think she loves you, Mr. Lane?” he faltered then, in a
+hollow voice.</p>
+
+<p>“Scarcely; for I have had no chance to woo her,” said Mr. Lane.
+“And yet it is so much better that she should marry that perhaps
+she will waive that consideration. Afterward I could teach her to
+love me.”</p>
+
+<p>Again that fierce, jealous pang tore through Oran Delaney’s heart.
+A vision came over him of the beautiful young face and the violet
+eyes with their shady lashes of deepest jet. How much more beautiful
+it would be when the woman’s heart was awakened in her.
+How that charming face would be glorified by love!</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, Heaven, only to call her mine!” he groaned to himself.
+“It is cruel, cruel, that this man should take advantage of her
+trouble to try to win her. He has no right to her. She is far above
+him. Her beauty and sweetness make her the peer of any one in the
+land.”</p>
+
+<p>He silently repeated some lines to himself:</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“A king might lay his scepter down,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">But I am poor and naught;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">The brow should wear a golden crown</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">That wears her in its thought.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[Pg 138]</span></p>
+
+<p>He looked fixedly at Mr. Lane.</p>
+
+<p>“Why do you say that it will be better for Miss Rodney to
+marry?” he asked, slowly.</p>
+
+<p>“Surely, you know that her long stay in Delaney House has
+so damaged her maiden fame that she can never take her proper
+place in the world until sheltered by some good man’s name,” said
+the detective.</p>
+
+<p>“You forget that I have explained everything, and that Miss Rodney’s
+reputation is cleared from every shadow of blame,” exclaimed
+Mr. Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I do not forget it. But I know that the world is censorious
+and cruel, and I am not sure whether it will accept your statement
+as true. At any rate, I am prepared to help Miss Rodney all that I
+can. I am rich and prosperous. I will marry her and take her
+away forever from this place where she has suffered so much if she
+will have me.”</p>
+
+<p>He paused a moment, and then added:</p>
+
+<p>“Of course if you were not already married, Mr. Delaney, you
+would be the most proper husband for Miss Rodney, but, as it is, I
+feel myself quite free to woo and wed her if I can, and to save her
+from all the troubles she would be likely to endure, unmarried.”</p>
+
+<p>He went out and left Mr. Delaney to some bitter reflections.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LX">
+ CHAPTER LX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>When Mr. Delaney’s physician came next day he declared that
+his patient was not as well as he had expected to find him. He
+looked apprehensive over him.</p>
+
+<p>“What have they been doing to you?” he asked, brusquely.</p>
+
+<p>“I have had the best of care, doctor,” Mr. Delaney answered.</p>
+
+<p>The old physician looked at him, curiously. The dark, handsome
+face was grave, and there was a settled sadness on it. But the
+tone, more than the words, struck the physician. A heartache ran
+drearily through it.</p>
+
+<p>“You are fretting over something,” he said. “Come, Delaney,
+this will not do. You will never get well at this rate.”</p>
+
+<p>Oran Delaney only smiled, but he said to himself that he did not
+greatly care. He had long been tired of his life. What matter
+how soon the end came. There would be no one to grieve for him,
+except his faithful old nurse. He thought of Mr. Rodney, but he
+said to himself that no jury in this southern land would convict him
+even if his victim died. All would think him justified in avenging
+his daughter.</p>
+
+<p>That day Mr. Delaney made his will. He left Mrs. Griffin a comfortable
+legacy, left a large sum of money to take care of the maniac,
+Julie Sanson, if she was ever found, and the residue of his large
+fortune he bequeathed unconditionally to Aline Rodney.</p>
+
+<p>And then he said to himself that he was ready to die. He had
+provided the best he could for the future of the girl whom he loved,
+and he had no more left to live for. His life had been ruined in its
+prime by a bad man’s treachery. Hope, love, happiness, henceforth
+could be only names to him. He did not care to live.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[Pg 139]</span></p>
+
+<p>A great despair had fallen upon him. He had wakened up to the
+one grand passion of his life, and it was utterly hopeless. He loved
+Aline Rodney, but she hated him for the sorrow he had brought
+into her young life. She would marry Mr. Lane, perhaps, when she
+came home again, and Oran Delaney said to himself, with a pang of
+the bitterest despair, that he would rather be dead than live to see
+the fair young creature he loved the wife of another.</p>
+
+<p>Days went and came, and he lay there wearily and hopelessly, and
+the physician went and came daily, growing more and more puzzled
+over him.</p>
+
+<p>“He goes down hill every day, and yet, the case was very favorable
+at first,” he said to Mr. Rodney. “I am puzzled over him. I
+am afraid it is the mind wearing out the body. What do you think
+about it?”</p>
+
+<p>“I have the same opinion as you,” the lawyer answered. “It is
+not the wound I gave him, it is mental trouble that is killing him.
+It is the old fable of the sword wearing out the scabbard.”</p>
+
+<p>“Can nothing be done?” asked the old physician, who had become
+deeply interested in his new patient.</p>
+
+<p>“Nothing, I am quite sure,” Mr. Rodney answered, for he knew
+now all the pain and sorrow and remorse that were killing Oran Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>“Then he must die. All my medical skill can avail nothing to
+save him,” answered the physician, regretfully.</p>
+
+<p>In the meantime Mr. Rodney had followed out Mr. Delaney’s
+wishes. He had made public all that strange secret, whose keeping
+had cast that black shadow over Aline’s life.</p>
+
+<p>Chester was all agog with curiosity and excitement. It was a nine
+days’ wonder.</p>
+
+<p>As often happens in such cases, there was a complete revulsion of
+feeling. The great wave of public sentiment rolled toward Aline
+in a gush of pity and sympathy. The world was not as bad as Mr.
+Lane had believed it. No one was found to doubt the story Mr.
+Delaney had told on what all believed to be his death-bed. It was
+so strange and romantic, it appealed so powerfully to that love of
+the wonderful and mysterious inherent in all hearts, that every one
+believed it. If Aline had been at home society would have made
+her the heroine of the hour. It would have taken her to its heart of
+hearts, and worshiped her as blindly as it had wronged her. It
+would have made atonement for its hasty judgment, but pity and
+regret were now alike too late. Aline had vanished out of her old
+life as utterly as if she were dead and buried. The places that had
+known her knew her now no more. In her home they mourned her
+as one dead.</p>
+
+<p>In the stress of her trouble and anxiety, poor Mrs. Rodney had
+taken down to her sick-bed again. The pretty, self-possessed, dignified
+lady was completely broken down. She blamed herself as
+the author of all her beautiful daughter’s sorrow.</p>
+
+<p>“I was too harsh, too strict with her. Her faults were only those
+of youth and inexperience, united to high spirits. Her punishments
+were too severe, and I am rightly punished for my hardness of heart,”
+wept and sighed the poor mother, in the long winter nights, while
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[Pg 140]</span>she tossed upon her sleepless bed, tormented with remorse and misery
+over the treatment she had given Aline.</p>
+
+<p>A month passed away, and it was time for the return of Dr. Anthony
+and Effie from their bridal tour. They were to settle down to
+housekeeping in a pretty house the doctor owned at Maywood.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney yearned for Effie’s return. She longed to pour into
+her sympathizing ears all her sorrow and despair at the loss, for the
+second time, of her beautiful Aline.</p>
+
+<p>The cottage was a most dreary place for sunny-tempered Max
+Rodney, in those days. He missed his beautiful sisters, the gentle,
+graceful Effie, and the light-hearted, volatile Aline. His mother
+was always in tears, now, and seldom left her room. Besides, there
+was a real invalid in the house, and the enforced quiet was most irksome
+to the high spirited lad whose gay voice, blending with his
+younger sister’s, had been wont to waken joyous echoes from garret
+to cellar of the roomy cottage. In despair, Max took to spending
+the most of his time from home, unreproved by his grief-stricken
+parents, who had become almost apathetic in their dumb, agonizing
+sorrow for their lost daughter.</p>
+
+<p>And one day, when the sun was shining brightly, and the winter
+snows that had lain for weeks upon the frozen earth were melting
+under its genial glow, Max came home from a long excursion with
+“the boys,” and burst into his mother’s room like a small cyclone
+or tornado.</p>
+
+<p>“Mamma,” he cried, all in a flurry, “may I go into Mr. Delaney’s
+room? I have something to tell him.”</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Rodney looked curiously at the flushed cheeks and sparkling
+blue eyes of her handsome boy.</p>
+
+<p>“Why, what is it, my dear?” she asked. “You know the doctor
+wishes to keep Mr. Delaney very quiet. He is very low now, and
+we must do all that we can to make him well; for if he died, people
+would look upon your dear papa as a murderer!”</p>
+
+<p>She shuddered; but the boy’s eyes flashed, and he cried out,
+proudly:</p>
+
+<p>“No one would call papa a murderer, mamma, even if Mr. Delaney
+died. He was right to shoot Mr. Delaney if he thought he
+had my sister shut up in his house. I have heard a lot of people say
+so. If I had been a man, I should have shot him myself.”</p>
+
+<p>“But you are not a man, Max, so you must not talk so boldly.
+What is this that you have to tell Mr. Delaney?”</p>
+
+<p>“A bit of news that will please him, I dare say,” said the boy.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Max, is it news of Aline?” quivered the poor mother.</p>
+
+<p>“No, no, mamma; for of course I would tell you that first,” said
+the boy.</p>
+
+<p>“Then what can it be? You know we must not excite Mr. Delaney,
+dear. It might be his death. You must tell me what you
+have heard, and then I can decide better if you may be allowed to
+tell him.”</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, mamma, I wanted to be the first to tell him,” objected the
+boy.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sorry; but we must not run the risk, indeed,” Mrs. Rodney
+said.</p>
+
+<p>Max looked disappointed.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[Pg 141]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Well, then, I cannot keep it any longer!” he burst out. “We—that
+is, the boys and me—we have found Mr. Delaney’s crazy
+wife—”</p>
+
+<p>“Impossible!” Mrs. Rodney exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Under a melted snow-drift,” continued Max. “She must have
+been dead a long time—ever since that night she set fire to Delaney
+House, I guess—for she is in a very bad state; but we are perfectly
+certain that she is the one. She is dressed just as papa described her,
+in the finery and the jewels. Do you think that Mr. Delaney will be
+glad, mamma?”</p>
+
+<p>“Glad that the poor creature is dead, Max?” she cried, quite
+shocked.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, mamma,” he replied, undauntedly. “Everybody should
+be glad, for what pleasure could that poor, afflicted creature have in
+her life, and why should one wish her to live? Mr. Delaney will be
+glad, I know, and no one can blame him!”</p>
+
+<p>“Hush, dear, you do not know what you are saying,” said his
+mother, “and, besides, this is all surmise on your part. It may not
+be the woman at all.”</p>
+
+<p>“Very well, mamma, we shall soon know, for they have sent me
+to bring Mrs. Griffin to identity her,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>It all turned out as the little lad had said. The poor creature who
+had lain for long weeks under the frozen snow-drifts proved to be
+Julie Sanson, indeed. The mystery of her fate was solved at last.
+She had not perished in the fiery flames that consumed Delaney
+House. She had wandered out into the dark and stormy night and
+met her death in the cold, white, drifting snow that wrapped the
+earth like a ghostly winding sheet.</p>
+
+<p>It came upon Oran Delaney with a shock that the deformed maniac
+was dead. It pained him that death had come to her in such
+horrible shape. Indeed, the very existence of such a creature upon
+the earth had always seemed to him something for which one might
+almost arraign Divine Providence. Why was it permitted?</p>
+
+<p>“I cannot understand it,” he said. “And it pains me that she
+died so hard a death. Yet I cannot be sorry that she is dead. She
+was a horrible burden upon my life, and her existence was a joyless
+one. I thank God that having done my duty by her, I am free at
+last.”</p>
+
+<p>They buried her quietly and simply, but the circumstances were
+so well known that a large number of people attended the burial.
+Every one rejoiced that Oran Delaney was free at last from the horrible
+fetters that had bound him. He had become quite a hero in
+these few days.</p>
+
+<p>When his strange story became well known it excited the greatest
+sympathy and pity. Many of the townspeople would have liked to
+call upon him to express their feelings, but this was strictly forbidden
+by the physician, who prescribed the strictest quiet for his patient.
+Every one was very sorry for him, although under the peculiar circumstances
+of the case no one ever blamed Mr. Rodney for what he
+had done. Every father sympathized with him, and declared that
+with the same provocation they would have done the same.</p>
+
+<p>Effie came at last. Dr. Anthony drove over from Maywood with
+her the morning after their return. There was a most affecting
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[Pg 142]</span>meeting between mother and daughter. Mrs. Rodney fell on the
+bride’s neck in tears. Effie listened to her story of Aline’s disappearance,
+with a strange look upon her beautiful, happy face.</p>
+
+<p>“And he is here, Effie, Mr. Delaney is here,” she said. “It is
+stranger than a novel, is it not? Aline lay wounded and ill in his
+house once, and now here he is in ours, wounded and dying.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXI">
+ CHAPTER LXI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony was most anxious to meet Oran Delaney when they
+told him the story of all that had transpired while he and Effie were
+absent upon their bridal tour.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Rodney undertook to ask Mr. Delaney’s permission to present
+his son-in-law to him. He felt rather dubious over it. He was not
+at all sure that he would care to meet Dr. Anthony under the new
+conditions in which he found himself.</p>
+
+<p>To his surprise Mr. Delaney was willing and eager to meet the
+young physician whom he had treated so cavalierly on that long-to-be-remembered
+night. He declared that it would not excite him at
+all. On the contrary, it would be a relief to see him and ask his
+pardon for his rudeness.</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony was surprised when he entered the room and saw
+the man whom he remembered so vividly, although he had never seen
+his face. He now beheld one of the handsomest men he had ever
+seen in his life in spite of the pallor and emaciation of illness and
+hopelessness. He thought he had never seen such splendid, fathomless
+dark eyes as those that now turned upon his face with something
+that was almost humility in their sad gaze as he extended his
+hand.</p>
+
+<p>“Dr. Anthony, I do not know how to ask you to forgive me for
+the way I treated you,” he said. “But I was half maddened with
+fears for Miss Rodney. That must be my excuse.”</p>
+
+<p>“I am not at all angry with you,” said Dr. Anthony, with his
+frank smile. “I can find it in my heart to excuse your rashness,
+considering the circumstances of the case.”</p>
+
+<p>And after that the two men were good friends always. The
+genial, handsome young doctor, who was so happy with his fair
+young bride, had a great fund of pity and sympathy for the man
+who, while but a few years older than himself, had had his whole
+life blasted by the treachery of one whom he believed his friend.</p>
+
+<p>“You cannot know how I regret it all,” said Oran Delaney, unburdening
+his heart to this new friend as men do sometimes on rare
+occasions to one another. “If I could go back to that day and undo
+all the harm I caused Miss Rodney by my stubborn pride, I would
+give all that I own, my poor life into the bargain. I was mad and
+blind. I had brooded over my secret until it assumed such gigantic
+proportions of shame and sorrow that I grew morbid over it. I
+would have risked anything rather than have it revealed to the world.
+I was frantic with fear when that poor lunatic attempted Miss Rodney’s
+life. I believed that the poor girl would surely betray my secret
+if I let her go free. So I bound her by that cruel oath—how cruel
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[Pg 143]</span>I did not know; for I did not think of the dreadful consequences to
+her.”</p>
+
+<p>“Dreadful, indeed!” assented Dr. Anthony.</p>
+
+<p>“And now, if by the sacrifice of my life I could bring her back to
+her friends, I would most gladly die,” said Oran Delaney, with an
+earnestness that carried conviction to the hearer’s heart. “I pray
+daily to God that Mr. Lane will succeed in finding her.”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not believe that he will ever do so,” said Dr. Anthony with
+<i>empressement</i>.</p>
+
+<p>“You do not surely believe that she is dead!” cried Oran Delaney,
+with horror and despair in his face and voice.</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Anthony looked pityingly at the pale, handsome face lying on
+the white pillow with the ruddy blaze of the firelight casting a sort
+of false glow on its deep pallor. He saw that Oran Delaney’s remorse
+and despair and grief were most genuine.</p>
+
+<p>“You do not surely believe that she is dead?” he cried in the utmost
+despair, and Dr. Anthony answered, sadly:</p>
+
+<p>“Why not? No tidings have come to you of her fate. Is it not
+most probable that she has perished in the cruel snow-drifts even as
+poor Julie Sanson did?”</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Delaney shuddered, and put up his thin, white hands before
+his face.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, for Heaven’s sake, do not name Aline, in the same breath
+with that creature!” he cried. “No, no, I cannot believe that she
+is dead! Heaven would not be so cruel! She will come back, my
+beautiful darling, even if it is not until the cold earth is heaped upon
+my breast!”</p>
+
+<p>Then with a great effort he threw off the terrible agitation that
+possessed him; he looked at Dr. Anthony and said, sadly:</p>
+
+<p>“In my weakness I have revealed my secret to you, Doctor Anthony.
+I love Aline—have loved her ever since she was an inmate
+of my home. My shame and sorrow and remorse for all that I have
+done are killing me by inches. If she does not come back soon I
+shall never see her. I shall be dead—killed by my love and sorrow!”</p>
+
+<p>“I am sorry for you!” cried Dr. Anthony, melted by the exceeding
+grief of the other. “But indeed you must not agitate yourself like
+this. It is very hurtful to you.”</p>
+
+<p>He hastened to feel the patient’s pulse, and seeing that he was
+considerably agitated, administered the composing draught that
+stood ready upon the little table, and went out to seek his wife, who
+was with her mother.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXII">
+ CHAPTER LXII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>The early winter eve was falling drearily when Dr. Anthony went
+out of the room, and left Oran Delaney alone, watching the dark
+shadows that already began to creep about the corners—fantastic
+shadows cast by the leaping blue and yellow flames of the fire.</p>
+
+<p>He lay still and watched the eerie darkness closing in with strange
+feelings. Just so was his life ebbing to a close, just so the shadows
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[Pg 144]</span>of eternity were falling around him. Life’s brief day was almost
+ended. It seemed to him that already he felt the chill of the grave
+in which he would soon be lying.</p>
+
+<p>“When I am dead she will come back,” he said to himself. “She
+will be here again in her old home, with all the shadows lifted from
+her, and she will be happy. Poor little wronged Aline! I should
+like to see her just once more to ask her to forgive me for my fault.
+To the dying all things are forgiven.”</p>
+
+<p>He closed his eyes and lay thinking of the time when he had first
+met her, a lovely, volatile creature, who half vexed and half amused
+him. He did not dream then that she would be his fate. Now
+memory went back and recalled her to his mind as the fairest vision
+that ever blessed man’s eyes.</p>
+
+<p>He hardly knew how love had come to him first. He could recall
+the time when he had been most angry with her, when he would
+have liked, above all things, to give her a hard shaking for her petulance,
+her unreasonableness, her childishness. He thought it must
+have been in those days when she lay ill and unconscious, and he
+had hung above her in an agony of fear lest she should die there
+away from all who loved her and grieved for her. He had fancied
+that the blue eyes dwelt upon him wistfully, and followed him even
+in the wildness of delirium with a strange half recognition. Then
+in the long, slow days of convalescence, when she was helpless as a
+child, the sweet, pale, reproachful face had crept into his heart.
+When in her anger she would tell him that she would stay at Delaney
+House and die there before she would take the cruel oath required
+of her, he was conscious that his heart had beat half gladly at the
+thought of her staying beneath the same roof with him and his
+misery. But he put the thought away from him as selfish, and tried
+to be glad when she broke down at last, and pledged herself to the
+silence he required of her.</p>
+
+<p>That night when she went back to the cottage he had spent in a
+miserable vigil watching her window with haggard, anxious eyes,
+yet little dreaming of all that was transpiring behind it, or how
+bitterly the girl would have to suffer for her silence. Man-like, he
+had not thought of the world’s busy tongues, always wagging in
+cruel despite.</p>
+
+<p>Well, it was all over now for Aline, and all over for him. He
+would not believe that she was dead. He could not fancy those violet
+eyes closed in the eternal sleep—those sweet lips silent forever!
+God would not be so cruel now when life was opening so fairly for
+her, the shadows all gone from her sky and her pathway bright with
+the sunshine. She would come home and be happy after he was
+dead.</p>
+
+<p>Deeper and deeper grew the shadows in the room. The fire sputtered
+and sparkled, and a cinder fell noisily from the grate. He had
+become so very nervous that even that little thing made him start
+and open his eyes.</p>
+
+<p>He opened them and glanced about the room. A cry broke from
+his lips. He was not alone!</p>
+
+<p>Just between him and the flickering firelight stood a girlish, graceful
+figure with loosely falling hair, and a lovely white face turned
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[Pg 145]</span>toward him. The blood around his heart seemed suddenly to turn
+to ice.</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">“What was it? A lying trick of the brain?</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">Yet I thought I saw her stand,</div>
+ <div class="verse indent1">A shadow, there, at my feet.</div>
+ <div class="verse indent3">High over the shadowing land.</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<hr class="tb">
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent0">The ghastly wraith of one that I know.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXIII">
+ CHAPTER LXIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>After that one cry of surprise and wonder, Oran Delaney could
+not utter another word. He stared speechlessly at the fair vision
+that had arisen, as it were, between him and the flickering firelight.</p>
+
+<p>Until this moment he had had an abiding conviction that Aline
+Rodney was not dead. His conviction was staggered now. How
+else had she come there, a silent shadow in his room, save from the
+world of shadows?</p>
+
+<div class="poetry-container">
+ <div class="poetry">
+ <div class="stanza">
+ <div class="verse indent12">“She is not of us, as I divine;</div>
+ <div class="verse indent0">She comes from another stiller world of the dead.”</div>
+ </div>
+ </div>
+</div>
+
+<p>He lay still and awe-stricken, gazing at the fair young face that
+shone so white in the dim light. It was turned fully toward him,
+and the large blue eyes were fixed upon his face in an intent gaze.
+He quivered under it, and keen arrows of pain shot along his nerves,
+but he could not turn his eyes from the vision. Not a feature, not
+a curve, not an outline escaped him. He noted how soft and long
+were the dark, curling tresses that fell in loose waves upon her
+shoulders, how gracefully the plain dark robe was fitted to the slender
+figure, how proudly her white throat rose from the dark folds.</p>
+
+<p>Death had not robbed her of that superlative beauty that charmed
+the eyes of all beholders. The frank, violet eyes, the arch red mouth,
+the adorable little nose, the cream-white skin, the dark waving hair
+all were here as of yore, and thrilled his heart again with a passion
+of love and despair.</p>
+
+<p>He gazed and gazed, his nerves strained to their utmost tension,
+and she stood there moveless, stirless, breathless, it almost seemed,
+for his own tense, heavy breathing drowned all other sounds in the
+room.</p>
+
+<p>At length with a great effort of will, he broke the bonds that held
+him, and cried out, hoarsely:</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, Aline, have you come back from the dead to reproach
+me?”</p>
+
+<p>It was like an electric shock galvanizing the seeming ghost into
+life. The girl started and made a step forward. She came nearer
+and nearer until she was leaning toward him, and her sweet, warm
+breath floating over his cheek. This was no ghost, but a living,
+breathing, sentient woman!</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, Mr. Delaney,” she cried, with something like awe in her
+voice, “is it possible that you take me for a ghost?”</p>
+
+<p>He could not speak for joy. His brain reeled deliriously. Could
+it be Aline Rodney in the flesh? Aline Rodney, come back to him
+before he died, looking at him kindly, speaking to him gently?
+Should he not awaken presently and find it all a delusive dream?</p>
+
+<p>He put out his wasted hand and touched her warm, white wrist.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[Pg 146]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Let me touch you, for I cannot believe my eyes,” he said, wistfully.
+“Is it really you, Aline, or only the blessedest dream that
+ever dazed a man’s senses?”</p>
+
+<p>She did not repulse him. She let him hold her hand in his a
+moment that he might assure himself of the reality of this vision.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, it is really I,” she said, reassuringly, and then she added,
+curiously, “Why did you take me for a ghost? Did any one tell
+you I was dead?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, no, it was only my fancy. I was dazed when I opened my
+eyes and saw you there. I had not heard a sound except the cinders
+falling from the grate. What could I think but that you were a
+ghostly visitant from another world?”</p>
+
+<p>She stood gazing down at him, seeming to forget that her hand
+still lay lightly in the clasp of his.</p>
+
+<p>“They told me to come in softly,” she said. “They thought that
+you might be asleep. So I turned the knob softly and came in. But
+when I saw that your eyes were closed I was just going away quietly
+again when you awakened.”</p>
+
+<p>“It was very good of you to come,” he said, softly pressing the
+warm, white hand that lay passive in his. “I did not deserve it.
+I thought that you would hate and scorn me too bitterly ever to
+speak to me again. Thank you a thousand times for coming.”</p>
+
+<p>Something came into the wistful face into which he was anxiously
+gazing—kindness, pity, almost sadness.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I have been very angry with you,” she said, with a curious
+catch in her breath. “I meant that you should never, never see my
+face again. But they told me that you were—were ill, and then I
+came. You know we forgive all things to the dying.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXIV">
+ CHAPTER LXIV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>He had felt that he was slowly dying; he knew that the physician
+and all the others thought so, too. He had not cared for it. He
+had rather exulted in the thought, for he had grown weary of his
+ruined life.</p>
+
+<p>But when Aline Rodney in those few frank words told him that
+he was dying, it touched a chord in his heart that thrilled with the
+keenest pain. There came to him a pang that was like despair at
+the thought of leaving the world with her in it.</p>
+
+<p>For the first time since that horrible night that had freed him from
+the hated fetters that bound him to the deformed maniac, he recalled
+his freedom with a vague, wild rush of happiness at all that was
+possible to him now, if only—if only that gaunt, black shadow of
+death had not stretched out its dark wings over him.</p>
+
+<p>The pang was sharp and bitter. He loved her, and to his fancy it
+seemed as if fate had created this beautiful woman to be his wife.
+They had been at war with each other, and yet his heart had gone
+out to her with its whole freight of manly love and devotion. Must
+he die now and leave her for some other happy man—Mr. Lane,
+perhaps, of whom he was morbidly jealous?</p>
+
+<p>A great longing for life took possession of him. Oh, if only he
+had battled harder to save this existence, which now he prized so
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[Pg 147]</span>much! He hated himself when he remembered that the physician
+had said that he had recklessly flung away his life by his despondency
+and hopelessness.</p>
+
+<p>He pressed closer in his the little hand, and looked yearningly into
+the sweet girl-face with his hollow, burning, dark eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“So you forgive me all?” he said, and she answered, gravely,
+“Yes, all!”</p>
+
+<p>“Forgiveness is the boon we grant to death,” he said, mournfully.
+“But if I were going to live, Aline, would you be less kind?
+Would you refuse to forgive me then?”</p>
+
+<p>He waited anxiously to hear what she would say, though he knew
+that it could not greatly matter now whether she answered him yea
+or not. It was too late now. He was drifting too near to the borders
+of the Shadow-Land.</p>
+
+<p>She looked at him with a faint, almost tender smile on her exquisite
+red mouth.</p>
+
+<p>“I would forgive you if you lived just as freely as I forgive you
+dying,” she answered. “You have made all the atonement you
+could, and I thank you and bless you for it.”</p>
+
+<p>“You know all; they have told you all,” he said, with a faint
+flush creeping into his wan cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes. I have heard all. It was very hard for you, Mr. Delaney.
+You must have been half mad with your trouble; so I forgive you
+now all that you have made me suffer. Perhaps it will make your
+dying-bed easier,” said Aline, with the wonderful pity and forgiveness
+of a true woman’s heart.</p>
+
+<p>“Easier!” he repeated, with a groan, and she did not know that
+it only made it harder. “For if I lived, and she forgave me, I might
+win her yet,” he said to himself. “Oh, how hard it is to die knowing
+all this!”</p>
+
+<p>The door opened softly, and the nurse entered with the inevitable
+tea and toast. She laid fresh coal on the fire and lighted the
+lamp. Then she nodded at Miss Rodney, with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>“He will get well, now that you have come back and forgiven
+him,” she said.</p>
+
+<p>“I hope that he may,” Aline answered, with frank simplicity.</p>
+
+<p>And again she did not know how much harder these words of
+hers made it for the man who knew that he was sinking daily in
+the Valley of the Shadow of Death.</p>
+
+<p>“What would I not give to live?” he inwardly groaned.</p>
+
+<p>“I must go back to mamma now,” said Aline moving to the
+door.</p>
+
+<p>His dark eyes followed her entreatingly.</p>
+
+<p>“Do not go so soon,” he pleaded. “You have not told me yet
+where you have been and how you came back, and I am so anxious
+to hear.”</p>
+
+<p>“Do stay a little longer, Miss Rodney,” pleaded Mrs. Griffin, and
+Aline readily consented to do so.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[Pg 148]</span></p>
+
+
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXV">
+ CHAPTER LXV.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>It looked very pleasant and cozy in the sick-room, with the curtains
+drawn and the bright fire. Aline sat down in the easy-chair
+Mrs. Griffin wheeled forward for her, and was quite unconscious
+what a picture of fair, girlish beauty she made sitting there, in her
+pretty dark blue dress with her dark hair falling over her slight,
+pretty figure.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you know,” she said, looking at the nurse, “that this reminds
+me of the time when I was at Delaney House?—only that it
+was I who was ill then, and not Mr. Delaney.”</p>
+
+<p>“Can you recall those times without being angry with me,
+Aline?” inquired Mr. Delaney, half fearfully.</p>
+
+<p>“I told you I had forgiven you all, Mr. Delaney,” answered
+Aline, as if that implied everything.</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you,” he answered, dropping his head back, with a
+sigh, upon the pillow.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin busied herself in preparing the little table by the bedside,
+which she now wheeled forward with the simple repast neatly
+arranged upon it.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you know that I could not swallow a mouthful now?” he
+said, looking at her with a slight smile. “I am so impatient to hear
+Aline’s story, that I can think of nothing else.”</p>
+
+<p>“But he must keep up his strength, mustn’t he, Miss Rodney?”
+said Mrs. Griffin, anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>“Most certainly! And I shall not begin the telling of my story
+until after he has eaten every bite of his toast and swallowed every
+mouthful of his tea,” answered that young person, with her usual
+cruel directness.</p>
+
+<p>He looked at her imploringly.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you not know that I am far too much excited to eat?” he
+said.</p>
+
+<p>“If that is the case, I am very sorry that I came,” exclaimed Miss
+Rodney. “I was told, particularly, that you must not be excited.
+So I will take myself off at once.”</p>
+
+<p>“Do not go, Miss Rodney,” pleaded the nurse, while the invalid
+cried out, anxiously:</p>
+
+<p>“Stay, Aline, and I will at once proceed to devour every morsel
+on the plate.”</p>
+
+<p>“Very well. In that case I may permit myself to remain awhile
+longer,” she replied.</p>
+
+<p>She sat down again and watched him taking his tea. There was
+a very sober, grave expression on her face while she did so.</p>
+
+<p>She was shocked at the change that had taken place in Mr. Delaney
+since that snowy night, barely five weeks agone, when she
+had asked him to marry her and he had refused her request.</p>
+
+<p>Then he had been tall, strong, handsome, full of life and health.
+Now how pale, how wan, how shadowy, appeared the wasted face
+in which the great burning black eyes appeared so large and solemn.</p>
+
+<p>“Poor fellow! he will not be here long. How dreadful to think
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[Pg 149]</span>that my papa should be the cause of his death,” said the girl to herself,
+with a great wave of pity and regret sweeping over her heart.</p>
+
+<p>He finished his toast and looked at her with a wan smile.</p>
+
+<p>“Now, Aline, you will tell me where you went when you left
+me that night,” he said, pleadingly.</p>
+
+<p>A wave of crimson swept over her face. She recalled the mission
+upon which she had gone to him that time.</p>
+
+<p>“I know what you are thinking of,” he said. “But it was a
+noble motive that prompted you that night. You would have saved
+me from the consequences of your father’s wrath. Ah, Aline, I was
+horribly tempted to take you at your word; but if I had done so I
+should but have done you deeper wrong.”</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I know now, and I thank you for what seemed cruel then,”
+she answered, simply, but the blush still burned her face. She could
+not recall that hasty, impulsive action without the deepest shame.</p>
+
+<p>He gazed at her with sorrowful eyes and an aching heart. Ah,
+how soon the grave would hide him from the sight of those sweet,
+blue orbs!</p>
+
+<p>While the blush still burned her fair face she said to him with a
+half smile:</p>
+
+<p>“Did you think I should be rendered so desperate by your refusal
+that night, that I should go away and drown myself?”</p>
+
+<p>“I thought you would go back home, and I was horrified when I
+found that you had not done so,” he replied.</p>
+
+<p>“No, I was too wretched to go back,” she said. “I was in a
+fever of unrest and trouble when I came to you that night. My brain
+was on fire. I had not stopped to think or to reason. I acted on
+impulse wholly. But your sarcasm, your sternness, stunned me,
+cooled me. When I staggered out of Delaney House I was almost
+dead with shame and despair for what I had done.”</p>
+
+<p>She put up her hand a moment to hide the sensitive quiver of her
+lips, then resumed:</p>
+
+<p>“My first thought was to get away from my home. I longed to
+break loose from old associations and hide myself from all who
+knew me. I turned my steps away from Delaney House, and staggered
+along in the snow until my sense of physical discomfort cooled
+my reckless mood. I began to think that I must stop somewhere or
+I should perish in the cold. Then I remembered my sister Effie,
+who had gone South on a bridal tour.”</p>
+
+<p>She looked from him to Mrs. Griffin, with a smile in her blue
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“You were expecting to hear something tragic, but my story is
+the most prosaic one imaginable. I was not meant for a heroine at
+all; I am too afraid of discomfort and trouble,” she said, with a
+soft little laugh. “When I started I was quite desperate; I did not
+care where I went. But when the snow beat into my face and
+chilled my feet, I became discouraged. I did not want to go back,
+but I longed intensely to be with some one who loved me, and to be
+warm and comfortable.”</p>
+
+<p>“Poor dear!” sighed Mrs. Griffin, sympathetically.</p>
+
+<p>“I had some money in my pocket,” continued Aline. “Papa
+had given it me to buy a black silk dress. I walked to the next station
+from here, bought a ticket to Florida, and went to Effie and
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[Pg 150]</span>Dr. Anthony. You see, Mr. Delaney, there was nothing remarkable
+at all in my second disappearance from home,” she said.</p>
+
+<p>“You should have written to your parents,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“I am ashamed to say that I would not do so,” she answered.
+“I thought that if I let them all think that I was dead, my father
+would drop the subject of the threatened duel. I did not want him
+to be killed, neither did I want you to be hurt, for, angry as I was,
+I shrunk from the thought of bloodshed. So I would not write
+myself, nor would I suffer Effie to write.”</p>
+
+<p>“You would have spared us all much unhappiness had you done
+so,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“I came home to Maywood with them at last,” she said. “By
+that time they had argued me into a more reasonable mood. I was
+willing to return home; but that morning they came over to Chester
+I did not come with them. I sent them before me as <i>avant couriers</i>,
+with the caution not to tell them unless they were very anxious
+over me. They brought back such news that I was stunned. Delaney
+House burned to the ground; the deformed maniac dead; you
+wounded by my father’s hand and your whole story revealed; my
+own name cleared from obloquy, and my friends all ready to crave
+my pardon for their unkindness. It took my breath away.”</p>
+
+<p>He smiled in spite of his pain as he saw the sudden joy-light flash
+over her face. What mattered all that had happened to him so that
+she was saved, this fair sweet girl who had suffered so unjustly.</p>
+
+<p>“You must be very angry with papa, aren’t you, Mr. Delaney?”
+she asked, wistfully.</p>
+
+<p>“Angry? No! I have never blamed him. In his place I should
+have acted the same, no doubt,” he replied, calmly.</p>
+
+<p>“But I am very sorry, and so is papa. I came over this morning,
+and it was one of the first things he told me. He would give
+anything in the world to undo what he has done!” exclaimed Aline.</p>
+
+<p>“Anything?” he repeated.</p>
+
+<p>“Anything!” she reiterated, earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>“And you, Aline?” he questioned.</p>
+
+<p>“I feel worse than papa over it,” said the girl in her frank, innocent
+way.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXVI">
+ CHAPTER LXVI.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Mrs. Griffin had slipped out of the room quietly with her tray
+of empty dishes a moment before. They were alone. Aline shivered
+a little. He looked so wan and ill, what if he should die here
+alone with her?</p>
+
+<p>She half rose from her seat, trembling with agitation, and made a
+step toward the door.</p>
+
+<p>“Are you going so soon?” he asked wistfully.</p>
+
+<p>It flashed over her that it was cowardly to leave him alone because
+she was afraid to see him die. When he held out his hand to her
+she went up bravely to his side.</p>
+
+<p>“I will try not to be afraid,” she said to herself.</p>
+
+<p>“You are going before I have said all that I wish to say to you,”
+he said.</p>
+
+<p>A sudden light flashed over her face.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[Pg 151]</span></p>
+
+<p>“Oh, and there is something I must say to you—I had nearly forgotten!”
+she exclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>“Well,” he asked, looking up into the wide blue eyes regarding
+him attentively.</p>
+
+<p>“They told me you had made a will—that you had left me a great
+fortune. Oh, Mr. Delaney, that must not be! I cannot take it!”
+she cried, earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>“You must, Aline. It is but a small reparation for all the sorrow
+I have caused you,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“But I do not wish to do so. I refuse to accept it!” she cried.</p>
+
+<p>“You are a rash and foolish child, or you would not refuse to accept
+a fortune, Aline,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>“No matter. I will not have it,” she said, resolutely.</p>
+
+<p>“You do not know what pleasures it will procure you,” he
+argued.</p>
+
+<p>“I shall not care for them,” she replied. “You must leave your
+fortune to some one else, Mr. Delaney.”</p>
+
+<p>“To whom?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>“I do not know. Any one you wish,” she replied, indifferently.</p>
+
+<p>All in a moment he caught her hand with a strength she had not
+deemed him possessed of, and drew her toward him.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, darling,” he whispered, with his lips very near to her
+cheek, “will you not let me leave the fortune to my wife?”</p>
+
+<p>She staggered back from him, the color flowing out of her cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>“Your wife?” she faltered.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, my wife,” he said. “Oh, Aline, do not turn away from
+me so coldly. I love you, my darling, and I could die happy if I
+could call you my wife, if but once before that great final hour. Oh,
+Aline, will you give yourself to me for the little while I have to live?
+I do not deserve such happiness, I know, but it will be such a boon
+to me that you cannot refuse. It is only for a little while, you know,
+only to soothe a dying hour!”</p>
+
+<p>She gazed at him, bewildered by his eloquence, her face growing
+deadly white.</p>
+
+<p>“Do you hear me, Aline?” he asked. “I am asking you to be
+my wife. I love you devotedly. I have loved you ever since I first
+met you. Will you not grant my request?”</p>
+
+<p>“I do not want to be married, Mr. Delaney, and—and—you are
+only asking me because—of—that—night,” she said, slowly, with
+downcast eyes.</p>
+
+<p>“On my honor, no, Aline. I am asking you because you won my
+heart long before that dreadful night, and because it would make me
+happy in dying to know that I had left you my fortune and my
+proud old name. It is a most honorable name. Aline, even you, so
+beautiful and sweet, need not disdain it,” he said.</p>
+
+<p>She did not answer a word. She seemed like one dazed by the
+suddenness of all this.</p>
+
+<p>“You said you would do anything to atone for your father’s sin,
+Aline,” he said, earnestly. “Will you do this? Would it be very
+irksome to be my wife a few days or hours, as the case might be?
+It would only be a little while, remember.”</p>
+
+<p>She raised her large, earnest eyes to his face.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[Pg 152]</span></p>
+
+<p>“It would be only a little while—that is true,” she said reflectively.
+“I wonder what my father would wish me to do?”</p>
+
+<p>“Will you let me ask him?” said Oran Delaney, eagerly.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, you may ask him, and I will do just what he tells me. I
+owe him that much obedience in return for all the sorrow I have
+caused him,” said Aline, with her pretty, childish directness.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXVII">
+ CHAPTER LXVII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>“I will do just what papa tells me,” said Aline, trustingly, and
+an eager light of joy gleamed in Oran Delaney’s eyes. He fancied
+that Mr. Rodney would be kind to him—that he would give him the
+boon he craved.</p>
+
+<p>He was right in his surmise. The lawyer was disposed to be very
+kind to the man whom he had wounded near unto death. Now that
+the truth had come to light, now that his beautiful daughter was safe
+at home again, he was sorely repentant for what he had done. He
+was haunted by remorse. He would have given anything in his
+power to undo the deed he had done in his bitter wrath.</p>
+
+<p>And now when Oran Delaney told him in a few frank words that
+his descent into the dark grave would be soothed if he might call
+Aline his bride before he died, he was most eager to grant him this
+boon. Aline, touched with a strange awe at the nearing presence
+of death, and willing to atone for her father’s sin, consented at once
+to give her hand to the man who at best could claim it but a few
+short hours.</p>
+
+<p>Every one of the household was quite willing for this strange marriage.
+They argued that it did not matter, even although Aline did
+not love him, as it was for such a very little while.</p>
+
+<p>So the very next morning there was a strange and quiet marriage
+in the sick-room. Aline, arrayed in all the wedding finery of Effie,
+and lovely as a dream in the new gravity and dignity that had settled
+upon her, stood by the sick-bed with her hand in Oran Delaney’s
+and responded to the solemn marriage service that made her his own
+until Death should part them—Death, that stood silent and unseen
+in the room even now, fearful of being robbed of his prey.</p>
+
+<p>Oran Delaney’s voice rang clear and steady in the beautiful responses.
+Aline’s was low and firm. As in a dream, she felt the
+wedding-ring slipped on her finger, she heard the clergyman’s blessing.
+There was a little stir about her, and then mamma and Effie
+were kissing and crying over her, her father and Dr. Anthony were
+pressing her hand. She shook herself free from them all presently,
+and tried to realize what had happened to her. She, Aline Rodney,
+who, such a little, little while ago had been a willful, thoughtless
+child, was married! She was no longer Miss Rodney—she was Mrs.
+Delaney, and in a short while she would be a widow. How strange,
+how dream-like it all seemed.</p>
+
+<p>She turned suddenly and looked at her bridegroom. He was regarding
+her with a wistful yearning in his beautiful dark eyes. At
+the same moment Effie whispered in her ear:</p>
+
+<p>“Your husband would like to kiss you, darling.”</p>
+
+<p>She went to his side and bent her head so that he might kiss her
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[Pg 153]</span>cheek. He pressed his mustached lips softly against it, whispering,
+fondly:</p>
+
+<p>“Thank you, and God bless you, my wife.”</p>
+
+<p>And then the dark head fell and the eyes closed. For a minute
+they all thought that he was dead, for no breath or pulsation could
+be detected. Mr. Rodney was in despair.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, this is too dreadful!” he cried. “I had hoped that he
+would rally, that God would spare his life, and that I might be
+saved the wretchedness of knowing myself a murderer. And you,
+too, my poor child, are a widow in the hour of your bridal!”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXVIII">
+ CHAPTER LXVIII.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>But Dr. Anthony, who had been making a careful examination of
+the patient, looked around at these words, and said, hurriedly:</p>
+
+<p>“No, no, you are mistaken. I can detect some signs of life yet.
+It is only a deep swoon. Let all leave the room except the nurse
+and myself, and let the attending physician be sent for immediately.”</p>
+
+<p>They all retired, and Aline went to her own room to strip off the
+wedding finery. Then she locked herself in for the remainder of the
+day.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Lane came that day fresh from an unsuccessful quest after
+Aline, and was amazed and delighted when he heard that she had
+come home, and that she had been in Florida all the time with Dr. and
+Mrs. Anthony. He grew red and pale by turns when he heard that
+Aline was married to Mr. Delaney. She was the only woman he
+had ever loved. A swift pain tore his heart as he realized that she
+was lost to him forever, for although her husband was dying, she
+would be too far above him socially as the wealthy widow of Oran
+Delaney for him to ever aspire to her hand.</p>
+
+<p>He remained silent a few minutes fighting down his pain and disappointment,
+and at length reason came to his aid and told him it
+was better so. He was quite old enough to be Aline’s father, and
+besides she was socially his superior. He put away his broken dream
+from him with a suppressed sigh, and declared that he was glad that
+all had turned out so well. All would be well with Aline now.
+Fate had settled her future for her. No one would ever dare to
+asperse her now when she bore the proud name of Delaney.</p>
+
+<p>He would have liked to see her and congratulate her, but they told
+him that she was locked into her room, refusing admittance to any,
+so he went away, leaving his best wishes for her and her husband if
+he ever rallied sufficiently to receive them. That night he went
+back to New York, and in his busy life tried to forget the sweet,
+luring face of the girl who had lured him into such a sweet, momentary
+dream of domestic happiness. He never loved again, never
+wooed nor wedded. A memory of Aline always remained with him,
+but it became in time only a sweet and pleasant one, unmixed with
+pain. Several years after that day of disappointment and pain, he
+met her in New York, and then he saw the wisdom of his loss. She
+was far too brilliant and beautiful ever to have linked her lot with
+his. He smiled and murmured to himself: “Fate is above us all!”</p>
+
+<p>Aline was very sweet and kind to him when they met. She had
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[Pg 154]</span>heard the story of his attachment to herself long before that, and at
+first she had been inclined to laugh at the old bachelor’s romance,
+but when she heard how kind a motive had blended with his love,
+she felt more kindly toward him. In her youth and beauty and
+perfect happiness she could well spare a kindly thought to one who
+had loved her in vain.</p>
+
+<p>She laid her round white arms fondly about the neck of him who
+had made her life so bright and blessed.</p>
+
+<p>“I am sorry for him, dear,” she said. “But I never could have
+loved any one but you, my own, own darling one.”</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_LXIX">
+ CHAPTER LXIX.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>Aline’s momentous bridal day waned slowly to its close.</p>
+
+<p>The physicians remained with Mr. Delaney all day, then left him
+to Mrs. Griffin’s care and went away. He was better, they said, but
+he must have careful nursing.</p>
+
+<p>The wintery day was fading into darkness. Mrs. Griffin had slipped
+out for the tea and toast again, and Mr. Delaney lay among his snowy
+pillows, gazing thoughtfully into the bright fire. His lips moved,
+and he murmured, sadly:</p>
+
+<p>“She will hate me, perhaps.”</p>
+
+<p>The door opened softly. His bride of a day came gliding in, clad
+in her simple dark-blue dress, the loose curls falling on her shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>“You are better?” she said, coming up to him. “Ah, I thought
+you were dead this morning!”</p>
+
+<p>She sat down in a low chair by the side of the bed, very close to
+him. His heart beat with sudden rapture.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes, I thought that I was dying, too,” he said. “You remember
+that moment when I kissed your cheek? Well, just then I had
+a sensation as of falling from a great height. I thought it was the
+last of earth, that I had looked my last on your beloved face, that I
+was surely dying!”</p>
+
+<p>“We all thought so,” she replied, calmly and gravely.</p>
+
+<p>He reached out and took her hand in both his own.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, will you look at me?” he asked.</p>
+
+<p>She lifted the shyly drooping lashes from her violet eyes and
+gazed into his face, frankly and steadily.</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, do you realize that you are really my wife?—that you
+belong wholly to me?” he asked her.</p>
+
+<p>“Yes,” she answered quietly.</p>
+
+<p>“Is there any sorrow, any regret, any repulsion in the thought?”
+he inquired, and she answered in a low voice:</p>
+
+<p>“No.”</p>
+
+<p>“I have something to tell you,” he said, “but oh, Aline, I am
+afraid.”</p>
+
+<p>She grew very pale at those words from his lips. She looked at
+him anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>“You need not be afraid to tell me. Go on. I will try to bear
+it,” she said, with a falter in her voice.</p>
+
+<p>“But, Aline, my own, my darling, you must not hate me for
+<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[Pg 155]</span>this,” he said, passionately. “Indeed I did not know! I believed
+I was surely doomed! And, now, now if only you could forgive
+me for my unconscious deception, I should be the happiest man in
+the world.”</p>
+
+<p>She bent her blue eyes on him full of reproach and pain.</p>
+
+<p>“Happy—at dying? Happy—at leaving <i>me</i>?” she said, in a
+low, strange, bewildered voice.</p>
+
+<p>And for a moment they gazed wonderingly at each other. Then
+he spoke—almost incredulously:</p>
+
+<p>“Aline, have you misunderstood me? I have been trying to tell
+you that the doubt is over. I have rallied from my illness! Love
+and joy have wrought a miracle! <i>I shall live!</i>”</p>
+
+<p>“You—will—live?” she gasped, and stared at him, speechless.</p>
+
+<p>“Oh, my dear, are you so sorry? Do you regret that you gave
+yourself to me? Oh, I would far sooner have died than this!” cried
+out Oran Delaney, in a passion of despair.</p>
+
+<p>But she caught the hand he threw out in his frenzy of despair and
+pressed her lips upon it.</p>
+
+<p>“Ah, Heaven, how glad I am!” she cried; and he answered, wonderingly:</p>
+
+<p>“And you are not sorry—you do not hate me, Aline?”</p>
+
+<p>“No, no, I love you,” she answered, hiding her face against his
+hands. “I think I must have loved you long, but I did not know
+it until I believed you dying. Oh, I thank Heaven that it has so
+kindly granted my prayer!”</p>
+
+<p>“Your prayer, darling?” he said, gathering her in both arms
+tightly, as if he never meant to let her go again.</p>
+
+<p>She whispered, with her lips against his cheek:</p>
+
+<p>“I have been locked into my room all day, Oran, praying, praying,
+on my knees, that your life might be spared to me. And Heaven
+has granted my prayer. You will live for me, my husband!”</p>
+
+
+<p class="center p4">THE END.</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="Look_it_up_in_the_Dream_Book">
+ “Look it up in the Dream Book.”
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+<hr>
+
+<p class="center huge">THE MASCOT DREAM BOOK,</p>
+
+<p class="center large">FORTUNE-TELLER AND HOROSCOPE.</p>
+
+<p class="center">WITH</p>
+
+<p class="center medium">COMBINATION NUMBERS.</p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+<p class="center medium"><b>Price 10 Cents.</b></p>
+<hr class="r5">
+
+
+<p>Nothing which is natural in entirely useless. Dreams must be
+intended for some purpose. About one third of our existence is
+passed in sleep; and during sleep we often dream. Why is this?
+Does the mind naturally and irresistibly act in a certain way, while
+we sleep, and this without any possible useful purpose? Certainly
+not. Common sense, philosophy, and history will contradict this
+supposition. Mankind, in all ages and countries, have agreed in believing
+that dreams have a spiritual origin, and, to a certain extent,
+a useful purpose.</p>
+
+<p>In this little book the interpretation of dreams is reduced to a
+system. If the reader can not assent to the interpretations of dreams
+as here set forth, at least a great deal of entertainment will be found
+in reading them.</p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<p class="center small">IN ADDITION TO</p>
+
+<p class="center">THE MASCOT DREAM BOOK</p>
+
+<p class="center small">THIS LITTLE MANUAL ALSO CONTAINS THE FOLLOWING:</p>
+
+<blockquote>
+<p>Divination by Cards—To Know Whether a Woman will
+Have the Man She Wishes—To Know Whether a Person
+will be Married—Concerning Children Born on any
+Day in the Week—Fortunate Days, Months, and Years—To
+Cast Your Nativity—The Way to Get Rich, and
+Live Happy in the Marriage State—Curious and Instructive
+Information on Physiognomy, etc.</p>
+</blockquote>
+
+<hr>
+
+<p class="small">The Mascot Dream Book is of pocket size, and it can be
+carried without inconvenience.</p>
+
+<p class="small">For sale by all newsdealers, or sent by mail, on receipt of 10
+cents, by the publishers. Address</p>
+
+<p class="center">
+ <span class="smcap medium">George Munro’s Sons, Publishers,</span><br>
+ <br>
+ <span class="small">(P. O. Box 1781.)</span> &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="THE_SWEETHEART_SERIES">
+ THE SWEETHEART SERIES.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<p class="center">
+ PRICE 15 CENTS PER COPY.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;<br>
+ <br>
+ &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;TWO COPIES FOR 25 CENTS.
+</p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+
+<p>These books are printed on good paper, in large type, and are
+bound in handsome photogravure covers of different designs.
+A complete list of CHARLOTTE M. BRAEME’S works is published
+in this series.</p>
+
+
+<h3>Charlotte M. Braeme.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">22 His Perfect Trust.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">24 The Heiress of Hilldrop.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">25 For Another’s Sin.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">26 Set in Diamonds.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">27 The World Between Them.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">28 A Passion Flower.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">29 A True Magdalen.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">30 A Woman’s Error.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">32 At War with Herself.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">33 The Belle of Lynn.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">34 The Shadow of a Sin.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">35 Claribel’s Love Story.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">36 A Woman’s War.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">38 Hilary’s Folly.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">39 From Gloom to Sunlight.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">40 A Haunted Life.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">41 The Mystery of Colde Fell; or, Not Proven.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">42 A Dark Marriage Morn.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">43 The Duke’s Secret.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">44 His Wife’s Judgment.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">45 A Thorn in Her Heart.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">46 A Nameless Sin.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">47 A Mad Love.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">48 Irene’s Vow.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">49 Signa’s Sweetheart.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">51 A Fiery Ordeal.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">52 Between Two Loves.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">53 Beyond Pardon.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">54 A Bitter Atonement.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">55 A Broken Wedding-Ring.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">56 Dora Thorne.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">57 The Earl’s Atonement.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">58 Evelyn’s Folly.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">59 A Golden Heart.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">60 Her Martyrdom.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">61 Her Second Love.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">62 Lady Damer’s Secret.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">63 Lady Hutton’s Ward.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">64 Lord Lisle’s Daughter.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">66 Lord Lynne’s Choice.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">67 Love Works Wonders.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">68 Prince Charlie’s Daughter.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">69 Put Asunder; or, Lady Castlemaine’s Divorce.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">70 Repented at Leisure.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">71 A Struggle for a Ring.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">72 Sunshine and Roses.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">73 Thorns and Orange-Blossoms.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">77 Under a Shadow; or, A Shadowed Life.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">78 Weaker Than a Woman.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">79 Wedded and Parted.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">80 Which Loved Him Best?</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">81 Wife in Name Only.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">82 A Woman’s Temptation.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">83 A Queen Amongst Women.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">84 Madolin’s Lover.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">87 The Sin of a Lifetime.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">88 Love’s Warfare.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">89 ’Twixt Smile and Tear.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">90 Sweet Cymbeline.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">93 The Squire’s Darling.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">94 The Gambler’s Wife.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">95 A Fatal Dower.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">96 Her Mother’s Sin.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">97 Romance of a Black Veil.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">98 A Rose in Thorns.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">99 Lord Elesmere’s Wife.</span><br>
+ 291 Queen of the Lilies. Sequel to Lord Elesmere’s Wife.<br>
+ 103 The Mystery of Woodleigh Grange.<br>
+ 185 A Willful Maid.<br>
+ 186 A Woman’s Love Story.<br>
+ 194 Bonnie Doon.<br>
+ 212 Lady Latimer’s Escape, and A Fatal Temptation.<br>
+ 213 My Poor Wife.<br>
+ 214 Jessie.<br>
+ 215 Phyllis’s Probation.<br>
+ 216 Betwixt My Love and Me.<br>
+ 217 Suzanne.<br>
+ 218 Prince Charming.<br>
+ 222 The Ducie Diamonds.<br>
+ 223 Lady Muriel’s Secret.<br>
+ 224 “For a Dream’s Sake.”<br>
+ 225 Under a Ban.<br>
+ 226 “So Near, and Yet So Far.”<br>
+ 227 A Great Mistake.<br>
+ 228 The Wife’s Secret.<br>
+ 229 For Life and Love.<br>
+ 230 The Fatal Lilies.<br>
+ 231 A Gilded Sin.<br>
+ 232 Ingledew House.<br>
+ 238 In Cupid’s Net.<br>
+ 234 A Dead Heart.<br>
+ 235 A Golden Dawn.<br>
+ 236 Two Kisses.<br>
+ 237 The White Witch.<br>
+ 238 At Any Cost.<br>
+ 239 A Bitter Reckoning.<br>
+ 240 My Sister Kate.<br>
+ 241 His Wedded Wife.<br>
+ 242 Thrown on the World.<br>
+ 243 Between Two Sins.<br>
+ 244 The Hidden Sin.<br>
+ 245 James Gordon’s Wife.<br>
+ 246 A Coquette’s Conquest.<br>
+ 247 A Fair Mystery.<br>
+ 292 The Perils of Beauty. Sequel to “A Fair Mystery.”<br>
+ 248 Wedded Hands.<br>
+ 249 Griselda.<br>
+ 250 Margery Daw.<br>
+ 251 In Shallow Waters.<br>
+ 252 Society’s Verdict.<br>
+ 253 If Love Be Love.<br>
+ 254 The Actor’s Ward.<br>
+ 255 A Willful Young Woman.<br>
+ 256 Marjorie.<br>
+ 257 Lady Diana’s Pride.<br>
+ 258 A Hidden Terror.<br>
+ 259 A Struggle for the Right.<br>
+ 260 Blossom and Fruit.<br>
+ 261 On Her Wedding Morn.<br>
+ 262 The Shattered Idol.<br>
+ 263 The Earl’s Error.<br>
+ 264 An Unnatural Bondage.<br>
+ 265 Golden Gates.<br>
+ 266 A Modern Cinderella.<br>
+ 267 Lured Away.<br>
+ 268 Beauty’s Marriage.<br>
+ 269 Guelda.<br>
+ 270 Dumaresq’s Temptation.<br>
+ 271 Jenny.<br>
+ 272 The Star of Love.<br>
+ 273 A Woman’s Vengeance.<br>
+ 274 Dream Faces.<br>
+ 275 The Story of an Error.<br>
+ 276 The Queen of the County.<br>
+ 277 Her Only Sin.<br>
+ 278 A Fatal Wedding.<br>
+ 279 Under the Holly Berries, and Coralie.<br>
+ 282 Redeemed by Love.<br>
+ 286 Lady Ethel’s Whim, and My Mother’s Rival.<br>
+ 287 Daphne Vernon, and An Alluring Young Woman.<br>
+ 289 Love’s Surrender, and Marion Arleigh’s Penance.<br>
+ 309 A Woman’s Honor.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Robert Buchanan.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 220 The Master of the Mine.<br>
+ 221 The Heir of Linne.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Rosa Nouchette Carey.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">50 Not Like Other Girls.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">85 Only the Governess.</span>
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Sylvanus Cobb, Jr.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 107 Ivan, the Serf.<br>
+ 108 The Queen’s Revenge.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Mrs. E. Burke Collins.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 161 Lillian’s Vow.<br>
+ 162 Sold for Gold.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Marie Corelli.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">20 The Song of Miriam.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">92 Vendetta!</span>
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Jean Corey.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 148 The Dance of Death.<br>
+ 163 A Heart of Fire.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Victoria Cross.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 144 A Girl of the Klondike.<br>
+ 145 Paula. A Sketch from Life.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Dora Delmar.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 152 Cast Up by the Tide.<br>
+ 153 The Scent of the Roses.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>A. Conan Doyle.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">65 A Study in Scarlet.</span><br>
+ 143 The Sherlock Holmes Detective Stories.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>“The Duchess.”</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">74 The Honorable Mrs. Vereker.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">75 Under-Currents.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">76 A Born Coquette.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">91 April’s Lady.</span>
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Alexander Dumas.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">86 Camille.</span><br>
+ 281 The Bride of Monte-Cristo.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>May Agnes Fleming.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 135 The Heiress of Glen Gower.<br>
+ 136 Magdalen’s Vow.<br>
+ 137 Who Wins?<br>
+ 138 Lady Evelyn.<br>
+ 139 Estella’s Husband.<br>
+ 140 The Baronet’s Bride.<br>
+ 141 The Unseen Bridegroom.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Charles Garvice.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">1 The Marquis.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">5 A Wasted Love (On Love’s Altar).</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">7 Leslie’s Loyalty (His Love So True).</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">9 Elaine.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">11 Claire (The Mistress of Court Regna).</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">13 Her Heart’s Desire (An Innocent Girl).</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">15 Her Ransom (Paid For).</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">17 A Coronet of Shame.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">21 Lorrie; or, Hollow Gold.</span><br>
+ 124 She Loved Him.<br>
+ 207 Only a Girl’s Love.<br>
+ 208 Leola Dale’s Fortune.<br>
+ 209 Only One Love.<br>
+ 210 His Guardian Angel.<br>
+ 288 Farmer Holt’s Daughter, and Woven on Fate’s Loom.<br>
+ 293 The Earl’s Heir (Lady Norah).<br>
+ 294 For an Earldom (Love’s Dilemma).<br>
+ 295 The Lady of Darracourt (Lucille).<br>
+ 296 The Heir of Vering.<br>
+ 297 The Gipsy Peer (The Usurper).<br>
+ 298 Jeanne (Barriers Between).<br>
+ 299 So Nearly Lost (The Springtime of Love).<br>
+ 300 So Fair, So False (The Beauty of the Season).<br>
+ 301 My Lady Pride (Floris).<br>
+ 302 Staunch as a Woman (A Maiden’s Sacrifice).<br>
+ 303 The Spider and the Fly (Violet).<br>
+ 304 For Her Only (Diana).<br>
+ 305 Under the Shadow (Iris).<br>
+ 306 A Woman’s Soul (Behind the Footlights).<br>
+ 307 It Was For Her Sake (Olivia).<br>
+ 308 Staunch of Heart (Adrian Leroy).<br>
+ 310 My Lady of Snow, and other stories.<br>
+ 311 Leave Love to Itself, and other stories.<br>
+ 312 The Woman Decides, and other stories.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Wenona Gilman.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 154 Hearts and Lives.<br>
+ 155 Blind Dan’s Daughter.<br>
+ 156 Val, the Tomboy.<br>
+ 157 My Little Princess.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Mrs. Sumner Hayden.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">8 The Midnight Marriage.</span><br>
+ 118 Little Goldie.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Mary J. Holmes.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 111 Tempest and Sunshine.<br>
+ 112 The Homestead on the Hillside.<br>
+ 118 The English Orphans.<br>
+ 122 ’Lena Rivers.<br>
+ 126 Meadow Brook.<br>
+ 201 Dora Deane.<br>
+ 202 Old Hagar’s Secret.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Rudyard Kipling.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 115 Ballads and Other Verses.<br>
+ 116 Drums of the Fore and Aft.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Laura Jean Libbey.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">2 Beautiful Ione’s Lover.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">4 All For Love of a Fair Face.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">6 Daisy Brooks.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 1.0em;">8 Little Rosebud’s Lovers.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">10 A Struggle for a Heart.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">12 Junie’s Love-Test.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">14 Leonie Locke.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">16 Madolin Rivers.</span><br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">18 The Heiress of Cameron Hall.</span><br>
+ 285 Beautiful Victorine’s Folly.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Henry Seton Merriman.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 130 The Phantom Future.<br>
+ 131 Prisoners and Captives.<br>
+ 142 Young Mistley.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 165 Lady Gay’s Pride.<br>
+ 166 Lancaster’s Choice.<br>
+ 167 Tiger-Lily.<br>
+ 168 The Pearl and the Ruby.<br>
+ 169 Eric Braddon’s Love.<br>
+ 170 Little Sweetheart.<br>
+ 171 Flower and Jewel.<br>
+ 172 Little Nobody.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Oliver Optic.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 114 The Boat Club.<br>
+ 120 All Aboard!<br>
+ 121 Now or Never.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Effie Adelaide Rowlands.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 149 A Charity Girl.<br>
+ 150 Husband and Foe.<br>
+ 151 Little Lady Charles.<br>
+ 178 The Man She Loved.<br>
+ 184 One Man’s Evil.<br>
+ 205 Carla.<br>
+ 283 Beneath a Spell.<br>
+ 284 Her Punishment; or, With Heart So True.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Charlotte M. Stanley.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 174 Her Second Choice.<br>
+ 175 His Country Cousin.<br>
+ 176 Frou-Frou.<br>
+ 197 Sybil’s Secret.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>Count Lyof Tolstoi.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 101 The Kreutzer Sonata.<br>
+ 102 Anna Karénine.
+</p>
+
+
+<h3>E. Werner.</h3>
+
+<p>
+ 105 His Word of Honor: or, What the Spring Brought.<br>
+ 106 She Fell in Love with Her Husband; or, “Good Luck;” or, Success, and How He Won It.<br>
+ 109 The Price He Paid.<br>
+ 110 The Master of Ettersberg.
+</p>
+
+<h3>Miscellaneous.</h3>
+
+<table>
+<tr><td class="tdr">19</td><td class="tdl">Woman Against Woman.</td><td class="tdr">Mrs. M. A. Holmes.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">23</td><td class="tdl">Addie’s Husband.</td><td class="tdr">By the Author of “Jessie.”</td></tr><tr>
+<td class="tdr">31</td><td class="tdl">Leonie, the Sweet Street Singer.</td><td class="tdr">By the Author of “For Mother’s Sake.”</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">37</td><td class="tdl">Lady Audley’s Secret.</td><td class="tdr">Miss M. E. Braddon.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">100</td><td class="tdl">The Dolly Dialogues.</td><td class="tdr">Anthony Hope.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">104</td><td class="tdl">Martha; or, The Story of a Clergyman’s Daughter.</td><td class="tdr">W. Heimburg.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">117</td><td class="tdl">The Royal Chase.</td><td class="tdr">Amédée Achard.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">119</td><td class="tdl">Inez: A Tale of the Alamo.</td><td class="tdr">Augusta J. Evans.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">123</td><td class="tdl">Rubáiyát of Omar Khayyám.</td><td></td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">125</td><td class="tdl">In His Steps. “What Would Jesus Do?”</td><td class="tdr">Rev. Charles M. Sheldon.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">127</td><td class="tdl">The Iron Pirate.</td><td class="tdr">Max Pemberton.</td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">128</td><td class="tdl">The Hypocrite.</td><td></td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">129</td><td class="tdl">Dead Man’s Rock.</td><td class="tdr">“Q” (Arthur T. Quiller-Couch).</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">132</td><td class="tdl">A Parisian Romance.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Octave Feuillet.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">133</td><td class="tdl">Carmen: The Power of Love.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Prosper Merimée.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">134</td><td class="tdl">Prue and I.</td>
+<td class="tdr">George William Curtis.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">146</td><td class="tdl">Sappho.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Alphonse Daudet.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">147</td><td class="tdl">Manon Lescaut.</td>
+<td class="tdr">L’Abbé Prévost.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">158</td><td class="tdl">The Banker’s Daughter.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Magdalen Barrett.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">159</td><td class="tdl">The Depth of Love.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Hannah Blomgren.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">160</td><td class="tdl">His Legal Wife.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Mary E. Bryan.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">164</td><td class="tdl">Shadow and Sunshine.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Adna H. Lightner.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">173</td><td class="tdl">Under Five Lakes.</td>
+<td class="tdr">“M. Quad.”</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">177</td><td class="tdl">The Little Light-House Lass.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Elizabeth Stiles.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">179</td><td class="tdl">An Impossible Thing.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Katharine Wynne.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">180</td><td class="tdl">Woman, the Mystery.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Henry Herman.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">181</td><td class="tdl">Christie Johnstone.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Charles Reade.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">182</td><td class="tdl">The Blithedale Romance.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Nathaniel Hawthorne.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">183</td><td class="tdl">Through Green Glasses.</td>
+<td class="tdr">F. M. Allen.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">187</td><td class="tdl">Black Rock.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Ralph Connor.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">188</td><td class="tdl">The Type-Writer Girl.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Olive Pratt Rayner.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">189</td><td class="tdl">The Story of L’Aiglon.</td>
+<td class="tdr">“Carolus.”</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">190</td><td class="tdl">An Englishwoman’s Love-Letters.</td><td></td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">191</td><td class="tdl">Elizabeth and Her German Garden.</td><td></td></tr>
+<tr><td class="tdr">192</td><td class="tdl">The Queen’s Book.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Queen Victoria.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">193</td><td class="tdl">The Best Policy.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Katharine Wynne.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">195</td><td class="tdl">The Danvers Jewels.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Mary Cholmondeley.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">196</td><td class="tdl">Madame Sans-Gene.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Edmond Lepelletier.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">198</td><td class="tdl">Love’s Martyr.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Laurence A. Tadema.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">199</td><td class="tdl">A Crimson Stain.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Annie Bradshaw.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">200</td><td class="tdl">Miss Kate.</td>
+<td class="tdr">“Rita.”</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">203</td><td class="tdl">“By the Waters of Babylon.”</td>
+<td class="tdr">John B. Hopkins.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">204</td><td class="tdl">A Fortnight at the Dead Lake.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Paul Heyse.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">205</td><td class="tdl">Mrs. Austen.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Margaret Veley.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">211</td><td class="tdl">Peg Woffington.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Charles Reade.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">219</td><td class="tdl">The Woman of Fire.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Adolphe Belot.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">280</td><td class="tdl">May Blossom.</td>
+<td class="tdr">Margaret Lee.</td></tr><tr><td class="tdr">290</td><td class="tdl">Wee Macgreegor.</td>
+<td class="tdr">J. J. B.</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p class="small">The foregoing books are for sale by all newsdealers, or they
+will be sent by mail, postpaid, on receipt of 15 cents per copy, or 2
+copies for 25 cents, by the publishers. Address</p>
+
+<p class="center medium">
+ GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS, Publishers,<br>
+ <span class="small">(P. O. Box 1781.)</span> &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; 17 to 27 Vandewater St., New York.
+</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="GOOD_FORM">
+ GOOD FORM:
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+<p class="center medium">A BOOK OF EVERY DAY ETIQUETTE.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By</span> MRS. ARMSTRONG.</p>
+
+<p class="center">WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>PRICE 10 CENTS.</b></p>
+
+
+<p>No one aspiring to the manners of a lady or gentleman can afford
+to be without a copy of this invaluable book, which is certain to spare
+its possessor many embarrassments incidental to the novice in forms
+of etiquette.</p>
+
+<hr>
+
+<h2>MUNRO’S STAR RECITATIONS.</h2>
+
+<p class="center">Compiled and Edited by MRS. MARY E. BRYAN.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><span class="inverted">⁂</span> WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER <span class="inverted">⁂</span></p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>PRICE 10 CENTS.</b></p>
+
+<p>An entirely new, choice and entertaining collection of humorous,
+comic, tragic, sentimental, and narrative poems for recitation.</p>
+
+<p class="center medium">Suitable for Parlor Entertainments, Summer Hotel
+Entertainments, School Exhibitions, Exercise
+in Elocution, Evenings at Home,
+etc., etc.</p>
+
+<p>The whole carefully revised, innocently amusing, instructive and
+entertaining, forming a delightful reading book of poetical selections
+from the best authors.</p>
+
+<hr>
+
+<h2>THE<br>
+ART OF HOUSEKEEPING.</h2>
+
+<p class="center">By Mary Stuart Smith.</p>
+
+<p class="center">WITH HANDSOME LITHOGRAPHED COVER.</p>
+
+<p class="center"><b>PRICE 10 CENTS.</b></p>
+
+<p>A thoroughly practical book on housekeeping by an experienced
+and celebrated housekeeper. Mrs. Smith is a capable and distinguished
+writer upon all subjects connected with the kitchen and household.</p>
+
+<p>The foregoing works are for sale by all newsdealers, or will be sent
+to any address, postage free, on receipt of price, by the publishers.</p>
+
+<p class="center">
+ <span class="medium">Address GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS,</span><br>
+ <span class="smcap">Munro’s Publishing House</span>,<br>
+ 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="A_PRACTICAL_GUIDE">
+ <span class="small">A PRACTICAL GUIDE<br>
+To the Acquisition of the</span><br>
+SPANISH LANGUAGE.
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p class="center">BY LUCIEN OUDIN, A.M.</p>
+
+<p class="center">Price 10 Cents.</p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<h2><span class="small">MUNRO’S FRENCH SERIES.<br>
+No. 1:</span><br>
+An Elementary Grammar of the French Language.</h2>
+
+<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By Illion Costellano.</span></p>
+
+<p class="center">Price 10 Cents.</p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<h2><span class="small">MUNRO’S FRENCH SERIES.<br>
+Nos. 2 and 3:</span><br>
+Practical Guides to the French Language.</h2>
+
+<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By Lucien Oudin, A.M.</span></p>
+
+<p class="center">Price 10 Cents Each.</p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<h2><span class="small">MUNRO’S GERMAN SERIES.<br>
+<span class="smcap">(Two Volumes)</span><br>
+A METHOD OF</span><br>
+Learning German on a New and Easy Plan.</h2>
+
+<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By Edward Chamier.</span></p>
+
+<hr class="r5">
+
+<p>The above books afford a cheap and easy means of learning
+the Spanish, French, and German languages. They have
+had a large sale, and have invariably given entire satisfaction.</p>
+
+<p>For sale by all newsdealers, or sent by mail, on receipt
+of the price, 10 cents each, by the publishers.</p>
+
+<p class="center">
+ Address GEORGE MUNRO’S SONS,<br>
+ <span style="margin-left: 10.5em;"><span class="smcap">Munro’s Publishing House</span>,</span><br>
+ <span class="small">(P. O. Box 1781.)</span> &nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; 17 to 27 Vandewater Street, New York.
+</p>
+
+
+<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
+<div class="transnote">
+<div class="chapter">
+ <h2 class="nobreak" id="Transcribers_Notes">
+ Transcriber’s Notes:
+ </h2>
+</div>
+
+
+<p>This novel first appeared as a serial in the <i>Fireside Companion</i>
+story paper from October 1, 1883 to February 4, 1884.</p>
+
+<p>Obvious typographical errors have been silently corrected.</p>
+
+<p>Some inconsistent hyphenation (childlike vs. child-like) was retained from
+the original.</p>
+
+<p>Table of contents has been added and placed into the public domain by
+the transcriber.</p>
+</div>
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 77775 ***</div>
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/77775-h/images/cover.jpg b/77775-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c2ec211
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/77775-h/images/i1.jpg b/77775-h/images/i1.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..65dd949
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-h/images/i1.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/77775-h/images/i2.jpg b/77775-h/images/i2.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5d5b35e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-h/images/i2.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/77775-h/images/i3.jpg b/77775-h/images/i3.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9a04490
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-h/images/i3.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/77775-h/images/i4.jpg b/77775-h/images/i4.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..752cd81
--- /dev/null
+++ b/77775-h/images/i4.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6c72794
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This book, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..04896de
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for eBook #77775
+(https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/77775)